Clinical Neurocardiology

Download as txt, pdf, or txt
Download as txt, pdf, or txt
You are on page 1of 317

Clinical

Neurocardiology

Louis R. Caplan
J. Willis Hurst
Marc I. Chimowitz

Clinical

Neurocardiolo

Louis R. Caplan
Beth Israel Deaconess Medical Center Boston, Massachusetts

J. Willis Hurst
Emory University School of Medicine Atlanta, Georgia

Marc I. Chimowitz
Emory University School of Medicine Atlanta, Georgia

MARCEL DEKKER, INC. NEW YORK * BASEL

ISBN: 0-8247-1991-3
This book is prinled on acid-free paper.

Headquarters
Marcel Dekker, Inc. 270 Madison Avenue. New York, NY KHH6 tel: 212-696-9000; fax:
212-685-4540
Eastern Hemisphere Distribution
Marcel Dekker AG
Hutgasse 4, Posttach 812. CH-4001 Basel, Switzerland tel: 41-61-261-8482: fax: 41-
61-261-8896

World Wide Web


h 11 p: / / w w w. dekker. com
The publisher offers discounts on this book when ordered in bulk quantities. For
more information, write to Special Sales/Professional Marketing at the
headquarters address above.
Copyright 1999 by Mai tel Dekker, Inc. All Rights Reserved.
Neither this book nor any part may be reproduced or transmitted in any form or by
any means, electronic or mechanical, including photocopying, microfilming, and
recording, or by any information storage and retrieval system, without permission
in writing from the publisher.
Current printing (last digit): 10 98765432 1
PRINTED LN THE UNITED STATES OF AMERICA
Goldhaber: Fundamental and Clinic a) Cardiology
Series I rilRKkiL'liiHi
Marcel Dekker. Inc.. has focused on ihe development of various series of
beautifully produced books in different branches of medicine. These series have
facilitated the integration of rapidly advancing
information for both the clinical specialist and the researcher.
My goal MS editor-in-chief of the Fundamental and Clinical Cardiology series is to
assemble the talents of world-renowned authorities to discuss virtually every area
of cardiovascular medicine. In the current monograph, ,
has I have edited a much-needed and timely book. Future contributions to this
series will include books on molecular biology, interventional cardiology, and
clinicuE management of such problems as coronary artery disease and ventricular
arrhythmias.
Samuel Z. Goldhaber
In
FUNDAMENTAL AND CLINICAL CARDIOLOGY
Editor-in-Chief

Samuol Z. Goldhaber, MX>.


Htintttt} Medievt School
and Brigham and Women 'a Hospital
tfoston, Massachusetts

Associate Editor, Europe

Henri Hmmameaux:, M.I>.


University Hospital of Geneva
Geneva, Switzerland

1. Drug Treatment of Hyperfipidemia, edited by Basil M. Rifkind


2 Cardiotonic Drugs: A Climca! Review, Second Edition, Revised and Expanded,
edited by Carl V, Leier
3.
Complications of Coronary Angioplasty, edited by Alexander J. R. Black. H Vernon
Anderson, and Stephen G. Ellis

4.
Unstable Angina, edited by John D. Rutherford

5.
Beta-Blockers and Cardiac Arrhythmias, edited by Prakash C Deed wan fa

6.
Exercise and the Heart in Health and Disease, edited by Roy J. Shephard and Henry
S. Miller. Jr.

7.
Cardiopulmonary Physiology in Critical Care, edited by Steven M. Scharf

8.
Atherosclerotic Cardiovascular Disease, Hemostasis, and Endothelial Function,
edited by Robert Boyer Francis, Jr.

9.
Coronary Heart Disease Prevention, edited by Frank G Yanovuitz

10.
Thrombolysis and Adjunctive Therapy for Acute Myocardial Infarction, edited by
Eric R. Bates

11.
Stunned Myocardium: Properties, Mechanisms, and Clinical Manifestations, edited
by Robert A. Kloner and Karin Przyklenk

12.
Prevention of Venous Thromboembolism, edited by Samuel Z. Goldhaber

13.
Silent Myocardial Ischemia and Infarction: Third Edition, Peter F. Cohn
14.
Congestive Cardiac Failure: Pathophysiology and Treatment, edited by David B.
Barnett, Hubert Pouleur, and Gary S. Francis

15.
Heart Failure: Basic Science and Clinical Aspects, edited by Judith K. Gwathrney,
G. Maurice Briggs. and Paul D. Allen

16.
Coronary Thrombolysis in Perspective: Principles Underlying Conjunctive and
Adjunctive Therapy, edited by Burton E. So be \ and Desire Collen

17 Cardiovascular Disease in the Elderly Patient, edited by Donald D-Tresch and


Wilbert S. Aronow
18.
Systemic Cardiac Embolism, edited by Michael D. Ezekowitr

19.
Low-MoJecuiar-Weight Heparins in Prophylaxis and Therapy of Thromboembolic
Diseases, edited by Henri Bounameaux

20 Valvular Heart Disease, edited by Muayed AI Zaibag and Carlos M. Durart


21.
Implantable Cardioverter-Defibrillators: A Comprehensive Textbook. edited by N. A.
Mark Estes Hi, Antonis S. Manolis, and Paul J. Wang

22.
Individualized Therapy of Hypertension, edited by Merman M. Kaplan and C. Venka'a
S. Ham

23.
Atlas of Coronary Balloon Angioplasty, Bemhard Meier and Vivek K. Mehan

24.
Lowering Cholesterol in High-Risk individuals and Populations, ediled by Basil M,
Rifkind

25.
Interventional Cardiology: New Techniques and Strategies for Diagnosis and
Treatment, edited by Christopher J. White and Stephen R. Ramee

25. Molecular Genetics and Gene Therapy of Cardiovascular Diseases, edited by


Stephen C. Mcckrin
27. The Pericardium: A Comprehensive Textbook, David H. Spodick 2B Coronary
Restenosis: From Genetics to Therapeutics, edited by GSora Z, Feuerstein
29 The Endothelium in Clinical Practice: Source and Target of Novel Therapies,
edited by Gabor M. Rubanyi and Victor J. Dzau
30.
Molecular Biology of Cardiovascular Disease, edited by Andrew R. Marks and Mark B.
Taubman

31.
Practical Critical Care in Cardiology, edited by Zab Mohsenifar and P.
K. Shah
32 Intravascular Ultrasound Imaging in Coronary Artery Disease, edited by
Robert J. Siege)
33.
Saphenous Vein Bypass Graft Disease, edited by Eric R. Bales and David R. Holmes,
Jr.

34.
Exercise and the Heart in Health and Disease: Second Edition, Revised and
Expanded, edited by Roy J. Shephard and Henry S Miller, Jr.

35 Cardiovascular Drug Development: Protocol Design and Methodology, edited by


Jeffrey S. Borer and John C. Somberg
36. Cardiovascular Disease in the Elderly Patient: Second Edition, Revised and
Expanded, edited by Donald D. Tresch and Wilbert S. Aronow
37, Clinical Neurocardioiogy. Louis R Caplan. J. Willis Hurst and Mark L
r
Chimowitz
33 Cardiac Rehabilitation. A Guide to Practice in the 21st Century, edited by
Nanette K. Wenger, L Kent Smith, Erika Sivarajan Froelicher, and Patrfcia McCall
Comoss
39.
Heparin-lnduced Thrombocytopenia, edited by Theodore E Warkentin and Andreas
Greinacher

40.
Silent Myocardial Ischemia and Infarction: Fourth Edition, by Peter F. Cohn

41.
Foundations of Cardiac Arrhythmias: Basic Concepts and Clinical Approaches, edited
by Peter ML Spooner and Michael R. Rosen

42.
Interpreting Electrocardiograms: Using Basic Principles and Vector Concepts. J.
Willis Hurst

43 Heparin-lnduced Thrombocytopenia Second Edition, edited by Theodore E.


Warkentin and Andreas Greinacher
44.
Thrombosis and Thromboembolism, edited by Samuel Z. Goldhaber and Paul M. Ridker

45.
Cardiovascular Plaque Rupture, edited by David L. Brown

46.
Therapeutic Agents for Thrombosis and Thrombolysis: Second Edition, Revised and
Expanded, edited by Arthur A. Sasahara and Joseph Loscalzo

ADDITIONAL VOLUMES IN PREPARATION

Series Introduction

Ten years after Graham Ganatt. the late Executive Vice President and Publisher nt
Mai vol Dekker. Inc.. first met with me to discuss my being Editor-in-Chief of the
Fundamental and Clinical Cardiology Series, it is a privilege to introduce Clinical
Neurocardiohgy. This book is long overdue and much needed by practicing
cardiologists and neurologists who dread the complications that can occur in each
other's chosen discipline. Graham Gamut and I waited nearly a decade to ask Louts
R. Caplan, MD. to coordinate this important undertaking. He responded
enthusiastically and. along with J. Willis Hurst. MD and Marc I. Chimowit/. MD, has
produced a masterpiece.
Like other practicing cardiologists. I regularly consult neurologists tor my own
patients before and after cardiac and vascular surgery. CI mica i Neuroradiology
will be within arm's reach as I ponder over especially challenging consullati ve
issues or update myself on the latest trends in these closely intertwined
disciplines. This volume of the Fundamental and Clinical Cardiology Series as
conceived by Graham Garratt is an impressive achievement, and 1 am certain that he
is looking down and nodding with pride and approval.
Samuel Z. Galdhaber
m m *

Preface

The heart and the brain are arguably the most important organs in the human body.
The brain is the organ thai makes us what we are. The trails that allow others lo
recognize and characterise each of us us individuals, including our intelligence,
personality, ambition, character, and sense of humor, are all determined by our
brains. Intact brain function is necessary for us lo move, walk, feel. see. hear,
speak, read, and communicate.
The heart is the core, the hub. of the body. The heart is absolutely necessary for
life to continue: when our heart dies, we die. The heart's pumping action keeps the
other body organs alive. The brain, in turn, exerts some control over cardiac
function. Both organs have tentacles that reach the periphery of the bodythe blood
vessels and the spinal cord and peripheral nervous systems and carry activity and
information to and from all the body's vital regions.
The heart and brain are so interdependent and interrelated that it is impossible
to practice first-rate neurology or cardiology without a working knowledge of each
specialty. Neurological complications of cardiac disease and cardiac procedures
and operationsstrokes. >ei/urcs, coma, paralysisare probably among the most
feared patient outcomes for cardiologists. Cardiologists are often asked to consult
on patients with strokes and neurological diseases to determine the presence of
heart abnormalities and their relation to the neurological condition.
This book is aimed at cardiologists, internists, and neurologists. We intend the
book to >ene them as a practical, clinical, and relatively concise source of
information for them about the neurological and cardiological abnormalities
relevant to their practices- At present there is no other handy reference source
thai serves this (unction.
The lirst three chapters consider neurological lindings in patients with heart
disease. Chapter 1 explores the neurology of cardiac arrest and circulatory
failure. Coma and brain damage guide prognosis and heavily determine the treatment
strategies that cardiologists will choose for these patients. Chapter 2 considers
brain embolism. Newer diagnostic techniques such as emboli monitoring using
transcranial Doppler ultrasound show that an ever-increasing percentage of brain
infarcts are due to embolism from the heart, aorta, and proximal cervicocranial
arteries. The effects of various toxic and metabolic disorders that cause
neurological symptoms in patients with cardiac disease are discussed in Chapter 3.
which also includes a discussion of the neurological side effects of drugs commonly
given to cardiac patients.
The next two chapters consider neurological complications of cardiac surgery and
cardiac procedures. Unfortunately, neurological symptoms and signs often follow
cardiac interventions. The causes and outcomes of neurological complications and
their prevention and treatment are considered in these chapters.
Finally, Chapters 6 and 7 describe the cardiac and cardiovascular as well as the
neurological lindings in patients whose primary disorders are neurological. Chapter
6 discusses the management of patients who have both coronary artery and carotid
artery disease. Since occlusive vascular disease is one of the most common causes
of both brain disease and heart disease, the topic of coexistent coronary and
cerebrovascular disease is an important issue for both cardiologists and
neurologists. Chapter 7 describes the cardiac lesions and cardiac findings as well
as the common neurological lindings in patients with primary neurological diseases
such ;is stroke, muscle dystrophy, hereditary ataxias, etc. and the cardiac and
cardiovascular findings in patients with disorders that affect both the heart and
the nervous system.
Central nervous system and muscle diseases often have an associated cardiopathy.
Cardiologists are frequently asked to consult on patients with a wide variety of
neurological conditions, and neurologist soften consult on patients with various
systemic and cardiac disorders. Many of the neurological diseases are rare In some
patients, a systemic condition such as an endocrinopathy affects both the heart and
nervous system. In other patients, the cardiac and neurological conditions are
concurrent but not causally related and are each a part of a genetically mediated
conditione.g., a mitochondrial disorder.
Associated cardiac lindings are important and often determine prognosis. Ther i
read f informatio availabl fo cardiologists neurolo hypertension* cerebrovascular
disease, or stroke diagnosis or management in any depth in this book, since
excellent lexis are available on these vast subjects.
The two principal neurologist authors. Drs. Cap]an and Chimowitz, each have had.
for a very long time, a major interest in both stroke and heart disease Dr. Cap]an
is board-certified in internal medicine as well as neurology. In medical school he
was a disciple of Drs. Barney Marriott and Leonard Sherlis. He was fortunate at the
Beth Israel Deaconess Medical Center and the New England Mediciil Center in Boston
and al the Michael Reese Hospital in Chicago to have worked closely with many
outstanding cardiologists, including Paul Zoll, Stafford Cohen, George Kinland.
Ivan D'Cruz. Herb Levine, Deeb Salem. Nat Pandian, Mark Estes. Paul Wang, Earl
Silbcr, and Arnold Pick. Dr. Marc Chimowitz was the director of the stroke service
at the University of Michigan and now serves in that capacity al Emory University
in Atlanta. He developed an interest in heart-brain interactions when, as an
intern, he spent 2 months on Professor Christiaan Barnard's cardiac surgery sen ice
at ihe Groote Sehur Hospital in Cape Town. South Africa. During his fellowship in
stroke at the Cleveland Clinic, he had extensive experience with patients who had
cardiac procedures and cardiac surgery. He was fortunate to have been guided by
Drs. Tony Fur lan and Cathy St la. neurologists at the Cleveland Clinic who have
written extensively on cardiac neurology.
Drs. Caplan and Chimowitz have had extensive experience in writing about sinike and
in writing for cardiologists and internists. They enlisted the help of Dr. J.
Willis Hurst of Emory University to write about the cardiac findings in patients
with primary neurological diseases. Dr. Hurst has always had a wide interest in
general internal medicine, including neurology as well as cardiology. His writings
are very well known to cardiologists throughout the world. Dr. Hurst has read and
commented on all the chapters in this book, which represents the combined
experience of the three authors.
We owe thanks to a great many individuals who helped with this book. In Boston,
Pauline Dawley was instrumental in ensuring thai the references, permissions, and
final drafts were prepared speedily and accurately. Susan Marshall and Carol Miller
played similar roles in Atlanta. Dr. Rick Schie-fe, a neurophurmaeo,ogist.
reviewed Chapter 3 and offered sage advise. Dr, Roy Freeman, an expert on the
autonomic nervous system, reviewed Chapter 7 and offered a number of suggestions.
Dr. Frank Sellke, a cardiac surgeon, critiqued Chapter 4. A number of colleagues
from the neurology and cardiac sen'Sees at the Beth Israel Deaconess Medical
Center, the New England Medical Center, and Emory University were very helpful in
consulting on aspects of the first three chapters and Chapter 7.
Contents

Series Introduction (Samuel Z. Goldhaber) Hi Preface v


1.
Cardiac Arrest and Other Hypoxic-Ischemic Insults 1

2.
Brain Embolism 35

3.
Encephalopathies and Neurological EfTeeis of Drugs Used in Cardiac Patients 186

4.
Neurological Complications of Cardiac Surgery 22ft

5.
Neurological Complications of Nonsurgical Cardiac Interventions 258

6.
Asymptomatic Coronary Artery Disease in Patients with Carotid Artery Stenosis:
Incidence, Prognosis, and Treatment 287

7.
Cardiac and Cardiovascular Findings in Patients with Nervous Svstcm Diseases 298

Index 467
ix

Cardiac Arrest and Other Hypoxic-Ischemic Insults


BACKGROUND
Sudden toss of the pumping capabilities of the heart is a very common cause of
death and an important cause of loss of brain functions. Sudden cardiac death is
the leading cause of mortality among middle-aged men. In the United Sunes about
400.000 individuals have sudden cardiac arrests each year, and sudden cardiac death
is a major medical and public health problem throughout the world
fl-31.
At the time of resuscitation of patients who have had cardiac arrest, ventricular
fibrillation is the most common rhythm found, followed by asystole and
electromechanical dissociation [3J. Coronary artery atherosclerosis is the
predominant pathology leading to the arrhythmias, but younger patients often have
hypertrophic cardiomyopathy and congenital anomalies. The etiology of cardiac
arrest in many patients remains unexplained even after necropsy.
The ancients tried to resuscitate the dead by physical stimulation, warming, and
blowing air into the mouth 12,41. In the middle of the 18th century, Tossach
described the case of a man resuscitated by mouth-to-mouth ventilation, and by the
beginning of the 19th century physicians had conceived of using electric shocks to
treat abnormal hearts [4J. In 1947. Beck and colleagues reported successful
cardiac defibrillation at thoracotomy [5|. and 9 years later Paul Zoll and his
colleagues at the Beth Israel Hospital in Boston reported the first successful
termination of ventricular fibrillation by an externally applied electrical
countershock |6|, Dr. Zoll was an esteemed colleague of one of the authors (L.R.C)
when he was a junior staff neurologist; contact with Paul Zoll stimulated an
intense interest in cardiac arrest and its neurologic sequellae. In 1958 Safar et
ah popularized the present method of mouth-to-moulh respiratory resuscitation [7],
and Kouwenhoven, Jude, and Knickerbocker at Johns Hopkins in 1960 described the
now popular method of closed-chest cardiac massage [8|. The next year. Safar and
colleagues described the currently used method of cardiopulmonary resuscitation
(CPR), which combines cardiac massage with mouth-to-mouth respiratory resuscitation
19J.
During the last three decades, there have been few important advances in CPR
methodology. Attempts at out-of-hospital resuscitation of patients who have had
cardiac arrests are now quite commonplace, and many urban centers in the United
States and Europe have trained paramedic learns and systems to manage such
emergencies. Some communities have attempted to educate bystanders about the
initiation of CPR. In-hospital cardiac arrests are an extremely common occurrence
and nearly all hospitals have code protocols and training for management of this
potentially mortal event. Table 1 shows data from some large studies of out-of-
hospital CPR efforts [10-171, and Table 2 contains data from in-hospital
resuscitations 118-211. About one in live out-of-hospital CPR efforts results in
survival until hospitalization, hut less ihan one patient in 10 (9%) survives
hospitalization.
About twice as many patients who have CPR after in-hospital cardiac arrests
survive hospitalization, compared with those resuscitated outside of hospitals.
Survival is belter when patients are young and have ventricular fibrillation as the
cardiac rhythm when first examined, when I he arrests are witnessed, and when
resuscitative efforts are begun quickly by bystanders [22], paramedics, or
physicians. Long-term survival from prehospital or in-hospital cardiac arrests is
complex and depends on the age and premorbid health of the patients, the nature and
.severity of their cardiac and other medical diseases, further complications during
the hospitalization, the recurrence of cardiac arrest f 1,2,23], and the time of
the initiation of CPR and the length of time taken for successful resuscitation.
Few reports discuss in depth the neurological sequelae of the patients who have
been successfully resuscitated from cardiac arrest. Many patients arc comatose or
stuporous when first examined after in-hospital CPR, Alertness and neurological
status are important prognostic factors in predicting recovery. Tarfet ei al.
commented that mental function was often severely impaired in survivors, especially
in the elderly [201. About half of the patients in their study under age 70
attained level which the oriented bu onl i fiv f thos 70
TABLE 1 Large Out-of-Hospital Cardiac Arrest Series
Reference Area Years Arrests Admit to hospitals Discharged alive
LongsLreth [10] Seattle 1983-88 3029 860 (28%) 363 (12%)
Becker [llj Chicago I9S7 3221 296 (99c) 55 (2%)
Eisenberg f 121 Seattle 1976-81 1567 557 (36%) 302 (19%)
Ei sen berg 1131 Israel 1984-85 3594 531 (15%) 198 (7%)
Cummins [14] Seattle 1976-83 2043 no data 373 (18%)
Goldstein [151 Michigan 1975-82 3849 699 118%) 274 (7%)
TroianoWeaverTotals 1161 | |7| Milwaukee Seattle 1983-85 1984-86 1660 1287
19,651 421 (25%) 181 (14*) 3545/17.608 (20%) 138 (8%) 102 (8%) 1805 (9%)

TfiiBiF, 2 In-Hospital CPR Series


Area Years Patients Successful CPR Discharged
Murphy [18] Bedell [19] TalTei |2()| Tunslall-Pedoe [211 Totals Boston"* Boston
Houston11 U.K. 1977-87 1981-82 1984-85 1985 259 294 329 pts(399 CPRs> 2838 3720
pis 92 (36%) 128 (44%) 161 CPRs (40%) 1277 (45%) 1658 (44%) 17 (6,541 (1422 (7%
580 (20660 (18% % % %
J Elderly patients (>70 yrs). h Male Veterans Administration Ho.spilid 1'atienLs.

successful CPR, four of the 17 (24%) paEients who were alert during the first
hospital examination died, compared to 60 deaths among me 100 (60%) patients who
had reduced levels of consciousness |24|. Among the !7 patients in this series who
were alive and were examined 3-1/2 years after cardiac arrest, two were
neurologically normal, six were mildly demented, and eight were severely demented,
three of whom also had other neurological disabililies; one other patient was
aphasic and had a hemiparesis [251. Troiano and colleagues were able to follow the
neurological outcome of 128/138 patients who were successfully resuscitated 116].
Moderate neurological disability was present in 28 (22%); 21 (16%) were severely
disabled and dependent, and 7(5%-) were left in a persistent vegetative state IJ6J.

Clearly, advances in CPR techniques; widespread dissemination of information to


medical, paramedical, and lay persons; and the increasing availability of trained
personnel and facilities within many communities, have saved innumerable lives.
Unfortunately, in some patients the heart is able to recover from ischemia only in
heat wiihin an individual whose brain has been irreversibly damaged by the
ischemic-anoxic insult suffered during the period of circulatory failure. Machines
are now sometimes able to prolong life indefinitely in patients with severe brain
damage, Many such patients survive in a persistent vegetative state even after the
machines are disconnected. Other patients survive with varying degrees of loss of
mental functions and other neurological handicaps
Nearly all physicians have experienced the tragedy of performing successful CPR,
only to have saved a now brainless soul whose survival is only vegetative. Long-
term survival in a senseless or demented state is a disaster for the family and
friends of the survivor, and creates untold and incalculable costs to the community
in dollars, utilization of resources, and heartache,
llie remainder of this chapter will be devoted to describing the neurologic
sequelae o\ cardiac aires; and other disorders thai cause general systemic hypo
perfusion or anoxia, including the pathology and pathophysiology of the central
nervous system damage (so-called hypoxic-ischemic encephalopathy), the resulting
clinical syndromes and their neurological findings, the prognostic utility of
various neurologic signs at various times after cardiac arrest, the utility of
neurological tests for prognostication, and the effects of various treatments on
neurologic recovery 126.27].
PATHOPHYSIOLOGY AND PATHOLOGY OF BRAIN DAMAGE
Because these two conditions, hypoperfusion and hypoxia, almost invariably coexist
to some degree, the ensuing brain damage is often called hypoxic-ischemic
encephalopathy. Prolonged severe hypoxia, as occurs in carbon monoxide poisoning,
strangulation, and drowning, eventualty causes cardiac damage and hypotension.
Cardiac arrest or severe hypotension and shock causes respiratory insufficiency
and secondary hypoxemia. The severity and distribution of hypoxic-ischemic damage
depends heavily on the relative ratio of hypoxia to ischemia, and the severity and
duration of the hypoxia and of the hypoperfusion [261. Car diac arrest produces A
dit'terem distribution ol brain lesions than systemic hypotension.
The pathology of ischemic cell damage is distinctive. Hypoxic-ischemic neurons are
usually shrunken; the nuclei are pyknotic and contain course nuclear chromatin; the
cytoplasm is typically eosinophilic [2729j. Although much of the effect of severe
hypoxic-ischemic insults are delectable immediately in necropsied brains, some
pathological changes develop later, even after circulation and adequate
respirations have been restored. For example, microvascular damage with failure of
perfusion of regions of brain tissue (the so-called no-re flow phenomenon [301) can
develop after the circulation is restored, and causes pot sistent regional
hypoperfusion. Arterioles and capillaries are plugged by. endothelial cell
fragments, swollen endothelial cells, polymorphonuclear leukocytes adherent to
endothelial cells. platelet-Hbrin clumps, and micrnthrombi |2X.3().31I. Brain areas
such as the hippocampus [32]. cerebral white matter 133,34], and basal ganglia [33-
35] can show delayed neuronal necrosis. Controversy still surrounds whether these
delayed changes are set in motion by the hypoxic-ischemic insult which initiates a
self-perpetuating chain of events thai takes time to mature, or restitution of
oxygenation and blood How somehow promote some of the changes, "Reperfusion
injury'" is a iheoretical hypothesis 136.37], but the evidence that rcperfusion
actually causes brain damage in humans is very scanty.
Jn areas of ischemia there is breakdown of cell membrane functions with
intracellular potassium ion release into the interstitial extracellular space and
calcium influx into the cells. This process could facilitate further cell death.
Edema 138], lactic acid, gtutamate, and other "excilotoxic" suhstances [39J and
free radicals can be generated by the ischemic process and lead to further cell
death [28]. Rcperfusion could theoretically (I J enhance ischemic brain damage by
precipitating hemorrhages from damaged capillaries; (2) promote edema because of
deficient endothelial cell membrane and capillary functions; (3) bring particles
such as platelet-fibrin aggregates, cholesterol chrystals, and erythrocyte-fibrin
thrombi that had formed during slowed circulation into the region; (4) carry
metaboli substrate h glucos d int th regio (thes could b metab zones [28]. Until
further proof of the validity of the concept of "reperfusion injury," doctors
should continue to aggressively and rapidly try to restore the circulation and
oxygenation in patients with cardiac and circulatory arrest and failure.
Clinical experience and the results of laboratory experiments in animals have shown
convincingly that certain brain regions are more susceptible than others to injury
from hypoxia and ischemia, This selective vulnerability explains why a systemic
insult {hypoxia and ischemia) injures some brain cells more than others. The most
vulnerable neurons are those in the cerebral cortex, especially in the middle
laminae: pyramidal neurons in the CA1 zone of the hippocampus; neurons in portions
of the amygdaloid nucleus; Purkinje cells in the cerebellar cortex: neurons in the
caudate nucleus, putamen, globus pallidus. motor nuclei in the brainstem; and
neurons in the anterior, dorsomedial. and pulvinar thalamic nuclei [27].
I'iie patiem and distribution of injury also depend on the anatomy of the arterial
circulation. Brain regions between arterial territories (so-called border zone, or
watershed, regions) show more injury than brain areas in the heart of the major
feeding brain arteries. Selective vulnerability and circulatory anatomy plus
differential responses to hypoxia and ischemia explain the various patterns of
brain damage seen in patients wiLh cardiac arrest and severe hypoxia. The most
common patterns are listed in Table 3. The various regions of involvement arc also
illustrated in Figure I. A knowledge of the anatomical patterns helps clinicians
understand the clinical syndromes and also the utility of some of the
investigations used in evaluating patients with hypoxic-ischemic encephalopathy.
T able 3 Common Patterns of Hypoxic-Ischemic Injury and Their Causes
1.
Diffuse cerebral cortical injury sometimes with laminar necrosis of the
middle conical layers; cardiac arrest or prolonged hypotension

2.
Ischemic damage to border zone regions especially between the middle and posterior
cerebral artery territories and between the anterior and middle cerebral artery
territories: cardiac arrest or prolonged hypotension (40-43J

3.
Necrosis of hippocampal neurons especially in the CAI zone; cardiac arrest or
prolonged hypotension |32|

4* Necrosis of basal ganglia and thalamic neurons; delayed necrosis of the basal
ganglia and cerebral white matter; severe hypoxia, especially strangulation,
hanging, carbon monoxide poisoning, drowning; probably more common in young adults
[33-35.44]
5 Necrosis of Purkinje cells in the cerebellum; prolonged ischemia [27.451

CLINICAL ABNORMALITIES AND SYNDROMES Brainstem and Bihemispheral Coma


Consciousness depends upon slimuJalien of the cerebral hemispheres by neurons
within the brainstem tegmentum. Coma nccurs aftei damage lo the medial por tions of
the brainstem tegmentum in the pons and midbrain, or the bilateral cerebral
hemispheres. Virtually all patients who have had cardiac arrest have an initial
period of coma. When comatose patients are first examined, there are two different
patterns of findings, depending on the presence or absence of brainstem reflexes.
In patients with severe prolonged hypoxic-anoxic insults, the pupils arc dilated,
corneal reflexes are absent, and the eyes remain midline and do not move
horizontally or vertically to passive head movements ("doll's eyes" reflex) or
react to ice water in the ear canals. Some patients have no spontaneous res pi
rations and must be ventilated mechanically. Spontaneous limb movements, except
for low-level decorticate or decerebrate movements, are absent. This state is
usually referred to as brainstem coma because it indicates injury to brainstem
tegmental nuclei. When this state is prolonged, death invariably follows.
Some infants and young children and occasional adults have selective necrosis of
their brainstem tegmental nuclei [46.471. These patients have loss of reflex eye
movements; facial, pharyngeal, and tongue weakness; and loss of gag reflex
responses. They usually have stiff, immobile limbs and only automatic and autonomic
responses to environmental stimuli. Control of respirations may be lost and the
pulse and blood pressures may fluctuate widely. This slate invariably proves fatal.
Imaging may show no cerebral he mi spheral abnormalities, and the brainstem may
even appear normal on gross inspection at necropsy. Microscopic examination shows
selective necrosis of brainstem nuclei.
Some patients with brainstem coma regain their brainstem reflexes and spontaneous
respirations and enter a state called bihemispheral coma. Other patients have
bihemispheral coma when first examined ueurologiealh and have not been recognized
lo have gone through a stage of brainstem coma. Patients with bihemispheral coma
are unresponsive to noise, voice, or bright light. There may be some spontaneous
movements of all limbs. The pupils are normal or con-
FtG. 1 (A) Drawing of a horizontal section of the cerebrum illustrating common
patterns of hypoxic-ischemic damage. (a) Border/one infarcts: <h> /ones of laminar
necrosis within the cerebral cortex; (c) hippocampal necrosis; (d) necrosis of
nerve cells within the globus
strictecl and do react to light. The eyes usually remain in the midline, rove from
side to side, or are deviated upward. Passive movements readily elicit horizontal
eye movements. Often these "doll's-eyes" movements are hyperactive, indicating
lack of cerebral inhibition of the vestibulo-ocular reflex. Vertical eye movements
usually can be elicited by Hexing and extending the neck. In patients with forced
upward eye deviation, it may be difficult to get the eyes to move fully downward on
this vertical dollVeyes maneuver. The gag reflex is usually present. Some patients
with bihemispheral coma have their mouths open, and some keep their jaws tightly
clenched and "bulldog" down <m tubes or sticks placed in their mouths, making it
difficult to see the throat or perform the gag reflex. Watching these patients from
the foot of the bed shows that they often spontaneously blink, yawn, sneeze,
cough, hiccup, protrude their tongue, lick the lips, sigh, and swallow 148]. These
spontaneous mouth, face, and tongue movements are mediated through brainstem
structures and indicate that the brainstem is working. Coma is due to loss of the
normal functions of both cerebral hemispheres.
Spontaneous limb movements and responses to pinch in the limhs vary considerably.
Patients who have dysfunction of the corticospinal tracts often have preserved
adduction and flexion movements of the shoulders, arms, and wrists. When pinched on
either the flexor or extensor surface of the arm, forearm, or hand, they will Ilex
and adduct the arm and shoulder irrespective of the site of stimulation. The
flexion response brings the arm into stimuli on the flexor surface. Spontaneous or
reactive extension or abducting movements of the arm or forearm, preserved
movements of individual lingers, and limb withdrawal from pinch appropriate lo the
site of stimulation (flexion or adduction when pinched on the extensor surface, and
extension or abduction when pinched on the flexor surface, movements which move the
upper limb away from the stimulus) show that the corticospinal tracts are preserved
and functioning. Similarly. lo*s of corticospinal tract function leads to extension
and adduction of the lower limhs. Hex ion and abduction movements, spontaneously or
in response to pinch, usually indicate corticospinal tract preservation. The
ability to remove or react to pinch with either the same or contralateral arm
indicates that the stimulus has been perceived. Use of the arm contralateral to the
pinch to ward off the noxious stimulus almost always indicates weakness of the
ipsilateral arm. Major asymmetries of motor or sensory function usually mean
asymmetrical brain damage.
Patients with bihemispheral coma may remain in a vegetative state poorly responsive
to envin
lental stimuli, ov \\ic\ can become more alert and respon sive. A number of
clinical patterns of dysfunction can ensue from the bihemispheral coma stage.
Figure 2 shows these patterns.
normal brain function
Brainstem
myoclonic sums
coma

pcnusienr vegetative state Bihemispheral ^TdyMonie-rigid state

borderzone infarcts moior signs

visual signs

3mnesia
net ion infenttcid myoclonus

spinal paraplegia
FlG. 2 Clinical patterns of function in patients with hypoxic-ischemic central
nervous system injury.
as myoclonus. The eyelids, jaw, and facial muscles are often involved and can lead
to rhythmic eye opening, jaw clenching, facial grimacing, platysma contractions,
and neck movements. The limbs and trunk muscles also jerk. The movements occur
spontaneously but are often increased by painful stimuli, insertion of catheters,
suctioning, and movement of parts of the body during examinations. In some patients
with myoclonic jerks there are also synchronous bilateral generalized jerks which
are referred to as mytxlfuuc seizures. When the myoclonic jerks and seizures are
nearly constant, the disorder has been referred to as my-or Ionic slants epileptk-
us. Myoclonic jerks and myoclonic seizures are found in patients with relatively
severe hypoxic-ischemic damage to the cerebral cortex. Usually laminar necrosis of
the larger cell layers of die cerebral cortex is present and may be quite diffuse.
When myoclonic jerks are widespread and accompanied by frequent myoclonic seizures
or status, the prognosis for recovery is dismal |49-5I|.
Persistent Vegetative State
Vegetative state is a term used to describe patients who awaken from coma and
retain reflex functions but show no signs of cognition or meaningful responses to
thei environment [52-54j Thes patient hav sleep-wak cycle d d painful stimuli- The
eyes usually rove but may seem to tixatc transiently on an object or person: the
eyes do not show sustained visual pursuit of objects or people. Vegetative patients
do not utter words or understandable speech or gesture meaningfully with their
limbs, face, or body, and they do not obey commands or show responses to queries:
they may emit groans or other noises. The electroencephalograms (EEGs) of these
patients usually show low-amplitude, severe delta slowing. Necropsy shows extensive
cortical laminar necrosis and infarction [53]. sometimes with necrosis of thalamic
nuclei 1441. The persistent vegetative state is a manifestation of extensive damage
to the cerebral cortex with preservation of the brainstem. Outlook for recovery'
after months in this state is very poor.
Dystonia. Rigid State
Some patients awaken from bihemispheral coma but have delayed worsening of brain
functions and become stiff and immobile. The first reported patients with delayed
deterioration after hypoxic-ischemic insults were described by Plum, Posner, and
Haiti in 1962 [331. Three of the five patients reported had deterioration after
exposure to noxious gases and had predominantly hypoxic injuries. The other two
patients worsened after surgery and had both documented hypotension and
hypoperfusion, and anoxia f33]. The patients were all in deep coma when first
examined after the insult but awakened within 24 hours and resumed relatively
normal activities and functions for 4 to 10 days. They then developed cognitive and
behavioral abnormalities characterized mostly by apathy, irritability., agitation,
restlessness, and confusion. Walking then became quite clumsy and the limbs became
rigid and stiff. Outcome varied from full recovery lo severe disability lo death.
Necropsy in the two patients that died turned extensive while matter demyelination
in the cerebral hemispheres, and one patient also had cystic necrosis in the medial
globus pallidus bilaterally 133J.
Subsequent reports have confirmed the existence of a leukoencephalopathy, often
with basal ganglionic damage that follows hypoxic-ischemic events [34*35], The
while matter damage involves rather diffuse injury to the white matter that ranges
from patchy demyelination to hemorrhagic white matter necrosis [34|. Most reported
patients are young and the insult has most often been predominantly hypoxice.g..
carbon monoxide intoxication, strangulation, drowning, gas inhalation. When
initially examined after the insult, the patients were in coma often with loss of
muscle tone, quudriparesis. or involuntary movements of the limbs. MOM patients who
developed severe limb dysfunction with rigidity, abnormal movements, and dystonia
never improved after the initial hypoxic-ischemic
bu hav had delayed deterioratio firs d b Plu l presents a sharp contrast to the
cerebral cortex necrosis with usual preservation til subcortical structures found
in patients with the persistent vegetative slate.
In recent reports, two patients with delayed hypoxic leukoeneephalopaihv have shown
a reduction of arylsulfalase-A activity to <50 # of normal 155,56]. Although this
degree of reduction does not ordinarily cause symptoms, hypoxia could cause tissue
acidosis, which might potentiate myelin damage. Arylsulfatase-A is a lysosomal
enzyme active in the lipid metabolism of myelin. In the presence of local tissue
acidosis, this enzyme deficiency could make patients vulnerable to demyeiination.
Proton MR spectroscopy of the white matter lesions helped to identity one reported
patient 156J and might be helpful in evaluating other patients with hypoxic-
ischemic encephalopathies.
Border Zone Infarction
Some patients who have had cardiac arrest or other causes of systemic hypotension
and hypoperfusion ha\e discrete zones of infarction located in regions of the
cerebrum, cerebellum, and brainstem that are in areas between the usual main supply
territories of brain arteries. These regions are usually referred to as border
zones, watersheds, or distal fields [401, The distribution of ischemia in the hrain
has been compared lo damage lo a lawn or a farm crop related to disruption of its
water supply. Visualize a Held fed by three hoses. The hoses are attached to a
water supply and a pump. If one of the hoses, the middle one, is blocked and the
water supply and pump continue to function as before, then the damage to the field
will lie in the direct center of the blocked hose. The amount of water that
formerly went into the middle hose would now go into the two lateral hoses which
would extend their supply /ones medially.
The brain corollary of this instance would be an occluded middle cerebral artery.
The infarct would lie in the center of supply of this vessel. Suppose, however,
the hoses remained open but there was insufficient water in the tank or the water
pressure declined dramatically. Any residual water supply would trickle out of each
of the hoses and would supply the center area fed by the individual hoses. The
watershed (border zone) between the centers of supply would now be injured. The
brain corollary would be damage to the cerebrum in the zones between the supply
areas of the middle, anterior, and posterior cerebral arteries, and damage in the
cerebellum between the supply areas of the posterior inferior, anterior inferior,
and superior cerebellar arteries. This analogy is illustrated in Figure 3.
The most common regions of border zone infarction are in the temporal parietal-
occipital region betwee th suppl /one f th middl d posterio

FIG. 3 Cartoon illustrating border zone infarction. The cartoon shows the analogy
he-I ween a pump system wifh three hoses drawn in the left figures and the brain
and its circulation shown on the right. (A) Normal pump and arterial circulation.
MJi Reduced pump pressure causing underperfusion between the hoses and in the
arterial border zones (gray speckled regions). (C) Blocked hose. The middle hose is
blocked and so is the middle cerebral artery. The resulting underperfusion is in
the middle of the hose and the core supply of the middle cerebral artery (gray
speckled region). (From Ref. 105.)
infarcts. The pattern of damage is most often a triangular wedge thai includes the
cortex and subcortex, hut in some patients the white matter border zone regions
are most involved. Figure 4 illustrates the dil lerent patterns of border zone
injury. These visual patterns are useful to keep in mind when viewing neuroimaging
scans of patients who have had hypoxic-ischemic insults.
Posterior border-zone infarcts in the tempore-parieto-occipital regions between
the middle and posterior cerebral artery territories cause predominantly visual
abnormalities. Because the ealcarine visual cortex is in the heart of the posterior
cerebral artery territory and is not included in the infarction, the patients
usually do not have unilateral or bilateral hemianopias or frank cortical
blindness. Most patients report difficulty seeing clearly, but they often can
identify single objects, can read individual letters, and their pupillary reaction
to light is normal.

FIG. 4 Montage of cartoons showing various patterns of border zone infarction as


they would appear on CT scans. All lesions are bilateral, (a) Anterior border zones
between anterior cerebral (ACA> and middle cerchral (MCA) arteries; (h) Posterior
border zones
The visual abnormalities often conform to what has been called Balinfs syndrome
after the Hungarian ophthalmologist who first described the findings in 1909
[57.581. There are three main features of this syndrome: (I) an inability to sec
and perceive multiple objects at one time ("asimultagnosia"); (2) poor visually
directed hand movements ("optical ataxia**); and (3) difficulty directing ga at
desired targets ("optical apraxia"). When patients are shown a picture, or are
asked to look at a scene from the window, they will often see only one object or
person out of many. In order to see and understand a picture they may have to move
the paper or continue to shift gaze. They may also fail to read because they omit
letters and words and cannot follow the lines. They have difficulty reaching and
grasping objects and cannot accurately focus on objects within rheir vision f58].
Asking patients lo read, describe a picture or a scene, and trace lines or figures
with a pencil or a finger are effective screening tests for BaJint's syndrome
[58].
Anterior border /one lesions in the frontal lobes in territory between the anterior
and middle cerebral arteries cause predominantly motor abnormalities. The lesions
often involve or undercut the arm regions of the homunculus located within the
precentral gyrus and can also extend to libers which control thigh movements. The
syndrome that results has been referred to as the "man-in-thebarrcl" syndrome
140.59]. Both aims, and sometimes the proximal low er extremities arc weak, bin
the face, hands, and feet are spared. The homunculus portion controlling hand and
face movements lies in the heart of the middle cerebral artery supply as does
speech while the leg and foot lie in the center of the anterior cerebral artery
supply. The findings are reminiscent of a person whose arms and trunk and upper
thighs arc constrained in a barrel, hence the term man-in-a-barrel syndrome [59].
Some patients whose infarcts extend more toward ihe frontal pole also have
difficulty directing gaze when commanded to and cannot accurately follow moving
objects with their eyes [60J. The clinical, imaging, and pathological findings in
patients with border zone infarcts arc bilateral. Asymmetries may occur when there
has been previous arterial occlusions; e.g.. hypotension in a patient with an old
right carotid artery occlusion could cause more extensive infarction in the right
cerebral hemisphere than in the left.
Amnesia
After awakening from coma, some patients ha\c a profound memory disorder. They
cannot make new memories ("anterograde amnesia") and seem to have forgotten
memories made in the recent pasl i "retrograde amncMa" [M I Cognitiv function l fo
th loss I h patients th A patient may be completely unable to recall events thai
occurred during the single past year but have no difficulty remembering events from
other time periods. The amnesia that follows hypoxic-ischemic injuries is most
likely aiiributable to the selective vulnerability of the hippocampus and
amygdaloid nucleus [32].
Action Myoclonus
In 1963, Lance and Adams described a novel syndrome characterized mostly by
clumsiness, ataxia, and abnormal limb movements that followed recovery from
hypoxic-ischemic coma [45J. The distinctive feature of this syndrome is
involuntary limb movements that the authors dubbed "action myoclonus/* When
parents reached for objects, or otherwise used their amis, ihe action would be
interrupted by jerking, involuntary movements. The movements were often coarse and
chaotic. At limes the limb jerks could also be brought on by startle or unexpected
noises. Voluntary movements were slow, irregularly halted, and unpredictably
varied in force and direction. Patients were unable to eat. dress, write, or
perform any fine hand movements because of the jerks and cere be liar-type
incoordination and intention tremor. Jerk nig movements were also present in the
lower limbs and abdominal muscles. Anticonvulsants and alcohol sometimes reduced
the involuntary mynclonk jerks. During standing and walking, the legs would buckle
and jerk. Gait ataxia made it nearly impossible for patients to walk alone.
Dysarthria was another prominent finding. None of the patients described by Lance
and Adams died, so the neuropathology underlying this syndrome is not known. No
subsequent reports have clarified the anatomic basis for the findings. Most likely,
ischemic damage to cerebellar Purkiuje cells and various thalamic neurons is
responsible for this unusual but characteristic syndrome.
Spinal Paraplegia
Occasional patients have recovered from coma without obvious cerebral damage hut
instead have paraplegia related to hypoxic-ischemic damage to the spinal cord
162,641. The most vulnerable spinal regions are the upper and lower thoracic and
lumbar spinal cord segments. The cervical cord is usually not involved, so the arms
function normally despite severe weakness of ihe lower limbs. The localization of
the spinal cord ischemic necrosis relates to the anatomy of the arterial supply of
the spinal cord. Although there are arteries from each side that feed into the
paired posterior spinal arteries at each spinal segment, the segmental arteries
that supply the single unpaired midline anterior spinal artery originate al variabl
level d suppl b mostl responsibl fo nourishin supplies the lumbar spinal cord and
the conus medullaris. The upper and lower thoracic regions are border zone areas
between the supply of major anterior feeding arleries. The spinal damage involves
predominantly the anterior portion of the spinal cord which is fed by the anterior
spinal artery. The anterior horn motor neurons and the pyramidal tracts are
included but usually the posterior columns arc spared. The resulting syndrome is
usually a flaccid paralysis of both lower limbs. Spasticity often develops later.
Control of urination and defecation is often lost and there may he a sensory level
to pain and temperature on the trunk. Position and vibration sense functions and
fine touch are usually preserved. Atrophy and fasciculations often develop in the
thighs and legs. Spinal cord infarction is a rare but important result of cardiac
arrest or prolonged systemic hypotension.
PROGNOSIS Clinical Examination
The central and most important issue in patients with potentially severe hypoxic-
ischemic insults is prediction of outcome. Are there guideposts and findings that
will allow physicians to predict the likelihood of survival and the presence,
nature, and severity of residual neurological damage? During the last two decades
many investigators have struggled to lind reliable prognosticates [2,24,65-721.
Table 4 lists the various clinical indicators that have been studied and analyzed.
In order to understand the prognostic utilit) of the various indicators, clinicians
must keep clearly in mind the outcome result they are interested insurvival,
cognitive or motor deficits, or degree of disabilityand also the time frame of the
testing. Persistence or absence of certain clinical findings has very different
TABLE 4 Clinical Prognosticators in Patients Examined After Hypoxic-Ischemic Brain
Insults
1.
Depth and dura Lion of coma

2.
Brainstem reflexes

a.
pupillary light reflex

b.
corneal reflex

c.
oeulovestibular responses

3.
Spontaneous respirations and requirement for a ventilator

4.
Motor responses to stimuli 5 Eye positions and movements

prognostic utility during the first hours, first day, first week, and after the
first month.
Survival after cardiac aire si depends on three major factors: the severity of the
cardiac disease and hypoxic-ischemic cardiac injury; the extent and reversibility
of brainstem damage: and cardiopulmonary infectious complications that occur in the
hospital. The heart may be even more vulnerable than the brain to hypoxia and
ischemia [13], After severe anoxia of at least 4 minutes' duration, arrhythmias and
asystole often develop, causing decreased cardiac output and decreased brain
perfusion [73J. The brainstem nuclei control automatic and autonomic functions
including control of cardiovascular functions and respirations. Survival is rare
after severe damage to the bilateral brainstem tegmentum. Pulmonary embolism,
congestive heart failure, recurrent cardiac arrylhmias and arrests, pneumonia, and
urosepsis are important problems in patients after cardiac arrest, especially in
patients who remain in a state of coma or reduced consciousness. Medical
complications are probably more common in patients who have in-hospilal cardiac
arrests, having already been in the hospital wiih an important medical illness. The
nature and severity of persistent neurologic deficits, in contrast to simple
survival, depend on the severity and location of the cerebral, cerebellar, and
spinal damage. Residual deficit prognosis can be assessed when brainstem coma is
not present and the patient is either in bihemispheral coma or has awakened.
During the first minutes and hours after cardiac arrest or other hypoxic-ischemic
insult, the key signs of prognostic importance are the deplh and duration of coma,
and brainstem functions and reflexes. Sustained brainstem dysfunction causes deep,
prolonged coma, an absence of brainstem reflex functions, and poor control of
respirations. Patients with irreversible severe bilateral medial tegmental
brainstem damage do not survive, Testing of brainstem reflex functions is very
important in all comatose patients. Tesi the pupillary light reflex using a bright
flashlight. When the pupils are small, a hand-held magnifying glass helps the
examiner determine whether the pupils do constrict to light. To tesi the corneal
reflex, use cotton and touch the lateral portion of the cornea in each eye. If
cotton does not elicit a response then use a coarser object such as the string that
lies the hospital gown or the blunt end of a pin or a pencil eraser. Reflex eye
movements arc lestcd by rapid passive head movements ("doll's eyes"), at first
from side to side and then up and down. Normally, the eyes should move horizontally
conjugately to the side opposite lateral head movement; extending the head upward
should elicit downward eye movements, while Hexing the head downward causes reflex
upward motion of the eyes. If the responses are not normal then ic wate should b
placed i h l whil watchin movements Ic merits such as blinking, yawning, coughing,
sneezing, gagging, and swallowing utilize brainstem reflex functions. The presence
of these movements indicates preservation of brainstem functioning.
In the series of Snyder ct al. L68J. all patients who at 3 hours after
cardiopulmonary arrest had no corneal reflexes or absent pupillary light reflexes
died 168J,
I
n thai series, by 0 Inmiv no sun ivors had absence of the three brainstem reflexes
studied (pupillary light response, corneal reflex, and reflex eye movements) 168],
By 24 to 48 hours only three of 25 survivors (12%) had any abnormality of brainstem
reflexes 168], In another series 52 of 2 K) (25%) patients who had hypoxic-
ischemic coma had absent pupillary light reflex when first examined, and none of
the 52 had a final outcome better than severe disability 166],
The size of the pupils during the initial hours after the insult is another useful
prognostic indicator |65J. The pupil diameter widens and light responses are lost
within a few minutes of cardiac arrest. In one series, cardiac resuscitation was
more successful in patients who had persistently constricted pupils from the onset
of resuscitation or in those in whom the pupils were constricted after initial
pupillary dilatation 174]. Pupillary dilatation throughout resuscitation carried a
poor prognosis in this series [74], Drugs used during resuscitation, especially
catecholamines and atropine, can affect pupillary size, so clinicians should be
cautious about using pupillary size as a prognostic sign in patients who have
received drugs that affect pupillary diameter. Persistent dilatation of the pupils
is of course an ominous sign.
The depth of coma is another important early indicator during the first hours after
cardiac arrest. Deep coma usually means either extensive brainstem dysfunction or
injury to the cerebral hemispheres bilaterally. In the great majority of adults,
when the hypoxic-ischemic insult is severe enough to injure the brainstem and cause
deep coma and loss of brainstem reflexes, the cerebral hemispheres are even more
severely damaged. Remember that structures in the cerebrum are more vulnerable to
hypoxia than brainstem structures.
During the early hours, analysis of spontaneous movements of the limbs and the
motor responses of the limbs to sensory stimuli is useful in prognosis. No movement
of flaccid limbs even after pinching is an unfavorable sign. The presence of only
automatic decorticate (flexion of the upper limbs and extension of the lower limbs)
or decerebrate (extension of the upper and lower limbs) responses to pinch or
other painful stimuli also is an unfavorable sign for survival and good recovery.
Spontaneous varied limb movements and normal withdrawal of limbs in response to
pain is a favorable sign.
The presence of frequent myoclonic movements is also a useful prognostic indicato
durin th firs hour afte resuscitation Sudde jerk f th limbs face tracheal
suctioning, insertion of catheters, or noise. They can also he precipitated by a
loud clap. Three studies have shown that frequent myoclonic jerks ("myoclonic
status") predicts nonsurvival or at best a persistent vegetative stale [49-51].
In one scries, among 114 patients who survived cardiac arrest for at least 24
hours. 50 (449c) had either myoclonus (40; 35%), seizures (41; 36%), or both
myoclonus and seizures (31: llck i |51 ]. Among the 50 with myoclonus or seizures,
only 9 (18%) survived hospitalization. Seizures without myoclonus did not predict a
bat] outcome [51 |. In another large series. 40 of 107 (37%) who failed to awaken
quickly after cardiac arrest had myoclonic status 150J. All 40 had either no motor
response to pain or abnormal posturing, but only eight had any abnormal brainstem
reIIexes. None of the patients with myoclonic status awakened, improved in motor
responses, or survived hospitalization [50]. In a smaller series, nine patients
with myoclonic status died [49j. Al necropsy, they had extensive necrosis in all
lobes of the cerebral cortex, especially ihe large cell laminae, and extensive
hippocampal and thalamic damage [4l)|. Myoclonic status implies extensive cerebral
cortical injury incompatible with good recovery.
The prognostic importance of seizures was also analyzed by Roine among 155 patients
who survived out-of-hospital cardiac arrest in Helsinki [21, Seizures during the
first 24 hours were not very helpful in prognosis since 53r/f of patients who had
seizures during the lirst day survived, compared to 70% survivors among those who
had no first-day seizures. However, seizures after the tirst day indicated a poor
outlook because only three of 15 (20f/f) patients with seizures after the first day
recovered consciousness, and only one (7%) lived for 1 year 12J. Status epileptic
us at any lime after cardiac arrest was a dire sign since all nine patients with
epileptic status died |'2).
After the patient has survived the first 24 hours, prognostic indicators are
somewhat different during the next few days. Absence of the normal brainstem
pupillary, corneal, oculovestibular, and pharyngeal reflexes at 24 hours indicates
a poor prognosis. Persistent brainstem dysfunction means brainstem and severe
hemisphere damage because the hemispheres are almost always more damaged than the
brainstem reflexes. Most patients who will eventually survive, at 24 hours have
bihemispheral coma or have become alert. The duration and depth of coma is probably
the most important prognostic indicator during the first days. Prolonged
bihemispheral coma is a poor prognostic indicator, In one series, day 2 was the
most common lime for patients to emerge from coma, and most patients who would
survive awakened by the end of day 2 [67], Only 2/27 (7%) in deep coma through day
2 survived. In another series no patient in postanoxic coma afte th third da
survived [70k I anothe series fiv f 12 (42%) patient with
Eye opening, eye movements, and motor responses are also useful prognostic
indicators during the first few days. By the end of the first day, the absence of
spontaneous eye opening indicates a poor prognosis. Most patients who will have a
good recovery begin to open their eyes and have at least intermittent visual
lixation movements. However, the presence of eye opening does not always indicate
a good outcome. In one large series, spontaneous eye opening was often seen by 48
hours in patients with both good and bad outcomes [75], Persistence of roving eye
movements without visual fixation usually means severe bilateral cerebral
hemispheral damage and indicates a poor outcome. Sustained upgaze also carries a
poor prognosis |76J, The absence of withdrawal limb movements when painful stimuli
are given is also a sign of a poor prognosis as is the retained presence of
obligatory reflex decorticate or decerebrate posturing. Most patients who will have
good recovery begin to obey commands during the first few days.
The results of some series have found thai the score on the Glasgow Coma Scale
(GCS) is a very good predictor of prognosis. The GCS yields a score of 3 (worst) to
15 (best), with live points each scored for each of three simple patient responses
to various stimuli: eye opening, best verbal response, and best motor response
[77]. In one reported scries the neurological outcome was accurately predicted 2
days after out-of-hospital cardiac arrest using the GCS with two cutoff points4 or
less, and 10 or higher |77f A GCS of 3 or 4 after 2 days predicted permanent
unconsciousness in all but one of 54 patients [78|. In another series, the GCS
during the first 24 hours ranged between 3 and 14 in patients with good outcome and
was between 3 and 9 in those who had poor outcomes [75J. Seven of nine patients
with a GCS > 8 at 48 hours had good outcomes, but all 20 patients with a GCS of <5
at 48 hours had poor outcomes [75].
Caution must always he used in prognostication even when prolonged coma or a
persistent vegetative state is present. Occasional patients improve dramatically
despite long-term unresponsiveness [79],
Imaging, Electrophysiologic, and Biochemical Investigations
Unfortunately, investigations have added little to information about neurological
recovery gained from the clinical neurological examination. I agree fully with
Wijdicks, who stated, "Many clinicians believe that further diagnostic assessment
of acute anoxic ischemic coma provides little benefit for prognostication and adds
nothing more to a detailed neurological examination"" ff>5].
Brain Imaging
et al. studied early CT findings in 10 patients [80], Nine of the patients had some
evidence of diffuse cerebral edema and six patients had poor discrimination between
the gray and white mailer [80]. Watershed infarcts in the cerebrum and cerebellum
and bilateral basal ganglia and thalamic hypodensities are also found in some
patients. Diffuse mass effect with obliteration of basal cisterns has been
described but is rare (81 ]. In some patients, brain edema and discrete infarcts
are seen after several days [651.
Roine analyzed MR1 findings among 155 palients who were resuscitated after out-of-
hospital cardiac arrest and compared the findings with 88 controls [2.S2]. Brain
infarcts were more common after cardiac arrest but the difference was significant
only for deep infarcts; 25% had cortical infarcts. 14% cerebral watershed infarcts.
21f^ deep cerebral infarcts, and 4% had deep watershed infarcts. Infarcts and
multiple infarcts were more common in the resuscitated group [2,82]. Two patients
had diffuse hypointensity of the cerebral while matter. Severe edema on MR I or CT
scans was a dire prognostic sign |2|. Repealed MR I examinations during the course
of palients with severe neurological deficits may show high signal intensity
cortical lesions compatible with laminar necrosis (83|.
Single-photon emission computed tomography can show changes in cerebral blood How
after cardiac arrest but the changes are quite nonspecific. In one study regional
blood flow was almost invariably abnormal after cardiac arrest 12]. The commonest
abnormality was hypoperfusion in the frontal lobes. Regional blood flow improved
over time in some patients but often remained abnormal.
There was no consistent correlation between blood tlow and outcome 12J.
Electrophysiologic Brain Studies
Electroencephalography <EEG) was the first investigation available to study
patients with global brain ischemia, In general, the degree of rhythm slowing does
correlate with the severity of cerebral damage. However, in the 1970s a number of
investigators began to report that some comatose patients had 9 to 12-Hz rhythmic
activity (alpha rhythms) that had previous!s been general] \ correlated with
wakefulness 184,851. In normal awake individuals alpha rhythms are altered by
sensory input, eye opening, and other stimuli bui in patients with alpha-coma, the
alpha rhythms were transient and not responsive to stimuli 184,85J.
EEG palterns in patients with hypoxic-ischemic encephalopathy characteristic of
increasing severity of brain damage are: diffuse slowing; frontal intermittent
severe della slowing; frequent spikes, especially followed b> suppression of the
background rhythm; nonreactive rhythms, including transient alpha activity; very
low voltage activity; and absence of activity. Isoelectric EEGs with no definit
brai activit reflec irreversibl damag d brai death i th absenc f

Chapter 1
T able 5 EEG Classification of Patients with Hypoxic-Ischemic Encephalopathy
EEG class Outcome prognosis
Grade 1 Normal reactive alpha activity: Excellent prognosis
may contain scattered theta
Grade II Dominant theta and delta rhythms; Uncertain prognosis'1
some reactive alpha
Grade III Dominant delta and theta rhythms; Uncertain prognosis'1
no normal alpha
Grade IV Nonreaclive alpha (alpha-comaI or Poor prognosis
periodic epileptiform discharges or
burst suppression pattern
Grade V Isoelectric, flat EEG Incompatible with survival *

*
Compatible with survival but unpredictable.

*
In the absence of severe hypothermia, or hypotension, or high levels of sedative or
intoxicating drugs.
Source Ref. 86.
and colleagues 1861. The classification is reliable in the best (grade I) and worst
(grades IV and grade V) grades. The prognosis in patients with these grades of
electroencephalograms is usually obvious from the clinical findings. The bulk of
patients in whom the prognosis is less clear clinically have grade II and 111 EEGs
tn which the prognosis is indeterminate. In summary, the EEG is most useful in
confirming a poor clinical stale and identifying seizure activity not evident
clinically, Recognition of seizure activity is an indication to use anticonvulsant
drugs.
Evoked response determinations may have more prognostic utility than standard EEGs.
Evoked responses are measured by subtracting the baseline EEG activity from
activity after a sensory (visual, auditory, or somatosensory) stimulus. Auditory
stimuli are transmitted through the auditory nerves, through the brainstem, to the
medial geniculate body of the thalamus, to the auditory cortex in the temporal
lobes. Visual stimuli are transmitted through the optic nerves to the lateral
geniculate body of the thalamus to the occipital lobe visual conex. Somatosensory
stimuli are usually given through nerves in the limbs and are transmitted to the
somatosensory nuclei in the thalamus to the sensory cortex in the parietal lobes.
More recently, physicians have studied motor responses after magnetic stimulation
of the brain's motor cortex. The presence, number, contour, eephalopathy have been
the somatosensory evoked responses. Usually the median nerve is stimulated
electrically and the waves are recorded over the cerebral cortex. A number of
studies have shown that absent responses, delayed or low-voltage responses, and
prolonged reaction and central conduction times carry a poor prognosis while
relatively normal responses arc most often associated with good recovery [75,87-
89].
Biochemical Measurements
Physicians have sought simple blood or spinal fluid tests that would identify
severe brain damage in the same way that cardiologists use the levels of cardiac
enzymes to quantitate cardiac injury after myocardial infarction. Unfortunately,
testing lo quantitate brain damage has not been nearly as extensive or routine as
measurement of cardiac enzymes. To dale ihe utility of measuring live different
substances has been explored. These measurements include: spinal fluid lactate and
I act ate/pyruvate ratios; serum and spinal fluid creatine kinase brain-lype
isoenzymes (CK-BB); serum and spinal fluid neuron-specific enolase; ionized
calcium in arterial blood; and serum levels of the SIOO protein.
During brain ischemia and rcperfusion. adenosine triphosphate is produced by
glycolysis with lactate formation from pyruvate. Presence of elevated lactate
levels in the spinal fluid and a high lactate/pyruvate ratio theoretically
indicates increased anaerobic brain metabolism and indicates brain damage. Values
of lactate above 3 mmol/L seem to be associated with poor outcomes, but the
predictive value of spinal fluid lactate has not been well established by
prospective testing. Also the finding is not very specific because elevated levels
arc found in diabetic patients and those with lactic acidosis of any cause
[2.91.92],
Bra in-type creatine kinase isoenzyme is present in neurons and astrocyte.
Unfortunately, the peak of CK-BB in the serum is very transient after cardiac
arrest and the radioimmune assay method used doesn't reliably always seperate CK-BB
from CK-MB, and many patients with cardiac arrest have elevated CKMB bands because
of myocardial damage [2].
Enolase is an en/\ me that is a dimer composed of alpha and gamma units; the gamma-
enolase is known as neuron-specific enolase because it is found mostly in neurons
and neuroectodermal cells 12.90J. The theoretical advantages of neuron-specific
enolase arc that it is found only in low concentrations outside ihe nervous system
and that it has little cross-reactivity. Other diseases that raise the neuron-
specific enolase levels such as small-cell lung cancer and neuroblastoma are rare
enough in patients with cardiac arrest that they should cause little practical
problem [2]. Blood ionized calcium levels have been posited to b lo i patient afte
cardia bu thi bee extensivel spinal fluid level of neuron-specific enolase at 24
hours in patients who did not recover consciousness was more than eighi times
higher than the level in those patients that awakened [21. At 24 hours after
cardiac arrest, ihe spinal lluid CKBB and the serum neuron-speciHe enolase levels
also had high predictive values since elevations meant poor outcome [2J.
Unfortunately, the results were not reported until 3 months later, so enzyme levels
could not be used for acute decision making.
Among 351 palients with cardiac arrest. Tirschwell et al. found in a retrospective
review that the values of spinal fluid CK-BB reliably separated the patients with
good prognosis from those that did poorly [94J. The median CK-BB level in 61
patients who awakened was 4U/L and for those that never awakened 75% were >86 U/L.
Only nine palients who awakened had spinal lluid levels >50 U/L and none improved
enough to be able to be independent in daily activities [94].
The astroglial protein S ItM) is specific for brain tissue and has been shown to be
a marker for brain injury. Rosen and colleagues measured the serum S100 levels
among 41 patients during the first three days after out-of-hospital cardiac arrest
using a radioimmunoassay [95]. The highest $100 protein levels were found during
the first day after cardiac arrest and were higher than controls. Levels
correlated wiih the degree of coma and the duration of arrest before
resuscitation. All patients with an SI00 level of >0.2 on day 2 after cardiac
arrest died within 14 days, and 89% of patients with levels below 0.2 survived |
95], In this single study the S100 levels were useful in predicting survival and
severity of brain damage after cardiac arrest.
The ulility of the various investigations is far from clear. Brain imaging,
electrophysiologic studies, and blood and spinal fluid analysis can ideniify
patients with little likelihood of survival. But are the patients whose laboratory
investigations predict poor outcome the individuals that Mich a prediction would be
highly likely from the clinical examination ? More testing needs to be geared to
those patients in whom the prognosis after the clinical examination is
indeterminate. Would the investigations help in those patients? Bassetti and
colleagues favor the use of multiple clinical, radiologic, electrophysiologic, and
biochemical data since they believe that the prognostication is better than using
any single data item 175].
Outcome depends on both the neurological and cardiological status of the patient
[73]. The incidence of acute coronary artery occlusion is high in palients with
cardiac arrests. In one study, 60 of 84 (71%) consecutive patients who had out-of-
hospital cardiac arrest had clinically significant coronary artery disease on also
yield important prognostic information [971. In cardiac arrest patients, the level
of end-tidal carbon dioxide is determined by die cardiac output generated during
cardiopulmonary resuscitation, A level of 10 mm Hg or less measured 20 minutes
after the initiation of advanced cardiac life support predicts a fatal outcome in
cardiac arrest patients who have electrical activity but no pulse [97J. A full
discussion of cardiac investigations is beyond the scope of this chapter.
TREATMENT
Although many strategies and many different treatments have been tried, none has
been judged to be unequivoeably useful in improving eventual outcome. The single
most important predictor of survival and severity of brain damage is the severity,
nature, and duration of the hypoxic-ischemic insult. The brain damage has mostly
been done by the time help arrives. A number of different strategies have been or
are being tried to minimize the brain damage. Unfortunately, either these
treatments have been proven to be ineffective, or there are insufficient data to
come to a conclusion about efficacy. The following approach seems reasonable at
present.
Reduction of Brain Edema and Increased Intracranial Pressure
Some patients with hypoxic-ischemic injuries develop brain edema which can be
severe and can lead to an increase in intracranial pressure. Hyperventilation,
osmotic agents, and corticosteroids have been tried in attempts to control the
edema. Two retrospective studies failed to show any bench! for corticosteroid
treatment [98,99]. Brain edema and increased intracranial pressure probably occur
to an important extent only in patients with severe hypoxic-ischemic insults. Furl
her in ore, most of the edema may be inside the cells (cytotoxic edema) and is
resistant to corticosteroid and osmotic treatment.
Delivery of More Nutrient-Rich Blood to the Ischemic Brain
Induced hypertension and hypervolemia could increase the amount of brain blood
flow. Hemoditution could also theoretically increase blood flow by reducing serum
viscosity. The two major nutrients used by brain cells are oxygen and glucose.
Elevating the hlood sugar level by giving glucose has heen shown in experil animal
Th glucos i metabolized lactate d
vasoconstriction, thus reducing cerebral blood Mow. Most authorities believe that
blood glucose levels should not be raised. The effectiveness of the other therapies
mentioned have not been well si tidied, but there is little enthusiasm that they
would work.
"Neuroprotection" Therapies
Can something be done to make ihe brain more resistant to ischemic-hypoxic damage?
Agents that have the theoretical capacity to perform that function have recently
been classified as putative neuroprotective agents. There has been great interest
in neuroprotection in both focal brain infarcts and global brain ischemia.
Barbiturates, other anesthetic agents, and hypothermia all have the potential of
dec teas i tig the brain's metabolism. When metabolism is decreased there is a
proportionate decrease in the need for nutrients. When thiopental loading was
studied in comatose patients after cardiac arrests in a controlled trial, there was
no benefit of the treatment 1 l(X)J. Barbiturates and some other anesthetic agents
often have adverse cardiovascular effects such as hypotension, tachycardia, and
respiratory suppression. Hypothermia could theoretically severely reduce brain
metabolism, although potential adverse cardiovascular effects and susceptibility to
infection are potential problems. Hypothermia is now used by many surgeons as a
neuroprotective strategy during some surgeries. Hypothermia warrants further
clinical sUidy.
Clinicians and researchers have recently become very interested in calcium channel
blockers as potential neuroprotective drugs. Entry of calcium into cells is a major
mechanism of cell death, and calcium channel blockers could theoretically reduce
this reaction. Trials of two calcium channel blockers, ni modi pine [2J0IJ and
lidofla/ine [102]. have proven negative. Calcium entry blockers also have
hypotensive effects. Trials in patients with focal brain ischemia have also proven
negative, and interest in calcium channel blockers as neuroprotective agents has
waned. Some interest has surrounded the use of phenytoin and phosphenytoin,
lidocaitie, and "lazanrids" in palients with brain ischemia, but none has been
studied adequately to tesi efficacy and safely. Phenytoin and phosphenytoin are
potential synaptic inhibitors that could decrease brain metabolic function.
Lidocaine is an antiarrhythmic, membrane-stabilizing agent. Nonsteroidal
"lazaroids" are antioxidants and inhibitors of iron-catalyzed lipid peroxidation
of brain tissue. Free oxygen radicals are known to form in ischemic tissue,
especially after reperfusion, and can lead to further brain damage. "'LazaroidY *
could theoretically dimish damage from free radical formation.
major receptors are (he N-methyl-d-aspartaie (NMDA i receptor, and the
kainatealpha-ami no-3-hydroxy-5-methyl-4-isoxazole proprionate (AMPA) receptor.
The action of the NMDA receptors enhances the intracellular entry of calcium, which
ultimately kills nerve cells. AMPA receptors utilize sodium channels. A number of
agents that diminish the excitotoxic reaction by decreasing the action of glutamatc
or aspartate, antagonizing the MM DA and AMPA receptors, or blocking calcium entry
into nerve cells have been synthesized and are in various stages of research. MK-
80K an NMDA receptor antaganist, has been tried both alone |103] and with calcium
channel blockers [I04j in experimental animals with some success. Some of the
receptor blockers have important neurologic side effects such as hallucinations and
psychosis, and may also have cardiovascular toxicity. Clinical trials are planned,
or in progress, for many of these agents but to dale there arc no conclusive data
on their efficacy or safety for either focal or global brain ischemia patients.
Until there is more definitive information from trials, treatment involves
inaiuienance of normal blood pressure and oxygenation: treatment of cardie
arrhythmias and congestive heart failure when present: and prevention, early
recognition, and treatment of any complications of coma such as pulmonary and
urinary infections, Uirombophlebitis, and pulmonary embolism.
REFERENCES
1.
Brooks, R, McGovern BA, Garari H. Ruskin JN. Current lrealmer.il of patterns
surviving out-of-hospital cardiac arrest. JAMA 1991; 265:762-768.

2.
Roine RO. Neurological outcome of out-of-hospital cardiac arrest. Doctoral thesis,
Helsinki. 1993.

3.
Myerburg R, Caslellanos A. Cardiac arrest and swlden cardiac death. In: Braunwald

E. ed. Heart Disease: A Textbook of Cardiovascular Medicine. Philadelphia: W.B.


Saunders. 1988:742-777.

4.
Liss PL. A history of resuscitation. Ann Emerg Med 1986; 15:65-72.

5.
Beck CS, Pritehartl H, Feil SH. Ventricular fibrillation of long duration
aholished by electric shock. JAMA 1947: 135:985,

6.
Zoll PM, Linentha] AJ, Gibson W. Paul MH, Norman LR, Termination of ventricular
fibrillation in man by externally applied electric countershock. N Engl J Med 1956;
254:727-732.

7.
Safar P, Escarraga LA, Elam JO. A comparison of the mouth-to-mouth and mouth-to-
airway methods of artificial respiration with the chest pressure arm-lift methods.
N Engl J Med 1958; 258:671-677,

8.
Kouwenhoven WB, Judc JR Knickerbocker GG. Closed chest cardiac massage.

t
JAMA I960; 173:1064-1067.
11.
Becker LB, Osirander MP, Barrett J. Kondos GT. Outcome of CPR in a large
metropolitan areawhore are the survivors? Ann Emerg Med 1991; 20:355-361.

12.
Eisenberg MS, Hallstrom A, Bergner L. Long-term survival after out-of-hospital
cardiac arrest. N Engl J Med 1982; 306:1340-1343.

13.
Eisenberg MS, Hadas E, Nuri I, Applcbaum D, Roth A, Lit win PE, Hallslrojn AP,
Nagel E. Sudden cardiac arrest in Israel: factors associated with successful
resuscitation. Am J Emerg Med 1988; 6:319-323.

14.
Cummins RO, Eisenherg MS, Hallstrom AP, Litwin PE. Survival of out-of-hospital
cardiac arrest with early initiation of cardiopulmonary resuscitation. An J Emerg
Med 1985; 3:114-118.
15.
Goldstein S, Landis JR. Leightun R, Rilter G. Vasu CM, Wolfe RA. Achcson A,
Mcdendorp SV. Predictive survival models for resuscitated victims of out-of-
hospital cardiac arrest with coronary heart disease. Circulation 1985: 71:873-880.

16.
Troiano P, Masaryk J. Stueven HA, Olson D, Barthell E, Waite EM. The effect of
bystander CPR on neurological outcome in survivors of prehospital cardiac arrests.
Resuscitation 1989: 17:91-98.

17.
Weaver WD, Hill D, fisthrenbruch CE. Copass MK. Man in JS. Cobb LA. Hallstrom AP.
Use of the automatic external defibrillator in the management of out-of-hospital
cardiac arrest. N Engl J Med 1988; 319:661-666.

18.
Murphy DJ, Murray AM. Robinson BE. Campion EW, Outcomes of cardiopulmonary
resuscitation in the elderly. Ann Intern Med 1989: lit : 199205

19.
Bedell SA. Delbanco TL. Cook EF, Epstein FH. Survival after cardiopulmonary
resuscitation in the hospital. N Engl J Med 1983: 309:569-576.

20.
Taffet GE. Teasdale TA, Luchi RJ. In-hospital cardiopulmonary resuscitation. JAMA
1988: 260:2069-2072.

21.
Tunstall-Pedoe I-L Bailey L. Chamberlain DA. Marsden AK. Ward ME, Ziderman DA.
Survey of 3765 cardiopulmonary resuscitations in British hospitals (the BRESUS
study): methods and overall results. Br Med J 1992: 304:1347-1351.

22.
Cummins RO. Eisenberg MS. Prehospital cardiopulmonary resuscitation. Is it
effective? JAMA 1985: 253:2408-2412.

23.
Wilber DJ, Garan H, Finkelslcin D, Kelly E. Newell J, McGovcm B, Ruskin JN. Out-
of-hospital cardiac arrest. Use of electrophysiologic testing in the prediction of
long-term outcome. N Engl J Med 1988: 318:19-24,

24.
Earnest MP, Breckinridge JC. Yarnell PR. Oliva PB. Quality of survival after out-
of-hospital cardiac arrest: predictive value of early neurologic evaluation.
Neurology 1979; 29:56-60.

25.
Earnest MP, Yarnell PR. Merrill SL. Knapp GL. Long-term survival and neurologic
Mains alter resuscitation from out-of-hospital cardiac arrest. Neurology 1980; 30:
1298-1302.

26.
Ames A III, Nesbett FB. Pathophysiology of ischemic cell death. I. Time of onset
of irreversible damage: importance of the different components of the ischemic
insult. Stroke 1983: 14:219-226.

emia, Basic Concepts and Clinical Relevance. London: Springer-Verlag. 1995: 7-18.
29.
Miller JR. Myers RE. Neuropathology or systemic circulatory arrest in adult
monkeys. Neurology 1972: 22:888-904. *

30.
Ames A III. Wright LW, Kowada M, Thurston JM. Majors G. Cerebral ischemia:

II. The no-re flow phenomenon. Am J Pathol 1968: 52:437-453.


31 Ginsberg MIX Myers RE. The topography of impaired microvascular perfusion in
the primate brain following total circulatory arrest Neurology 1972: 22:998 101L
32.
Pctito CK. Feldmann E. Pulsinelli W, Plum F. Delayed hippoeampal damage in humans
following cardiorespiratory arrest. Ncurulogy 1987: 37:1281-1286.

33.
Plum F. Posner JB, Main RF. Delayed neurological deterioration after anoxia. Arch
Intern Med 1962; 110:18-25.

34.
Ginsberg MD. Medley-While T, Richardson EP. Hypoxic-ischemic lcukoenecphalopathy
in man. Arch Neurol 1976: 33:5-14.

35.
Hon A. Hirose G. Kataoka S, Tsukada K. Fund K. Tonami H. Delayed postanoxie
encephalopathy after strangulation. Arch Neurol 1991: 48:871-874.

36.
Babbs C. Reperfusion injury of postischemic tissues. Ann Enierg Med 1988; 17: IMS
1157.

37.
Caplan LR. Reperfusion of ischemic brain: why and why not. In: Hacke W. del Zoppo
GJ, Hirschberg M. eds. Thrombolytic Therapy in Acute Ischemic Stroke. Berlin:
Springer Yeilae. 1991:36 45.

38.
O'Brien MD. Ischemic cerebral edema. In: Caplan LR. ed- Brain Ischemia, Basic
Concepts and Clinical Relevance. London: Springer-Verlag, 1995:43-50.

39.
Choi DW. Excitoioxicity and stroke. In: Caplan LR. ed. Brain Ischemia. Basic
Concepts and Clinical Relevance. London: Springer-Verlag. 1995:29-36.

40.
Mohr JP. Neurological complications of cardiac valvular disease and cardiac
surgery including systemic h> potension. In: Vinken P, Bruyn G, eds. Handbook of
Clinical Neurology, Vol. 38. Neurological Manifestations of Systemic Disease. Part
I Amsterdam, North Holland, 1979:143-171.

41.
Romanul F, Abramowicz A. Changes in brain and pial vessels in arterial border
zones. Arch Neurol 1974: 11:40-65.

42.
Caplan LR. Hypoxic-ischemic encephalopathy. In: Caplan LR, ed. Stroke, a Clinical
Approach. 2nd ed. Boston: Butterwonh-lleinemann, 1993:377-388.

43.
Marti-Vilalta JL. Arboix A. Garcia JH. Brain infarcts in the arterial border
zones: clinical-pathological correlations. J Stroke Cerebrovasc Dis 1994: 4:114-
120.

44.
Kinney HC. Korein J. Panigrahy A. Dikkes P. Goode R. Neuropalhologieal findings in
the brain of Karen Ann Quinlan. The role of the thalamus in the persisienl
vegetative state. N Engl J Med 1994: 330:1469-1475.

45.
I .a nee .1W, Atkins Kl). The syndrome of intention or action myoclonus as a
sequel to hypoxic encephalopathy. Brain 1963: N6: 111- 133.

46.
Gilles F, Hypotensive brainstem necrosis. Arch Pathol 1969: 88:32-41.

Brain Embolism

HISTORICAL BACKGROUND AND OVERVIEW


Knowledge lhat thrombosis of supply arteries was the cause of necrosis and
infarction of the brain, heart, and other body organs developed in the middle of
the 19th century. Before then, physicians had known for centuries that coagula
could be found in arteries. Vesalius, in 1543, had described unnatural deposits in
the left atrium of patients who had limb gangrene [1]- Others found clots in the
vascular system at necropsy, but there was controversy about whether the thrombi
formed before or after death }2L During the late 18th and early 19th centuries two
important historical figures, John Hunter in Britain and Cruveilhiec in France,
thought that coagula formed during life and were Jue to inllanimation of the veins.
Hunter, writing in 1793, noted the frequency of inflammation of veins after surgery
and phlebotomies and thought that clots in the veins formed as exudates from the
walls of the blood vessels [3J. Cruveilhier, in 1829, wrote that vein coagulation
was the first sign of phlebitis [41. Thrombi within the arteries and heart, at that
time, were attributed to arteritis [21.
The German pathologist Rudolph Virchow deserves the most credit for recognizing
that obstruction of arteries caused damage to the organs supplied and that vascular
occlusion developed locally (thrombosis) or at a distance (embolism) [5J. Among 76
necropsies that he performed in 1847, Virchow found blood clots in the veins of the
extremities in 18. and within the pulmonary arteries in 11. He reasoned lhat the
clots must have been transported within the venous bloodstream Lo reach the hear!
and then the pulmonary arteries |5|. \ \c then devised experiments to show that
foreign bodies placed within the veins of animals moved proximal ly toward the
heart. At necropsies. V ire how found clots obstructing brain, splenic, renal, and
limb arteries in patients with cardiac valvular disease and left atrial thrombi.
These observations showed him that clots formed locally without relation to in flam
mat ion, moved within the vascular system as emboli, and caused ischemic tissue
damage [2,51.
Although the cardiac pathology was defined, clinicians were not aware of the
clinical features of coronary thrombosis until the early part of the 20th
century . when James Herrick described the symptoms of myocardial infarction 16[.
In the 1940s cardiologists clarified the relationship between angina pectoris,
coronary thrombosis, and myocardial infarction [7|. Within the brain, pathologists
customarily described softenings, ramolissemenls. and encephalomalacia. By the turn
of the century Chiari had described a single case of an inira-arterial embolus that
had arisen from a thrombus in the internal carotid artery in the neck 18J. William
Osier's textbook of medicine, which appeared in many editions at the beginning of
the 20th century, described embolism to the brain as a cause of cerebral softenings
19]. Osier mentioned only rheumatic mitral stenosis and bacterial endocarditis as
cardiac sources of embolism |9J. Osier did note that portions of clots from
aneurysms, thrombi from aortic atheromas, and clots that formed in the pulmonary
veins were also potential sources of brain embolism 19J. It was not until the early
1950s, when Miller Fisher described the clinical and pathological features of
carotid artery thrombosis and coined the term transient ischemic attacks (TIAs) 1
10]. that the clinical aspects of occlusive cerebrovascular disease became well
known.
Although emboli were known to arise from the heart and the arterial sysiem. early
classifications of stroke equated brain embolism with cardiac-origin embolism [I 1
J. Only two main cardiac sources were acceptedmitral stenosis with atrial
fibrillation, and recent myocardial infarction complicated by a mural thrombus.
Required for a stroke to be classified as embolic were the known presence of one of
these two accepted cardiac sources, systemic embolism, and a sudden, maximal-at-
onset, focal neurological deficit. Using these criteria very few strokes were
considered embolic. Tabic J shows the frequency of strokes diagnosed as embolic in
large series of stroke patients collected before 1970 112 14],
The Harvard Cooperative Stroke Registry (HSR) [15]. published in 1978, was ihe
first study to note a high rate of embolism as a cause of stroke. This registry,
unlike its predecessors, was a prospective study. All 694 stroke patients
thoroughl investigated usin th technolog availabl tha time Embo
Series n Thrombosis Embolism ICH sah Unknown
m

15 .

Arinj;, Merritl 112( 407 82


Whisnant el al. |I3| 548 75 5
111 7
Matsumolo el al. [ 14| 993 71 s It) 6 5
It'll, intracerebral hemorrhage; .SAH. subarachnoid hemorrhage.
n intracranial artery not due to local atherosclerosis were the most common
evidence for embolism. Echocardiography was not available at that time, and only
about half the patients had cranial computed tomography (CT), which only became
available in the mid-1970s, in the Harvard Stroke Registry, 31% of strokes were
classified as embolic, 53% thrombotic, and \6% hemorrhagic [15]. Note that the
ratio of ischemic to hemorrhagic strokes was about the same as thai in -he
iv::iMnc^ listed in I able I: only ihe proportion of ischemic strokes considered
embolic differed dramatically. In the Harvard Stroke Registry, 215 of the 694 (31%)
strokes were considered embolic. Fully 112 of the 215 (52%) embolic stroke patients
had known cardiac disease. Seventy-three had atrial fibrillation and the others
had recent myocardial infarction or valvular heart disease. Note that one-third of
the patients with embolism had atrial fibrillation, a disorder that at that time
was not considered to be an important cardiac source of embolism unless the patient
also had rheumatic valvular disease 115J.
Embolism requires a donor source and a recipient artery. During the last iwo
decades, there has been a dramatic revolution in technology able lo define ihe
brain and cardiovascular abnormalities in stroke patients. This technology is now
able lo characterize both recipient and donor sites, Newer-generation CT scans and
magnetic resonance imaging (MRI). especially with newer fluid-aitenuated inversion
recovery (FLAIR) techniques, are able to show brain infarcts and hemorrhages soon
after the onset of neurological symptoms. Vascular imaging has also developed
dramatically, Extracranial and transcranial ultrasound can now provide information
rapidly about blood How and lesions within the major extracranial and large basal
intracranial arteries. CT angiography can be performed at the same time as CT by
using intravenous contrast and filming with a spiral CT scanner. MR angiography can
be performed at the same lime as MRI. does not require contrast media, and can give
accurate information about large artery lesions. Cardiac diagnostic testing, using
transesophageal echocardiography (TEE), radionuclide studies, and rhythm
monitoring, is also much more effectiv tha i th definin cardia abnormalitie d
potential
During ihe past 5 years, a new capability has entered the diagnostic arsenal of
cliniciansemboli monitoring using transcranial Doppler ultrasound (TCD) [ 16-21 ].
En this technique transcranial Doppler probes arc positioned over brain arteries,
most often the middle and posterior cerebral arteries on each side. When particles
pass through the arteries being monitored, they produce an audible chirping noise
and high-intensity transient signals (HITS) visible on an oscilloscope. The signal
character depends on the nature of the panicles (gas, thrombus, calcium,
cholesterol crystal, etc), particle size, and particle transit time. Monitoring
probes can be placed on the neck and brain arteries. Emboli that arise from the
heart or aorta should go equally to each side, proportionately to the anterior and
posterior circulation arteries, and the signals should appear in the neck before
appearing intracranial))', in contrast emboli that originate in a neck artery
should go only to the intracranial arterial branches on the side of the donor
artery, and embolic signals do not appear in the neck. For example, emboli from the
left internal carotid artery (ICA) generate embolic signals detectable in the left
middle cerebral artery and not in the neck, posterior cerebral, or right-sided
arteries. This technique now allows better identification of the nature of embolic
materials and their sources, and also allows some quantification of the emboli load
and a means of monitoring the effect of various therapies on lessening that load,
Newer diagnostic testing has now shown that embolism is a much more common cause of
stroke than it was thought to be in the past [22|. Physicians in prior decades
thought that release of embolic materials was an unusual event with a high hit
ratelhat is, lhat emboli reaching intracranial arteries had a high likelihood of
causing stroke and brain infarction. Recent data show that embolic panicles are
often found in ihe circulation but the hit rate is low [16221. These particles can
arise from a variety of donor sources including the heart, the aorta, and neck and
proximal intracranial arteries.
In this chapter we will first consider the pathology and pathophysiology of brain
embolism and then comment on the clinical and imaging findings of patients with
embolic strokes (from any donor source). Then we will turn to discussions of the
various donor sourcescardiac, aortic, and arterialand their recognition, clinical
features, diagnosis, and treatment.
PATHOLOGY, PATHOPHYSIOLOGY AND LOCATIONS OF BRAIN EMBOLISM Lodging and Movement of
Emboli
When emboli are released into the circulation, they travel distally unlil they
lodge extracranial intracranial brai Unlik thrombi which formed the recipient
artery causes a sudden decrease in blood flow and pressure in the artery distal to
the blockage. The brain tissue supplied by the artery becomes ischemic. These
changes in the supply zone of the recipient artery quickly induce collateral blood
flow. One of the authors (L.R.C.) recalls vividly being present for animal
experiments performed by his neurology chairman. Dr. Derrick Denny-Brown, After the
dura mater had been opened, exposing the ptal arteries, Denny-Brown tied the
carotid artery in the neck on the side of the surgical exposure, After a very
brief period of pallor of the brain and decreased blood flow through the pial
arteries, there was rapid reperfusion through collateral vascular channels.
Surgeons sometimes tie neck arteries that feed aneurysms, most often without
causing persistent brain ischemia. Collateral blood flow develops very rapidly and
is often sufficient lo maintain adequate perfusion of the brain.
The sudden blockage of a brain-feeding artery often leads to symptoms of
dysfunction of the area of brain supplied. When collateral blood How develops, ihe
symptoms may stabilize or even improve. The nonadherent embolic particles often do
not remain at their initial recipient site but fragment and move distally.
Sequential arteriograms, or even sequential injections during the same
arteriogram, can show passage of emboli from their initial resting place 123-251.
This distal passage of emboli often occurs without causing new symptoms since the
fragments may pass through the system without causing further ischemic damage.
Alternatively, the embolus might block a distal hranch. If collateral circulation
to the supply area of that branch is not adequate, then further brain ischemic
symptoms and brain infarction may develop.
Hemorrhagic Infarction
When embolism causes brain infarction, the infarcts are often hemorrhagic. Miller
Fisher and Raymond Adams extensively studied their necropsy material to define the
mechanism of hemorrhagic infarction in the brain 126,271. Obstruction of a brain-
supplying artery causes ischemia to neurons and also causes ischemic damage to the
blood vessels within the area of ischemia. When the obstructing embolus moves
distally, ihe previously ischemic region is reperfused with blood. The damaged
capillaries and arterioles within that region are no longer competent and blood
leaks into the surrounding in farcied tissue. An example of this mechanism is shown
in Figure 1. from the Fisher and Adams study [27]. In this patient an embolus had
initially blocked the mainstem middle cerebral artery (MCA) before its
lenticulostriate branches, causing ischemia to the basal ganglia, internal capsule,
and the superficial cortical territories supplied by the MCA. Th embolu the d d had
d beyond th lenticulostriat

(a)
Embolus Lying <Ji$tol to penetrating branches
Antr CA

ranches to caudate aid putamen


(b)
FlG. 1 (a) Coronal section of the brain at necropsy showing a hemorrhagic
infarction on the righi involving the caudate nucleus and putamen, regions supplied
by the ienlieulostriat branche f th right middl cerebral artery (b) Cartoo f ih
intracranial internal
The essential cause oF hemorrhagic infarction is rcperfusion of previously ischemic
tissue. The other mechanism thai causes hemorrhagic infarction besides embolism is
systemic hypoperfusion. After cardiac arrest or shock, the reinsiitution of
effective circulation alter a prolonged period of brain hypoperfusion can lead lo
hemorrhage within border zone infarcts. Hemorrhagic changes arc extreme!) common
in patients with brain embolism, hi two series, the investigators prospectively
studied the frequency of hemorrhagic infarction on sequential brain-imaging scans.
Yamaguchi et ah compared the findings on CT scans performed 3 to 10 days after
stroke in 120 patients with embolic brain infarcts with 109 patients whose infarcts
were considered due to local thrombotic occlusive disease 128J. Hemorrhagic
infarcts were found in 45 patients (40%) with embolic infarcts, compared lo two
(1.8%) patients with local thrombosis-related infarcts 128). Okada and colleagues
studied 160 patients who had presumed embolic brain infarcts by performing CT scans
every 10 days during hospitalization [291. Hemorrhagic infarction was found on
CTal some time during the course in 65 (40.6%) patients. Hemorrhagic changes were
found on the initial CT scan performed during the tirst 4 days in only 10 patients
{6r/c), while the remainder of the hemorrhagic infarcts were found on follow-up CT
scans. Studies at the New England Medical Center in Boston showed that all of the
patients with cerebral [301 and cerebellar \M | hemorrhagic infarcts that were
studied and reported had embolic causes. MR! is more sensitive than CT at detecting
hemorrhagic changes, so sequential MR I probably would show a frequency of >50% for
hemorrhagic changes in patients with embolic brain infarcts.
In the great majority of patients. hemoiThagic infarction consists of diapcdesis
of red blood cells into in farcied tissue. Often the appearance is that of
scatterred petechial hemorrhages, or a confluent purpuric pattern scattered
throughout ihe infarct 132], Figure 2 shows a well-circumscribed hemorrhagic
infarct caused by an embolus to a small branch of the middle cerebral artery. As in
Figure la. this infarct is very hemorrhagic because of confluent bleeding into
ischemic brain tissue. Figure 3 shows hemorrhagic stippling within bilateral
posterior cerebral artery territory infarcts caused by an embolus to the rostral
basilar artery bifurcation. In some brain infarcts, especially large ones involving
more than one lobe, localized homogeneous collections of blood (hematomas) can
develop within the region of hemorrhagic infarction. In the great majority of
patients with hemorrhagic infarcts, the hemorrhagic transformation does not cause
any alteration in the clinical symptoms and signs. The hemorrhagic changes are
usually found on routine follow-up scans. Bleeding into dead tissue does not alter
clinical findings unless a large space-taking hematoma develops.

FIG. 2 Cul section of the posterior portion of the bruin al necropsy. A very well
circumscribed, triangular-shaped, very hemorrhagic infarct is seen within the
parietal lobe on ihe left {while arrows). This infarct was the result of an embolus
to a branch of the middle cerebral artery.
monary embolism-related hemoptysis have beefy hemorrhagic lung infarcts, and yet
heparin does not seem to create a major risk for further symptomatic lung bleeding.
The situation is similar within the brain. Recent studies have shown that
anticoagulation of patients with hemorrhagic infarcts in the brain due to dural
venous sinus occlusion have belter outcomes if treated with anticoagulants [33,34].
However, anticoagulation, especially using an intravenous bolus dose of heparin,
does carry a risk of hematoma formation in patients with large brain infarcts even
when no hemorrhagic changes are initially present.
Location and Size of Embolic Occlusions and Brain Infarcts
About 807r of emboli thai arise from ihe heart go inio the anterior (carotid
artery)

FIG. 3 Ctu section of ihe posterior portion of the bruin at necropsy showing a
bilateral hemorrhagic infarct within the territories of the posterior cerebral
arteries (white arrows). The black stippled ureas wiihin the infarct represent
small hemorrhages. These infarcts are a result of a single embolus temporarily
blocking the distal bifurcation of the basilar artery, impeding flow to the left
and right posterior cerebral arteries.
arteries. In the Harvard Stroke Registry 115| 78% of emboli caused clinical
anterior circulation ischemia while the frequency of anterior circulation embolism
was 85rA in the Michael Reese Stroke Registry [351 at1 ^ 70% in the Lausanne Stroke
Registry [361. The recipient artery destination depends on the size and nature or
the particles. Calcific panicles from heart valves or mitral annular
calcifications are less mobile and adapt less well to the shape of their recipient
artery resting place than red (erythrocyte-fibrin) and white (platelet-fibrin)
thrombi. The circulating bloodstream seems to be able somehow lo bypass obstructing
cholesterol crystal emboli, especially in the retinal arteries,
Wiihin the anterior and posterior circulations there are predilection sites for the
destination of embolic particles. Large emboli entering a common carotid artery
could become lodged in the common or internal carotid artery, especially

FlG. 4 Drawing ol the internal carotid artery and its intracranial brandies as they
appear on carotid angiography, anteroposterior view. AC A. anterior cerebral
artery; PC A, posterior cerebral artery: MCA. middle cerebral arter\; fCA.
internal carotid artery. Drawn by Dr. Juan Sanchez Ramos, (From Ref, 75.)
into the anterior cerebral (ACA) and middle cerebral (MCAj arteries. Figure 4 is a
drawing of the intracranial carotid artery showing the major intracranial branches.
Bifurcations are common resting places for emboli,
Emboli that pass through the carotid intracranial bifurcations most often go into
the MCAs and their branches, Gacs el ah showed that balloon emboli placed in the
circulation nearly always followed the same pathway and ended up in the MCAs and
their branches [37]. Embolism in experimental animals produced by the introduction
of silicone cylinders or spheres, elastic cylinders, and autologous blood clots,
also showed a very high incidence of MCA territory localization [381. Emboli often
pass into the superior and inferior divisions of the MCA and the cortical branches
of these divisions. The superior division sup

FIG. 5 Drawing of the lateral surface of the brain showing inferior trunk divisions
of the middle cerebral artery and their branches. MCA, middle cerebral artery.
Drawn by Dr. Juan Sanchez Ramos. oFrom Ref. 75.)
drawing of the convexal surface of the brain that shows the divisions of the MCA
and their main branches. Figure 6 is a drawing of a cut section of the brain
showing ihe supply /.ones of the different cerebral arteries. The middle cerebral
artery supplies most of the con\e\al surface of the brain and the basal ganglia.
The ACA supplies the paramedian frontal lobe. Emboli seldom go into the
penetrating artery (lenticulostriate arteries) branches of the MCAs or the
penetrators from the ACAs because these vessels originate at about a 90 angle from
the parent arteries.
Embolism into the MCAs can cause a variety of different patterns of infarction.
Figure 7 shows drawings of CT scans of nine patients with MCA embolic infarcts,
and Figures 8 to 14 are imaging scans of patients with embolism involving the MCA
territory. It is essential for clinicians to be able to recognize the various
patterns of infarction. Blockage of the main stem MCA before the lenticulostriate
branches can cause a large infarct that encompasses the entire MCA territory
including the deep basal ganglia and internal capsule as well as th cerebral d
subcortical whit f both th suprasylvia d
ACA

FIG. 6 Drawing of a coronal section of the brain through the cerebral hemispheres
and ihe thalamus showing the distribution of supply of the major cerebral arteries,
(a) Basilar arlcry. (b) Thaiamoperforating artery branches of the proximal
posterior cerebral artery, fc) Anterior choroidal artery, (d) Horizontal segment of
middle cerebral artery, (e) Lenticulostriate arteries to the put amen and caudate
nucleus, ACA. anterior cerebral artery; MCA, middle cerebral artery; AChA, anterior
choroidal artery: PC A. posterior cerebral artery. Drawn by Dr Juan Sanchez Ramos.
(From Ref. 75.)
causing infarction of ihe ACA territory as well as the entire MCA territory (Fig.
8). In young patients, when the mainstem MCA is blocked, the rapid development of
collateral circulation over the convexity of the brain often leads to sparing of
the superficial territory of the MCA. The lenticulostriate branches are blocked by
the clot in the mainstem MCA, and collateral circulation to the deep MCA territory
is poor. The resultant infarct is limited to the basal ganglia and surrounding
cerebral while matter and is usually referred to as a striatocapsular infarct
(Figs. 7A, 9).

FIG. 7 Drawings from CT scans of patients with embolic brain infarcts in middle
cerebral artery distribution, (at Striatocapsular infarct, (b.e) Deep basal
ganglionic-capsular and superficial termor infarcts ul.i) Entir middl cerebral
arter territor infarcts (e-g) FIG. 8 CT scan showing a large infarct (black arrows)
involving anterior cerebral artery territory (double arrows) and entire middle
cerebral artery territory on the right.

infarct limited to the temporal and interior parietal lobes below the sylvian
fissure (Figs. 7H [left side J, 12, 13). When an embolus rests lirst in the
mainstem MCA and then travels to one of the divisional branches, infarction
involves the deep territory and cortex above or below the sylvian fissure (Fig. 7B.
7C), Small emboli block cortical branches and cause small cortical/subcortical
infarcts involving one or several gyri (Figs. 7G I left side], 14),
Occasionally emboli block the anterior cerebral artery or its distal branches. This
causes an infarct in the paramedian area of one frontal lobe. Figure 15 is a CT
scan showing a typical anterior cerebral artery territory infarct due to embolism.

Emboli that enter the posterior circulation can block the vertebral arteries in the
neck or intracranially. Emboli that are able to pass through the intracranial

FiG. 9 CT scan showing an elliptical-shaped infarct within the basal ganglia and
internal capsule on the right of the picture (white arrows).
lar artery bifurcation Clop of the basilar11) or one of its branches. The main
branches of the basilar artery bifurcation are penetrating arteries lo the medial
portions of the thalami and midbrain, the superior cerebellar artery, which
supplies the upper surface of the cere be I him, and the posterior cerebral
arteries (PCAs). which supply the lateral portions of the thalami and the temporal
and occipital lobe territories of the posterior cerebral arteries (PCAs). Figure 3
shows a hemorrhagic infarct in the territory of the bilateral PCAs that resulted
from an embolus to the rostral basilar artery bifurcation. Figure 15 is a cartoon
showing the usual loci of posterior circulation embolism. The most frequent brain
areas infarcted are the posterior inferior portion of the cerebellum in the
territory of the posterior inferior cerebellar artery (PICA) branch of the ICVA;
the superior surface of the cerebellum in the territory of the superior cerebellar
artery; and the thalamic and he mi spheral territories of the PCAs. The clinical
and imaging finding i patient with thes lesion described i detail elsewher [39

FIG. 10 CT scan showing a superior division middle cerebral artery territory


infarct (single black arrow).
nosis since many patients were seen before CT scans were available. Table 2 shows
the frequency of embolic occlusions in the various intracranial arteries based on
angiography. The MCAs were involved in 80% of patients; the main-stem MCA and
superior division branches were the regions within the MCAs that were most often
occluded f 151, In the Lausanne Stroke Registry, the distribution of infarcts in
palients wilh potential cardiac sources of emboli was based on neuroimaging using
either CT or MRl 142 j. Among 1311 patients in the Lausanne Registry that were
tabulated. 305 (23%) had potential cardiac sources of emboli [42], Table 3 shows
the distribution of brain infarcts among these 305 patients.
Emboli of cardiac origin are often larger than those arising in the proximal
arteries, so the infarcts are, on average, larger than artery-to-arien infarcts
[43-451 th Strok Dat Bank th mediu volum f infarctio CT i

FIG. 11 MRJ scan, T:-weiglued. showing a small superior division infarct on ihe
right (white arrow).
source embolism was 73.7 em\ vs. 48.9 cm1 for nonembolic infarcts [46J. A decreased
level of consciousness early during the course of the stroke, a finding probably
related to the size of infarction, among other factors, was also significantly
more common in Stroke Data Bank patients with cardiogenic embolism compared to
those with intra-arterial embolism (29.8% vs. 6.1%; P < .01) f451.
Another important feature of cardiac origin embolism is development of multiple
cortical/subcortical infarcts in multiple vascular territories within both

FlG. 12 CT scan showing an interior division middle cerebral artery lerilory


infarct on ihe left (curved black arrows).
Emboli that arise from proximal arteries go only into branches of that artery.
Repeated embolism into one MCA suggests an intrinsic lesion of the carotid artery
on that side. The distal termination sites within the anterior and posterior
circulations are the same as that described above in cardiac-origin embolism.
Proximal arterial disease often induces circulatory changes with increased
collateral circulation. The preexistence of collateral circulation might limit the
size of intra-arterial embolic infarcts when compared to cardiac and aortic-origin
embolism in which there is no such preevent adaptation. The distribution of
infarcts according to superficial and deep intracranial territories also probably
differs between patients with cardiac and intra-arteria] sources of embolism.
Table 4 shows ihe distribution of infarcts in the Stroke Data Bank [45].
Superficial and deep infarct h i patient with cardia f embolis

FlG. 13 MRi. TV weighted image, showing a small inferior division infarct on the
right (white arrows).
In contrast, purely superficial infarcts were more common in patients with
intraarterial embolism |45|.
CLINICAL FEATURES AND DIAGNOSIS Early Clinical Course
The most common and most characteristic lime course in patients with embolism to a
brain artery is the very sudden onset of neurologic symptoms and signs that are
maximal at onset. After the embolus blocks the recipient artery, collateral
circulation begins to develop and some improvement occurs. The breakup and

FIG. 14 CT scan showing a cortical branch middle cerebral artery territory infarci
on the right (black arrow).
patients with clinical brain embolism was often normal, but immediate angiography
performed within hours after symptom onset nearly always showed embolic
intracranial occlusions [15]. Others have also shown a very high rate of
angiographic detection of emboli when studies are performed within 8 hours after
stroke onset [47.48], Transcranial Doppler monitoring of intracranial arteries
after onset of embolic strokes also shows a high frequency of emboli passage [49f
Movement of emboli before the development of irreversible brain damage allows
reperfusion of previously ischemic brain tissue and is usually accompanied by
clinical improvement in symptoms and signs. However, in some patients the embolus
or its fragments block an important distal branch, leading to further ischemia and
worsening of symptoms. For example, a patient with an embolus to the left mainstem
MCA might have the sudden onset of right hemiplegia and

FlG. 15 CT scan showing an anterior cerebral artery teritory infarct on the left
(black arrow),
of the MCA supplying the temporal lobe and occluded the artery, the patient might
then have the further onset of a fluent Wernicke-type aphasia. When there ts
further worsening alter initial improvement in patients with embolism, the
worsening usually occurs in a single step and nearly always occurs during the first
48 hours. Multiple stepwise worsenings, gradual smooth worsening, and delayed
worsenings are unusual. Late worsening, after 48 hours, should raise suspicion of
hemorrhage into the area of infarction since hemorrhagic transformation often
occurs between days 2 and 7 after stroke onset. Table 5 shows the course of deficit
in various stroke registries comparing patients with embolism and in situ
thrombosis [15,35,36].
Another pattern quite characteristic of brain embolism has been called "spectacular
shrinking deficit'* by Mohr (501. This term describes sudden, complete or nearly
complete clearing of a sudden-onset severe neurologic dclicit. Most often the
patient has had a mainstcm MCA or basilar artery embolus which rapidly passed. An
example of each situation will illustrate this syndrome, which

FKS. 16 Cartoon drawing showing the base of the brain and the major arteries of the
posterior circulation. The left lower curved arrow is the left intracranial
vertebral artery. The upper left straight arrow points to the basilar artery. The
right curved artery shows ihe right superior cerebellar artery, and the upper right
straight arrow shows the right posterior cerebral artery. The righi intracranial
vertebral artery, basilar artery, right superior cerebellar artery, and right
posterior cerebral arteries are shown to be blocked by emboli. The resultant
cerebellar and posterior cerebral artery territory infarcts are .shaded gray. Drawn
by Dari Paquette. (From Ref. 41.)
deviated to the left, she does not speak, her righi limbs are paralyzed, she does
not respond to pin or pinch on her right limbs and body, and she does not heed or
look at stimuli on her right side. CT scan is negative but TCD shows no blood flow
signal in the left MCA. The family see.s her poor condition and is told that the
outlook is quite grim. Suddenly, within an hour, the patient begins to speak and
move the right limbs and quickly returns virtually lo normal. Subsequent TEE
evaluation shows a
TABLE 2 Vascular Recipient Arteries in the Harvard Stroke Registry Based on
Cerebral Angiography
Anterior cerebral artery 3 (3%)
Middle cerebral artery 75 (80%) Mainstem 26 Superior division 9 Superior division
branch 22 Inferior division 8 Inferior division branch 1 Multiple branches 9
Posterior cerebral artery 11 (129; l
Basilar artery 5 (5%)
Sonne: Ret". 15.
reactive to light. Her eyes are deviated downward and inward. She does not respond
to stimuli. EKG shows atrial fibrillation. The family is informed lhat she may be
in a terminal coma and to prepare for the worst. The family members go home. CT
scan is performed and is normal, as is TCD. The next morning the patient calls home
and asks for her clothes and her toothbrush and berates the family for not bringing
these things with them.
TABLE 3 Topography of Infarcts in the Lausanne
Stroke Registry in Patients with Potential Cardiac
Sources of Embolism TABLE 4 Distribution of Infarcts in ihe Stroke Data Bank
Anterior circulation 213 (70%)
Global MCA 33 (11%)
Superior division MCA 60 (20%)
Inferior division MCA 54 (18%)
Deep subcortical 56(18%)
Anterior cerebral artery (ACA) 9 (3%)
ACA and MCA together 1 {03%)
Posterior circulation 69 (23%)
Brainstem 18 (6%)
Thalamus (deep PC A) 12 14%)
Superficial PCA 21 (7%)

Cardiac-origin Intra-arte rial Infarct type embolism embolism


Superficial infarcts 24% 61% Deep small infarct 13% 10% Deep large infarcts 9% 16%
Superficial and deep infarcts 53% 13%

Source: lid. 45.


These two patients were eared for by one of the authors (L.R.C.). The lirst patient
had a ma in stem left MCA embolus which caused severe but transient dysfunction of
the supply zone of that artery. The TCD confirmed blockage of the MCA, but CT
showed no infarction. The left hemisphere was temporarily stunned, that is, not
receiving enough blood containing oxygen and sugar to function, but not
sufficiently deprived to develop irreversible damage. Passage of the embolus
allowed rapid recovery of hemispheral function. The second patient had a top-of-
the-bastlar-artery embolus J39] with temporary midbrain and thalamic stunning. CT
confirmed that this dysfunction was not caused by pressure from a large hemispheric
lesion with herniation, and that there was no infarction in the upper brainstem.
The embolus passed sometime during the night.
In one study, among 118 patients who had the abrupt onset of neurologic deficits,
14 had rapid clearing of their neurologic signs within 24 hours, and in 10, the
deficit cleared within 4 hours [51], All 14 of the patients with spectacular
TABLE 5 Early Course of Deficit in Patients with In Situ Thronihosis vs. Embolism
in Various Stroke Registries
Thrombosis Embolism
Course
HSR MRSR LSR HSR MRSR LSR
Maximal at onset Stcpwise/sluttcring Progressive Gradual smooth Fluctuatin 40% 34%
13% 13% 45% 30% 14% 11% 66% 27% 7% 79% 11% 5% 5% 89% 10% 1% 82% 13% 5%

shrinking deficits had cardiogenic embolism. Angiography in this series showed


migration of emboli in the patients with these shrinking deficits [51].
Transient Ischemic Attacks
Temporary deficits that qualify as TIAs do occur in some palients with brain
embolism. In patients with arterial sources of emboli, the attacks are always in
the supply territory of the affected artery. For example, a patient with
atherosclerotic stenosis of the right 1CA might have attacks of righi monocular
visual loss and/or spells of numbness or weakness of the left arm, hand. face, or
leg. A patient with right vertebral artery stenosis might have attacks of double
vision, dizziness, and staggering. In palients with cardiogenic- or aortic-origin
embolism, when attacks occur they arc usually random and in different vascular
territories.
A patient of one of the authors (L.R.C.) awakened one night to urinate, and
suddenly noted weakness and numbness of the left limbs. By morning the deficit had
cleared and he did not tell his wife or a doctor. He had been feeling poorly for
weeks with night sweats and fever, symptoms which he also concealed from others.
The very next night, he again arose to urinate and now found that his right hand
was weak. His wife heard him return to bed and noted that his voice was slurred and
his speech did not make good sense. By the morning when she brought him to the
doctor, he had almost returned to normal.
CT showed a small left preccntral gyrus infarct. The doctor was unsure whether the
patient might have been confused about the side involved in the first occurrence
and ordered noninvasive vascular studies of the extracranial and intracranial
carotid and vertebral artery circulations, which were normal. Subsequent testing
showed that the patient had bacterial endocarditis and probably had two emboli, one
to the right and the other to the left cerebral hemispheres.
The definition of a TTA usually cited is that of a transient focal deficit that
clears within 24 hours. This definition is quite arbitrary, and, in fact, most TIAs
clear within I hour 152]. Despite the fact that the symptoms are transient, CT and
MR I often show infarcts in regions of the brain appropriate to the symptoms 152-
54]. Palients with transient focal symptoms and patients with symptoms that persist
have potentially serious cerebrovascular, cardiac, or hematological conditions and
are at risk for further strokes. Brain ischemia deserves thorough evaluation
irrespective of the timing of clinical symptoms.
circulation is most sluggish. In contrast, strokes related to hemorrhage and
embolism are posited to occur during vigorous activity. Activity is thought to
provoke leakage ol" blood from fragile vessels and those damaged by hypertension,
and to "shake loose" potential emboli from their nests. Recent studies show that
most strokes develop .hiring ihe morning hours, between 10 AM and noon, after
awakening and after daily activities have begun and not during sleep [55]. In
stroke registries, activity at onset was not particularly helpful in
differentiating among the various stroke mechanisms [15,35], The great majority of
strokes occurred during daily activities. In the Michael Reese Stroke Registry,
only 5% of emboli and \ % of thrombotic and lacunar strokes began during vigorous
physical activity or stress [35]. Occasionally, a cough, sneeze, or sudden vigorous
body motion precipitates embolism although the frequency of this occurrence is
relatively low. Emboli also seem lo occur more often than chance alter awakening
at night to urinate, a so-called maludinal (morning) embolus.
Systemic Embolism
Necropsy studies of patients with brain embolism of cardiac origin nearly always
show embolic infarcts in other organs, especially the spleen and kidneys. In
contrast, the frequency ol clinical recognition i*f sysieinic embolism is quite
lou, In various stroke registries, the frequencies of diagnosis of systemic
embolism were: 2%, Harvard Stroke Registry [15]: 2,3r/r. Michael Reese Stroke
Registry [35]; 3.6%, Stroke Data Bank [56]: 3%t Lausanne Stroke Registry 136]. The
highest frequency of systemic embolism. 8%, was found in a study of 60 palients
with cardiogenic brain embolism in whom two patienis had kidney and three had
peripheral limb embolism [57].
Embolism to the brain thai causes ischemia usually causes transient or persistent
symptoms. The brain is a bit like litmus paper, very sensitive to perturbations.
Systemic embolism also causes ischemia, but the symptoms are much less specific.
Embolism to a limb might cause arm pain, leg cramp, or other transient discomfort,
symptoms that are very common and usually due to activity, positioning of the
limb, or some other banal, everyday occurrence. Similarly, embolism to the
intestinal tract might cause stomach cramps, bowel irregularity, a belly ache-
rather common and nonspecific symptoms. Embolism to the kidneys or spleen causes
flank or abdominal discomfort rarely diagnosed as due to systemic embolism.
Hematuria and sudden-onset severe limb ischemia are probably the only two
occurrences that usually lead to recognition of systemic embolism, especially in
patients with known heart disease.
vessel walls contain many pain-sensitive nerve endings. Stretching and dilatation
ol arteries on the brain surface and in [lie neck ol'ten produce head and neck
discomfort and headache. The frequency and causes of headache vary depending on the
mechanism of stroke. Some headaches arc caused by mass effect in relation to brain
swelling or hemorrhage within the brain. Irritation of the meninges by blood causes
headache in patients with subarachnoid hemorrhage. In ischemic stroke patients,
headache may also be due to distension of occluded arteries by clot, dilatation of
collateral arteries, and by tears within arterial walls.
Table 6 lists frequencies of headache at or near onset of stroke in various stroke
registries and series [15.36,58,591. Headache is most common in patients with
intracerebral hemorrhage. Patients with brain embolism have headache more often
than patients with lacunar infarcts caused by penetrating artery disease, but less
often than patients with occlusive disease of large extracranial and intracranial
arteries. Headaches unusual for the individual patient may also occur before
strokes. Patients with subarachnoid hemorrhage may have episodes in which a small
amount of blood leaks, causing what has been referred to as a "sentinel" headache.
Frequent dull or throbbing headaches often are present in the days or weeks before
ischemic stroke in patients with large-artery thrombosis. These are due to
distension of occluded arteries as welt as dilated collateral arteries. Headaches
are rarely noted before brain embolism.
Seizures
Seizures at or near stroke onset are very uncommon in patients with ischemic
strokes irrespective of cause. Seizures are more common in patients with
intracerebral and subarachnoid hemorrhages than in patients with ischemic strokes
irrespective of the mechanism of the ischemia. In the Harvard Stroke Registry, 49r
of patients with brain embolism had seizures early in their clinical course as
compared to 0.3% of patients with large-artery in situ occlusions [13]. No patient
with lacunar infarction in the Harvard Stroke Registry had an early seizure, an
expected finding because lacunae are, by definition, small and deep and not likely
TABLE 6 Headache at or Near Time of Onset Among Various Stroke Types in Various
Stroke Registries (% of Patients)
Large-artery Lacunar Intracerebral
Registry thrombosis Em holism infarction hemorrhage
Harvard D51 12 $ 9*3 3% 33%

to cause cortical irritation [15]. In the Stroke Dala Bank only 3.1% of patients
with cardiac-origin embolism had seizures [60], and no patient with presumed brain
embolism in the Lausanne Stroke Registry had seizures [36]. In a thesis that
analyzed the development of seizures among 770 patients with first-ever symptomatic
su prat en tori a 1 brain infarcts in the Maastricht stroke registry, the presence
of cardiac-origin embolism meant that the patient had a relative risk of
5.14 of developing an early-onset seizure compared to patients without cardiogenic
embolism 1611. Among 2000 stroke patients in another series, patients with
hemorrhagic infarcts and large infarcts were most likely to have seizures [46], The
average size of infarcts in patients with seizures was 76.7 cm1, vs. 45.6 cm1 in
patients who did not have seizures [461. In this series 40% of the seizures in
stroke patients occurred during the first day and 51% during the first week; 96% of
postslroke seizures occurred during the first year after stroke f46]. Although
seizures near the onset of stroke symptoms are probably more common in patients
with embolism than in nonembolie causes of ischemic stroke, sei/.ures are too in
frequent to be of much diagnostic help.
Decrease in Level of Consciousness
Early decrease in the level of consciousness in stroke patients is most often due
to acute brainstem tegmental ischemia related to embolism to the basilar artery.
Decreased consciousness can also be related to major hemispheral ischemia caused by
sudden occlusion of the major blood supply of cither hemisphere. Later in the
course, during days 3 to 7, persistent loss of consciousness is usually explained
by brain edema and the mass effect of large cerebellar and cerebral infarcts,
Transient loss of consciousness is most often seizure related, or due to a cardiac
arrythmia.
Few studies have analyzed the frequency of loss of consciousness at or near the
time of stroke onset. In the Stroke Data Bank, decreased consciousness early in the
stroke was present in 29.8% of patients with embolism of cardiac origin, compared
to a 6.1% frequency in patients with intra-arterial embolism [45 J. Decreased
consciousness at or near stroke onset is more common in patients with embolic
niclusinns Mian in other causes of ischemic stroke and is more common in patients
with cardiac-origin embolism than in those with proximal arterial sources. The
larger size of emboli of cardiac origin as compared with emboli of arterial origin
is the probable explanation Tor the difference.
Clinical Patterns of Neurologic Symptoms
are associated with occlusions of the various feeding arteries. Tables 2 through 4
show the usual common brain and vascular locations of embolic infarcts. Each
location has characteristic clinical findings.
Anterior (Carotid Artery) Circulation Embolism
Among all series, the great majority of emboli are found within the MCAs and their
branches. Large emboli may block the mainstem MCA near its origin, leading to
infarction of the entire territory of the cerebral hemisphere supplied by the MCA
(Fig, 7D. 71). The clinical deficits in these patients are very severe and most
patients die. Rare patients survive but remain severely and permanently disabled.
Consciousness is reduced. The eyes usually rest conjugate!y toward the side of the
infarct. The contralateral limbs are paralyzed and insensitive to pin stimulation
or pinch. Although the patient may attend lo voices, visual objects, and people
situated on the same side of space as the brain infarct, they often will ignore
identical stimuli on the contralateral side of space. When the left MCA is
occluded, patients do not speak or heed directions or queries. Within the first 24
to IS hours stupor deepens, then coma develops, and the patient dies. Recently some
palients have been saved by removing the overlying skull plate to give the brain
room to expand |h2.63]. Later, the eranial bone plate can be placed back in its
former position. Unfortunately, many survivors are left badly damaged and disabled.
In some young patients much of the brain swelling is due to edema, and survival
after craniectomy is reasonably good.
Occasionally, patients with mainstem MCA emboli who have very severe clinical signs
rapidly, almost miraculously, recover. This so-called spectacular shrinking delicit
is due to reperfusion of brain that was reversibly ischemic ("stunned") [50.51], CT
scan and other neuroi mag in g tests can be helpful in predicting the prognosis for
recovery. The presence of early signs of infarction bodes poorly for recovery. When
the CT scan is normal initially, the prognosis is more hopeful.
Occlusion of the MCA proximal to the lenticulostriate branches sometimes produces
an infarct that includes the deep basal ganglionic and capsular territory as well
as superficial MCA territory. (Fig. 7B, 7C) This pattern of infarction, involvement
of superficial and deep MCA territory, was found in over half of the patients in
the Stroke Data Bank series with cardiac-origin embolism (Table 4) 145]. These
patients invariably have a hemiparesis involving the face, arm, and leg on the side
contralateral to the lesion. They usually also have some degree of hemisensory
loss. Conjugate eye deviation and inattention to the contralateral sid f visual
variabl finding tha depend th siz f th infarc and lack of awareness of the
neurological delicit depend on the location and exteni of cortical infarction and
whether the left or right cerebral hemisphere is
involved.
Occlusion of the superior division of the MCA causes ischemia in the territory of
the artery lhat lies above the sylvian fissure. (Figs. 7E-7G. 10. 11) This includes
the frontal and superior parietal lobes. The temporal lobe is spared. Patients
with left superior division infarcts have a right hemiparesis more severe in the
hand, arm. and face than in the lower extremity. They also have diminished touch
and position sensation in the right hand and face. Patients usually fail to
identify objects placed in their right hands. Aphasia is invariably present and is
usually of the nonfluent type characterized by decreased amount of speech and
effortful, poorly pronounced words. Comprehension of spoken language is usually
relatively preserved. Patients with right superior division MCA territory infarcts
have left hemiparesis more severe in the hand and face, left hemi sensory loss,
inattention to the left side of visual space, and diminished awareness of their
left limb dysfunction.
Inferior division MCA territory infarcts involve the posterior temporal and
parietal lobes (Ftgs. 7H [left side]. 12. 13). Patients with left cerebral
hemisphere infarcts have a lluent aphasia characterized by effortless speech that
contains many wrong and nonexistent words, and jargon. There may also be a right
upper quadrant visual field defect. Some patients become agitated and paranoid.
Patients with right inferior division MCA territory infarcts have a left upper
quadrant visual held defect and a hyperactive state with agitation [64J. They draw
and copy drawings poorly,,
Occasionally the recipient artery is the anterior cerebral artery {ACA).
Infarction involves the medial frontal and parietal lobes above the corpus
callosum near the midline <Fig. 15), The limbs contralateral to the infarct may
show a distinct pattern of weakness with paralysis most severe in the foot, leg,
and thigh and some weakness of shoulder shrug and shoulder abduction. Some patients
have difficulty controlling urination. Decreased spontaneity, apathy, and
decreased amount of speech also may occur due to frontal lobe infarction.
Posterior Circulation (Vertebrobasilar Arteries) Embolism
About one-fifth of emboli go to one of the vertebral arteries and enter the intra*
cranial posterior circulation arteries. The most common clinical patterns of
symptoms occur in patients with cerebellar, PCA. and "top-of-the-basilar"
territory and sometimes the neck, vomiting, and gait ataxia are the most common
symptoms [41,65,66|, Examination shows severe gait ataxia. Many palients lean to
ihe side of ihe infarct and have difficulty standing or even silting without
support. There may be decreased tone in the ipsilateral arm and nystagmus. Some
patienls with targe PICA territory cerebellar infarcts develop compression of the
ventricular system and brainstem, and can become stuporous and die. Removal of the
soft, edematous, necrotic cerebellum can be life-saving in these patients with so-
called pseudotumoral cerebellar infarcts [411.
Embolism to one of the posterior cerebral arteries (PCAsJ causes infarction in the
temporal and occipital lobes [41,67,681. When the proximal PCA is blocked, the
infarct often includes the thalamus. The most common symptoms iuid signs are visual
and sensory. Patienls with right PCA territory infarcts have a left visual field
defect (entire left field or upper or lower quadrant), and may also report numbness
and tingling and loss of sensation in their left limbs and trunk, Patients with
left PCA territory infarcts have right visual field and hemisensory abnormalities.
They may also be unable to read despite retaining the ability to write and may also
have difficult} making new memories. Bilateral PCA territory infarcts cause
cortical blindness or less severe bilateral visual field defects, severe amnesia,
and an agitated delirium [39,411,
When emboli block the very distal end of the basilar artery, infarction often
involves the paramedian thalamus, rostral midbrain, and both PCA territories [39-
411. Infarction can be limited lo the posterior portions of the cerebral
hemispheres (Fig. 3) or to the midbrain and thalamic portions of the brainstem.
Bilateral infarction in the paramedian posterior thalamus usually causes reduced
alertness, with hypersomnoleuce. loss of upgaze, and amnesia. Sometimes patients
also cannot look down. When the upper midbrain is involved, patients have
unilateral or bilateral third-nerve palsies (ptosis with eyes down and out) and
may also have bilateral limb weakness. Cortical blindness, amnesia, and agitated
delirium are added when bilateral PCA territory infarcts are also present.
IMAGING AND LABORATORY EVALUATION OF POTENTIAL RECIPIENT ARTERY SITES Neuroimaging
of the Brain
CT and MR! are indispensable in the diagnosis of brain embolism. These brain
neuroimaging tests are able to separate brain infarcts from hemorrhages. CT scans
have been used traditionally to exclude hemorrhage since hematomas are visible MRl
is clearly superior to CT in detecting and showing infarcts in the cerebellum,
brainstem, and inferior temporal lobes. When infarcts are present, their location,
size, and mulii pi icily can help predict the mechanism of infarction,
Careful inspection of CT scans performed within 6 hours of stroke onset sometimes
shows subtle signs of early infarction. Loss of definition of the gray-white matter
junction in ischemic regions, edema which causes effacement of sulci in one
cerebral hemisphere or one vascular territory, loss of definition of the basal
ganglia and the insular region, are all early signs of infarction. Another common
finding on noncontrast CT scans is opacification of the middle cerebral or other
arteriesthe so-called hyperdense middle cerebral artery sign. The hyperdensity is
caused by a thrombus within the artery. Sometimes hyperdense basilar and posterior
cerebral arteries are evident in patients with ischemia in those vascular terri
lories. Hyperdense ail erics on noncontrast scans were found in 10% of acute
strokes in one study [691, in 21% 1701 and 22% [711 of acute thromboembolic MCA
occlusions in other studies, and in 31% of acute anterior circulation brain
infarcts in another study (72J. The hyperdense MCA sign has a relatively low
sensitivity (about 50%) but a high specificity (about 90%).
CT and MRI can also be useful in deciding on treatment and rendering a prognosis.
Patients who have embolic brain ischemia are candidates for thrombolytic treatment
if seen early enough in their course. If a patient with a suspected MCA territory
embolus had a large infarct already visible on CT or MRl at the lime that
thrombolytic treatment was contemplated, the likelihood of a good outcome would be
small, since much brain was likely already in farcied and would be unlikely to
recover alter rcperfusion. The risk of hemorrhage after thrombolytic treatment is
also considerably higher when sizable infarction is present before treatment 173].
Decisions on the liming of anticoagulation also depend on die imaging results, When
large infarcts are present, the risk of hemorrhage after heparin anticoagulation is
higher,
CT and MRl are useful even when the neurological symptoms are transient. Scans in
that circumstance may show unexpected infarcts despite the negativity of the
history and neurological examinations, Such so-called silent infarcts are common.
Neurological symptoms may have been present hut forgotten by the patient. In other
instances, the symptoms may have been trivial: for example, the patient may ignore
a temporary limp, a short period of less precise articulation or word finding
difficulty, transient numbness in a limb, Often the neurological symptoms are
misinterpreted as representing transient compression of a nerve in a limb or other
banal nonstroke causes. When there are multiple unsuspected brain infarcts in
different vascular territories, cardiogenic or aortogenic embolism i likely Th f
multipl infarct i vascula territory h th
Vascular Imaging
Vascular studies have a dual purpose: to detine the lesion wiihin recipient
arteries and to image any possible arterial sources of embolism. Since angiography
was the first vascular imaging test used to detect emboli and to define vascular
lesions, knowledge of the diagnostic angiographic findings will help physicians
interpret the results of less invasive vascular tests. Angiographic findings that
suggest em-holism are the following.
Blockage of Superficial Branches of Intracranial Arteries
Atherosclerosis rarely affects branch arteries but is much more common in the major
extracranial and basal intracranial arteries.
Absence of Any Vascular Occlusive Lesion in the Artery Supplying an Infarcted Zone
For example, if a palient has a sizable acute right MCA territory infarct and the
right ICA and MCA are normal angiographically, then one can conclude that there
must have been temporary blockage of the right MCA by an embolus that remained long
enough to cause infarction and later passed.
Movement or Disappearance of a Vascular Obstructing Lesion on Sequential
Angiographic Films
Movement of occlusive particles is diagnostic of emboli.
Sudden, Sharply Demarcated Occlusion of Major Intracranial Arteries
Especially, the MCAs, PC As, and cerebellar arteries in the absence of
atherosclerosis in those vessels are occluded. Patients who have in situ thromhi
form at sites of previous atherosclerosis usually have had promonontory TIAs. and
the occlusion is tapered. The occluded artery shows some signs of prior
atherosclerotic stenosis.
A Filling Defect Within a Symptomatic Intracranial Artery
This is highly suggestive of embolism.
Angiography also gives information about possible proximal arterial sources of
embolism. In a patient with a right MCA territory infarct, severe stenoraphy in
most patients. We recommend that noninvasive imaging always precede angiography
even when it has already been decided that angiography is needed [74]. The results
of noninvasive vascular tests can help better target angiography and limil the
number of arteries that require study and so reduce the amount of contrast media
needed and the length of the procedure. CT angiography (CTA) can be performed at
the same time that CT brain images are acquired. Intravenous dye is injected, and
spiral CT scanners are able to generate images of the major extracranial and
intracranial arteries. MR angiography (MRA) can be performed at the same time that
MR1 brain images are generated. MR A does not require injection of any substance.
CTA and MR A can generate accurate images of the major extracranial and
intracranial arteries but do not show branches very well. Clinicians should view
the films using the same criteria tor embolism that were discussed for angiography.

Ultrasound is another very important diagnostic modality that has a number of


advantages. Machines are portable. Testing is safe and without risks. Ultrasound
testing is much less expensive than angiography. MR A, or CTA. Ultrasound testing
can be repeated in order to document changes in blocked recipient arteries. In sumo
European centers, ultrasound equipment is available at the bedside and is used by
physicians to extend the vascular physical examination much as ultrasound is now
used by nurses and physicians in intensive-care units to monitor peripheral
vessels.
Intracranial arteries are insonated using a small probe placed at regions of the
skull where there are foramina or natural soft spots. The usual windows arc the
orbit, foramen magnum, and temporal bone (Eig. 17). Transcranial Doppler (TCD)
probes are placed perpendicular lo arteries, for example. Lhe MCAs, while ihe
technician or physician performing the test listens for the characteristic
pulsatile swooshing sound that indicates that the probe is in the correct
position. The computer allows the person performing the TCD examination to view the
Doppler spectrum at successive 5-mm depths along the insonated artery. Figure 18a
shows a probe insonating the MCA on one sideT and Figure 18b shows a characteristic
spectrum from that MCA. TCD measures blood Row velocities along insonaied arteries.

Most people have had the experience of trying to wash a pavement or paved patio
with a garden hose. Figure 19 illustrates the water flow when the spigot is turned
fully on and the nozzle is not turned. When the nozzle of the hose is turned, a
stronger, more targeted water spray is generated (Fig. 20). Turning the nozzle
reduces the size of the lumen at the end of the hose. The velocity of flow in the
water jet is inversely proportional lo the luminal size until a critical luminal
siz i reached which tim flo i reduced If th nozzl i d fully the

FIG. 17 Anatomical drawing of the neck and head of a man. lateral view, showing the
insonation sites For transcranial Doppler ultrasound. (1 ) Temporal window. (2)
Orbital window. (3) Suboccipital, foramen magnum window. (From Rcf. 76.)
site of narrowing. If the artery is blocked by an embolus or in situ thrombins,
then no or very low signals are obtained.
In a patient with a right MCA territory stroke, the absence of Doppler signals over
the right MCA, when left MCA signals are normal, is strongly suggestive of right
MCA occlusion. Subsequent appearance of signals in the right MCA shows that the
obstruction has moved along or passed. Unfortunately, in some patients, especially
older women, it is not possible to obtain signals from the MCAs because of the lack
of a suitahle temporal window. The ICVAs can be insonated through the foramen
magnum. Figure 22 shows the vertebral arteries i th neck forame d intracranially

FlG. 21 The no//le bus been turned nearly fully, obliterating the lumen of the
hose. Only a dribble of water escapes from the hose. Drawn by Dari Paquette.
of the extracranial carotid and vertebral arteries f 75,761. Newer technology such
as color-flow and power Doppler improve diagnostic accuracy of the vascular images.
A continuous-wave (CW) Doppler probe can be moved along the neck arteries to show
whether How is antegrade, retrograde, or mixed. Extracranial ultrasound helps
identify potential arterial sources of embolism. Occasionally, emboli can block the
carotid or vertebral arteries in the neck. Sequential ultrasound tests can show
disappearing embolic occlusions [77].
Monitoring of Emboli
TCD can also be used to monitor for embolism [16-21 ]. Monitoring is performed in
patients who are being evaluated for TlAs or acute strokes, and during procedure h
carotid d vertebral angioplasty carotid endarterectomy

FIG. 22 Posterior views of lhe upper neek \ eriehni e and the skull, showing lhe
vertebral arteries and lhe foramen magnum <black arrows), (a) Direct
anteroposterior view; 1. vertebral artery; 2. transverse process of Ihe atlas: 3.
posterior inferior cerebellar artery (PICA) branch of the intracranial vertebral
anery (ICVA). <b) An oblique view o! ihe sank- \intetures.
merit. Figures 23 and 24 show some examples of embolic signals thai were de

FlG. 23 Doppler spectrum from monitoring of lhe right MCA in a patienl with a
patent foramen ovale. An embolic signal is seen after introduction of a small
quantity of air into a peripheral arm vein.
for periods of 30 to 60 minutes |20J. Only two controls (11%) had microembolic
signals. No microembolic signals were delected among 78 patients who had no
identified sources of embolism, while 12.9% of patienls with sources of emboli had
microembolic signals [20], In this study, microembolism was more common in palients
with vascular sources of embolism such as ICA stenosis (17.1%), compared to 6.2% in
patients with cardiac sources of embolism. One-fifth of patients with ICA stenosis
>70% had microembolic signals, compared to 13% in patients w ith ~H'< ICA -acnniis.

Sliwka el ah, during a 6-monih period, attempted to monitor J0U consecutive


patients with atrial fibrillation or other potential cardiac sources of embolism
[19]. Nine of the patients had insufficient temporal windows, so they could noi be
monitored with TCD, Microembolic signals were detected in 36 of the 100 patients
successfully monitored. The average number of microembolic signals was 2.d9 2.7
per 30 minutes (range 1 to 12) f 191. Palients with atrial fibrillation who had
coronary atherosclerotic heart disease with ejection fractions of <30%,

FIG. 24 Doppler spectra I mm same patient studied in Figure 23. More emboli are
seen after Valsalva maneuver.
nosis; and otic had a patent foramen ovale, and echocardiography showed mitral
valve strands ft81.
Georgiadis and colleagues monitored 31K) patients with potential cardiac sources of
emboli and 100 patients with severe ICA disease using TCD 178], They found the
following frequencies of microembolic signals among their monitored patients:
infective endocarditis. 43%: left ventricular aneurysm. 34%; intracardiac thrombus,
26%; dilated cardiomyopathy, 26%: nonvalvular atrial fibrillation. 21%; native
valvular disease, 15%; prosthetic valves, 55%; ICA disease, 28% (symptomatic ICA
disease 52%, asymptomatic disease 7%); and 5% among controls [78].
nology available will improve. Standardization and interpretation of results are
necessary. The technology promises to be important both in diagnosis and in
monitoring the results of treatments and procedures.
SOURCES OF EMBOLI
The great majority of emboli to the brain arise from the heart, aorta, or the
cervicocranial arteries. Figure 25 is a cartoon which illustrates these major
sources.

Occasionally foreign materials such as air, fat, or cancer cells enter the
circulation and embolize to various systemic organs.
Cardiac Sources
In the 1950s the only two cardiac disorders that were accepted as having an
important risk of causing embolism were rheumatic mitral stenosis widi atrial
fibrillation, and recent myocardial infarction. We now know that many cardiac
lesions and disorders carry some risk of cardiac thrombosis and embolism. Data from
stroke registries and more modem cardiac diagnostic testing have made it possible
during the past two decades to diagnose cardiac disorders more definitively and to
attempt lo quantify the risk of embolism. Cardiac disorders that carry a risk of
brain embolism can be divided into six groups: (1) artythmias, especially atrial
fibrillation and sick-sinus syndrome; (2) valvular heart diseases, especially
mitral stenosis, prnsthelie heart valves, infective endocarditis, and marantic
endocarditis: (3) ventricular myocardial abnormalities* especially related to
coronary artery disease, myocarditis, and other dilated cardiomyopathies; (4)
lesions within the cavity of the ventricles, especially tumors such as myxomas and
thrombi: (5) shunts* especially inlra-atrial septal defects and patent foramen
ovale which allow passage of emboli forming in the peripheral veins lo enter the
systemic circulation causing so-called paradoxical embolism', and (6) atrial
lesions such as dilated atria, atrial infarcts and thrombi, and atrial septal
aneurysms,
Virchow, in 1856, described three antecedent conditions for the development of
thrombi within the chambers of the heart: a region of circulatory stasis, injury to
the endothelial surfaces of the heart, and increased blood coagulability [79.80].
In areas of stasis a low shear rale and other factors activate the classical
coagulation cascade, leading lothe formation of erythrocyte-fibrin thrombi. Stasis
occurs most often in the atria and atrial appendages in patients with atrial
fibrillation, and in the ventricular chambers in palients with global and focal
regions of decreased myocardial contractility. Altered myocardial endothelium
occurs in patients with myocardial infarcts, ventricular aneurysms, and
inflammatory and other myocardiopathies and endocardial disorders. Valvular
endothelium can be damaged by many different conditions. Loss of a protective
endothelial surface exposes circulating blood to the underlying tissues and causes
plalclel activation, adhesion, and secretion, as well as activating the coagulation
cascade [80,811. Recent studies have begun to show increased platelet activation
and blood coagulability in patients with cardiac-source embolism 182.831.
In this section, we will first comment on the cardiac disorders known to and after
surgery and after diagnostic procedures will be discussed in Chapters 4 and 5.
Arrythmias Atrial fibrillation
Atria] fibrillation is one of ihe most common cardiac disorders. About 0,4% of the
population have atrial fibrillation, and the disorder becomes much more common as
patients age. Perhaps as many as 5% of individuals over age 60 have atrial
fibrillation [K4,85]. Epidemiological studies during the past two decades have
firmly established that atrial tibrillation is a very important risk factor for
stroke, that stroke is most often due lo cardiogenic embolism, and that standard
antithrombotic treatment substantially reduces the frequency of brain embolism in
patients with atrial fibrillation. In four large studies the relative risk of
stroke was 5.6 (Framingham. U.S.) 186], 5.6 (Shibata. Japan) [87], 7.1 (Reykjavik,
Iceland) [8SJ, and 6,9 {Whitehall, U.K.) [89] times that of patients without
atrial fibrillation.
Clearly, the etiology of atrial fibrillation and associated cardiac and other
medical factors affect the risk of stroke in patients with atrial fibrillation. In
the Framingham study, the presence of rheumatic heart disease and atrial
fibrillation conveyed a 17,6 X risk of stroke, compared lo the lone atrial
fibrillation rate of
5.6 X 186], Advanced age. congestive heart failure, a history of hypertension,
previous myocardial infarction, and prior thromboembolism all increase the risk of
stroke in patients with atrial fibrillation 190,91]. These features should be known
from the medical history.
A collaborative analysis of five atrial fibrillation stroke prevention studies
analyzed the contribution of various historical risk factors on the development of
stroke during follow-up [92]. The relative risks (RRs) as determined by
multivariate analysis of all the data were; history of previous stroke or TIA (RR
2,5); diabetes mellitus (RR 1.7); history of hypertension (RR 1.6): and increasing
age <RR 1,4 for each decade) 1921. These calculated relative risks were for the
occurrence of any stroke and were not limited lo those attributable to cardiogenic
embolism.
Information derived from echocardiography is also very helpful in assessing the
risk of brain embolism in individual patients with atrial fibrillation [93-95],
Transesophageal echocardiography (TEE) can detect left atrial and left atrial
appendage thrombi. In patients with atrial fibrillation who do not have valvular
disease, thrombi often form in and dislodge from the left atrial append
whil patient with atrial fibrillatio d valvula diseas hav lef those thai liave
ahead) dislodged arc not readily delected The sensiliviiv of TEE in delecting left
atrial and left atrial appendage thrombi has been estimated at between 83% and 100%
[94]. Left atrial enlargement [93-95] and abnormal left atrial appendage function
as determined by Doppler TEE: [95,97-100] also convey an increased risk for
cardioembolic stroke. The presence of mitral annul us calcification [I00| and left
ventricular dysfunction [94,951 also increase the risk of stroke in patients with
atrial fibrillation.
Spontaneous echo contrast (also called ''smoke'*) is probably one of the most
important factors that predict the future likelihood of cardiogenic embolism in
patients with atrial fibrillation. First described in patients with mitral valve
disease [ 101]. spontaneous echo contrast refers to swirling hazes of echogenicity
within the cardiac chambers. The echogenic swirls can move repeatedly within die
cavity and may disappear when blood How increases or when local stasis resolves.
The intensity can vary from a faint, cloud I ike appearance lo bright echo
contrast, Spontaneous echo contrast is probably due to the interaction Iviween
plasma proteins and erythrocytes at low shear rates [95,102]. The major
determinants of spontaneous echogenicity are the hematocrit, fibrinogen levels,
and slow intracardiac flow [103]. The frequency of spontaneous echo contrast has
been evaluated in several studies of patients with atrial fibrillation 196,104-
1061. In one study, among 33 nonantieoagulatcd patients with atrial fibrillation
without valvular disease, 11 had spontaneous echo contrast 196|. Tsai et al. found
spontaneous echo contrast using TEE in 25 of 103 atrial fibrillation patients
(24%) who did not have valvular disease 1106]. In this study 21 of 35 patients
(84%) who had thromboembolism had spontaneous echo contrast |106].
The presence and nature of valvular disease is an important factor in predicting
the presence of eclm contrast, DeBelder et al., in a study of atrial fibrillation
patienls. reported echo contrast in 67% (10/15) patients with mitral stenosis, in
50% (4/8) patients with prosthetic mitral valves, and in 21 % (12/57) of patients
without these conditions 1104]. Echo contrast was found in 65% of patients who had
a history of thromboembolism. Leong and colleagues prospectively followed a series
of 272 patients with atrial fibrillation who had no valvular disease [107]. Twenty
of the 161 (12.4%) patienls with spontaneous echo contrast had cerebrovascular
events, and two had systemic embolism (total event rate 12% per year); only five of
J11 (4.5%;) patients who did not have echo contrast had cerebrovascular events
(event rate of 3% per year) [107]. Chimowitz and colleagues showed that the
presence of spontaneous echo contrast was highly associated with prior strokes in
patients who had either atrial fibrillation or mitral valve stenosis 11081.
Atrial fibrillation is a common finding in the elderly. Many patients with <SPAF)
analyzed the most likely mechanisms of stroke among 63 patients with atrial
fibrillation studied in their trial [ 109J. Twenty-two of the 63 strokes were
deemed most likely cardioembohc; four were alherothrombotic; seven due to the
penetrating artery disease underlying lacunar infarction; three to other specific
causes; and 27 were of uncertain cause | I0L)J. In the European Atrial Fibrillation
Trial (EAFT), investigators analyzed the presence of infarcts on CT scans in
patients in their atrial fibrillation trial [110], Among 985 patients, 14% had so-
called silent infarcts on CT scans, i.e.. infarcis for which there was no relevant
history. The most common type of silent infarcts (43%) were small, deep, lacunar
infarcts most likely related to associated penetrating artery disease, and were
probably not cardioembohc 1110J. in the Lausanne Stroke Registry, only 18% of
patients with atrial fibrillation and stroke had atrial fibrillation as the only
potential cause of stroke 11 I I]. Coexisting large and penetrating artery disease
and other cardiac sources of embolism were common. Using extracranial ultrasound,
among 159 patients with atrial fibrillation and brain infarcts, abnormal lindings
in the ipsilatcral ICA (107; 67%) and the contralateral ICA (92; 58%) were very
common 11 I I
During the last decade there have been major advances in our knowledge about stroke
prophylaxis in patients with atrial fibrillation who do not have valvular heart
disease. Table 7 reviews the six major randomized trials that studied this issue
[ 100,111-1171. Another trial, the Canadian Atrial Fibrillation Anticoagulation
Study (CAFA), was prematurely stopped after randomization of 383 patients to
receive warfarin (INR 2-3) or placebo after the results of other studies were
published [118J. Warfarin-treated patients had fewer primary outcome events
(nonlacunar brain infarcts, systemic embolism, and fatal intracranial bleeding
episodes) 3.5%/year compared to 5.2%/year in the placebo-treated group, but the
results lacked statistical power because of premature termination of the study
1118]. All trials showed a consistent and considerable risk reduction for stroke in
patients treated with warfarin.
The European Atrial Fibrillation Trial (EAFT) study group addressed specifically
the question of the optimal level of anticoagulation by reviewing the results of
their own trial [119], No treatment effect was found with anticoagulation
responses below INRs of 2.0. The rate of thromboembolic events was lowest at INRs
from 2 to 3.9; most major hemorrhages occurred at INRs of 5.0 and above. The EAFT
group recommended a target of 3.0 with a range from 2 to
5.0 1119]. Fixed-dose warfarin with a target of 1.3 to 1.5 was not as effective as
standard adjusted-dose warfarin al an average INR of 2.4, even when aspirin 325
mg/day was added lo the low fixed-dose warfarin in another study [1161. Warfari i
abou 50% effectiv tha aspiri i reducin th f strok i
TABLE 7 Trials of Prophylactic Therapy in Patients with Atrial Fibrillation Without
Valvular Disease
Cnal 1 Vsi^n Results
Copenhagen AFASKA [1I2J 11)07 patients; mean age 73; Coumadin (INR 2.8-4.2) vs.
aspirin (75 mg/day) vs. placebo.
BAATAF [1001 628 patients; mean age 68; Coumadin (INR 1.5-2.7) vs. other medical
Rx (could include aspirin).
SPAF 1113] EAFT | J 14| SPAK II [M5J 1330 patients; mean age 67; Warfarin-eligible
patients randomized to warfarin (INR 2-3.5), aspirin (325 mg/day), or placebo.
Warfarin-ineligible patients randomized to aspirin or placebo. 1(X)7 patients: mean
age 73; Warfarin-eligible patients randomized to warfarin (INR 2.5-4), aspirin (300
mg), or placebo. Warfarin-ineligible to aspirin or placeho. 1100 patients; mean age
69.6; warfarin (INR 2-4.5) vs. aspirin t325 mg/day compared in patients <75 and
patients >75
SPAF III |1I6] SPAF III 11171 1044 patients with I or more risk factors; mean age
72; low-intensity fixed-dose warfarin (INR 1.2-1,5) plus aspirin (325 mg/day vs.
adjusted-dose warfarin (INR 2-3) 892 patients with posited low risk were given 325
mg aspirin
Thromboemboli (stroke. TIA. ssstemie embolismt. Coumadin 2^/year; aspirin
5.5%/ycar placebo 5.5% /year.
Coumadin 2 strokes (0.4^/year); control 13 (37< year). No benefit of aspirin (8 of
13 strokes controls or aspirin); 2 hemorrhages I eac group.
Warfarin 2.3ci* /year vs. 7.4<7f/year placebo; strok in warfarin-ineligible aspirin
group 3.6% /yea vs. 6,3% in placebo group. Major bleeding 1.5%. 1.4% 1.6% in
warfarin, aspirin, placeb groups.
Strokes in 8% of 225 in warfarin group. I5f/f 404 in aspirin group. 19% of 378 in
placeb group. Major bleeding 2.8%/year warfarin group. 0.9%/ycar aspirin group.
715 patients <75; ischemic stroke, systemic embo lism 1.3%/year. Warfarin vs. I ,^
%/year aspi rin; major hemorrhage 0.9%/year aspirin. 1.7%/year warfarin.
385 >75; ischemic stroke, systemic embolism 3.6%/year warfarin; 4,8%/year aspirin:
majo bleeds 4.2% warfarin/ l.6# aspirin
INR 1.3 ti\ed-dose warfarin vs. INR target 2, justed group. Ischemic stroke,
systemic embo lism in 7.9% of fixed-dose aspirin vs, 1.9% adjusted-dose group
Rate of ischemic stroke was low (2%/year) an disabling ischemic stroke only
0.8%/year. of major bleeding was 0.5'*/year.
AFASAK, Copenhagen Airiat Fibrillation Aspirin Anticoagulation Study; BAATAF,
Boston Area Anticoagulation Trial lor Atrial Fibrillation; SPAF. Strok
Prevention in Atrial Fibrillation Study: EAFT. European Atrial Fibrillation Trial.
*7\cii of intracranial hemorrhages fatal; 29% had residual deficit.

study seven of 197 warfarin-treated older palients had intracranial hemorrhages


which were most often fatal 1116J, Aspirin is also an effective treatment; in
aggregaic aspirin conveys a stroke risk reduction of 20% to 25% with no clear
relationship to aspirin dose [I20J.
A collaborative analysis showed that the annual stroke rate in patients with atrial
fibrillation without clinical risk factors (prior stroke orT1A, diabetes,
hypertension, older age) was very low, especially in patients <60 years old 1921.
The rates of stroke in those without risk factors were 0 in 112 patienls <60, 1.6%
in 132 palients 60 to 69 years old, and 2.1%; in 138 patients 70 to 79 years old
192J20J. The SPAF II [113] and SPAF III investigators [114a] and others [117]
recommend that young patients with atrial fibrillation who have no additional risk
factors arc probably adequately protected by aspirin therapy. The SPAF III
investigators enrolled 892 palients with atrial fibrillation who had none of the
four pre specified risk factors: (I) recent congestive heart failure or left
ventricular fractional shortening <25%: (2) previous thromboembolism; (3) systolic
blood pressure 160 mm Hg; and (4) women >75 years of age [117]. The rates of
ischemic stroke (2%/year) and disabling ischemic stroke (0.8%/yean were low and
were just above the rate of major bleeding with aspirin therapy (0,5%/year) in this
study f 1171,
Individuals with clinical and/or echocardiography risk factors should he treated
with warfarin with an INR maintained between 2 and 4 (target 2.6 to 3.0). In older
patients (>75 years) the risk of serious hemorrhage is higher. Koudstaal, in
discussing treatment of patients >80 years, said it well: ''Very elderly atrial
fibrillation patients have most to win but also most lo lose from anticoagulation
treatment" [121]. Treatment should be decided on an individual basis, with the
clinician weighing the risk of stroke without warfarin versus the risk of important
hemorrhage on warfarin treatment. Koudstaal emphasized that there was no good
reason to deny anticoagulant treatment to an 85-year-old patient with a recent
stroke due to atrial fibrillation if that patient had no major risk factors for
hemorrhage and was expected to be compliant with testing and treatment [ !21],
The use of anticoagulants to manage patients having cardioversion is more
controversial. There is general agreement that anticoagulation for 3 weeks before
cardioversion greatly reduces the risk of cardiac-origin embolism at the time of
cardioversion [122-124], The main issues are whether anticoagulation is needed when
the duration of atrial fibrillation is short (<72 hours), and whether
anticoagulants arc needed when TEE prior to cardioversion does not show aiiial oi
atrial appendage thrombi [1241. Stoddard and colleagues showed that left atrial
appendage thrombi are sometimes found in patients with short-duration atrial
fibrillation (<48 hours) wh hav had emboli [125] Emboli i rhythm to atria]
stunning. They posited a delay between the restoration of electrical sums rhythm
and the return of effective atrial contractions. This can be viewed as atrial
electrical-mechanical disassociation, Thrombi can form in the stunned atrium and
ernbolize after atrial contractions are restored [ 124,126]. When there are no
contraindications, it is probably wise to anticoagulatc all patients before
cardioversion. In palients with important risks for anticoagulation, it is probably
relatively safe to curdiovert patients without prior anticoagulation in whom left
atrial and left atrial appendage thrombi are not visible by technically adequate
TEE performed by very experienced physicians.
Sick Sinus Syndrome
Although sinus node dysfunction has been recognized clinically since the very early
years of lhe 20lh century, identification of the malfunctioning atrium as a source
of embolism was first recognized during the 1970s [127.128]. A variety of names are
used for this condition including sick sinus syndrome, sinoatrial disorder, and
bradycardia-tachycardia syndrome. Essential for the diagnosis is demonstration of
sinus node dysfunctioning. Patients often present with slow and/or fast cardiac
rhythms. Diagnosis depends on showing sinoatrial block, sinus arrest, sinus pauses
>3 seconds, and sinus bradycardia with a ventricular rate of <50 1129]. Lown
characterized the disorder as consisting of chaotic atrial activity, changing p-
wave contour, and bradycardia admixed with muliiple and recurrent ectopic beats and
runs of atrial and nodal tachycardia [ 130]. Many palients also have atrial
fibrillation or flutter with a relatively slow ventricular response (<70 beats per
minute) [129].
Sinus node dysfunction can be caused by failure of impulse formation within the
sinus node or by blocking transmission of the sinus impulse to the peri nodal
tissue in the atrium, so-called exit block. The condition becomes more common as
patients age. In adults, sinus node dysfunction is most often due to degenerative
changes in the sinus node and replacement with collagen. Apoptosis of the cells in
the sinus node that are responsible for spontaneous depolarization occurs with
increasing frequency as patienls grow older. Damage to the sinus node can also be
caused by coronary artery diseases of varying etiologies. Sinus node dysfunction
can also follow cardiac surgery. In young patients a variety of different disorders
that affect the myocardium and pericardium cause sinus node dysfunction [129], An
analysis of cardiovascular disease in Rochester, Minn., showed thai 2.9% of men and
1.5% of women aged 75 or older had the sick sinus syndrome [ 131 ].
The hisi major study of embolism in patients with sinoatrial disorders was among
712 controls with chronic complete heart block matched For age and sex (P < .001)
Nineteen of the 27 (70%) embolic episodes in patients with sinoatrial disorders
involved the brain 1124], Six patients had multiple embolic events. No embolic
events occurred in patients <5 4 years old or in any patient treated with
anticoagulants. The authors also studied a group of 41 patients with ventricular
bradycardia from chronic heart block associated with persistent atrial flutter or
atrial fibrillation. Three patients in this group had strokes, including one with
recurrent brain and retinal emboli 11271. These findings were also significantly
greater than a matched group of patients with chronic heart block 1127]. In
another study, the bradycardia-tachycardia syndrome was more common among patients
with transient brain ischemia than in a comparable group of neurological patients
without cerebrovascular symptoms 11321.
The use of pacemakers (either atrial single-chamber pacing or ventricular single-
chamber pacing) does not seem to reduce the frequency of stroke or stroke death
1129,133.134). Systemic emboli, mostly to the brain, occur in about 14% to 18% of
patients with the sick sinus syndrome 1135,1361- Patients wiih tachyarrhythmias
are more likely to embolize than those with just bradyarrhythmias [1371. As in
atrial fibrillation patients, increasing age is associated with an in creased
frequency of embolism 11361.
As in patients with atrial fibrillation, dysfunction of the left atrium is
probably an important element in predisposing to thrombus formation. Tachycardia
may promote dislodging of thrombi from the heart into the systemic circulation.
Activation of platelets and increased blood coagulability probably contribute to
the likelihood of thromboembolism. Although we know of no formal prospective
randomized trials of anticoagulation or aspirin therapy in patients with sinus node
dysfunction, in alt probability the therapeutic responses and treatment
considerations are nearly identical lo those of patients with atrial fibrillation.

Cardiac Valve Disease


One-fifth to one-tenth of all patients with cardiac valve disease have
cardioembohc strokes 1138], Abnormalities of valve surfaces and changes in valve
function and cardiac physiology that result from valve disease promote the
formation of both white pi ale let-fibrin ihrombi and red clots on valve surfaces
and in the adjacent cardiac chambers. Stenotic valves have decreased pliability
and irregular surfaces: progressive commissural adhesions and valve leaflet
dystrophic calcification develop, leading to progressive narrowing of the cross-
sectional area of valve orifices. Valvular outlet obstruction causes increased
turbulence of blood How Th intensit f turbulenc i markedl increased i th Jetstrea f
blood
Distal to stenotic valves, blood flow consists of a central Jetstream surrounded
by annular eddies that course between the outflow tract walls and the mainstream
[80.141 J. These eddies permit blood to remain in closer contact with the irregular
valve surfaces than occurs in regions of normal laminar flow. Platelets activated
by the turbulent Jetstream have prolonged contact with dystrophic irregular valve
surfaces, causing adhesion of platelet-fibrin thrombi to valve surfaces, further
platelet activation, and formation of thrombi [1421. Valve incompetence also
prolongs the time lhat blood is in contact with abnormal valve surfaces and also
promotes thrombus formation. Valve disease often leads to atrial and ventricular
enlargement. Left atrial enlargement is especially common in patients with mitral
stenosis and mitral insufficiency, and can be extreme. Enlargement of the left
atrium is associated with stasis and thrombus formation, especially in the left
atrial appendage and in patients who develop atrial fibrillation.
Rheumatic Mitral Valve Disease
Although the incidence of rheumatic fever and rheumatic heart disease has
dramatically declined during the past decades, rheumatic heart disease is still a
very important cause of brain embolism. The mitral valve is most often involved.
Second in frequency is involvement of both the mitral and Lhe aortic valves.
Isolated rheumatic aortic valve disease is unusual, and the pulmonic and tricuspid
valves are seldom the site of important clinical rheumatic valvulitis.
Clinicians have long emphasized that embolization, especially to the brain, may be
the earliest clinical indication of rheumatic mitral stenosis 1143,144]. Harris and
Levine commented in 1941, ~Tt seemed that the typical case was one in which
paralysis occurred suddenly at a lime when there was no complaint of dyspnea and
the patient was able to lie flat in bed and had been ambulatory" [143], They
studied 72 palients with mitral sternjsis and brain embolism, In 17 (24% J
patients, the heart rhythm was regular at the time of the embolism, and as far as
could be ascertained the patients had never had atrial fihrillation 11431. Atrial
fibrillation was present in 55 (76%), among whom only ihree had transient
fihrillation. The initial stroke was often very severe, leading to persistent
hemiplegia. The case fatality rate was high: 24 (33%0 patienls died within a few
days or a few weeks after their cardioembolic stroke 1143], Neither hypertension
nor the presence of atrial librillation contributed lo acute mortality, but the
death rate-was higher in patients with congestive heart failure [143|,
The frequency of embolism in patienls with mitral stenosis ranges in various
series between 107c [1451 and 20% [146,147], About 50% to 75% of emboli detected
clinically involve the brain. Embolism is most common in palients with
100^ of 194 patients with rheumatic heart disease and systemic embolism [148J. In a
very large study of 754 patients with chronic rheumatic heart disease followed for
over 5000 patienl-years, the incidence of embolism was 1.59* per patient year
1145J, The incidence of embolism was seven times higher in patients with atrial
fibrillation than in those who had sinus rhythm. A third of recurrences or embolism
occurred during the first month, and two-thirds of recurrences were during the
first year after the onset of atrial fibrillation [145]. The high recurrence rate
after the initial embolism and after the onsei of atrial fibrillation has been
repeatedly confirmed.
Anticoagulants clearly reduce the frequency of recurrent embolism. Fleming and
Bailey reported only five recurrent embolic episodes among 217 patients with mitral
stenosis treated with anticoagulants during a period of 9-1/2 years, a rate of 0.8%
per patient-treatment-year [149]. Adams and colleagues studied the effect of
anticoagulants on mortality among 84 patients with mitral valve disease and atrial
fibrillation who had survived brain embolism [150], Two weeks after their strokes,
half the patients were given anticoagulants (phenindione at first; later warfarin).
The survival curves for the anticoagulant-treated group and the controls are shown
in Figure 26, The reduction in mortality was dramatic, especially during the first
6 months after brain embolism f 1501. Carter also showed that anticoagulant
treatment improved the prognosis in patients with brain embolism in terms of
immediate outcome, recurrences, and late survival [151,152J. The studies of
anticoagulation in patients with mitral stenosis and brain embolism were performed
predominantly during the third quarter of the 20lh century (1950-1975).
Unfortunately, bleeding was a very important problem during thai time in patients
on long-term anticoagulants because the intensity of treatment was much higher than
is now used, The longer thai patients were on anticoagulants, the higher the rate
of serious hemorrhage, often into the cranial cavity.
Mitral valvuloplasty, the predominant treatment of mitral stenosis during die 1960s
and 1970s, did not greatly influence the frequency of embolism. The atrial
appendage was sometimes removed to prevent lodging of thrombi in ibis region. Modem
diagnostic technology especially, echocardiography, has revolutionized the
diagnosis of patients with mitral stenosis and other rheumatic valve lesions.
Quantification of the valve orifice as well as the effects of the mitral valve
disease on the left atrium and left ventricle is now readily possible, and these
measurements can he performed sequentially U> study progression of ihe disease and
response to treatment. Left atrial and left atrial appendage thrombi are also
reliably detected. Superimposed bacterial endocarditis can precipitate brai
embolism although th f endocarditi i patient with isolated

* w * R * 1
12345478?
Yori jf'ir urok
FlG. 26 Curves showing survival after brain embolism complicating mitral stenosis.
('onipjrison of groups treated with anticoagulants and those untreated. (From Ref.
150.)
predominantly stenotic, 21% had predominant regurgitation, and 13% were mixed 180J.
Among individuals with embolism in one series. 93 % had predominant mitral
stenosis and only 7% had mitral insufficiency 1149J. Mitral insufficiency is often
accompanied by progressive left ventricular hypertrophy. Mitral valve repair and
mitral valve replacement are probably important considerations in the prevention of
embolism in patients with rheumatic mitral insufficiency [153,154].
Aortic Valve Disease
In most patients the cause of acquired aortic valve disease is not determined-
Progressive calcific aortic stenosis often develops in patienls with congenital
hithat idiopathic calcific aortic valve disease of the elderly is due to the
atherosclerotic process, but definite proof of this1 hypothesis is not available,
Microthrombi with evidence of organization have been found at necropsy in 53% of
stenotic aortic valves II42J. Changes in the aortic valve are progressive.
Thickening of previously diseased valves is thoughl to resull from ihe deposition
of fibrin. Fibrin deposits become organized and calcified with resultant distortion
of the normal valve architecture, Bicuspid and calcific aortic valves are not able
to open freely. Narrowing and irregularity of the valve orifice contribute to
turbulent blond How. Eddies form in the region of the sinus of Valsalva and also
adjacent to any regurgeant Jetstream, which flows into the left ventricle [155|.
Abnormal flow and abnormal valve surfaces activate platelets and induce fibrin
deposition, accounting for the prevalence of microthrombi along valve surfaces.
Embolism has been considered a much less common occurrence in patients with aortic
valve disease when compared with mitral valve disease. Pleet et al. in 1981
reported four patients who had bicuspid aortic valves and cerebrovascular events
115b]: three had sudden-onset strokes and the other had recurrent stereotyped
TIAs. Full evaluation showed no cause for the brain infarcts in the three patients
with strokes except for the bicuspid valve, and the authors attributed the strokes
to brain embolism from the congenitally abnormal valves. The fourth patient, who
had repeated TIAs. had a chronic hematological disorder and may not have had brain
embolism. Others have reported instances of spontaneous brain embolism from
calcific aortic valves 1157-159], In each patient the calcific embolus was seen on
noncontrast CT as a dense, calcified region, and vascular studies (MRA, spiral CTA,
and contrast angiography, each performed in individual patients) showed that the
calcific density was within intracranial arteries (the supraclinoid carotid artery
[157], the Ml segment of the MCA |I58]. and the M2 MCA segment [156] and was
occlusive. The two young patients, men aged 361157] and 40 [158], had calcified
bicuspid valves, while the 73-year-old patient [1591 had calcific aortic stenosis
without known underlying cause. Kapila and Hart described a patient with calcific
aortic stenosis who developed a left hemiparesis 2 days after cardiac
catheterization, and a calcific embolus was seen on CT scan occluding the right MCA
|160|,
Some clinical and necropsy studies show that embolism from calcific aortic valves
is probably not rare. Sou lie et al, found emboli in 33% of 81 patients with
calcific aortic stenosis [161]. Holley etaL in another autopsy study, found
calcific emboli in 37 of 165 (22%) patients with calcific aortic stenosis [162].
Thirty-two emboli were found in the coronary arteries, 11 in the renal vessels, one
in the centra] retinal artery, and one in the MCA [162], Although the MCA was
occluded b calcifi embolu i patient neurologi sign recorded immovable densities and
are usually distinguishable from bright cholesterol crystals, and fibrin-platelet
plugs. Among 103 patients with retinal artery occlusions and cardiovascular
disease, aortic stenosis was present in 11 patients and was the most common cardiac
lesion [164}. In all clinical studies, symptoms that reHect embolization occur more
commonly after cardiac procedures tcatheterization and surgery) than occur
spontaneously. Aortic valve surgery is especially associated with a high frequency
of embolism. Holley and colleagues found 82 instances of embolization among 38 of
the 62 patients (61%) who had closed valvulotomy or aortic valve replacement and
who died at various intervals after surgery [ 165 J. Embolization is also more
common in patients with bacterial endocarditis superimposed upon bicuspid or
calcific aortic valves than it is in noninfectcd valves. The discrepancy between
(1) Lhe relatively high frequency of calcific emboli found at necropsy and in the
eye and (2) the low frequency of clinically symptomatic brain and visceral organ
ischemic events, is probably explained by the small size of the embolic panicles
and the fact that visceral emboli are much harder to diagnose than brain emboli.
Hypertrophic cardiomyopathy, also called idiopathic hypertrophic subaortic
stenosis ClllSSh has become more frequenth recognized since the advem ol
echocardiography. This disorder is characterized more by disproportionate and
asymmetric hypertrophy of the left ventricular myocardium in the region of the
ventricular septum than in the left ventricular free wall. Septal hypertrophy is
associated with systolic anterior motion of the mitral valve and variable left
ventricular outflow obstruction, depending on myocardial contractility. Structural
abnormalities of the mitral valve often accompany the hypertrophic cardiomyopathy
[1661.
The rale of stroke in patienls with hypertrophic cardiomyopathy is low, and stroke
rarely occurs early in the course of the disease. When stroke occurs it is usually
due to embolism in relation to atrial fibrillation, bacterial endocarditis, mitral
valve dysfunction, or mitral annular calcification. Atrial fibrillation tends to
develop late in patients with hypertrophic cardiomyopathy and is often accompanied
by left atrial enlargement [167,1681. Mitral annulus calcification is also
associated with IHSS |169|. In one study, among 150 patients with subaortic
stenosis followed for an average of 5.5 years, only 11 patients (7%) had
cerebrovascular events: five (3%) had a stroke, and six (4%) had TIAs [170], Among
[hose wiih >ln>ke, airial fibrillation, left atrial enlargement, and mitral
icgurgtol lion were common. Four patients were hypertensive and three had coronary
artery disease, so some of the strokes were likely attributable to coexistent
occlusive vascular disease 1170].
fans, aortic dissection, and annuloaortic ectasia due to aging and hypertension are
the usual causes of aortic root disease [ 1531. Syphjllis was formerly a common
cause of aortic valve insufficiency but is now rare. Rheumatic aortic valvulitis
and vegetations on the aortic valve are likely potential sources of brain and
systemic embolism in patients with aortic regurgitation, but there is little
information on this topic. Cerebral emboli monitoring of patients with aortic
insufficiency using TCD may prove interesting in the future.
Mitral Valve Prolapse
The topic of embolism in patients with mitral valve prolapse (MVP) has always been
controversial. Barlow and Bosnian in an early report of the midsystolic click-
mitral valve prolapse syndrome described a 23-year-old woman who had transient left
arm weakness, and evaluation showed mitral valve prolapse. No details of the
neurological symptoms or signs were included and the relationship of the
neurological event to her heart condition was not considered [171.1721. Since Ihen
a numher of case control and necropsy studies have shown lhat patients with MVP do
have cardiogenic embolism but not very often. For unclear reasons, cerebrovascular
events in patients with MVP have a relatively tow recurrence rate even without
treatment, MVP is now the single most frequently diagnosed cardiac valvular
abnormality. Estimates of prevalence range from 5c/c to 2\c/c, with the rate being
slightly higher in girls and women 1172.173], The basic pathological process is
disruption of collagen and infiltration by a myxomatous substance rich in
mucopolysaccharide. The mitral valve is often thickened, and the chordae tendinac
and the mitral annulus may also contain myxomatous deposits which can cause
elongation of the chordae, sometimes with rupture and dilatation of the mitral
valve annulus 1174]. Abnormal mitral valve leaflet motion can cause fibrosis and
thickening of the endocardial surface of the valve leaflets. The tricuspid and
aortic valves sometimes also have a myxomatous degeneration. When there is enough
slippage that a portion of the mitral valve fails to coapt against the rest of the
leaflet, then mitral regurgitation develops. Patients with MVP sometimes have
abnormal left ventricular coin ruction, most often characterized as a vigorous
contraction ring of Ihe basal inferior wall of the ventricle |175|. Al necropsy,
thrombi have been found especially in the angle between the posterior leaflet of
the mitral valve and the left atrial wall 1176,177]. The development of an adherent
thrombus in the cul-de-sac created between the ballooning posterior mitral valve
leaflet and the atrial wall is usual I \ attributed lo a mitral regurgitant
Jetstream f 172], Transformation of the normally rigid valve into loose myxomatous
tissue results in stretching of the valve leaflets, loss of endothelial continuity
and rupture of subendothelial connective tissue fibers These changes plegia [178].
Fibrin emboli were found in ihe coronary and renal arteries as well as frontal MCA
branches in the brain 1178|,
MVP is diagnosed now by echocardiography when there is abnormal posterior movement
of lhe coaptcd anterior and/or posterior leaflets of 2 mm or more; a midsystolic
"buckling" or pansystolic "hammocking" of the valve leaflets is also described
[I72f One or both of the mitral valve leaflets are displaced during systole into
the left atrium above the plane of the mitral annulus using the parasternal long-
axis view during echocardiography fl 79.1801. Mitral valve thickening and
redundancy and the presence of mitral regurgitation are important additional
criteria for the presence of important myxomatous mitral valve changes 1180-182].
About 8% of patients with MVP develop severe mitral regurgitation leading lo
congestive heart failure and necessitating mitral valve replacement. Atrial
fibrillation can occur at any time but is more common in older patients, especially
lhose with mitral regurgitation and large left atria. Myxomatous valves can become
infected during bacteremia, but the frequency of infective endocarditis is quite
low, MVP occurs in patients with inherited connective tissue disorders such as
Marfans, Ehlers-Danlos. and osteogenesis imperfecta [172].
The first report of a possible relation between MVP and brain ischemia was by
Barnett in 1974 11831, The initial report was of four patients, but Burnett and his
colleagues later expanded the number of eases to 14 palients 1176,184 f AU patients
were relatively young {10 to 48 years old), and none had cardiovascular risk
factors or occlusive vascular lesions. Barnett and colleagues published a case
control scries in 1980 that provided further evidence of a relationship between
MVP and brain ischemia in young patients [185], The frequency of MVP among 141
patienls >45 years old who had brain ischemic events was 5.7r7, compared to a
frequency of 7.1% among ae-matched controls who had no history of cerebral or
cardiac disease [185]. A second group of 60 patients <45 (mean age 33,9 years) with
brain ischemic events was also studied. MVP was detected in 24 (40%) of the younger
patients, compared to five (6.8%) of 60 age-matched controls todds ratio of 9.3)
[ 185]. Six of the 24 patients had other potential causes of stroke, but 18 had no
other recognized cause of brain ischemia, Barletta and colleagues later compared
echocardiography findings among 39 patients with MVP who had brain ischemic events
with the findings among 11 I patients with mitral valve prolapse who had no history
of brain ischemia [186]. Aortic valve prolapse (62% vs. 34%: P < ,01) and mulfiple
valve prolapse with diffuse valvular thickening (26% vs. 7%; P < ,01) were more
frequent in patients with brain ischemia [186]. Among two series of patients with
MVP and brain ischemia [176,181], the frequency of atrial fibrillation was high. In
the series of Xishimur t h 60% f th patient with brai ischemi had atrial
fibrillatio 46 men and 68 women. Among those in whom the information was recorded,
39 (53%) had a single attack and 23 (31%) had multiple attacks. Two-thirds of the
events were strokes and the remainder were TIAs. The great majority of events were
wiihin the carotid artery territory (84%): 16 of the patients had an arrhythmia
detected by rhythm monitoring including eight with atrial fibrillation.
Abnormalities of platelet function have been shown in patients with MVP and
thromboembolism. Shortened platelet survival time, an increase in circulating
platelet aggregates, and increased levels of beta-thromboglobulin and platelet
factor 4 were found in patients with mitral valve prolapse 11721. Interaction of
circulating platelets with abnormal endocardial and valve structures found in
patients with myxomatous valve degeneration causes increased platelet aggregation,
adhesion, and secretion. Platelet fibrin aggregates adhere lo abnormal valve
surfaces and later embolize or promote formation of erythrocyte-fibrin clots.
The recurrence rate of stroke in patients with MVP is relatively low. In patienls
with mitral regurgitation and large left atria, and in those with atrial
librilliition and atrial or valvular dirombi diown b> echocardiography, warfarin
anticoagulation is probably indicated. In the great majority of patients who do not
have atrial fihrillation, endocarditis, or severe mitral insufficiency, the
treatment of choice is probably aspirin or another antiplatelet aggregant such as
ticlopidine orclopidogrel. We prefer the dose of two 5-grain tablets (325 mg) of
aspirin a day. but others favor larger or smaller doses.
Mitral Annulus Calcification
Mitral annulus calcification (MAC) is a degenerative disorder of the iibrous
support structure of the mitral valve thai occurs rather commonly in the elderly,
especially in women. McKeown found MAC at necropsy in 27% of 100 elderly patienls
[172,191). Among 5694 individuals in the Framingham project who had M-mode
echocardiography, 2.8% had posterior submitral calcification; 95% of those patients
who had MAC came from the 40% of subjects thai were over 59 years of age, and twice
as many women as men had mitral annulus calcification 1192], In the original
description of MAC published in 1962, four of the 14 palients described by Korn
and colleagues had brain infarcts, multiple in three [ 193|. The occurrence of
brain infarction was noted in a table in the paper but was not commented on in the
text [I93J. The first important description of MAC as a potential cause of stroke
was by DeBono and Warlow [194]. These authors in
1979 studied 151 consecutive patients with retinal or brain ischemia and found MAC
in eight patients compared to no instances of MAC in age- and sex-matched controls
who did not have brain or eye ischemia [194],
Amon 127 patient i th Michael Rees Strok Registr with brai embo age age 70 years)
who had not had strokes had M-niode echocardiograms. Among these 1159 patients, 44
men (10.3%) and 116 women (!5.8<7r) had MAC. During 8 years of follow-up, 51
patients with MAC (5.1 %) had strokes, compared to 22 patients without MAC (13.8%);
MAC was associated with a 2,10 relative risk ol stroke (95r/< confidence interval
1.24 to 3.57; /' - .006) [1951. 'I here was a continuous relation in this study
between frequency of stToke and severity of MAC: each millimeter ol thickening on
the echocardiogram represented a relative risk of stroke of 1.24. Even when
patients with atherosclerotic heart disease and congestive heart failure were
excluded, patients with MAC still had twice the stroke risk of those without MAC
[195J,
Pathological data are more convincing, in my opinion, in linking MAC to brain
embolism. Korn et al. reported the clinical and necropsy data on 14 patients with
MAC 11931. They noted that calcification has a predilection for the posterior
portion oT the mitral annulus ring. Calcific masses often extended as far as 3.5 cm
into the adjacent myocardium, and often projected superiorly toward the atrium and
centrally into the cavity of the left ventricle 1193 J. Pomerance later noted
ulceration and extrusion of the calcium through the overlying cusp into the
ventricular cavity in sonic patients with MAC studied at necropsy, and thrombi were
attached to the ulcerated regions in four patients 1196], Fulkerson reported 80
patients with MAC among whom five had episodes of arterial embolization: four had
peripheral arterial emboleclomies, and one had calcific retinal emboli 1197J.
Ridolfi and colleagues reported a 53-year-old patient with MAC studied clinically
and al necropsy who had multiple calcific coronary and anterior and posterior
circulation emboli originating from a calcified mitral annulus 1198 J. The embolic
material can be either calcium (as has also been shown in calcific aortic stenosis)
or thrombus. Moulon et al. reported an elderly woman with MAC who. on cranial CT
scans, had multiple flecks of calcium that were blocking arteries that supplied
infarcted regions [199],
Thrombi attached to calcified mitral annuli base also been shown by
echocardiography. Stein and Soble reported two such patients [2001. Multiplane TEE
showed a 2-mm mobile thrombus attached to the atrial surface of the calcified
posterior portion of the mitral annulus in a 74-year-old woman who had developed a
sudden-onset right hemiparesis and aphasia. There were no other cardiac sources of
emboli. After 8 weeks of warfarin, a repeat echocardiogram showed that the thrombus
was no longer present [200f In a second patient, who had a parietal lobe brain
infarct, TEE showed a 5-mm mobile thrombus attached to an 8-mm calcified nodule on
the posterior mitral valve leaflet. Subsequent echocardiograms revealed that the
thrombus was first smaller and later gone after warfari anticoagulatio |200|
occlusive cerebrovascular disease are also often present in the population of
patients that have MAC. There are no data on the utility of any prophylactic
treatment on the prevention of brain or arterial embolism in patients with MAC,
Prosthetic Cardiac Valves
Advances in cardiac diagnosis and cardiac surgery have led to increasingly
frequent replacement of heart valves. There are now more than 80 different models
of prosthetic valves, and >60,000 valve replacements are performed annually in the
United States alone 1201 J. Mechanical valves are made primarily with metal and
carbon alloys and are quite thrombogenic. Thromhogenic potential is highest with
caged-ball prostheses (e.g., Starr-Edwards valve), lowest in individuals with
bileaflet-lilling-disk prostheses (e.g.. St. Jude Medical), and intermediate with
single-lilting-disk valves (e.g.. Bjork-Shiley) [201 J. Bioproslhetic valves are
most commonly helerografts derived from pig or cow pericardial or valve tissues
mounted on metal supports. Homografls in the form of preserved human valves are
occasionally used for valve replacements. Bioproslhetic valves have low
thrombogenic tendencies (but still higher than native valves), so long-term
anticoagulation is ordinarily not prescribed. Unfortunately bioproslhetic valves
are less durable than mechanical valves [2011,
Valve thrombosis is an important complication in patients with both mechanical and
bioproslhetic valve prostheses. Important valve thrombosis causes pulmonary
congestion, reduced cardiac output, and brain and systemic embolism. The frequency
of prosthetic valve thrombosis is estimated to be between 0.1% and 5.7% per year
1202.203J. Alteration of blood flow related to mechanical valves, as well as the
inherent ihrombogenicity of the materials used, promotes thrombosis and
thromboembolism. Flow velocity studies show lurbulent flow patterns that contribute
to vascular stasis and thrombus formation around mechanical valve prostheses
[204J, Hematological studies in patients with mechanical valves show elevation of
platelet-specific proteins that indicate platelet activation and decreased platelet
survival in patients with artificial heart valves [205-207].
The pathophysiological events ihat promote thromboembolism begin during heart
surgery - Proslhelie materials and injured peri valvular tissues cause platelet
activation as soon as circulation is restored. Dacron sewing rings, common to all
prosthetic valves, form a fertile nidus for platelet activation and adhesion [80],
Prosthetic material also activates the intrinsic pathway of the coagulation cascade
[208]. Both platelet activation and activation of the coagulation cascade promote
the formation of red erythroeyte-ftbrin thrombi. Degenerative changes in
bioproslhetic valves also can lead to the deposition of white platelet-fibrin
thrombi [2091 Lat thrombosi ha als bee show i th sinuse f bio chanical valves is
estimated to be about 4rA- per year if no antithrombotic therapy-is used [212].
This figure is reduced to about 2% per year by medications thai decrease platelet
aggregation and to \% per year with warfarin anticoagulation \2\2\. Mosi
s\mptomalic emboli go in the brain. Patients ith mitral mechanical valves have a
slightly higher frequency of embolization than those with aortic valves, probably
related to the higher frequency of associated atrial fibrillation and large left
atria in patients with mitral valve prostheses. Patients with bioprosthetic valves
also have a risk of embolism. In one series of 128 patients with porcine
bioprosthelic valves inserted, during 5 lo 8 years of follow-up, two of 43 patients
with aortic valve replacement, nine of 62 with porcine mitral valves, and four of
IS with both mitral and aortic prosthetic valves had clinical thromhoemboli |213J.
Among ihe 15 patients with thromboemboli in this scries, 13 had atrial fibrillation
and the other two had heart block [213], Large left atria, atrial fibrillation,
left ventricular dysfunction, and infective endocarditis are important associated
conditions in patients wilh prosthetic valves that can cause thromboembolism.
Monitoring of patients with prosthetic heart valves using TCD has shown a high
frequency of microembolic signals [214-217]: ihe rate is higher in children than
adults 12131, Studies using hyperbaric oxygen and varying partial pressures of
oxygen in the blood show that the greai majority of inieinemboli are gaseous and
are about 3 to 4 u.m in size 1218]. The gas represents cavitation bubbles produced
by valve contact with the blood. The small size of particles allows passage through
the capillary bed without blocking the microcirculation. Occasionally, embolic
metallic fragment artifacts arc found on cranial MRl scans of patients with
mechanical prosthetic heart valves, even in the absence of neurological symptoms
indicating brain embolism [219].
Anticoagulation is recommended for all patients with prosthetic heart valves.
Patients with bioprosthetic valves are usually treated for the first 3 months after
surgery using a target INR of 2.0 to 3.0 [201,220.221], Oral anticoagulant therapy
reduces the incidence of embolism in patients with mechanical valve prostheses, and
the intensity of anticoagulation has been recommended to be higher than that used
with bioprosthelic valves (INR of 2.5 to 4.9), Patients with caged-ball prostheses
may require a higher intensity of anticoagulation than those with bileaflet disk
valves and those with single-tilling disk valves 1201 J. Adding antiplatelet
medications such as dipyridamole or aspirin can further reduce the frequency of
embolism. Aspirin (100 mg/day) added to warfarin (INR target 3.0 to 4.5) in
patients wilh mechanical prosthetic valves or tissue valves and atrial
fibrillation, reduces mortality and the frequency of embolization [222]. Bleeding i
increased durin high-intensit anticoagulatio with aspiri therapy Aspiri fibrin
clots, the use of combined antiplatelet ag<:regain and anticoagulant therapy makes
sense. Ticlopidine or clopidogrel could also he used with warfarin hul the effects
of these combinations have not been reported. Pregnant women with prosthetic valves
should be treated with heparin or low-molecular-weight heparin during pregnancy
since the incidence of thromboemholi is increased while pregnant and also in the
puerperium 1201,223,224].
The optimal intensity of anticoagulant therapy has been examined in several
studies. Turpie et al. compared two levels of anticoagulation (TNR 2.0 to 2.5 among
106 patients vs. INR 2,5 to 4 among 108 patients) that were given for 3 months
after bioprosthetic valve implantation 12211, The rate of embolic events was the
same but there was significantly more bleeding in patients with higher-intensity
anticoagulation 1221]. Altman el al. compared the outcomes of patienls who had
received til ting-disk valves according to anticoagulant intensity [224aJ. In ihis
study 5t patients had INRs between 2.0 and 3.0, while 48 patients had INRs between
3.0 and 4.5; all patients also received aspirin 330 mg and dipyridamole 75 mg
twice daily. No difference was found in the embolic rate, but bleeding events were
more common in the higher-intensity anticoagulation group [224a|. Bute hart and
colleagues compared two levels of anticoagulationINRs of 2.5, and INRs of 3,0,
among patients with tilting-disk mitral or aortic prosthetic valves [224b], Among
mitral prostheses the 103 patients with INRs of 2.5 had significantly more events
(23 vs. 4) than the group with INRs of 3.0 without more bleeding events. However in
the group with aortic prostheses, the group with moderate -intensity
anticoagulation (INR of 3.0) had more bleeding without a difference in
thromboembolic events 1224b). Horstkolte et al. compared three intensities of
anticoagulation (INRs of 1.8 to 2.7, 2.5 to 3.2, and 3.0 to 4.5) in patienls with
St. Jude mechanical valves in both the mitral and aortic positions, and found
equivalent protection from thromboembolism in all groups but less bleeding in the
lowest-intensity anticoagulation group 1224c], In the large French AREVA trial,
tow-intensity (INR 2.0 to 3.0) and higher-intensity (INR 3,0 to 4.5)
anticoagulation was compared among 354 patients with St. Jude btleaflet valves and
80 tilting-disk valves: 414 prosthetic valves were aortic and only 19 were mitral |
224d|. No significant differences were noted in the frequency of thromboembolism,
but there were fewer hemorrhagic complications in the lower-intensity
anticoagulation group [224d]. A group of physicians at the Mayo Clinic recently
reviewed the literature concerning the intensity of anticoagulation in patients
with prosthetic heart valves and made recommendations about treatment [224e]. Their
recommendations are listed in Table 8,
Infective Endocarditis
TABLE 8 Anucoauulam Guidelines for Patients with Prosthetic Cardiac Valves
Aspirin
Factor Target INR (mg/day)
Aortic valves
Newer-generation bileallet mechanical
valves 2.5 81
All other mechanical valves 3.0 81
Bioprosthelic valves 2.5. 3 months 125u
with thromboembolic risk factors 2.5. indefinitely 81 Mitral valves
First-generation tilting disk valves 3.5 81
All other mechanical valves 3.0 81
KiopmMhetie valves 2.5. indefinitely 81
Low thromboembolic or high bleeding risk 2.5. 3-6 months 325M Mitral valve repair
2.5. 3 months 325" Thromboembolic risk factors 2.5. indefinitely 81
'Treatment continued indefinitely even after Coumadin was slopped. Srmrce: Ref.
224e.
tients three decades ago, present-day series of patients with infective
endocarditis arc on average older, contain more drug addicts, have more examples of
tricuspid valve involvement, usually in intravenous drug addicts, and have more
patients with infection of prosthetic valves. Diagnostic capabilities have also
changed. Echocardiography and newer brain and cerebrovascular imaging techniques
allow better clarification of the cardiac and brain pathology and pathophysiology.
In 1969. Mayo Clinic neurologists reviewed their experience accumulated during die
period 1950 to 1964 [2261. Among 385 patients with endocarditis. 110 (29%) had
neurologic complications including 55 with cerebrovascular disease. The
neurological complications described by Jones et ah remain the major syndromes
still seen today [226]. Forty-four of the 55 individuals (80%) with cerebrovascular
complications had brain infarcts (38 carotid system; six vertebrobasilar). Among
the 11 patients with brain hemorrhage, eight were into the brain substance
(intracerebral) and three were subarachnoid [226J. Twenty-one patients in the Mayo
Clinic series had acute encephalopathy and seven had meningitis. These
syndromesbrain ischemia, intracerebral hemorrhage, subarachnoid hemorrhage,
encephalopathy, and meningitisremain the major neurological complication found i
serie f patient with both nativ valv d prostheti bland infarcts are foundusually
multiple. In one series, 19/33 (58%) infarcts were small. 1 1/33 (33'* i were
moderate in size, and 3/33 ) were large |228], The larger infarcts were found in
patients with Staphylococcus<wre/tf endocardilis. Ischemia can lake ihe form ol
transient ischemic allacks thai mvol\e the brain or ihe retina. In one scries,
among 133 episodes of endocarditis, three patients had transient monocular visual
loss and one patient had a retinal infarct [228]. Brain ischemia may be the
presenting sign of endocarditis and is most common early in the course of the
disease. Ischemic strokes can also occur in the days after antibiotic treatment is
begun. Monitoring of patients wilh endocarditis using TCD shows that microemboli
continue to occur even after antibiotic treatment, although more emboli are
detected before and shortly after antibiotics are given. Brain ischemia was
described in 17% 1227J, 19% [228], and 15% 1231] of patients in various recent
infective endocarditis scries.
Brain hemorrhage is much less frequent than ischemia, but ihe effects of hemorrhage
can be devastating or mortal. Intracerebral hemorrhage was found in 6% [227], 7%
[228], 2.%% [230]. and 5.6% [231] of patients in various endocarditis series.
Recent series that included modern brain imaging and necropsy studies have
clarified the mechanisms of intracerebral hemorrhage in endocarditis [229,232,233],
Some patients have bleeding into bland infarcts. This usually takes the form of
hemorrhagic infarctionpetechial and larger hemorrhagic mottling within the infarct
without formation of a frank discrete hematoma. In some patients, large hematomas
develop. Hematomas are often found in patients treated with anticoagulants. In
other patients intracerebral hemorrhage results from rupture of a septic arteritis
caused by embolization of infective material lo ihe artery wilh necrosis of the
arterial wall 1232.233]. In a small minority of cases, intracerebral hemorrhage is
due lo rupture of a mycotic aneurysm into the brain substance. Brain hemorrhage,
similar to the situation in patients with brain ischemia, is most common at or near
presentation of the patieni and is less common after effective antibiotic
treatment. Many patients who develop brain hemorrhage have bad an attack of
transient or persistent brain ischemia in the hours or days before the hemorrhage.
This prodromal ischemia is explained by an arterial embolus causing brain
infarction. Hemorrhage into an infarct or rupture of the artery that received the
infected embolus causes the hemorrhage, which often proves fatal 1232,233J.
The need for angiography to detect mycotic aneurysms and the indications for
surgical treatment of aneurysms found by angiography are controversial topics. In
a review by Hart et al, among 2119 patients with endocarditis, only 5% of patients
with brain hemorrhages had identified mycotic aneurysms 12321. Mycotic aneurysms
are caused by embolization of infected material into Ihe wall and adventiti f brai
arteries Th usuall distail alon arterie eurysms occur proximally along the basal
arteries of the circle of Willis. Angiography of patients without brain hemorrhage
seldom shows mycotic aneurysms. Mycotic aneurysms have been shown to disappear in
some patients on sequential angiography performed after bacteriological cure 1234-
236]. This information suggests a nonaggressive approach to the diagnosis and
treatment of mycotic aneurysms [2321. However, mycotic aneurysms can rupture,
sometimes after bacteriological cure, and re rupture can prove fatal. Some
neurologists and neurosurgeo n recommend thai angiography be performed in all
patients suspected of harboring aneurysms [234,2371. At present the decision on
angiography, and on surgical treatment if an aneurysm is found, must rest on the
total clinical picture in individual patients.
Diffuse brain-related symptoms, usually referred lo as encephalopathy, arc very
common in patients with endocarditis. Symptoms include lethargy, decreased level
of consciousness, confusion, agitation, and poor concentration and memory.
Encephalopathy has different explanations, Often the encephalopathy is
toximetabolic mid is explained by systemic factors such as azotemia, pulmonary
dysfunction, hyponatremia, etc. In many patients encephalopathy is a toxic effect
related to fever and to the acute infection. Patients with Staph, aureus acute
endocarditis are more often toxic than in endocarditis caused In other organisms.
Necropsy and ( T/MRl studies of patients with encephalopathy often reveal multiple
small, scattered brain infarcts and/or microabscesses [229,238J. Encephalopathy
usually develops during uncontrolled infection with more virulent organisms,
supporting the role of microscopic-size septic emboli us the cause [229,239].
Meningitis also occurs in patienls with endocarditis. The presentation is often
headache with fever. Since the usual infecting organism is not very virulent, ihe
patient is not as ill as in other acute forms of bacterial meningitis. Meningitis
occurred in 6.4% [226] and 1.1% [227] in two series of patients with endocarditis.
Meningeal inlection is due in embolization ol mfeeted vegetations to meningeal
arteries.
Valvular vegetations in patients with infective endocarditis are composed of
platelets, fibrin, erythrocytes, and inflammatory cells attached to damaged
endothelium of native and prosthetic valves. Organisms are enmeshed within the
fibrinous material, often deep within the vegetations, explaining wrhy antibiotics
have difficulty sterilizing the lesions. Vegetations range in size from several
millimeters to several centimeters, and iheir potential for embolization relate to
their size and friability. The mitral valve is most often involved. However, mitral
valve disease is also more frequent than other valve disease. Salgado et al.
compared valv involvemen i patient with d withou neurologi complication f endo wilh
neurologic complications, vs. 34 (31.5%) who did not have neurologic problems
f227]. There is no evidence lhat one valve or another is more susceptible to
infection.
Table 9 shows the frequency of valve involvement in various series of patients with
infective endocarditis. Tricuspid valve involvement was variably reported, probably
depending on the number of intravenous drug users studied at the hospitals
participating in a particular study. While formerly ihe predominant underlying
valve disease was rheumatic, now calcilied valves, mitral valve prolapse, and
prosthetic valves make up a higher proportion of cases than in the past. Salgado et
al. found that 40/64 (62.5%) patients with native valve endocarditis had
neurologic complications, vs. 73/111 (65.8%) patients with native valve
endocarditis who had no neurologic complications [227J. Among patients with
neurologic complications, there were 24/64 (37.5%) with prosthetic valve
endocarditis, while among patients wilhoul neurologic complications there were 38
(34.2%) with prosthetic valve endocarditis |227], In the Salgado series, aiming
patients with prosthetic valve infections, mechanical valve endocarditis was more
often associated with neurologic complications than infection of bioprosthetic
valves |227]. The neurologic complications of native valve and prosthetic valve
endocarditis seem to be the same [227,229,2301,
The infecting organisms have also changed over the years. Table 10 shows the
bacterial organisms identified among various series of patients with neurologic
complications of infective endocarditis. Staph, aureus endocarditis is becoming
more common and clearly is the cause of more serious infection. Patients wilh
Staph, aureus endocarditis have larger infarcts [228]. more multiple infarcts [228
j. more often a clinical picture of encephalopathy I229J. intracerebral
hemorrhages [227], and more mortality and severe morbidity. In an early series of
patients studied at the Mayo Clinic (1950 to 1964), 20/26 (77%) patients with
Staph, aureus endocarditis died, compared wilh a mortality of 26/72 (36%) in
patients with streptococcal species endocarditis [226J. In a series reported in
1990, 10/30 (33%) of patients with Staph, aureus endocarditis died, compared to
5/64 (8%) patients with streptococcal endocarditis [227], During the three decades
between these studies, mortality in patients wilh neurological complications of
endocarditis declined, but the relatively more severe outcome with staphylococcal
disease did not change. Fungi and other organisms arc found occasionally,
especially in patients who are immunosuppressed or who inject drugs intravenously.
Berbari and colleagues have recently reviewed the topic of infective endocarditis
due to unusual or fastidious micro-organisms 12401.
Laboratory studies are very helpful in diagnosis bui the clinical findings remai
importan fo recognitio f infectiv endocarditi i
TABLE 9 Valve Involvement in Patients with Neurological Complications of
Infective Endocarditis in Various Series
Valve Matsushita 1231J Kanter I22s>| Jones [226] Salgado (227| Kcyser |230]
Mitral Aortic Mitral & aortic Tricuspid Congenital Total patients 17 (52%) 6 (18^)
10 (30%) 33 59 (36%) 61 (37%) 13 (8%) 33 (20%) 166 68 <62%>J 46 (42%)8(7%) n o
22 (34%) 38 (59%) 4 (6%) 64 7 (35%) 12 (60%) 1 (5%) 20

Some had both miirul and aortic bin valve involvement numbers not de^iihuJ
TABLE 10 Infecting Organism in Various Scries of PaticnLs wiih Neurological
Complications of Infective Endocarditis

Bacteria Kanter [229] Matsushita [2311 Salgado |227] Jones [226]


Staph, aureus Staph, epidermis Strep, viridans Strep group D Beta strep Others 36
(27%) 1 (5%) 69 {5\%r ft (4%) 16(12%) 3 (12.5%) 1 (4%) 20 (83%) 13 (20%) 5 (8%)
20 (31%) 15 (23%) 13 (20%) 26 (24%) 60 (55%) 12 (11%) 12 (11%)

' Group D strep included in this group.


normal or may contain slightly increased protein levels and increased numbers of
erythrocytes and leukocytes. Usually the pleocytosis is moderate (<300 cells/ cc)
and may he predominantly lymphocytic or polymorphonuclear, unless a clinical
picture of meningitis is present, in which case there may he more white blood
cells. The frequency of detection of vegetations on echocardiography depends on the
technique used and the frequency of examinations. Infective vegetations appear as
bright, usually mobile echo-dense lesions attached to valve leaflets. Lesions <2 mm
in size arc prohably not reliably identified by echocardiography. In the series of
Hart et aL (M-mode and 2D TTEs). vegetations were found on 417c of initial
echocardiograms in patients with Staph, aureus endocarditis, compared with 57% of
initial studies in patients with streptococcal species endocarditis 1228], TEE is
likely to show vegetations more often than TTE. An echocardiogram that fails to
show a vegetation clearly does not exclude the diagnosis of endocarditis.
Angiography can show occluded arteries or mycotic aneurysms
[231] but has seldom been performed routinely in series of patients with
neurologic complications of endocarditis.
The most important treatment is the rapid introduction of specific antimicrobial
drugs, Most neurologic complications occur before or near the time of diagnosis and
initial antibiotic treatment. Recurrent strokes do occur after bacteriologic cure,
but rarely. In one series, among 147 patients discharged from the hospital after
treatment of infective endocarditis, 15 developed strokes after discharge; all
except one of the stroke patients had prosthetic valve endocarditis [227]. Strokes
in this series occurred long after discharge (median 22 months} and were better
explained by recurrence of endocarditis, complications of anticoagulants, or
noninfective disease of the prosthetic valves than cerebrovascular complication f
th original endocarditi episod |227] Ther i l
carditis, but most clinicians lavoi cautious cominuaiion ol anticoagulants unless a
brain hemorrhage develops. When a hemorrhagic infarct or brain hemorrhage develops,
anticoagulation with warfarin is usually stopped for 1 to 2 weeks. In patients with
a major risk of recurrent embolization it may be safe to use heparin beginning soon
after the hemorrhage is discovered, and later switch back lo war farin. Cardiac
surgery to debride or replace infected valves is performed for cardiac
indicationsmostly heart failure related to valve dysfunction, lack of control of
infection, valve infection wilh fungal or other virulent organism not controllable
by antimicrobial drugs, and valve or chordae lendinae rupture.
Noninfective Fibrous and Fibrinous Endocardial Lesions (Including Valve Strands)
In a variety of other circumstances, fibrous valve thickening, often with grossly
visible vegetations that contain mixtures of blood platelets and fibrin, arc found
on the heart valves and adjacent endocardium in patients who have no evidence of
either rheumatic fever or bacterial endocarditis. The hrst detailed description of
such lesions was in 1924 by Emanuel Libman and Benjamin Sacks, who reported four
patients studied clinically and pathologically of an "atypical verrucous
endocarditis1* 1241 J. The patients included three women, aged 24. 37. and 10, and
a 19-year-old man. Necropsy showed fibrous thickening of valves with vegetations
especially along the closure lines of ihe valves and on the valve leaflets. The
vegelatimis spread lo the papillary muscles and ventricular endocardium. The
histopathology was thought to be unique by the authors. In one patient:
In the mitral valve, there was a deposit of agglutinated blood platelets over large
flat areas, beneath which the endocardial tissues were densely infiltrated with
polymorphonuclear leukocytes and round cells. . , . The valve iiself was enormously
thickened owing to an old chronic inflammatory process. . . . The blood platelet
masses showed a tendency in places to fibroblastic invasion. The inflammatory
process extended throughout the entire thickness of the valve, and the vegetative
deposit was therefore present on both the auricular and the ventricular aspects of
the valve 1241].
Fibrinous pericarditis was present in three of the patients, and rash, bleeding,
arthritis, anemia, and glomerulonephritis were common clinical features. The fourth
palient was the only one wilh prominent clinical neurologic abnormalities, a
unilateral paralysis, and seizures which developed shortly before death in this
carditis, but most clinicians lavoi cautious continuaiiou ol anticoagulants unless
a brain hemorrhage develops. When a hemorrhagic infarct or brain hemorrhage
develops, anticoagulation with warfarin is usually stopped for I to 2 weeks. In
patients with a major risk of recurrent embolization it may be safe to use heparin
beginning soon after the hemorrhage is discovered, and later switch back lo war-
farm. Cardiac surgery to debride or replace infected valves is performed for
cardiac indicationsmostly heart failure related to valve dysfunction, lack of
control of infection, valve infection with fungal or other virulent organism not
controllable by antimicrobial drugs, and valve or chordae lendinae rupture.
Noninfective Fibrous and Fibrinous Endocardial Lesions (Including Valve Strands)
In a variety of other circumstances, fibrous valve thickening, often with grossly
visible vegetations thai contain mixtures of blood platelets and fibrin, are found
on the heart valves and adjacent endocardium in patients who have no evidence of
either rheumatic fever or bacterial endocarditis. The hrst detailed description of
such lesions was in 1924 by Emanuel Libman and Benjamin Sacks, who reported four
palients studied clinically and pathologically of an "atypical verrucous
endocarditis1* 1241 J. The patients included three women, aged 24. 37. and 10, and
a 19-year-old man. Necropsy showed fibrous thickening of valves with vegetations
especially along the closure lines of the valves and on the valve leaflets. The
vegetal inns spread to the papillary muscles and ventricular endocardium. The
histopathology was thought to be unique by the authors. In one patient:
In the mitral valve, there was a deposit of agglutinated blood platelets over large
flat areas, beneath which the endocardial tissues were densely infiltrated with
polymorphonuclear leukocytes and round cells. . . . The valve itself was enormously
thickened owing to an old chronic inflammatory process. . . . The blood platelet
masses showed a tendency in places to fibroblastic invasion. The inflammatory
process extended throughout the entire thickness of the valve, and the vegetative
deposit was therefore present on both the auricular and the ventricular aspects of
the valve [241],
Fibrinous pericarditis was present in three of the patients, and rash, bleeding,
arthritis, anemia, and glomerulonephritis were common clinical features. The fourth
patient was the only one with prominent clinical neurologic abnormalities, a
unilateral paralysis, and seizures which developed shortly before death in this

FIG. 27 Drawing of a heart at necropsy. The left side of the heart shows verrucous
vegetations along the line of closure of the mitral valve extending in places to
the free edge. There are areas of endocarditis on the papillary endocardium and
adjacent mural endocardium, and an isolated patch of mural endocarditis in the
region of the apex of the ventricle. A healing fibrinous pericarditis is also
present. (From Ref 241.)
mentioned in his textbook of medicine [241 f. Figure 27, from the original report
by Libman and Sacks, is a drawing of the cardiac vegetations found in one patient
at necropsy. Klemperer, Pollack, and Baehr. the very next year, published the
pathological findings in disseminated lupus erythematosis [2421, and Baehr and
colleagues, in 1935. published a series of 23 patients who had acute disseminated
lupus erythematosis among whom 13 had a nonrheumatic verrucous endocarditis similar
to lhat described by Libman and Sacks [2431. These clinical and pathological
reports brought the disease lupus erythematosis, known previously as predominantly
a skin disorder, to the attention of the medical community as an acute disseminated
systemic disease. Gross, a younger colleague of Libman and Sacks Moun Sinai
Hospital i Ne York i 1940 d detailed stud f 27
suggested that the endocarditic lesions be named after Libmun-Sacks. and that Lhe
verrucous endocardial lesions were diagnostic of lupus erythematosis |244[. Libman
and Sacks [241] and Gross [244] were aware that similar endocarditic lesions also
occurred in terminal or cachectic diseases such as carcinoma, tuberculosis, and
leukemia and had usually been called nonbacterial thrombotic endocarditis. Since
these early reports, we now know that similar lesions of the cardiac valves and
endocardium occur in patients with systemic lupus erythematosis (SLE). the
antiphospholipid antibody (APIA) syndrome, and marantic nonbacterial thrombotic
endocarditis INBTE). Presumably all have a similar pathogenesis.
Fox et al.. in I9K0, described a patient with clinical and serological evidence of
SLE who developed systemic and brain emboli 1245J. The mitral valve "wascovered on
boiJi surfaces wilh several granular, friable hemorrhagic vegetations thai
measured up lo I cm in diameter" (Fig. 13). The brain, spleen, kidneys, and skin
contained multiple infarcts, and many arteries were blocked by fibrin-platelet
emboli and panicles arising from ihe vegetations on the mitral valve [245], This
was probably one of the first cases in which brain embolism from Libman-Sacks
lesions was well documented.
Most observers had concluded that endocarditic lesions in patients with SLE were of
interest but rarely caused important heart dysfunction or embolism, Harvey et al.
in their review of 138 patients with SLE found cardiac valvular vegetations in one-
third of patients but concluded, "The presence of endocarditis had no effect on the
heart or circulation" [246], There were frequent neurologic findings among the 138
patients reviewed including, hemiparcsis, seizures, and aphasia, which were
attributed to "lupus vasculitis" by the authors 12461 However, in a review of the
neurological and neuropathologies! manifestations of SLE. Johnson and Richardson
found true vasculitis to be quite rare in the nervous system ah hough their study
did include palienls with brain infarcts 12471. Devttisky and colleagues were
unable to find a single case of vasculitis causing stroke or brain infarction among
50 SLE patiems who had detailed neuropathologies! examinations [2481. They
attributed cerebrovascular lesions to emboli from Lib* man-Sacks endocarditis and
coagulopathies [248],
More recently, a number of echocardiographie studies have attempted to define the
frequency and importance of endocarditic lesions in series of patients with SLE
[249251 J. Galve et al. performed echocardiography (M-modc and 2D) on 74 patients
with SLE on two occasions approximately 5 years apart 1249]. Clinically important
valve disease was found in 18% of patients including seven with vegetaiions mosily
on the mitral and aortic valves. Nine patients had thick* ening and stiffness of
valves, causing stenosis or regurgitaiion in six and causing calcificatio i Si f th
74 patient required valv durin 5 ' ihe initial TEE and in 53% on the second
echocardiographic study. Valve thick ening (6l9o. vegetations (43%). valve
regurgitation (2590, and stenosis (4%) were found on the initial echocardiograms.
Involvement of the mitral valve was often followed closely by involvement of the
aortic valve: tricuspid valve disease occurred occasionally but pulmonic valve
involvement was rare. The combined incidence of stroke, peripheral embolism, heart
failure, and superimposed infective endocarditis was 22% in those with valvular
disease on TEE [250]. Crozier et al. found a high frequency of mitral regurgitation
(469c) among 50 female Chinese patients with SLE [251]. Our own experience is
similar to that of Devinsky et ah that stroke and microinfarcls in patients with
SLE are most often attributable to brain embolism from valvular lesions or
coagulopathy. The presence of coagulopathy and thrombocytopenia in SLE probably
correlates with the presence of valvular disease, although this relationship has
not been well studied.
The antiphospholipid antibody (APIA) syndrome has become recognized wiihin the past
two decades as a prothrombotic syndrome separate from SLE, The APIA syndrome is
characterized by frequent fetal loss, strokes, myocardial infarcts,
phlebothromhosis, pulmonary emboli, and thrombocytopenia. Serological testing
reveals positive assays for the lupus anticoagulant and/or anticardiolipiti
antibodies. Recently, echocardiographic studies have shown that there is a
relatively high frequency of valvular cardiac lesions in patients with this
syndrome and that the valve lesions are indistinguishable from those found in
patients with SLE. Brenner et al. studied 34 patients with the APIA syndrome using
2D and Doppler echocardiography 1252J. Fourteen patienls had arterial
thromboembolism, six had venous thrombosis, and 14 had recurrent fetal loss.
Valvular lesions (mostly mitral and aortic thickening and vegetations) were found
in 11 patienls (329M including 9/14 (64%) of those with arterial thromboembolism
[252]. Barbut et al, studied the prevalence of antiphospholipid antibodies among
patients in whom echocardiography showed mitral and/or aortic regurgitation [253],
Among 87 consecutive patients with these valve dysfunctions. 26 (309) had
immunoglobulin G or M anticardiolipin antibodies. Focal cerebral ischemic events
occurred in eight of these palients (seven judged embolic), including seven of the
IgCJ anticardiolipin-positive patients |253].
Barbut and colleagues studied 21 palients with APIA antibodies who had focal
cerebral ischemic events 1254J. Twelve of 14 (867r) stroke patients and three of
seven (42%) nonstroke lesion palients had echocardiographic evidence of mitral or
aortic vaive abnormalities. Eight of the 21 patients with APlAs had SLE in this
study [2541. fn a large cooperative study performed by the Antiphospholid
Antibodies in Stroke Study Group, among 128 palients who had brain or ocula ischemi
d APIA-positive 16 (22.2%) had mitral valv abnormali

FlG. 28 CT scan showing live brain infarcts (curved black arrows} located in the
basal ganglia and temporal lobes bilaterally.
patient, and Figure 30 is a photograph of the mitral valve removed at surgery
showing the vegetations. Phospholipids are important constituents of cardiac valve
endothelium, blood platelets, vascular endothelium, and coagulation proteins. At
present, assays for ami phospholipid antibodies only include testing for lupus
anticoagulant and anticardiolipin antibodies. We and others have cared for patients
with the clinical features of the APIA syndrome who have negative ami-bod Som f
thes patient als hav prominen valv vegetation d

FIG, 29 Echocardiography showing a pedunculated, mobile lesion on the mitral valve


(white arrows). LA, left allium: LV, left ventricle; AO, aorta.

chronic diseases. Most often the cancers are mucinous adenocarcinomas [2561. In one
study, among 20 cancer patients who had thromboembolic disease of the brain and
other organs. 16 (809M had NBTE al necropsy [257f Valvular involvement was mitral
in eight patients, aortic in four, mitral and aortic in three, and tricuspid in
one. Large-vessel occlusive emboli and multiple infarcts and micro* vascular
occlusions were found in the brains of these patients. In another study, among 18
patients with cancer and NBTE, eight developed a stroke, and in five stroke was the
initial clinical manifestation of cancer [258]. Edoute et al. performed
prospective echcardiograms on 200 cancer patients and found a 19% frequency of NBTE
[258aJ. The valve lesions equally involved the mitral and aortic valves, and an
elevated plasma D-dimer level, a marker for hypercoagulability, was also often
found in the cancer patients with clinical thromboembolism 1258a). NBTE is
characterized by friable white or tan vegetations, usually along lines of valve
closure. The vegetations can be targe. Microscopy usually shows degenerating
platelets interwoven with strands of fibrin and some leukocytes forming
eosinophilic masses of tissue. All three conditionsSLE, APIA syndrome, and
NBTEare associated with hypercoagulability, strokes, and platelet abnormalities.
The cardiac valve and endothelial lesions in these three conditions are very
similar and probably indistinguishable grossly and microscopically. Platelet
deposition, incorporation of fibrin, and ihe formation of platelet thrombi on valve
and endocardial surfaces are common to all three conditions. Treatment of these
conditions has not been formally studied. In theory drugs that alter platelet
aggregation, secretion, and adhesion might be effective. In patients with SLE and
APIA, antibodies that arc associated wilh hypercoagulability, heparin, and warfarin
compounds are usually prescribed to treat the hypercoagulability and prevent venous
and arterial occlusions.
Noninfective valve lesions are also found in patients with carcinoid tumors
(probably causally related to elevated serotonin levels in the blood), and after
the Live of some drugs (ergotaminc, methysergide, dexfenfluramine, and
fenfluramine and phentermine) [2591. The valve and endocardial lesions that result
are similar to each other morphologically and consist of fiorotic thickening of the
valves with reduced pliability. To date embolism has not been reported as a
consequence of this type of valve disease.
Echocardiography ex ami nations often show strands of mobile tissue attached to
valve surfaces. The cause and significance of these strands remain uncertain. Lamb!
in 1856 had originally described such filamentous outgrowths from the ventricular
surfaces of the aortic valves sometimes found at necropsy
[260] so ihese fibrous strandlike lesions have often been called Lambl excresLate
Ma found simila filifor strand th atrial surfac f mitral posited diat they
originated from fibrinous deposits on the valve surface [261 j. Freedberg et al.
reviewed retrospectively a series of 1559 patients having TEEs during a 2-year
period and found mitral valve strands in 63 (4%) [262]. Aortic valve strands were
found in 26 (1.7%) patients. Strands were found in 10.6% of patienls referred
because of suspected recent embolic events, compared to 2.3% of those referred for
other indications [262]. Tice and colleagues specifically prospectively looked for
mitral valve strands among all patients with native mitral valves studied by
transesophageal echocardiography during a 2-year period at their hospital 1263].
Among 968 patients, 22 (2.3%) had mitral valve strands. Twenty of these 22 patients
were studied because of brain ischemic events. In total, 6.3% of 318 patients
having TEE because of brain ischemia had strands, compared to 0.3% of 650 patients
having TEE for other indications 1263].
Nighoghossian el al. reported three patienls who had brain ischemic events
presumably related to mitral valve strands and who had had cardiac surgery [264|.
Extensive evaluation including cerebral angiography and serological testing showed
no cause for stroke other than the valve lesions. The valve lesions were described
as a floating mass 6 mm thick on the ventricular surface of the mitral valve, a 6-
mm lesion on the anterior mitral valve leaflet, and a sessile 5-mm lesion on the
anterior mitral valve leaflet [2641, One patient had immediate cardiac surgery
when the valve lesion was found; the other two patients had surgery when they had
Mihsequent strokes despite anticoagulant therapy. Histopalhological examinations
showed that the lesions were composed of an acelkilar fibrous core with rings of
granular material and endothelial cells. In two palients thrombi were attached to
the lesions [2641.
Roberts and colleagues compared the frequency of strands among patients referred
for TEE because of brain ischemia and those referred for other indications [260].
An association between brain ischemia and strands was found (odds ratio 4.4; 95%
confidence interval 2,0 to 9,6). The association was true for men and women and all
racial groups. The association was strongest for younger patients and those with
both mitral and aortic valve strands. The effect of strands did not depend on valve
thickness [2651. Cohen et al. studied 338 patients referred to their
echocardiographic laboratory in Paris because of brain ischemia and compared the
findings to 276 patients who had no history of brain ischemia [266]. Strands were
found in 22.5%' of brain ischemia patienls, vs. 12.1% of controls (crude odds ratio
of 2,1; 95% confidence interval L3 to 3.4; P < .005),
Strands were found equally in patients with other likely sources of brain
infarction as in those with no other sources. The risk of recurrent stroke in
patients with strands was low. In this study, and in another echocardiographic
study [2671, occasion from me strands, or from thrombi formed on the surface of the
valve or on the strands. Strands may, in some patients, share a pathogenesis with
valve lesions found in patients with SLE. A PI As. and cancer. Some patients with
strands have A PI As 1268 J. Treatment of patienls with strands has not been
formally studied, but anticoagulants were unsuccessful in preventing brain emboli
in two reported patients 1264] and are probably also not effective in patients with
NBTE. Antiplatelet aggregants or a combination of antiplatelet aggregants and
anticoagulants might be more effective in preventing thrombus formation and
embolism than either agent alone.
Myocardial and Cardiac Chamber Lesions Myocardial Infarction and Coronary Artery
Disease
Systemic embolism is apparent clinically in about 3% (range 0.6% to 6.4%) of
patients with acute myocardial infarction 1269-274]. Most clinically detected
emboli are those that involve the brain and present as acute strokes. Most strokes
that occur in patients with acute myocardial infarcts are caused by embolization of
thrombi formed in the left ventricle, but some strokes are related to left atrial
thrombi, hypotension, and extracranial occlusive vascular disease. Vascular
occlusions, including coronary artery thrombosis, are followed by an increase in
acute-phase reaetants including serine protease coagulation proteins. Venous
thromboses and occlusion of atheros ten otic craniocervical arteries may occur in
the days and weeks alter myocardial infarction because ol (Ins hypcrcnagiilahiliiv.
The stroke occurrence with and without anticoagulation from three trials of large
numbers of patients with myocardial infarcts is shown in Table 11 1272-275], These
trials were carried out In the period 1969 to 1973, when the intensity of
anticoagulation was much higher than that recommended now. Despite the high
intensity of anticoagulation, the complication rates attributable to anticoagulants
were low. Minor bleeding occurred in 7%, major bleeds in 1.5%, and intracranial
hemorrhages in 0.05%; there were no fatal hemorrhages [272-2751.
TABLE 11 Acute Myocardial Infarction, Stroke Occurrence, and Anticoagulation
Trials No. patients Strokes (no anticoagulants) Strokes (anti coagulated)
Veterans 1273] MRC (U.K.) [2741 999 1427 3.8% 2.5% 0.8% 11%

Left ventricular thrombi can be detected in 20% to 4l)rA of patients with acute
anterior myocardial infarcts but are unusual in patients with inferior infarction
(271.276.277J. Most thrombi form on the apical wall of the left ventricle, probably
in relation to regions of reduced ventricular contractility. Mural thrombi are more
likely to form in patients wilh transmural and large anterior myocardial infarcts
than in those with small infarcts. Areas of decreased ventricular contractility,
low ejection fraction, and development of a left ventricular aneurysm predispose
to thrombus formation. Large thrombi most often occur within the first 3 days after
myocardial infarction, especially in patients with large infarcts that carry a poor
prognosis 1278.279J. Systemic embolization occurs on average 14 days after
myocardial infarction and is unusual after 4 to 6 weeks [280J. Pedunculated,
mobile thrombi thai project into the left ventricular cavity pose the greatest risk
for embolization. Anticoagulants clearly reduce the rale of stroke in patients wilh
acute myocardial infarcts. In a sludy of 999 patients with acute myocardial
infarction, short-term warfarin treatment for 2X days reduced ihe rate of stroke
(0.8% vs. 3.8% in nonanticoagulated controls; P < .001) 1281 J. Anticoagulation is
indicated in patients with infarcts and echocardiography findings that predict a
high rate of mural thrombus formation and systemic emboli sin.
Regions of akinesis and dyskinesis, and frank ventricular aneurysms often persist
after acute myocardial infarction. In the Coronary Artery Surgery Study (CASS).
7.6% of patients had angiographically defined left ventricular aneurysms 12K2J.
Aneurysms are usually anterior, apical, or anteroapical; posterior aneurysms
involving the diaphragmatic wall occur but arc rare. Although aneurysms are
relatively common and mural thrombi often form within aneurysms, the risk of stroke
is relatively lowabout 5% [211,283|. Posiied reasons for a rather low rale of
embolization despite aneurysm formation include: mural thrombi become organized and
adhereni to the aneurysm walls: thrombi often have a relatively small area of
contact wilh blood flow in the ventricle; and there is a loss of projectile force
generated by the underlying adjacent myocardium [211,2841. Considering all patients
who have recovered after myocardial infarction, the risk of stroke in patients with
impaired left ventricular function after myocardial infarction is substantial,
Among 2231 patients with left ventricular dysfunction after acute myocardial
infarction who were followed for an average of 42 months,
103 (4.6%) developed strokes [285J. The estimated 5-year stroke rate was 8.1% and
the actual stroke rate was 1,5% per year of follow-up [285], Large size of
myocardial infarcts and reduced left ventricular ejection fraction were the two
most important predictors of the development of stroke in this study. Patients with
ejection fractions of <28% were at highest risk, and for every absolute decreas f
5% i ih lef ventricula ejectio fractio ih risk f strok increased with moderate to
severe decreases in left ventricular ejection fraction and also in patients with
belter preserved function (ejection fractions >3 D %) [285], The benefit of
anticoagulation for stroke prevention after myocardial infarction was also shown in
two other trials [2Nf\287J,
Some patients wilh brain embolism arc unexpectedly found to have thrombi within
their left ventricles 1288,289]. Many such patients do not have a history of acute
myocardial infarction, and the cardiac cavity lesions are often first thought to
represent myxomas or other cardiac tumors, Sequential echocardiography shows that
these thrombi can gradually regress, or suddenly disappear [289 2911. often
without development of neurologic or other symptoms of embolism. Thrombus
formation, and spontaneous endogenous fibrinolysis and fragmentation of thrombi,
are dynamic processes. Thrombolytic treatment of patients with cardiac thrombi
poses the theoretical risk of breakup of large thrombi into portions which could
emboli*e and cause stroke and systemic embolism. Thrombi often disappear during
anticoagulation without apparent symptoms or signs of embolism.
Myocardiopathies
Conditions that affect the endocardium and myocardium promote die formation ol
cardiac mural thrombi and systemic and brain embolism. Pmhahh the three most
important factors that determine thrombus formation are involvement of the
endocardial surface, ventricular contractility and blood flow and ejection patterns
within the ventricles, and activation of platelets and the coagulation system.
Among the three categories of cardiomyopathiesdilated, restrictive, and
hypertrophicmural thrombus formation and embolism arc most common among the
disorders thai cause a dilated cardiomyopathy. Intraventricular thrombus formation
is enhanced by stasis of blood and by the loss of normal subendocardial
trabeculation. The network of subendocardial trabeculae can act as many small
compartments that produce high levels of force within the ventricle propelling
blood away from the endocardial surface [291a]. As left ventricular function
deteriorates and the left ventricular ejection fraction becomes <40%. thrombi are
more likely to form and patients have an increased risk of thromboembolism 129 la].

In one study of patients with idiopathic dilated cardiomyopathy. 60% had mural
thrombi defined b\ echocardiography, and even more had clinical or necropsy
evidence of systemic embolism [292]. Conditions as diverse as muscular dystrophies
[293.2941. cardiac amyloidosis [295]. peripartum cardiomyopathy [296.297[, cocaine-
related cardiomyopathy 1298], noncompaction of the myocardiu [299] d cardia
sarcoidosi [300] hav bee associated with thromboem uents with cardiomyopathies and
further increases the frequency of embolism. Embolism is unusual in patients with
hypertrophic cardiomyopathies unless they develop atrial fibrillation.
Some reports conclude that anticoagulation in patients with dilated
cardiomyopathies is effective, but other studies have shown poor effectiveness in
preventing thromboembolism [299a]. In one study reported by Fuster and colleagues,
among 103 patients who were not untieoagulated there were 19 embolic events that
occurred during 624 patient-years compared to no embolic events among 32 patients
who were anticoagulated during 101 patient-years |299h]. However, in the
Vasodilators in Heart Failure trials, there seemed to be no important protective
effect of anticoagulation [299a].
Cardiac Myxomas and Other Tumors
Although cardiac tumors are rare, they are an important cause of embolism and are
very important to diagnose. Myxomas are the most common heart tumors and were found
in 0-025% of patients in an unselected autopsy study [301 J. The cells of origin
are endocardial and arise from multipotential mesenchymal cells that persist as
embryonal remnants during septation of the heart [302]. About 75% originate in the
left atrium, and 15% to 20% in the right atrium \302,303], Most myxomas originate
from the interatrial septum at the edge of the fossa oval is, hut some originate
from the posterior or anterior atrial walls or the auricular appendage [302.303],
About 6% to 8% of myxomas are found in the ventricles, equally divided between the
left and right ventricles 1302,303]. Rarely, myxomas can arise from the region of
the heart valves. Biatrial myxomas have been described in which the tumor usually
projects into the contralateral atrium through a patent foramen ovale [302].
Myxomas project from their endocardial attachments into cardiac chambers. Myxomas
are most often found in patients between the ages of 30 and 60; women are slightly
more often affected than men. and there are instances of familial occurrence of
myxomas.
Embolism is estimated to occur in 30% to 50% of patients with cardiac myxomas
[302,304-3061. Most emboli arise from the left atrium and go to the brain or
systemic organs. Occasional cases of right atrial myxomas with systemic embolism
have been reported in the presence of a patent foramen ovale [307 309]. The most
common recognized site of embolism is to the brain, but embolism to the eye can
cause transient or persistent visual loss, and embolism to the spinal cord has also
been reported [302.310,3 111. Most often, patients with brain embolism present with
a sudden-onset focal neurologic deficit. Transient deficits sometimes occur Often
there Ims been more than one brain embolism before atrial diagnosed Usuall th
diagnosi f i mad b lion from a left atrial myxoma, the initial echocardiogram was
negative [3)21. Small size ol tumoi 01 embolization of th e hulk of lhe tumor could
explain Lhe initially negative echocardiogram. Emboli can consist of tumor
fragments and/or thrombus. Palients with progressive demeda caused by multiple
small brain infarcts 1313 J. and sudden coma due lo a shower of tumor emboli to
multiple brain aneries have been reported [314].
Occasional patients with brain emboli from myxomas have subarachnoid or
intracerebral hemorrhage 1315-3171. Bleeding is related to the development of
hemorrhagic infarction or rupture of aneurysms. Embolism from myxoma tissue to the
wall of brain arteries causes aneurysms that are identical to mycotic aneurysms
found in patients with bacterial endocarditis. Usually the aneurysms are relatively
small, multiple, and on peripheral branches of brain arteries [316,317]. Some
aneurysms are quite large [316]. The peripheral location of aneurysms in patients
uiih myxomas and endocarditis differs from that usually i\mm\ in patients with
saccular jberry) aneurysms. Delayed progressive brain ischemia and enlargement of
aneurysms can develop after the initial emholie event 13151 Although delayed growth
and rupture ot aneurysms [M? 3ll> ami metastatic tumor growth [319-321] do occur,
their frequency is probably very low . In A \c\ Sew of 35 patienls \>\ ith atrial
m\ xomas followed at the May o ('luiie, none had subsequent delayed neurological
events altributable to their myxomas 13 J 9], Recurrent cardiac tumors after
surgery can, however, give rise to recurrent embolization.
PapiiIanrJibroelastomas are another type of cardiac tumor that often give rise to
brain embolism [322.323]. The lesions consist of multiple papillary fronds that
radiate from an avascular fibroeoilagenous core attached by a short pedicle to the
endothelium. They most often arise from the aortic valves [324]. Angina and
coronary ischemia are caused by embolism to the coronary arteries. Multiple hrain
infarct usually occur before the diagnose is made by echocardiography. Rhabdomyomas
are often multiple, arise from the ventricular myocardium, and project into the
ventricular cavity. Tuberous sclerosis is present in about 33% of patienls with
rhabdomyomas [325]. Other cardiac tumors include lipomas, which often involve the
interatrial septum and can arise from the mitral or aortic valves,
rhabdomyosarcomas, angiosarcomas, and metastatic tumors. These rarely have been
associated with brain embolism [331], Patients with neurofibromatosis may develop
rhabdomyosarcomas, which have been reported to cause brain emboli [327].
Anticoagulants are probably not effective in preventing embolism in patients with
cardiac tumors. Emboli often represent tumor fragments. Theoretisome therapeutic
effect, but there are no studies of their utility in patients with myxomas or other
cardiac neoplasms. The only definitive treatment is surgical whenever possible.
Paradoxical Embolism and Cardiac Septal Lesions
While once considered to be very rare, emboli entering the systemic circulation
through right-to-leti shunting of blood are becoming more frequently recognized
with the advent of newer diagnostic technologies. By far the most common potential
intracardiac shunt is a residual patent foramen ovale (PFO), The high frequency of
PFOs in the normal adult population has made it difficult to be certain in an
individual stroke patient with a PFO whether paradoxical embolism through the PFO
v\ as ihe cause of their stroke or the PFO was merely an incidental finding.
Autopsy series have shown lhat about 30% of adults have a probe patent foramen
ovale at necropsy 1328]. Hagen et al. studied 956 patients with clinically and
pathologically normal hearts and found a PFO in 27.3% [328J. The frequency of PFOs
declined with age: 34.3% during the first three decades of life; 25.4% during the
fourth to eighth decades; and 20.2'* during the ninth and 10th decades. The average
diameter of PFOs was 4.9 mm and the size tended to increase with age |328|.
Echocardiography studies have shown that PFOs are more commonly found in patients
with stroke than in controls and that PFOs are more common in patients with an
undetermined cause of stroke ("cryptogenic stroke1 1 \ than in those in whom
another etiology has been defined. Lcchat and colleagues examined 60 adults <55
years old wilh stroke and 10U controls using 2D echocardiography and injections of
5 to 10 mL of agitated saline containing air bubbles [329j. The frequency of PFOs
was higher in ihe stroke group (40%) than in controls (10% i. Among patients with
an idemiliable stroke cause. 21% had PFOs; 40% of patients with possible risk
factors for stroke such as migraine, mitral valve prolapse, or use of oral
contraceptives had PFOs. The frequency of PFO detection was highest (54%) in those
patients with no identiliable risk factor or caase of stroke 13291.
DiTullio and colleagues studied 146 patients among whom 31% had no known cause of
stroke and 644 had identifiable causes other than paradoxical embolism [330]. Among
ihe total group of patients. 26 (18% I had PFOs. Patients with cryptogenic stroke
had a higher prevalence of PFOs than those with idem ill-able causes, both in the
group <55 years old (48% compared lo 4%) and those >55 years old (38% vs. 8%)
f330]. Petty et al. studied the presence of PFOs among 160 palients wilh brain
infarcts and also found that PFOs were more
palient with infarct f uncertai (40%) d with more are met, establish with a high
degree of certainty the presence of paradoxical embolism:
1. A situation that promotes thrombosis of leg or pelvic veins, e.g., long
sitting in one position, rcccnl surgery, etc.
2. Increased coagulability, e.g.. the use of oral contraceptives, presence of
Leiden factor with resistance lo activated protein C, dehydration
3. Sadden onset of stroke during sexual intercourse, straining at stool,

or other activity that includes a Valsalva maneuver or that promotes


righwo-lefl shunting of blood
4.
Pulmonary embolism within a short time before or after the neurological ischemic
eveni

5.
Absence of other puiativc causes of stroke afler thorough evaluation

A recent patient of one of ihe authors iL.R.C.) provides an example of the


diagnosis of paradoxical embolism:
A 29-year-old woman and her husband took their four children home from a trip on an
8-hour car ride. The day was very warm and she had nothing to drink during the
ride. She spent much of the time acting as a policeman for the children,
disciplining them while kneeling on her seat facing the children, who were
cavorting in the rear of the station wagon. When they got home, they fed the
children and put them to bed. She showered and immediately thereafter had sex with
her husband. At ihe point of climax, she became unable to speak and her right arm
was weak and numb. Examination showed a right hemiparesis and aphasia. CT showed a
left upper division MCA territory infarct. Echocardiography revealed a PFO with
increased flow during a Valsalva maneuver. The heart and aorta were otherwise
normal, and an MR A examination of the cervicocranial arteries was normal. She made
a good recovery but had some residual right-hand numbness and dysnomta.
Gautier and colleagues reported 29 patients with paradoxical embolism and reviewed
31 palients reported by others [3341, Situations thai promoted venous occlusions
among these 60 palients included surgery (seven), postpartum, lower-extremity
injury, and jugular vein catheterization. Strokes occurred after sex (two),
straining at stool (seven), weight-lifiing (two), blowing the nose with great
effort, asthmatic attack. ^\mnasiics, decompressing the ears, and martial arts.
Venous thrombosis was detected in very few patients and very few had clinical
pulmonary emboli. Lung radionuclide scans, pulmonary angiography, and neclit>n
infarction is more than expected since only 2()ri of blood flow to the brain goes
through the posterior circulation [41]. A study of the distribution of microemboli
in patients with PFOs also showed that there is an unexplained predilection for
embolic material to go to posterior circulation vessels [335J.
Paradoxical embolism has also been described through ventricular septal defects
[336], atrial septal defects [337], and pulmonary arteriovenous fistulas [3381,
Venous thrombosis can be detected if studies are performed early in the course.
Some venous thrombi involve the pelvic veins and might be detected by abdominal and
pelvic imaging techniques, Stollberger et ah studied 49 patients with paradoxical
embolism through PFOs including 41 patients with stroke and eight with acute limb
embolism 1339J. Venous thrombosis was suspected clinically in six patients and
documented by venography in 24 of 42 (57%) patients studied. Venous diagnostic
studies were more likely to be positive when patients were studied soon after
systemic embolism [339].
The advent of TEE has undoubtedly facilitated recognition and quantification of
PFOs and atrial septal defects. TEE was able to show a serpentine thrombus
actually traversing a PFO [340] and to detect fat emboli during surgery for a
femora] fracture [341], Transcranial Doppler ultrasound (TCD) has also been used
effectively to diagnose the presence of right-to-left cardiac or pulmonary shunting
(342343]. The technique involves injection of a small amount of saline which has
been agitated vigorously with a small amount of air, or mixed with a polygelatine
contrast agent 1343J into a cubital vein. During and after the injection, the MCA
is insonated using TCD. Appearance of microbubblcs in the MCA wiihin the first
three lo live cardiac cycles (<10 seconds) indicates the presence of right-to-left
shunting of blood [342.343]. The lest is usually done with and wilhoul a Valsalva
maneuver. The technique has the advantage of being able to be used at the bedside
since TCD is portable.
Investigators have compared the utility of TCD and echocardiography in detecting
right to lell shunts |3-13 3-t7|. TTI: was less sensitive than TFil and detected
only 9/19 {41'-< } in one series [344f The result* depended hea\ il\ on the
frequency of adequate heart visualization during TTE. The sensitivity of TCD was
91,3%, specificity 93,8%, and overall accuracy 92.8% in one study using TEE as the
gold standard for recognition of a PFO 1346f In all of lhe series, some patients
with PFOs were detected by one or the other technique (TCD or TEE) but missed by
the oiher [343-347], TCD can merely suggest the presence of a right-io-lefi shunt
and is not specific for a cardiac source; patients with pulmonary shunting will
also have positive TCDs. TCD can be used as a screening test. If positive, then
echocardiography is indicated.
Predictor fo th likelihood f paradoxical embolis through PFO hav (2.1 1.7 mm vs.
0.57 0.7S mm), and there were more microbubbles (13.9 10,7 vs. 1.6 0.8 per
mm1} in patients with cryptogenic stroke than in those with identified causes of
stroke [349],
Electrocardiographic lindings can also raise the suspicion of the presence of PFOs
and ostium secundum atrial septal defects. Ay and colleagues recently described the
finding or an M-shaped notch on the ascending branch or on the peak of the R-wave
in inferior ECG leads 01. HI, avF) as an indicator of the presence of PFOs or
atrial septal defects f349a]. This notched pattern has been called "crochetage"
because of its resemblance morphologically to a crochet needle [349a,349b].
Crochetage was found in 10 of 28 (36%) of patients wilh echocardiographically
documented PFOs [349a]. Heller and colleagues had previously shown that corchctagc
was a useful indicator of ostium secundum atrial septal defects [349b|.
Atrial septal aneurysms have recently received increased attention in relation lo
their possible role in contributing lo brain embolism. Fusion of the septum prim
mil closes the foramen ovale and leads to a depression on the right side of the
interatrial septal wall. Bulging of the septum primum tissue of the atrial septum
through the fossa oval is into either the right or left atrial cavity is called an
atrial septal aneurysm. Atrial septal aneurysms were first reported in 1934 1350]:
they were found in \CA of necropsies by Silver and Dorsey |35l | and are found in
3% to 4% of TEEs 13521. Belkin et al. analyzed the findings among 36 consecutive
patients with echocardiographically documented atrial septal aneurysms 1353], Ten
of ihe palients had cerebrovascular ischemic events and one had a peripheral limb
embolus. The authors judged that 6 (17%) patients had definite and 8 (22%) had
probable embolic events. In this study 28/31 (90%) patients also showed atrial
shunting of agitated saline contrast [353 [. Nater and colleagues studied 12
patients who had brain ischemic events (I I strokes and one T1A) and atrial septa]
aneurysms [352]. Ten patients (83%) also had a patent foramen ovale. The clinical
data suggested brain embolism in each case (352].
Cabanes et al. studied the frequency of atrial septal aneurysms, patent foramen
ovale, and mitral valve prolapse among 100 fully evaluated stroke patients <55
years old and among 50 controls [354]. Atrial septal aneurysms were found in 28% of
stroke patients and 8% of controls. A patent foramen ovale was found in 72% of
patients wilh atrial septal aneurysms, and 25% of patients wiihoui atrial septal
aneurysms. The presence of an atrial septal aneurysm (odds ratio 4.3; 95%
confidence interval 1.3 to 14.6; P = .01) or a PFO (odds ratio 3.9; 95% confidence
interval 1.5 to 10; P ,003) was strongly associated wilh cryptogenic stroke. The
stroke odds ratio of a patient with boih an atrial septal aneurysm and
PFO 33,3 (95% confidenc interval 4.1 t 270) time th strok odd f (2.1 1.7 mm vs.
0.57 0.7S mm), and there were more microbubbles (13.9 10,7 vs. 1,6 0.8 per
mm1} in patients with cryptogenic stroke than in those with identified causes of
stroke [349],
Electrocardiographic lindings can also raise the suspicion of the presence of PFOs
and ostium secundum atrial septal defects. Ay and colleagues recently described the
finding or an M-shaped notch on the ascending branch or on the peak of the R-wave
in inferior ECG leads Oh HI, avF) as an indicator of the presence of PFOs or atrial
septal defects [349al. This notched pattern has been called "crochetage" because of
its resemblance morphologically to a crochet needle [349a,349b], Crochetage was
found in 10 of 28 (36%) of patients with echocardiographically documented PFOs
[349a]. Heller and colleagues had previously shown that corchctagc was a useful
indicator of ostium secundum atrial septal defects [349b|.
Atrial septal aneurysms have recently received increased attention in relation to
their possible role in contributing lo brain embolism. Fusion of the septum
primLIin closes the foramen ovale and leads to a depression on the right side of
the interatrial septal wall. Bulging of the septum primum tissue of the atrial
septum through the fossa oval is into eidier the right or left atrial cavity is
called an atrial septal aneurysm. Am.il septal aneurysms were first reported in
1934 1350]: they were found in \CA of necropsies by Silver and Dorsey |35l | and
are found in 3% to 4% of TEEs 1352]. Belkin et al. analyzed the findings among 36
consecutive patients with echocardiographically documented atrial septal aneurysms
1353], Ten of the patients had cerebrovascular ischemic events and one had a
peripheral limb embolus. The authors judged that 6 (17%) patients had definite and
8 (22%) had probable embolic events. In this study 28/31 (90%) patienls also showed
atrial shunting of agitated saline contrast [353]. Nater and colleagues studied 12
patients who had brain ischemic events (I I strokes and one T1A) and atrial septal
aneurysms [352]. Ten patients (83%) also had a patent foramen ovale. The clinical
data suggested brain embolism in each case [352].
Cahanes et al. studied the frequency of atrial septal aneurysms, patent foramen
ovale, and mitral valve prolapse among 100 fully evaluated stroke patients <55
years old and among 50 controls [354]. Atrial septal aneurysms were found in 28% of
stroke patients and 8% of controls. A patent foramen ovale was found in 72% of
patients with atrial septal aneurysms, and 25% of patients without atrial septal
aneurysms. The presence of an atrial septal aneurysm (odds ratio 4.3; 95%
confidence interval 1.3 to 14.6; P = .01) or a PFO (odds ratio 3.9; 95% confidence
interval 1.5 to 10; P ,003) was strongly associated with cryptogenic stroke. The
stroke odds ratio of a patient with both an atrial septal aneurysm and
PFO 33.3 (95% confidenc interval 4.1 t 270) time th strok odd f the odds of
cryptogenic stroke. The data from these three echocardiography studies [352-354|
are conclusive that there is a strong association between atrial septa) aneurysms
and interatrial shunts, and that the presence of either atrial septal aneurysms
and/or PFOs is strongly associated with the presence of cryptogenic stroke,
especially among young stroke patients. The exact mechanism by which atrial septal
aneurysms contribute to brain embolism has not been satisfactorily clarified but
these lesions can harbor thrombi, Thrombus was seen within an atrial septal
aneurysm in one patient [3551 and has been found within the base of atrial septal
aneurysms at necropsy 13511.
The recurrence rate of stroke in patients with PFOs and the effect of various
treatments on recurrence has occasionally been studied 1348,356-359]. In one small
study, no recurrences occurred among 15 patients taking aspirin (six), warfarin
(seven), or after surgical closure ftwo) [3481. Bogousslavsky and his Swiss
colleagues studied stroke recurrence among 140 consecutive patients who had PFOs
and brain ischemic events [356]. One-fourth of the palients also had atrial septal
aneurysms. During a mean follow-up period of 3 years, the stroke or death rate was
2.4% per year. Only eight patients had a recurrent brain infarct [ 1.9% per year)
[356]. Ninety-two (66^ ) took aspirin 250 mg per day. while 37 (26%) were given
anticoagulants and 11 (8%) had surgical closure of the PFO wiihin
12 weeks of the stroke after being treated with anticoagulants. There was no
significant difference in the effect of any of the treatments on recurrence. The
relatively low rate of recurrence contrasted with the severity of the initial
stroke which left disabling effects in half the palients [356]. In a French
multicenter study, 132 patienls with PFOs and/or atrial septal aneurysms and
cryptogenic stroke were followed for an average of 22.6 months [357]. The
recurrence rate was approximately 2% to 3% at 2 years and was higher in palients
with both PFOs and atrial septal aneurysms. Recurrences occurred in four patients
who were taking antiplatelet agents and in one who was treated with anticoagulants
1357]. In another study. Lausanne investigators found no recurrence of siroke
during an average follow-up of 2 years among 30 patients who had suture closure of
PFOs during cardiopulmonary bypass surgery [358]. None of the patients were given
antiaggregants or anticoagulants after surgery. There were no serious surgical
complications. After surgery, two patients had interatrial shunting as determined
bv TCD and TEE, but the shunts were much smaller than before surgery [358],
PFOs have also been closed using an umbrella device placed through a catheter.
Bridges and colleagues reported the results of transcatheter closure of PFOs among
36 palients with PFOs of whom half had multiple ischemic events
[359] Twelv patient had had ischemi whil takin warfari befor treatment are
inconclusive but all studies have shown a very low recurrence rate (about 2% per
yean among stroke patients with PFOs. The presence of bodi a PFO and an atrial
septal aneurysm substantially increases the risk of stroke recurrence. Warfarin
and surgical or Iranscatheter closure are posited to be more effective than drugs
that affect platelet functions, but studies have not definitively shown their
superiority.
Frequency of Various Cardiac Sources of Emboli in Stroke Registries
Unfortunately, there are very few analyses of the frequency of various cardiac
sources of embolism among well-studied series of stroke or brain ischemia
patients. The Stroke Data Bank, which included 1805 patients among whom 1290 had
brain infarcts, did report the frequency of various cardiac lesions among their
patients with brain infarcts [561. Based on a literature review, the Stroke Data
Bank investigators first divided cardiac lesions into those considered at high risk
for cerebral embolism and those considered at lesser risk. Historical features.
ECG. and 2D TTE data were used to categorize the cardiac iesions. Palients were
considered to have a high-risk condition if they had past valve surgery, a history
or ECG evidence of atrial fibrillation, atrial 11 utter or sick sinus syndrome,
echocardiography evidence of ventricular aneurysm, akinetic ventricular segment,
mural thrombus, left ventricular hypokinesis, or cardiomyopathy. There were 250
patients who had one or more of these high-risk cardiac sources 156J. Patienls with
cardiac lesions considered lo have less risk of brain embolism (called medium-risk
by the investigators) had to have no high-risk conditions and a history of
myocardial infarction wilhin 6 months, aortic or mitral stenosis or regurgitation,
congestive heart failure, history or echocardiography evidence of mitral valve
prolapse, echocardiography evidence of mitral annulus calcification, a hypokinetic
ventricular segment, or decreased left ventricular function. There were
166 patients who met criteria for medium-risk donor sources [561. Some patients had
more than one cardiac condition; for example, atrial fibrillation and congestive
heart failure.
Table 12 shows the frequency of the various cardiac conditions in the Stroke Data
Bank. The commonest cardiac problem by far was atrial arrythmia: 190 patients in
ihe high-risk group (16%) had airial fibrillation, atrial flutter, or sick sinus
syndrome. Most patients with atrial urrythmias did not have cardiac valve disease
(162/190; 85%). Congestive heart failure was the next most common abnormality and
was present in 92 (37%) patients in ihe high-risk and 95 (57%) patient i th medium-
risk categories Akineti region TTE th
TABLE 12 Patients in the Stroke Data Bank wilh Selected Cardiac Character!sties" in
High ajid Medium Cardiac Risk Croups
High risk Medium risk Cardiac risk categories (n = 250) in = 166)
High-risk categories Valve surgery 15 A rib, A flutter, sick sinus with valve
disease 28 A fib. A flutter, sick sinus hut no valve disease 162 Ventricular
aneurysm* 5 Mural thrombus" 12 Cardiomyopathy or left ventricle hypokinesis" 7
Akinetic region11 52
Medium-risk categories Myocardial infarct wiihin 6 months 25 IS Valve disease
without A fib. A flutter, sick sinus 31 19 Congestive heart failure 92 95 Decreased
left ventricle functionb '.) 3 Hypokinetic segment^ 0 12 Mural valve prolapse (by
history or echocardiogram 5 13 Mitral annulus calcification*1 14 46
' Some palients had more than one characteristic. k By eehocanlio<:rLtph\. Source:
Ref. 56,
of embolism, but they did not tabulate the occurrence of these conditions in ihe
two risk groups. Patent foramen ovale, airial septal defects and aneurysms,
spontaneous echo contrast, and lesions in the ascending aorta and aortic arch were
not tabulated probably because the Stroke Data Bank patiems were studied before TEE
and only TTE was used 156].
The Lausanne Stroke Registry reported the frequencies of various potential cardiac
sources of embolism (PCSEs) among the firsi 1311 patients admitted to the hospital
with a first-ever stroke 142J. Among ihese patients, a tolal of 305 (23%) had
PCSEs. Atrial fibrillation (141:46%) was the commonest abnormality; atrial
fibrillation was an isolated finding in 118 patients and was accompanied by
myocardial abnormalities in 12 patients and by valve disease in 11 other patients.
Myocardial abnormalities were the next most common PCSE in the Lausanne Stroke
Registry, occurring in 84 {21.5%) of patients with cardiac donor sources. Amon th
305 patient with PCSEs 33 11 1%) als had large-arter atherosteno
TABLE 13 Potential Cardiac Sources tf Embolism in the Lausanne Stroke Registry

Cardiai: abnormalities No. palients (%)


Isolated myocardial abnormalities 84 (27.5%) Focal left ventricle akinesia without
thrombus 61 (20%) Focal left ventricle akinesia with thrombus 7 (2.3%) Global
ventricular hypokinesia 7 (2.3%) Patent foramen ovale 6 (2%) Left atrial myxoma 2
(0.7*1 i Left ventricle thrombus 1 (0.3%)
Isolated valve abnormalities 71 (23.3%) Mitral valve prolapse 51 (16.7%) Mitral
stenosis or insufficiency 10 (3.3%) Prosthetic mitral or aortic valve) 10 (3.3%)
Isolated arrhythmia 127 (41.6%) Atrial fibrillation 1 18 (38.7%) Sick sinus
syndrome 4 (2.9%)
Arrhythmias + myocardial abnormalities 12 (3.9%) Atrial fibril laiuin + Focal left
ventricular 6 (2%) akinesia without thrombus
+ Focal left ventricular akinesia wiih thrombus 1 (0.3%)
4- Global hypokinesia 3 (1%)
-+ Left ventricular thrombus 2 (0.7%)

Arrythmias + valve abnormalities 1 1 (3.6%) Atrial fibrillaiion + mitral valve


prolapse 6 (2%)
+
Mitral stenosis 2 (0.7%)

+
Prosthetic valve 3 (1%)

Sourn-: Ret". 42.


nine patients <4 0 years old had microbubble injections searching for patent
foramen ovale: six had PFOs detected by this method. The PCSEs in the Lausanne
Stroke Registry are shown in Table 13.
The frequency of cardiac conditions among echocardiographic series of patients is
heavily dependent on referral bias. Atrial fibrillation is undoubtedly the most
commonly recognized cardiac donor source of embolism. Myocardial disease, most
often coronary artery related, represents the next most important cardiac source
followed by valve disease.
subject was published half a century ago. Meyer described iwo patients with
syphilitic aortic aneurysms that developed cholesterol crystal embolism [3601. A
decade later Winter also described two patients with syphilitic aneurysms of the
proximal aorta [3611. The ascending aorta of Winter's lirst patient was "covered
by innumerable atheromata most of which were eroded and partly calcified. Soft
thrombi containing cholesterol crystals were adherent to many" [355]. Many brain
arteries were blocked by cholesterol crystal-containing thrombi. In the second
patient, who also had multiple brain cholesterol crystal emboli, the "entire
intimat surface of the aorta, but in particular the aneurysm, was covered by
asiheromatous plaques many of which were ulcerated and covered by soft thrombi"
[361 J. In 1965, Miller Fisher, Paul Dudley White, and colleagues examined the
aorla and extracranial and intracranial arteries among 178 patients and found that
only 37 aortas were free of ulceration and lhat the aorla was Iwo lo four times
more likely to show severe atherosclerosis than the cervical carotid and vertebral
arteries [362J.
Although it is well known that the aorta was an important site of atheromatous
disease, there was almost no mention of aortic atherosclerotic disease as an
important cause of stroke until ihe beginning of the last decade of the 2(Hh
century. Tunick and his colleagues at the New York University Medical Center
published iwn report1- thai included [our patients with unexplained brain ischemic
events in whom TEE showed large protruding, often mobile atheromas 1363.3641. In
one patient who had brain, leg, and arm emboli, TEE showed "a large mass wilh
smaller mobile components, protruding into the lumen of the aortic arch" [364 J.
Several aortic masses in this patient were removed surgically and showed severe
atherosclerotic plaques wilh superimposed thrombi [3641. Shortly after publication
of these case reports. Tunick and colleagues reported the TEE results among 122
patients who had stroke. TIAs. or peripheral emboli, and 122 age-and sex-matched
controls [365J. Proiruding atheromas were strongly related to the occurrence of
embolic events (odds ratio 3.2; 95% confidence interval 1.6 to 6.5; P < ,001), and
atheromas with mobile components were only found in patients with embolic events
[3651, Karalis and colleagues also reported an observational TEE study of their
experience with aortic atheromas [366]. "Imra-aortic atherosclerotic debris" was
found in 7% of 556 palients studied by TEE; 11 patienis with these atheromatous
aortic lesions (31%) had embolic events [366J. Embolic events were more often
associated with pedunculated and mobile aortic lesions than those that were layered
and immobile [366].
These observational studies and case reports alerted the medical community io the
possible importance of aortic atheromas as a cause of stroke and peripheral logic
diseases. Ulcerated aortic plaques were found in 26% of 239 patients wiih
cerebrovascular disease, compared to only 5% of 261 patients with other neurologic
diseases (P < .001} [367]. The prevalence of aortic atheromas was 61% among
patients with brain infarcts and no demonstrated cause, and 22% among those with
other defined causes (P < .001) [367J. The presence of ulcerated plaques in the
aortic arch did not correlate with the presence of carotid artery stenosis,
suggesting that aortic and carotid artery disease were independent risk factors for
stroke i 3671.
Amarenco and Cohen and their colleagues also reported a study of 12 consecutive
patients with cryptogenic stroke studied by TEE [368]. Six (50%) had intraluminal
echogenic masses in the aortic arch, most often at the junction of the ascending
aorta and the arch. In one patient the mass was pedunculated but in the other five
the attachment was broad-based with a very irregular surface. The masses extended
from 3 to 15 mm into the aortic lumens. Cholesterol emboli were found in quadriceps
muscle biopsies in two patienls with aortic masses [368]. Tobler ei ah studied at
necropsy the presence and distribution of atheroscle[otic plaques in the ascending
aorta |36lJj. Among 97 ascending aortas. 38% had atherosclerotic plaques >8 mm in
diameter; the average diameter of plaques was
IV* Dim. Most of the 66 plaques were di.siribuu.-d anteriorly or posienorh mi ihe
right side of the ascending aorta, and the upper and lower babes of the ascending
aorta were equally involved [369], Plaques were also prevalent in the aortic arch,
especially at the orifice of the innominate artery (21% of 48 arch specimens)
[369].
TEE studies in the United States 1370.3711 and Japan 1372| confirm the importance
of aortic lesions as a source of brain and peripheral embolism. Masudaet ah
analyzed ihe clinical features and the distribution and pathology among 15 patients
with brain atheromatous embolism studied clinically and at necropsy [373J. Cardiac
surgery, cardiac catheterization, and angiography triggered embolism in six (40%)
of patients in this series. Nine (60%) padents had extensive cortical, often
hemorrhagic infarcts in the regions of the arterial border zones between the
anterior and middle cerebral arteries and between the tniddle and posterior
cerebral arteries. Six (40%) patients had territorial infarcts of different sizes
caused by occlusion of major or branch cerebral arteries |373|. All patients had
complicated atheromas in ihe ascending aorta and the aortic arch. Calcification*
ulcerations, mural thrombi, and aneurysmal dilatations were prevalent. Cholesterol
crystal emboli were often found in arteries within the border zone regions [373].
Two recent studies investigated the frequency of occurrence of vascular
i palient wh had TEE-documented aorti h atherosclerosi wall. The frequency of
recurrent hraiu infarcts was 11.9 per 100 patient-years in those who had an aortic
thickness of >4 mm, compared to rates of 3.5/100 patient-years for those with 1-
to 3.^-mm-thick aortic walls, and 2,8/100 patient-years in those with aortic walls
< l mm thick. After controlling for other confounding factors the relative risk of
brain infarction was 3.8 (95% confidence interval 1.8 to 7.8; P = .0012) and of all
vascular events 3.5 (95% confidence interval 2.1 to 5.9; P < .001) in patients with
aortic wall plaques >4 mm 13741. In a prospective study conducted in two German
university hospitals, physicians followed 136 patients with flat plaques <5 mm in
thickness, and 47 patients with either thick plaques >5 mm thick or complex plaques
with mobile components for an average of 16 months 1375], Embolic events occurred
in 15 patients; the incidence was 4.1/100 patient-years in palients with 11 at
plaques, vs. 13.7/100 patient-years in those wilh complex, thick, or mobile plaques
|375|.
Atherosclerosis is not the only disease of tile aorta thai can give rise to
embolism. Syphilitic aortitis and aneurysms have long been known to ulcerate and
cause thromboembolism 1360,361 J. Physicians in Sri Lanka described 10 patients who
had an inflammatory aortitis different from Takayasu's disease that caused brain
embolism and strokes [376]. The earliest histological changes in this condition
were focal fragmentation of elastic lamella and an acute inflammatory aortitis in
the media of the aortic arch. The aortic intima was edematous and mural thrombi
often formed on the endothelial surface of the aorta and embolized intracranial^
1376], Takayasu's disease, aortic trauma, and aortic disseclion arc probably also
occasionally complicated by embolism arising from the aorta. In the case of aortic
dissection, thrombus formation within the aorta and subsequent embolism should be
separated from obliteration of the orifices of the branches of the arch by ihe
disseclion, and from concurrent dissection of brachiocephalic arieries, which often
accompanies aortic dissections [377-379].
Treatment of aortic atheromatous disease is controversial. Anticoagulants have been
posited to aggravate cholesterol crystal embolism 13801, but in several patients
aortic thrombotic masses have disappeared after anticoagulant therapy [381,3821, By
preventing the formation of thrombi over ulcerated areas of aortic atheromas,
heparin and/or Coumadin could theoretically facilitate contact of the atheromatous
material with the lumen and promote cholesterol embolism. Cholesterol embolism has
also been described after thrombolytic treatment of patients wilh acute myocardial
infarction [382aJ; similar to anticoagulants, thrombolytic agents could expose
ulcerated areas to ihe circulation if ihrombi were lysed. Intravenous thrombolytic
treatment 1383] and surgical removal of proiruding atheromas [364] have also been
reported to be successful in treating patients with aortic atheromas I patien wh
had f protrudin atheroma tha involved function, and combinations of antiplatelet
drugs and anticoagulants might be effective in preventing embolism from aortic
plaques but have not been systematically studied.
Arterial Sources of Embolism
The extracranial and intracranial large arteries often serve as the donor source
for embolism to the brain. Arterial-source embolism is referred to as artery-
toartery, intra-arterial. or * local" embolism. This subject is complex and has
been reviewed extensively elsewhere 141,751. Herein, we include only a very brief
review of this topic.
Disease. Pathology, and Pathophysiology
Although atherosclerosis is by far the most common condition that leads to
intraarterial embolism, other vascular diseases can also serve as donor sources.
Trauma and dissections nf arteries lead to local thrombus formation and embolism.
Occasionally, inflammatory diseases of the brachiocephalic branches of the aortic
arch such as temporal arteritis and Takayasu's disease can lead to intraarterial
embolism. Thrombi sometimes form within arterial aneurysms, both saccular
1385.386] and fusiform dolicocephalic aneurysms |3K7|. and can then break off and
embolize to distal branch arteries. Fibromuscular dysplasia (FMD) is an important
but relatively uncommon vascular disease which affects the pharyngeal and
occasionally the intracranial portions of the carotid and vertebral arteries that
can also serve as a source of distal intra-arterial embolism. Thrombi can. on
occasion, form within large arteries in the absence of important arterial disease
in patients with cancer and other causes of hypercoagulability [388]. These luminal
thrombi then embolize to intracranial arteries, causing strokes.
Atherosclerosis is ihe predominant cause of intra-arterial embolism. The initial
arterial lesion is a fatty streak which develops in the intima and then enlarges
into a raised atherosclerotic plaque. Plaques contain a mixture of lipid, smooth
muscle, fibrous and collagen tissues, and inflammatory cells [ 10.389,3901. Plaques
can enlarge quickly when hemorrhages occur within the plaques. When a critical
plaque size and reduction in the lumen are reached, the atherosclerotic process
accelerates. Reduced luminal area and the bulk of the protruding plaque after the
physical and mechanical properties of blood flow and create regions of local
turbulence and stasis. Platelets often adhere to the irregular surfaces of plaques.
Secretion of chemical mediators within platelets and within the underlying vascular
endothelium causes aggregation and further adherence f platelet th endothelium A
"'whit clot*" d f platelet d fibri
with the luminal contents. The coagulation cascade is activated by this contact,
and a "red thrombus/* composed of erythrocytes and fibrin, forms within the lumen.
Platelet secretion can also activate the serine proteases that form the body's
coagulation system and so also promote the formation of red clots. When thrombi
first form, they are poorly organized and only loosely adherent. They often
propagate and embolize, Wiihin a period of I to 2 weeks, thrombi organize and
become more adherent and fragments are less likely to break off and embolize. A
variety of different materials cholesterol crystals, calcified plaque fragments,
white clots, and red thrombican form the substance of intra-arterial emboli.
Arterial dissections are probably the second most common disease that leads to
artery-to-artery brain embolism. Stretching or tearing wiihin the arterial media
causes formation of an intramural hematoma. Blood within the media dissects
longitudinally along the vessel wall. Expansion of the arterial wall compromises
the lumen. The expanding intramural hematoma can tear through the miima and inject
fresh red congealed hematoma containing thrombuslike material into the arterial
lumen. This material is, at first, not adherent to the endothelium and often
embolizes. The intimal tear and the underlying medial hematoma cause some
irritation of the endothelium which, in turn, causes activation of platelets and
the coagulation cascade promoting the formation of a thrombus in situ within the
lumen. Compromise of the lumen by the expanding intramural lesion alters blood flow
within the lumen, which also promotes thrombus formation. Thus thrombus can form in
situ within the dissected artery or reach the lumen by introduction of the
intramural contents, hi cither case, the acute luminal thrombus is poorly
organized and nonadherent and readily embolizes distally 141.75,391.3921.
Relation of Symptoms to Severity of Arterial Stenosis
Unlike the situation within the coronary arteries, there is a very close
relationship between brain ischemia and the severity of arterial stenosis.
Transient or persistent brain ischemia is far more likely to develop when the
arterial lumen is compromised. The arterial process causes brain ischemia either
by substantially reducing blood flow to a region of the brain supplied by the
artery (hypoperfusion) or by providing the donor source for intra-artcrial
embolism. Most sizable brain infarcts in patients with arterial stenoses and
occlusions are thought to be embolic. Transcranial Doppler (TCD) studies that show
an increased rale of high-intensity transient microembolic signals in patients with
severe TCA stenosis support this explanation [20,393-395].
Severit f stenosi i widel d th importan prognosti the direct relationship between
severity of arterial stenosis and subsequent stroke is also found in patients with
asymptomatic carotid artery stenosis (399-402 f Norris and colleagues found
increasing cumulative rates of transient ischemia and stroke in relation to
increasing grades of arterial stenosis 1402]. The incidence of ischemic events also
correlated very closely with progression of the luminal compromise [4021. Norris
estimated lhat the annual stroke rate in asymptomatic patients with <75% ICA
stenosis in the neck was 1% to 2%, compared to a rate of 5% to 6% in patients wilh
>75% stenosis 13951. The North American Symptomatic Carotid Endarterectomy Trial
(NASCET) 1.3961 and the European Carotid Surgery Trial (ECST) 13971 each found a
clear advantage of carotid endarterectomy over medical therapy in symptomatic
patients with severe ICA stenosis, bul palients with less severe stenosis did not
benefit from carotid artery surgery. The Asymptomatic Carotid Atherosclerosis
Study (ACAS) also found a bene ft I for carotid surgery in asymptomatic patients
with severe ICA stenosis [403].
In the NASCET study, the risk of stroke correlated highly *ith the degree of ICA
stenosis in all patients with transient monocular blindness, transient hemispheral
ischemic attacks, and minor strokes 1396.3981, Table 14 shows that the hazard rates
for ipsilateral strokes in patients with severe ICA stenosis (>70% luminal
narrowing) in patients with first-ever retinal and hemispheric TIAs treated
medically increase proportionally with the severity of stenosis 1398). Nicolaides
et at. analyzed patients with transient ischemic attacks and minor strokes who had
good recovery for the presence of CT scan infarcts (Table 15) 1404J. In all groups
studied, patients wilh severe stenosis and occlusion had more frequent brain
infarcts [403]. The presence of "sileni infarcts'* on MRl [405] and even the size
of brain infarcis [406] have been shown to depend on the severity of ICA stenosis
in the neck. The severity of intracranial arterial stenosis has also
Table 14 Hazard Rate Estimates at 24 Months for Development of Ipsilateral Strokes
in Patients with First-Ever Transient Retinal and Hemispheric TIAs Studied in the
NASCET Trial'
% ICA luminal narrowing Retinal TIA (n = 59) Hemisphcral TIA (n = 70)
75% ICA stenosis 85% ICA stenosis 95% ICA stenosis U.2 17.8 28.9 37.4 60 96.3

T able 15 CT Sean Infarcts on lhe Symptomatic Side in Patients with TIAs and Minor
Strokes
Transitu Transient Minor strokes
monocular hetni spheral with Ood
blindness attacks recovery
Duplex
scan
ICA

stenosis grade
n CT infarct n CI infarct n CT infarct
Normal 16 3 (19%) 8 (24%) 41 24 (59%)
1-14% stenosis 23 3 (13%) u 10(29%) 40 21 (52%)
15-49% stenosis 10 1 (10%) 15 5 (33%) 21 11 (52%)
50-99% stenosis 21 9 (43%) 21 10 148%) 26 17 (65%)
Occlusion 9 5 (56%) 6 3 (50%) 7 6 (86%)

Soune: Ref. 404.


been shown to correlate highly with severity of stenosis (407-4091. When stenosis
is severe, the altered physical characteristics of blood flow strongly facilitate
thrombus formation within the lumen, and thromboembolism develops.
Some patients with lesser degrees of arterial stenosis do develop intra-arterial
embolism. Most often these emboli are white clots that cause transient ischemia or
minor strokesa phenomenon that Miller Fisher calls ACME (acceptible minor
embolism). The morphological characteristics of plaques from specimens removed at
end arte recto my correlate with symptoms 1410]. Some features of plaques as they
appear on B-mode images of the cervical arteries, their degree of surface
irregularity, helerogenieily. and echogenicity are helpful in predicting the
likelihood of related stroke. Echolueem plaques are rich in lipids and are
associated with elevated levels of triglyceride-rich lipoproteins [4I1.412J. Soft,
heterogeneous plaques with irregular surfaces are more often associated with
symptoms than are calcined, dense plaques with regular surfaces 1412,4131,
Distribution of Arterial Lesions
There are important racial and sex differences in the distribution of
arteriosclerotic occlusive lesions [414-417J. In white men. the predominant
cerebrovascular occlusive lesions are in the carotid and vertebral arteries in the
neck. Blacks, individuals of Asian origin, and women more often have occlusive
lesions in the large intracranial arteries and their main hranches, and less often
have severe occlusive vascular lesions in the neck. White men who have carotid
artery disease als hav high frequenc f coexistin d occlusiv lowe

FIG. 31 Diagrammatic representation of ihe cervieoeranial arteries showing the


predilection sues for atherosclerotic narrowing in while men. The black areas
represent atherosclerotic plaques. Drawn by Dr Juan Sanchez Ramos. AC A. anterior
cerebral artery; MCA, middle cerebral artery; PCA, posterior cerebral artery; ICA.
internal carotid artery; CCA. common carotid artery. (From Ref. 75.)
women. Figure 31 shows the predilection sites for atheromatous plaques in while
men. Within the anterior circulation, the most frequent and most important
occlusiv lesio i whit i withi th ICA i th neck Atheroscleroti lesion

FIG. 32 Drawing nf a Mai nod specimen nf the carotid arteries. The double black
arrows point lo the How divider between the internal and external carotid arteries.
The single arrow shows a protruding plaque in a characteristic location along the
posterior wall of Ihe internal carotid artery opposite the How divider. (From Ref.
75.)
artery (EC A) [362,389390], Figure 32 illustrates this localization of plaque.
Atherosclerotic plaques grow in diameter and often spread rostrally within the
CCA, the proximal ICA. and EC As, The next most common atherosclerotic lesions in
white men are found within the intracranial ICA in the proximal intracranial
portion of the artery, called the carotid siphon because of its S shape, and within
the proximal portions of the middle cerebral arteries (MCAs). These lesions all
produce symptoms by causing hypoperfusion of supplied brain territories or by
embolism of fragments of clots lhat form upon the vascular endothelium of plaques
or of particles of the plaques themselves. Women, blacks, and Asians often develop
occlusive lesions within the MCAs and their branches. ICA siphon and neck lesions
are less often found. Black s, Asians, and women who develop occlusiv k lesion
usuall smok d hav importan coexistin atheroscle subclavian artery. The next most
common lesion is within the basilar artery. White men with occlusive extracranial
vertebral artery (EC'VA i disease also have a high frequency of coexisting carotid
artery disease [41.362,418.4191, as well as hypertension and hypercholesterolemia.
Intracranial lesions are also very common both in white men and in women, blacks,
and Asians. The predominant lesions are wiihin the intracranial vertebral arteries
(ICVAs), Atherosclerotic lesions within the ICVAs are often bilateral.
Atherosclerotic lesions involving the posterior cerebral arteries are more common
in women, blacks, and Asians |4t \. The predominant mechanism of brain ischemia
within the posterior circulation, as within the anterior circulation, is embolism
141,420,421]. Intra-arte rial embolism is just as common and important a mechanism
of stroke within the vertebrobasilar arterial \\ stem as it is within the carotid
artery system.
Arterial dissections most often involve the pharyngeal portions of the
extracranial carotid and vertebral arteries [41,751. The pharyngeal portions of
the neck arteries are relatively mobile, while the origins of the arteries and
their penetrations into the cranial cavity are relatively anchored and much less
mobile. Tearing seems to occur in portions of arteries which are flexible and
stretch with motion. Within the ECVAs, the most common site of dissection is the
most distal portion of the artery which emerges from the intervertebral foramina
and courses around the atlas to penetrate the dura mater and enter the foramen
magnum |392.422|. Dissections also occur in the mobile part of the proximal portion
ol lhe ECVAs above the origin of the arteries from the subclavian arteries but
before the arteries enter the vertebral column al the intervertebral foramen of the
sixth or fifth cervical vertebrae 141 J.
Intracranial dissections are much less common than extracranial dissections. In
the anterior circulation, dissections most often affect lhe intracranial ICA and
extend into the middle and anterior cerebral arteries. Within the posterior
circulation the commonest site is the intracranial vertebral artery 1422,423J,
Dissections within the ICVAs often spread into the basilar artery. Occasionally
the basilar artery is the primary site of dissection [4221, Dissecting aneurysms as
well as large saccular and dolicocephalic fusiform aneurysms can serve as a source
of thrombus formation with subsequent distal embolization.
EVALUATION OF POTENTIAL DONOR SOURCES OF EMBOLISM
//; patients suspected of having brain embolic events, we believe that a thorough
evaluation of ail potential sourcescardiac, aortic, and cerebrovascularis
heart disease, and their et nonary disease is often a more serious threat for
mortality and disability than their cerebrovascular disease. Also, of course,
patients with coronary atherosclerotic heart disease have a high frequency of
occlusive lesions within their extracranial and intracranial vascular beds.
Prophylactic treatment to prevent subsequent thromboembolism should optimally
consider measures to prevent embolism fi'om all potential donor sources, not only
the one that caused the present embolism.
All patterns should have a thorough history concerning cardiac symptomatology
followed by a careful physical examination of the chest and heart. An
electrocardiogram and chest x-ray should ordinarily also be performed. Most
patients with severe heart disease have abnormalities uncovered by these routine
clinical procedures. A TTE including Doppler insonation and the injection of
microbubblcs searching for intracardiac shunts is ordinarily indicated. Some
patients, especially youths and young adults, who have a we!l-delined vascular
donor source of embolism such as a cervical dissection, will not need
echocardiography because the yield of echocardiography is so low.
TTE is usually performed hist, and the results may be definitive and thus a TEE
would not be required. All observers agree that TEE shows many abnormalities not
revealed by TTE. The utility of TEE in patients with strokes and TIAs has recently
been extensively reviewed [424429]. TEE is more accurate than TTE in showing
atrial and ventricular thrombi and in detecting and quantifying intracardiac
shunts, and it more often shows spontaneous echo contrast than TTE 1426J.
Even TEE can fail to identify some cardiac sources of emboli. Some thromboemboli
are loo small to be delected. An embolus thai is i to 2 mm in size can produce a
devastating neurological deficit, and ihis size particle might be beyond the
resolution of echocardiography. The other major reason for failure is that
thrombosis and embolism are dynamic processes. When a thrombus leaves the heart to
go to the brain, echocardiography may not show a thrombus within the heart if
performed soon after the clinical event. Later the thrombus may reform. Figure 33
shows an example of a disappearing cardiac thrombus. In this patient the initial
TEE clearly showed a large intracardiac mass, hut a repeat TEE showed that the mass
was gone [289J.
TEE also yields important information about the proximal aorta, a region noi imaged
by TTE, Figures 34 and 35 show aortic plaques detected by TEE. We believe thai TEE
is important in all patients in whom TTE suggests but does not adequately define
the cardiac pathology, and in all patients in whom other studies (cerebrovascular,
hematologic, and other cardiac investigations) do not satisfactoril sho th f brai
embolis d brai ischemia A

Fig. 33 Transesophageal echocardiograms showing a disappearing thrombus. (A) The


thrombus is clearh seen wiihin the left ventricle (curved black arrow). (B) Repeat
TEE shows that the previous lesion is gone. (From Ref. 289.)
MiB-fiRCH

MID-APCH
Fig. 35 Trimoesophageal echocardiogram through the midaortie arch showing an
irregular relatively Mat plaque (small white arrows).
intracranial arteries. MRA provides a good image of the extracranial carotid
arteries but can overestimate the severity of the stenosis 1434-436). When
stenosis is severe there is often a gap in the images, indicating a severe
impediment to flow but not allowing accurate quantification of the severity of the
stenosis or the presence of thrombi. MRA of the intracranial anterior circulation
arteries is a good screening test for occlusion or severe stenosis of the major
arterial branches of the intracranial TCAs [437-4381. Regions of tortuosity within
the ICA siphon often are not imaged well and MRA does not show distal branch artery
occlusions. When Ihe ICA is occluded in the neck, there may be too little flow to
provide good images of the intracranial carotid artery and its major branches,
although often these vessels arc well tilled by collaterals.
MRA can also be used to screen for occlusive lesions within the vertebrobasilar
circulation [41,439.4401. Unfortunately, ihe origins of the vertebral arteries
from ihe subcaKian arteries are difficult to image unless a proximal view of the
aortic arch arteries is included in the imaging. The extracranial and intracranial
vertebral arterie imaged usin differen views k d head images. Care must be taken
to ensure that the entire vertebra] artery is seen. The basilar and posterior
cerebral arteries are well imaged using MRA [411.
In some centers that have the capability of echoplaner imaging, diffusion-weighted
MR images and perfusion images taken alter the intravenous infusion of contrast
agent can yield important information about regions of brain ischemia and perfusion
[441t442]. Comparing the findings on diffusion-weighted scans with those on T2-
weighted images shows tissue that is stunned and ischemic but not yet infarcted.
Matching perfusion images with those that show brain ischemia can detect areas that
are underperfused but not yet ischemic [442 J. The presence or absence of
intracranial occlusions as shown by MRA coupled with information about brain
ischemia and perfusion can help determine appropriate therapy. All of the MR
testing can be performed using one machine in one sitting, and the time needed is
not prohibitive (probably about 30 min using newer scanners).
The extracranial and intracranial arteries also can be accurately imaged by CTA
[443.444]. This technique employs rapid filming using a spiral (helical) CT scanner
after the intravenous injection of a dye load. Re formating of the CT images yields
good reconstructions of the extracranial and intracranial vessels. The CT source
films can be reviewed quickly to detect arterial occlusions, but time is needed to
reproduce reformated arterial images, CT scans of the brain are also acquired, so
both brain and vascular images are created using the same technology and at one
sitting. CTA is accurate in showing large-artery occlusions, severe stenosis, and
aneurysmal changes in both the anterior and posterior circulations [443.444 j.
Ultrasound capabilities have dramatically improved and are now an integral part of
the evaluation of patienls with brain embolism. Ultrasound has the advantages of
being portable, noninvasive, and relatively inexpensive when compared to MR and CT,
and ultrasound can be readily repeated sequentially to study the effects of
spontaneous or therapeutic thrombolysis. Radionuclide testing including gated
blood pool imaging (multigated acquisition IMUGAJ scans) also may be helpful in
selected patients, as might other cardiac imaging techniques [4301. Platelet
scintigraphy is sometimes helpful in defining the presence of cardiac thrombi |
431J.
The aorta is an importanl potential source of embolism, especially during
angiography and cardiac surgery. Presently TEE is the only effective established
way to image the aorta for plaques and thrombi. The ascending aorta can be
insonated using a Duplex ultrasound probe placed in the right supraclavicular
fossa, and the arch and proximal descending thoracic aorta can be imaged using a
left supraclavicular probe [4321. The results so far are preliminary bui promising
Mos plaque located i th f th h fro th distal
The extracranial and intracranial arteries should be studied to define potential
jikTi.ll Joimi sources ol embolism and/or Lo provide information about blockage of
rciptent arteries by emboli. The four most common and effective means of studying
the brachiocephalic arteries are by magnetic resonance angiography {MRA). computed
tomographic angiography (CTA). ultrasound, and cerebral catheter dye angiography.
Brain imaging should always accompany the vascular studies to show the location,
seventy, and distribution of related brain ischemia.
Probably, optimal information is provided by thorough magnetic resonance imaging.
MR! scans of the brain, including liuid-attenuated inversion recovery < FLAIR)
images 1433 J and T and T-weighted images, show the extent of brain
r
infarction and adequately show hemorrhages and reperfusion. In some centers
ultrasound equipment is available at the bedside and can be used by examining
physicians as an extension of the physical examination of the arteries. At present
Doppler ultrasound is available in almost all intensive-care units to follow blood
How in various peripheral arteries. Duplex scanning (combined B-mode and multigated
pulsed Doppler) is used to image the extracranial carotid and vertebral arteries.
Both Duplex scans and CW Doppler give accurate information about the ICA in the
neck [435.445.446].
Figure 36 is an artist's drawing of ihe ! hidings I nun a B -modc ultrasound of a
patient with an atherosclerotic plaque that extends from the common carotid artery
along the posterior wall of the internal carotid artery. Figures 37 and 38
illustrate the capabilities of B-mode ultrasound in detecting and showing the
location, size, and configuration of carotid artery plaques. Color-flow Doppler
imaging is probably even more effective in grading the severity of ICA stenosis
and depicts flow abnormalities and regions of turbulence [445-4491. The innominate,
subclavian, and . ertebra I arteries can also he siudied usuii? Ihiples and
color-How ultrasound [41,445,450,451 J. Ultrasound of the carotid and vertebral
arteries is also useful in suggesting dissections [451,453]. Figure 39 is a
composite B-mode ultrasound picture that shows the extracranial arteries quite
well. Figure 40 shows Doppler spectra from a patient with severe stenosis of the
internal carotid artery, illustrating the utility of Doppler in quant dating
stenosis.
Transcranial Doppler ultrasound (TCD) yields very important information about flow
in the intracranial arteries [41.445.454J. TCD was discussed earlier in this
chapter in the section on imaging recipient arteries. I CD has four main
capabilities: (1) Detection of occlusive intracranial arterial lesions that could
serve as a donor source of intrarterial embolism to distal branches of the stenotic
artery. The intracranial ICAs. MCAs, ICVAs. basilar artery, and the posterior
cerebral arterie (PCAs) th majo potential dono emboli (2) As

(b)
FIG. 36 Drawing from a B-mode ultrasound of the right internal carotid artery in a
patient wilh an atherosclerotic plaque, (a) Echo (B-mode ultrasound) scan of the
neck showing the plaque (white arrows), (b) Diagram of the scan showing the
distribution of the plaque. The plaque begins in the common carotid artery and
extends along the posterior wall of the internal carotid artery. Drawn by Dr. Juan
Sanchez-Ramos. With permission. CCA. common carotid artery; ICA, internal carotid
artery; ECA, external carotid arterv. (Courtesy of Caplan LR. Stein R\V. Stroke, a
Clinical Approach. Boston; Butlerworths, 1986.)
emboli to recipient intracranial arteries. (4) Emboli monitoring 116-21.78], TCD
machines are portable and insonation can be repealed .sequentially or can be used
as a continuous monitor as is often done during surgery or other procedures.
Angiography of the extracranial and intracranial arteries is still important.
Angiograph i performed i patient (1) i who noninvasiv vascula

Fig. 37 Three-dimensional reconstruction of B-mode ultrasound slum ing the


configuration, size, and extent of a plaque. (From Rcf. 75.)
thrombolysis and/or angioplasty); and (3) in patients in whom noninvasive testing
has not shown a donor source of embolism but an arterial source is suspected.
Guidelines for the use of angiography in patients wilh brain ischemia have been
published 174J. Figures 41 and 42 show thrombi within arteries detected only by
angiography.
Hematological studies are also important in the evaluation of patients suspected
of having brain embolism. Why does a patient with a chronic lesion such aorti
protrudin atheroma atrial fibrillation ICA stenosi develo

FlG. 38 Transverse sections through various types of plaques showing the si/e an J
shape of ihe residual lumina. The plaque on ihe upper righl has an iniramural
hemorrhage. (From Ret'. 75.)

R i 2 W

FIG. 41 Carotid angiogram. Lateral view. A large thrombus (black arrow) is seen
within the proximal internal carotid artery. (From Ref. 75.)
teract to explain the thromboembolic event. A variety of different conditions
activate the coagulation s\siem. Coexisting infection, cancer, dehydration,
congenital or acquired hypercoagulability (for example, in patients with
resistance to activated protein C), trauma, all can cause activation of the
coagulation cascade, which in the presence of a suitable lesion can lead to
thrombus formation and embolism.
Two studies of hematological factors in patients with cardiogenic embolism should
illustrate this point. Yasaka et al. detected eight intracardiac thrombi among 30
patients who had acute cardiac-origin embolism 1456]. Enlargement of the cardiac
thrombus was shown in four patients, and embolism recurred in three Antithrombi 111
level lo admissio i patient wh late devel

FlG. 42 Vertebral artery angiogram. Towns view. There is a thrombus (black arrow)
within an aneurysm of lhe intracranial vertebral artery. (From Ref. 75.)
hours of stroke among 22 patients with cardiac-origin embolism and 25 age-matched
controls f457]. The levels of antithrombin III, protein C, and alpha-2 plasmin
inhibitor were significantly lower in embolic stroke palients than in con trols.
The plasma concentrations of thrombin-antithrombin III complex and crosslinked D-
dimer were much higher in stroke patients than controls, indicating some degree of
consumptive coagulopathy in patients with cardiac-origin embolism [457J.
Coagulation studies should be an integral part of the evaluation of patients with
suspected brain embolism and those with potential sources of embolism who have not
yet had clinical events.
NONTHROMBOTIC EMBOLI
Some embolic materials that enter the systemic and brain circulations do not
originate in the heart, aorta, or cervicocranial arteries and are not composed of
blood elements or thrombi. The types of particles are diverse, as are the clinical
syndrome d circumstance f brai embolization Thes f emboli
syndrome, while tumor and foreign body emboli usually block single discrete
arteries, causing stroke syndromes.
Fat Embolism
Fat embolism occurs most often after serious trauma lhat causes bone fractures. The
long bones and pelvis are most frequently involved, especially the femurs; often
there are multiple fractures resulting from vehicular accidents 1458-4621.
Occasionally the fat embolism syndrome develops after cardiac surgery when the
atria or ventricles are entered 1463,464J and in patients with sickle cell anemia
(homozygous S-S or S-C disease) [465-468J. In sickle cell disease patients, the fat
originates from bone and bone marrow infarcts. The exact mechanism of fal embolism
after open heart surgery is unclear, but fat from sternotomy or the epicardium may
directly enter the systemic circulation [464J. Other disorders thai produce damage
lo bone marrow can occasionally give rise to fat embolism. One report described a
patienl with an aggressive lymphoma involving bone who died with massive fat
embolism to the brain, lungs, and other viscera [468a].
There are two main hypotheses of the pathogenesis of the fat embolism syndrome;
these are usually referred to as the mechanical and h iodic ETI teal theories.
According to the mechanical theory, the sources of fal are the bone marrow and
other loci where fat is stored 1462.469.470J. Bone or deposits of adipose tissue
are injured and fat globules enter damaged blood vessels at the area of injury.
Increase in local tissue pressure related lo the trauma promotes fat entry into the
intravascular compartment. According to the biochemical theory, intravascular fal
is derived from lipid mobilized from fat deposits in the body. Catecholamine
release, loss of chylomicra emulsion stability, and olher biochemical periurbaiions
thai resuh from trauma and a variety of acute illnesses promote the formation and
mobilization ol' fal globules.
Fat that embolizes to the lunes is converted metabolically to free fativ acids by
pulmonary lipases. Free fatty acids are toxic to the lungs and damage capillaries
and small arterioles and veins, causing lung edema, hemorrhage, and atelectasis
14621. Thromboplastin is also released after local tissue injury and induces
platelet aggregation on injured surfaces and on fat globules, enhancing
thromboembolism. Fat within the lungs enters pulmonary veins and passes through
the left side of the heart into the systemic circulation. Some experimental
evidence suggests lhal fat can ira\e! through lymphalic duds to enter ihe lungs
(471 |. In some cases, fal traverses a patent foramen ovale to enter the systemic
circulation 1472.4731. The two mechanisms, mechanical and biochemical, may in fact
coexist d interact Fa firs mechanicall int th vascula i relatio
The fat embolism syndrome usually develop after a delay of a few hours up to a lew
days alter trauma hi one series of 14 palients. all of whom had traumatic injuries
with long-bone fractures, the latency of onset of signs of fat embolism after
trauma ranged from 12 to 72 hours (mean 41 hours) 1461 J. At times the clinical
manifestations of fat embolism can be delayed for as long as 5 days 1462]. Most
patients have symptom onset between 24 and 72 hours after injury.
The major clinical manifestations of the fat embolism syndrome are confusion with
delirium often followed by a decrease in the level of consciousness, dyspnea,
tachypnea, fever, and tachycardia. Neurological symptoms and signs arc present in
>8t)c/r of patients. Most often patients develop an encephalopathy characterized by
restlessness, agitation, confusion, poor memory, and decreased alertness. This
stale often passes into stupor or coma. Seizures are common at onset or early in
the course of illness. Seizures can be focal or generalized. Focal neurological
signs are also common and include hemiparesis, conjugate eye deviation to one
side, aphasia, and visual held abnormalities, Motor abnormalities including
increased tone in the lower extremities. Babinski signs, and decerebrate rigidity
are often found. Focal neurological signs were noted in 33*7r of patients in one
series [462]. Some patients have scotomas and other visual abnormalities related to
retinal dysfunction caused by fat embolism.
Pulmonary symptoms usually develop shortly after or concurrent with the
neurological symptoms. Dyspnea and tachypnea are prominent and patienls may become
cyanotic. Tachycardia, high fever, and circulatory collapse also occur; hypotension
is often related lo blood loss, hypoxemia, and hypovolemia. Renal failure can
develop.
An important clue to the presence of fat microemboli is the presence on physical
examination of petechiae, Pelechiaeare found in 50*5r to 75% of patients with the
fat embolism syndrome. They are most often found in the lower palpebral
conjunctivae and the skin of the neck, shoulder, and the axillary folds [459.4fiOJ.
Another important clinical clue is the appearance of fat emboli within the arteries
of the eye. Microtnfarcts are sometimes visible in the optic fuitdus. especially in
the peri macular regions. Small hemorrhages, sometimes with white pale centers, are
also found. Fat globules can sometimes be seen within retinal arteries [4591,
Papilledema is occasionally found. In one series. 1 1 of 24 (467r) patients with
fat embolism had abnormalities of the ocular funduscopic examination [459J.
Laboratory tests are also often helpful in diagnosis, Many patients develop
abnormal chest \-ru\s. Fine stippling and fluffy lung infiltrates are common and
are seen diffusely through both lung fields. Most palients have a drop in
hemoglobin and hematocrit due to traumatic loss of blood and hemolysis.
Thrombocytothe urine when fat stains are LL^L'LI. [II UIIC series nine of 19
(.47y'; i patients had free fat in the urine, six of whom had ljpuria within the
first 4S hours after trauma [459}, Skin, renal, and muscle biopsies may show fat
globules within small skin, muscle, and renal vessels and in renal glomeruli.
Cryostnl fro/en sections of blood also can show the presence of neutral fal; in one
scries neutral fat was most often found in patients with hypoxemia and PaCO: of <60
mm Hg [460]. Hypoxemia is very common in patients with the fat embolism syndrome.
Probably the most effective and specilie test for fat embolism is bronchopulmonary
lavage [474,4751. The technique involves microscopic examination of cells recovered
by lavage and stained with a specific stain for neutral fat e.g., using oil red O
dye. In one series, the five patients who had definite clinical evidence of the fat
embolism syndrome all had very positive results from bronchopulmonary lavage |
4741- Staining of bronchoalvcolar eel Is in these five palients showed large
intracellular fat droplets; the mean percentage of cells thai contained fat
droplets was 63% with a range of 31% to 82% 1474]. Trauma patients who did not
have signs of the fal embolism syndrome had <2l;i of cells that contained fat
f474|.
The mortality rate in patients with ihe fat embolism syndrome is quite high (as
much as 50%), although it has declined over time [460.461 ], When coma, severe
blood loss, hypotension, high fever, and DIC are present, the mortality rate
remains substantial. Necropsy of the brain of patients dying with the fat embolism
syndrome shows many small ball, ring, and perivascular hemorrhages; brain edema:
and regions of microinfarction 1476J. Stains for fat reveal fat globules within
hemorrhagic lesions and in small vessels throughout the brain [4761. Small
hemorrhages, edema, and hyaline membranes are often found in the lungs [46 11. Pal
globules are also often visible in renal glomeruli, myocardium, liver, pancreas,
spleen, and gastrointestinal mucosa.
Treatment of patients with the fal embolism syndrome has not been formally studied
in therapeutic trials. Supportive care including oxygen administration often with
assisted respiration and fluid and blood replacement is very important.
Corticosteroids, heparin, and intravenous administration of 5% alcohol solutions
have all been used but their effectiveness has not been well studied 1459]. Heparin
has been used in patients with consumptive coagulopathies and also because of its
putative lipolytic effect. Alcohol is also believed to have a lipolytic capability.
Among these treatments, corticosteroid administration has been most frequently
used.
Air Embolism
heart, lungs, sinuses, neck, brain, and axilla offer opportunities for air to enter
the circulation 1477 I. Venous and arterial catheterization and cardiopulmonary
bypass are common causes of air embolism [477aJ. The topic of embolism after
cardiac procedures and surgeries will be discussed in Chapters 4 and 5. Less often,
air embolism follows penetrating traumatic injuries to the thorax, lungs, or major
blood vessels. Another circumstance that leads to air embolism is in relation to
scuba diving and rapid ascents after descents into deep water 14781,
Air bubbles in an artery supplying the brain cause an immediate but transient
block in blood flow. Air quickly moves through the capillary bed into the venules
and dissipates [477J. The gas bubbles cause arterial vasoconstriction followed by
dilatation and stasis of blood flow [477J.
During diving accidents, air becomes trapped in the alveoli of the lungs due to
partial bronchial occlusion from mucous plugs and failure to exhale. Because the
volume of a gas varies inversely with pressure (Boyle's law), pressurized air
bubbles in the lungs increase dramatically in volume as the diver ascends and the
ambient pressure around him falls L477J. The rapid expansion in the lungs causes
entry of air into the pulmonary arterial and venous outflow systems [478], Gas
bubbles pass through the lung vasculature or through a patent foramen ovale into
the systemic circulation. Similar to the situation in fat embolism, many small
particles enter the circulation and block the micro vasculature.
Symptoms and signs of brain ^as cm ho I ism have been studied most thoroughly in
individuals who have had diving-related incidents 1478J. These occur during scuba
diving and have been well studied in naval personnel who escape too quickly Irom
submerged submarines 14781. Loss of consciousness often develops suddenly after the
individual emerges onto the surface of the water. Dizziness, chest discomfort,
paresthesias, weakness, blurred vision, nausea, and headache are also common
symptoms reported and may precede the loss of consciousness. Seizures and focal
neurological signs, especially related to dysfunction of the brainstem and
cerebellum, are also quite common [4781. In several patients, discrete focal
collections of gas were seen in the brain on cranial CT examination I477a,4791.
Brain edema with com press ion of the ventricular system is another common and
important finding on brain imaging examinations, Treatment has usually consisted of
inhalation of 100% oxygen as well as the use of hyperbaric recompression chambers.
Tumor Embolism
Occasionally major arteries supplying the brain are occluded by tumor emboli.
tumor. Although most often the clinical syndrome is thai of a stroke, embolism to
other systemic organs also occurs. Tumor emboli also can pass through a patent
foramen ovale or other cardiac septal defect. Passage through a patent dilated
foramen ovale was documented in one patient with metastatic adenocarcinoma and bone
metastases [473J, After a surgical intramedullary fixation of both femurs, the
patient did not awaken from surgery and remained comatose and died. At necropsy,
the patient had a patent foramen ovale and an embolus consisting of tumor cells
admixed with bone marrow in the left middle cerebral artery and a large fatal
infarct in the territory of the left middle cerebral artery [4731. Tumor emboli
have also been reported in patients with thyroid and other neck cancers which have
caused their effects by eroding into the neck vasculature 1481 J,
Foreign Body Embolism
Occasionally foreign bodies enter the systemic vascular system and emboli/c lo the
brain. Kase and colleagues described the case of a patient who came 1O ihe
emergency room because of shotgun blast wounds to the ihorax and abdomen 1482]. At
thoracotomy, four smalt bullet wounds in the left ventricle were repaired.
Initially he was alert and neurological screening examination was normal, but
postoperatively he developed severe hypotension followed by cardiac arrest.
External cardiac massage was initiated. After resuscitation he was comatose and had
a severe hemiplegia. CT showed a I- to 2-mm piece of shotgun pellet and a large
middle cerebral artery Icrritory infarct (Fig. 43). Angiography showed lhat there
were two small shotgun pellets occluding the distal intracranial internal carotid
artery and another fragment occluded the middle cerebral artery (Fig. 44) [482].
This case illustrates the small si/e of panicles lhat can block a major
intracranial artery, leading lo devastating neurological delicits.

Langenbach et al described the case of a 52-year-old man in whom a small metal


particle penetrated his right neck while hammering |4X3|. He soon developed a
severe left hemiplegia. Plain skull fi 1ms showed a 2 x 7 mm metal-dense particle
to the right of the pituitary fossa. CT showed a large right middle cerebral artery
territory infarct, and angiography showed that the metal fragment was blocking the
middle cerebral artery 1483].
North and colleagues reported the ease of a U year-old boy who was noted to have a
severe right hemiplegia, right hemianopia, and right hemisensory loss detected
immediately after awakening from surgical repair of a prosthetic heart valve 1484J.
CT showed a foreign body within the head and infarction of the left midbrain,
thalamus, and temporal and occipital lobes in the distribution of the left
posterior cerebral artery. He died after hemorrhage into the region of infarction.
Necropsy showed that the foreign body within the proximal left posterior cerebral
artery was a fragment of valve with surrounding Jibrosis [484].
Retinal and brain arteries can become blocked by foreign particles in palients who
mash drugs manufactured for oral use and inject the drugs intravenously [485-4881-
The particles consist of talc and methylcellulose. which are used to bind drugs to
maintain them in pill form. The particles first block lung vessels. Pulmonary
vascular obliteration causes pulmonary hypertension, and arteriovenous shuniiug
develops in the lungs, allowing the particles to enter the pulmonary veins and then
the systemic circulation [485,486J. Talc and cornstarch emboli can be seen in the
retinal arteries of some of these drug abusers |487|. Strokes have also been
described in patients who have injected drugs directly into neck arteries
[488,489[. Foreign bodies that embolize to the brain must either enter the lungs
and pulmonary veins, enter or arise from the left side of the heart itself, enter
the right side of the heart and traverse a defect in the cardiac septum, or
penetrate the cervicocranial arteries thai supply the brain.
TREATMENT OF PATIENTS WITH BRAIN EMBOLISM
The therapeutics of brain embolism can be divided into two main aspectsacute
treatment of die embolic event, and prophylaxis to prevent further
thromboembolism. Of course it is most important to prevent the hist embolism.
Prophylaxis of patients with atrial fibrillation using anticoagulants and
prophylaxis of patients wilh cardiac valve disease using appropriate antibiotic
treatment are very important and effective measures lhat should prevent many
embolic events.
Acute Treatment of the Embolic Event
Ihe goals '>1 [reahiiL'nl are mitumi/alion of the bram ischemic injury caused by
the embolus, and reperfusion. Necropsy and experimental studies have begun to
dissect the cellular mechanisms and causes of brain cell death in relation to
ischemic injuries [4901, Clinicians have now begun to give drugs in an effort to
make the brain more resistant to ischemia. This type of therapy is usually called
neuroprotective treatment. Neuroprotective therapy attempts to ameliorate the
cellular metabolic consequences of ischemic injury 14911931. In ischemic brain,
calcium moves into cells via calcium-conducting channels, and excilotoxic amino
acids, free oxygen radicals, and leukocytes attracted to the ischemic zone promote
cytotoxic injury to neurons |49()|. Alterations in growth factors and gene
expression also contribute to programmed cell death. Knowledge of the mechanisms
of cell injury have led to the development of many neuroprotective agents now in
various stages of development and trials. These agents have very diverse posited
modes of action and strategies for neuronal protection (491 -493]. Table 16 lists
these substances. Physicians hope that these agents can mitigate ischemic
TABLE 16 Neuroprotective Agents
1.
Voltage-sensitive calcium channel antagonists (e.g., nimodipine, darodipine,
llunarazine)

2.
Noncompetitive N-methyl-D-aspartate (NMDA) receptor antagonists (e.g.,
dextromethorphan, eliprodil. ccrcstat. remaeemide)

3.
Competitive NMDA antagonists (e.g.. selfoiel)

4.
Calcium channel modulators (e.g.. eliprodil, ACEA-1021)

5.
Antioxidants (e.g., tirilazad a 21-aminosteroid, superoxide dysmutasc)

6.
AJpha-amino-3-hydroxy-5-metliyI-4-isoxazole propionic acid (AMPA) and kainate
receptor antagonists (e.g., NBQX, YM90K)

7.
Presynaptic gamma aminobtityrie acid (GABA) inhibitors (e.g., fo.sphenytoin)

8.
Gumma-arninobuiyric Acid receptor agonists (e.g., chlomelhiazole)

9.
Presynaptic modulation of glutamate release (e.g., riluzole)

10.
Adenosine analogs (e.g., propentofylline)

11.
Calpain antagonists {e.g., AK 275)

12.
Polypeptide growth factors te.g.. basic fibroblast growth factor [hFGF]) 13
Antiadhcsion molecules (e.g. antibodies against ICAM-1 CDI lb/18)

damage aEid delay neuronal death long enough to allow reperfusion. These agents are
in various development and trial stages. None has, as yet. been definitively shown
lo be effective in palients with brain ischemia.
Brain edema also is an early occurrence in patients with embolic strokes. The edema
allows recognition of ischemic tissue on diffusion-weigh ted MR scans 1441.442].
Ischemic edema can be intracellular (so-called cytotoxic edema, or dry edema) or
exist mostly in the extracellular spaces and connective tissue (vasogenic edema or
wet edema) 14941. Brain edema that lies in the interstices outside of cells might
be posited to respond to osmotic diuretics such as mannitol and glycerol, or to
corticosteroids. However, studies have shown that these agents arc not very
effective in series of stroke patients with large brain infarcts or hemorrhages.
Most edema is probably within cells and signals that the cells arc sick.
Restitution of the normal metabolic functions of these cells is likely lo be more
therapeutic than so-called anliedema agents. There are probably some patients,
mostly young patients in our experience, who quickly develop a great deal of
vasogenic, extracellular brain edema with the consequences of increased
intracranial pressure and displacement and herniations of brain compartments. In
these patients a therapeutic trial of osmotic agents and./or corticosteroids is
probably warranted since the situation is often desperate. In some patients with
massive brain swelling and increased intracranial pressure, removal of the skull
overlying the side of the infarct (hemicranieetomy) can be life-saving, but
patienls may be left with severe neurological residual deficits 162,63].
Surprisingly, some patients make extraordinary recoveries after hemicraniotomics
and survive with very little neurologic deficit.
The most important predictor of recovery from brain embolism is whether or nol
ischemic brain is reperfused, and how quickly. Reperfusion occurs when an occlusive
embolus passes, either spontaneously or after treatment; augmentation of perfusion
through collateral circulation to an ischemic region can also promote salvage of
tissue. We emphasized earlier in this chapter that many emboli pass spontaneously,
usually within the first 48 hours after the onset of neurological symptoms | I
5.22.23-27..^ I ]. Vascular studies [CTA. MRA, TCD) can determine the presence of
blockage of major intracranial and extracranial arteries by emboli. If the patient
is seen and evaluated soon after stroke onset and embolic occlusions are identified
by vascular studies, then an attempt at thrombolysis should be made unless there
are contraindications or the patient already has a major brain infarct
The timing of thrombolysis is important if brain tissue is to be saved. Time
brain. The large cooperative intravenous thrombolysis trial sponsored b th National
Institut f Neurological Disease d Strok (NINDS) limited very large study of the
effectiveness of intravenous thrombolysis, the European Cooperative Acute Stroke
Study (ECASS). all patients were treated within 6 hours [496J. However,
salvageability of ischemic brain tissue varies considerably from patient to
patient. After an embolic occlusion, there are three zones ol brain tissue supplied
by the recipient recently occluded artery. One zone, usually at the core center of
blood supply, soon becomes irreversibly damaged (infarcted). Brain regions at the
very periphery of supply often remain normal since they receive adequate blood
supply through adjacent collateral channels. Between these two zones lies brain
tissue that is in a state somewhere between in farcied and normal. This tissue has
inadequate blood supply to function but is not irreversibly damaged. This state
has been called "'stunned brain,*1 or penumbra! tissue. In farcied brain tissue
contains ceils that are dead and blood vessels that may have also been damaged by
ischemia. The major danger of thrombolysis land of spontaneous reperfusion) is that
reperfusion of these damaged vessels in ihe infarcted zone can cause major bleeding
into the ischemic brain tissue. This process has been discussed in the section of
this chapter on hemorrhagic infarction. Ideally the decision on whether to pursue
thrombolysis should rest not on the time that has expired since symptom onset but
instead on the presence of viable penumbra) tissue that can be salvaged and the
extent of brain that is already infarcted,
The extent of infarction determines the risk of treatment; the presence and size of
penumbral, stunned tissue determines the potential bencht of thrombolysis lhat
accomplishes rcperfusion. The newer magnetic resonance techniques of diffusion-
weighted and perfusion MR scans performed with echo planer equipment, when coupled
wilh MRA, should be able lo give clinicians a quantitative estimate of these
factors 14-41.442]. Alternatively, clinicians estimate Ihe extent of normal,
infarcted. and stunned brain supplied by ihe occluded artery by using brain
imaging (CT and Ti-weighted MRl scans), vascular studies (CTA, MRA, TCD,
angiography), and the neurological examination. If the patient has a severe
neurological deficit and a large infarct is present on brain scans, then much of
the brain is infarcted and there is little to gain by thrombolysis, which carries a
substantial risk of hemorrhage in this circumstance. However, if the patient has a
severe neurological deficit and brain scans are normal, then there could be
considerable stunned, salvageable brain which could be restored to function if
thrombolysis is successful.
Thrombolytic dings can be given either intravenously or intraarterial!). Each has
advantages and disadvantages 14971. Intravenous therapy can be given quickly and
needs no special training to administer. The amount of drug thai reache larg
obstructed arterie is however limited tha intra-arterial infu nipulate ihe clot, a
process that facilitates thrombolysis, and can perform angioplasty at the same
sitting if necessary [498-5001. Usually, less drug is used during intra-arteriat
therapy and the rate of hemorrhagic complications is lower than with intravenous
therapy [497J.
There are now considerable data from reports of patients treated with either
intravenous or intraarterial therapy after their occlusive lesions have been shown
by angiography 1497,501,5021. Embolic occlusions respond better than thrombi formed
locally in vessels that have severe aiherostenosis. Freshly formed thromboemboli
lyse more often than older clots. Thrombi that block the extracranial or
intracranial ICA do not respond to intravenous thrombolysis. An especially
important and common situation is thrombosis of the ICA. which has caused
neurological deficit by an embolus breaking off from the neck thrombus and
embolizing inlracraniully to the middle cerebral artery (MCA). Intravenous
thrombolysis in this situation is ineffective because the drug does not reach the
MCA clot because of proximal obstruction. An interventionalist may be able to pass
a catheter through the clot in the neck, then manipulate the catheter to and within
the MCA clot to deliver the thrombolytic drug into ihe MCA eloi. After lysing the
intracranial clot, the catheter can he maneuvered back into the neck in order to
lyse the neck clot and. if needed, perform an angioplasty with stenting of the
atherostenotic ICA disease. MCA branch occlusions seem to lyse best with
intravenous therapy.
To date, very few patients with basilar artery thrombocmboli have been studied
after intravenous thrombolysis [497,502J. but inira-artcrial therapy of patients
with basilar artery occlusion is often effective, especially if the occlusion is
embolic [503,504]. The most commonly used thrombolytic drugs for stroke patients
are recombinant tissue plasminogen activator (rt-PA) and urokinase. Streptokinase
has had an unacceptable rale of bleeding complications when used for stroke [502J.
Ancrod, a substance derived from the purified protein fraction of venom from the
Malayan pit viper, has detihri no lytic capabilities and has sometimes been given
intravenously in acute stroke patients in order to lyse thrombi [505,5061,
Heparin is also often prescribed as a treatment for palients with acute
thromboembolism. The posited purpose of heparinization is lo prevent propagation
of thrombi and brcakoff of the tail of existing thrombi and so prevent
embolization. As far as is known, heparin does not actually lyse existing thrombi,
although cardiac clots often disappear during heparin treatment. The decision
whether or not to prescribe heparin acutely to prevent lhe next thromboembolic
stroke depends on weighing the risk of acute re embolization vs. the risk of
hemorrhag related hepari therapy I patient with lesion with high f annulus
calcification, heparin can he withheld during the acute period. If the patient has
a large brain infarct then the risk of brain hemorrhage after heparin is higher
than when there is no brain infarct or a small brain infarct. Heparin is often used
after thrombolysis to maintain arterial patency.
Chronic Prophylactic Treatment to Prevent Reembolization
Once a cookie has been stolen from the jar, there is always a threat of a second
and third cookie theft. Almost immediately physicians caring for patients with
brain embolism must think of preventing the next embolus. The three strategies used
for prophylaxis are (I) removal of the donor source of embolism when possible, (2)
modification of risk factors lhat relate lo disease al the donor site, and (3)
modification of coagulation functions to prevent the formation of thromboembolic
Some donor site lesions can be corrected or at le;M ameliorated surgically or by
using interventional radiologic techniques. Cardiac \alve lesions, cardiac tumors,
atrial septal defects, patent foramen ovales, and protruding mobile large aortic
atheromas can be treated surgically. Newer interventional techniques may now or in
the near future permit interventional percutaneous treatment of patent foramen
ovale and aortic atheromas. Caroiid and vertebral artery lesions can be corrected
surgically (endarterectomy) 141,75,396,397.403J or by angioplasty, sometimes with
stenting. Many patients with cardiac, aortic, and cerebrovascular donor site
lesions have modifiable risk factors such as smoking, hypcrlipidemia,
hypertension, inactive sedentary life style, obesity, etc. Counseling and medical
treatment of these risk factors is a very important part of ihe care of patients
with brain embolism,
Manipulation of coagulation to prevent future ihromboemboli is a strategy
applicable lo the great majority of patients with brain embolism. Embolic
particles are diverse. White platelet thrombi, red erythrocyte-fibrin thrombi,
cholesterol crystals, calcified particles from arteries and valves, myxomatous
tissue, bacteria in patients with infective endocarditis, bland fibrous vegetations
in palients with noninfective endocarditis, and fat in patients with bone
fractures are the most important substances. Medical prophylactic treatment against
reentry of these particles into the circulation depends very much on the k"stuff*'
in the emboli ralher than the source of the materials I22.507J. lis the bird rather
than the nest lhat is important 1507], For example, ihe mosi effective prophylaxis
for prevention of embolization in patients with bacterial endocarditis is effective
antibiotic sterilization of the bacterial vegetations. Cholesterol crystal,
calcific particle bacterial vegetation d myxomatou emboli d not fa i known lion,
and secretion such as aspirin, tietopidine, clopidogrel, dipyridamole, omega3 lish
oils. etc. White platelet-fibrin thrombi are posited to form on irregular surfaces
in fast-moving bloodstreams in widely patent arteries and cavities. Red
Btythrocyte-fibrin thrombi, on the other hand, tend to form in regions of stasis,
such as leg veins, dilated cardiac atria, severely stenotic arteries, etc. At times
both white and red thrombi coexist since activated platelets are a stimulus for
activation of the coagulation cascade and subsequent red clot formation.
We choose anticoagulant treatment for prophylaxis, first with heparin or low-
molecular-weight heparin and then with Coumadin, in patients who have lesions that
promote red clot formation and in patients whose imaging studies show thrombi. We
continue Coumadin as long as the situation that promotes red clots persistsfor
example, persistent atrial fibrillation, myocardial aneurysm, prosthetic valves,
stenotic extracranial arteries. In patients with acute occlusive thrombi
superimposed on preocclusive atheroslenosis. we continue Coumadin only for a short
lime (6 to 12 weeks), during which thrombi organize and no longer propagate or form
fresh tails that embolize. During this time, collateral circulation has usually
become maximal. Sometimes lesions that caused the original thrombosis later
improve (e.g., arterial dissections, regressing atheromas, or corrected cardiac
right-to-left shunts), so anticoagulation can be stopped and replaced with
antiplatelet drugs.
We prescribe agents that alter platelet functions for patients with lesions posited
to predispose to formation of white platelet-tibrin thrombi, and for patients with
thrombocytosis. Irregular, nonstenosing atherosclerotic plaques, and irregular but
nonstcnotic valve surfaces are the commonest situations. In patients that tolerate
aspirin, we usually prescribe 325 to 650 mg of coated aspirin daily. Smaller doses
sometimes do not produce sufficient alterations in platelet function when tested in
vitro 1508). The ability of aspirin to mainiain its effect on platelet function
sometimes diminishes with time and can be monitored in vitro [509], High tihrinogen
levels increase whole blood viscosity, increase platelet aggregability, and
predispose to red clot formation. Increased fibrinogen levels are a risk factor for
stroke and myocardial infarction 15101, Reducing serum fibrinogen levels might also
help prevent thromboembolism, Omega-3 oils, ticlopidine, clopidogrel 15111,
atromid, and pentoxiphylline are all posited to have an effect in lowering scrum
fibrinogen levels and can be prescribed with antiplatelet aggregants or
anticoagulants. In some situations in which both red and white clots are likely to
form, a combination of platelet antiaggregants and Coumadin might be more effective
than either agent alone,
3.
Hunter J. Observations on the inflammation of the internal coats of veins. Trans
Sue Improve Med Chirurg Knowledge 1793: 1:18-29.

4.
Cruveilher J. Anatomic Pathologique du Corps Humain. Vol. L. Paris. 1829; Chap.
11. p. 7.

5.
Virchow R. liber die akut enlzundung der arterien. Virchows Arch Pathol Anal 1847:
1:272-378.

6- Herriek JB. Clinical features of sudden obstruction of the coronary ailcricv


JAMA 1912; 59:2015-2020.
7.
Blumgart HL. Sehlesinger MJ, Davis D. Studies on the relation nTdie clinical
manifestations of angina pectoris, coronary thrombosis, and myocardial infarction
to die pathological findings. Am Heart J 1940; 19:1-9.

8.
Chiari H. Uhcrdas verhallen du teilungswinkels der carotid communis bei der end*
arteritis chronica deformans. Verhandl Deulsch Pathol Gesellseh 1905; 9:326

330.

9.
Osier W. The Principles and Practice of Medicine. 5th ed. New York: D. Appleton
and Co.. 1903:1008-1009.

10.
Fisher CM. Occlusion of the internal carotid artery. Arch Neurol 1951; 65:346
377.

11.
Millikan C, Adams RD. Pang II, et al. A classification and outline of
cerebrovascular diseases. Neurology 1958: 8:395-434.

12.
Aring CD. Merrill HH. Differential diagnosis between cerebral hemorrhage and
cerebral thrombosis. Arch Intern Med 1935: 56:435-456.

13.
Whisnant JP. Fit/gibbons JP, Kurland LT. et al. Natural history of stroke in
Rochester, Minnesota. 1945 through 1954. Stroke 1971: 2:11-22.

14.
Matsumoto N, Whisnant JP. Kurland LT. et al. Natural history of stroke in
Rochester. Minnesota, 1955 through 1969: an extension of previous study 1945
through 1954. Stroke 1973; 4:20-29.

15.
Mohr JP. Caplan LR. Melski JW, el al. The Harvard Cooperative Siroke Registry: a
propeclive registry. Neurology 1978: 28:754-762.

16.
Markus HS. Transcranial Doppler detection of circulating cerebral emboli, a
review. Stroke 1993: 24:1246-1250.

17.
Markus HS. Harrison MJ, Microembolic signal detection using ultrasound. Stroke
1995; 26:1517-1519.

18.
Tong DC, Albers GW. Transcranial Doppler-detected microemboli in patients with
acute stroke. Stroke IW ; 26:1588 1592.

19.
Sliwka U. Job F-P. Wissuwa D, el al. Occurrence of transcranial Doppler high-
intensity transient signals in palients with potential cardiac sources of embolism,
[i prospective study. Stroke 1995; 26:2067-2070.

20.
Daffertshofer M, Ries S. Schminke U, Hennerici M. High-intensity transient signals
in patients with cerebral ischemia. Stroke 1996: 27:1844-1849.

21.
Sliwka U. Lingnau A, Stohlmann W-D. et at Prevalence and time course of
microembolic signals in patients with acute strokes, a prospective study. Stroke
1997:

24.
Dalai P. Shah P. Shcih S, ct al. Cerebral embolism: angiographic observations on
spontaneous elot lysis. Lancet 1965: 1:61-64.

25.
Liebeski K \. Chinichiaji A, Seheehler M. The moving embolus seen during cerebral
angiography. Stroke 1971; 2:440-443.

26.
Fisher CM, Adams RD. Observations on brain embolism with special reference to the
mechanism of hemorrhagic infarction. J Neuropathul Exp Neurol 1951: 10:92

94.

27.
Fisher CM. Adams RD. Observations on brain embolism with special reference Lo
hemorrhagic infarction. In: Furlan AJ, ed. The Heart and Stroke. London: Springcr-
Verlag, 1987:17-36.

28.
Yamaguehi T, Mine mats a K, Choki JI, Ikeda M. Clinical and neuroradiological
analysis of thrombotic and embolic cerebral infarction. Jpn Cire 1984: 48:50-58.

29.
Okada Y. Yamaguehi T. Minemalsu K. ct al. Hemorrhagic transformation in cerebral
embolism. Stroke 1989; 20:598-603.

30.
Pessin MS. Estol C. Lafranchise F, Caplan LR- Safely of anticoagulation after
hemorrhagic infarction. Neurology 1993; 43:1298-1303.

31.
Chaves CJ. Pessin MS. Caplan LR, et al. Cerebellar hemorrhagic infarction. Neurol
ogy 1996;46:346-349.

32.
Garcia J, Ho K-L, Caccamo DV. Intracerebral hemorrhage: pathology of selected
topics. In: Kase CS. Caplan LR. eds. Intracerebral Hemorrhage. Boston: Butter-
worth- Heinemann, 1994:45-72.

33.
Einhaupl KM. Villringer A, Meister W. el al. Heparin treatment in sinus venous
thrombosis. Lancet 1991; 338:597-600.

34.
Caplan LR. Venous and dural sinus thrombosis. In: Caplan LR. ed. Posterior
Circulation Ischemia: Clinical Findings, Diagnosis, and Management. Boston: Black
well Science. 1996:569-592.

35.
Caplan LR. Hier DB. D'Cruz I. Cerebral embolism in the Michael Reese Stroke
Registry. Stroke 1983: 14:530-536.

36.
Bogousslavsky J. van Melle G. Regli F. The Lausanne Stroke Registry: Analysis of
1000 consecutive patients with first stroke Stroke 1988; 19:1083-1092,

37.
Gacs G. Merer FT. Bodosi M. Balloon catheter as a model of cerebral emboli in
humans. Stroke 1982; 13:39-42,

38.
Helgason C. Cardioembolic stroke topography and pathogenesis. Cerebrovasc Brain
Metab Rev 1992; 4:28-58.

39.
Caplan LR. Top of the basilar syndrome: selected clinical aspects. Neurology 1980;
30:72-79.
40.
Mehler MF. The rostral basilar anery syndrome: diagnosis, etiology, prognosis.
Neurology 1989; 39:9-16.

41.
Caplan LR, Posterior Circulation Disease. Clinical Findings. Diagnosis, and
Management. Boston. Blackwetl Science. 1996.

42.
Bogousslavsky J. Cachin C. Regli F. et al. Cardiac sources of embolism and
cerebral infarction. Clinical consequences and vascular concomitants. Neurology
1991;

44.
Hart RG. Easton JD. Hemorrhagic infarcts. Stroke 1986: 17:586-589,

45.
Timsit SG, Sacco RL. Mohr JP, et al. Brain infarction severity differs according
to eardiai: or arterial embolic source. Neurology 1993: 43:728-733.

46.
Bladin CF. Seizures alter stroke. MD thesis. University of Melbourne, Australia,
1997.

47.
Fiesehi C, Argenlino C. Lenzi G, et al. Clinical and instrumental evaluation of
patients with ischemic stroke within the first six hours. J Neurol Sei 1989; 91:31
1

322.

48.
del Zoppo GJ, Poeck K, Pessin MS, et al. Recombinant tissue plasminogen activator
in acute thrombotic and embolic stroke. Ann Neurol 1992: 32:78-86.

49.
Kushner MJ. Zanettc EM, Bastianclio S- et al. Transcranial Doppler in acute
hemispheric brain infarction. Ann Neurol 1991: 41:109-113.

50.
Mohr JP. Gautier JC. Hier DB, Stein RW. Middle cerebral artery, in: Barnett HJM,
Mohr JP, Stein BM, Yatsu FM, ed.s. Stroke, Pathophysiology, Diagnosis, and
Management. New York: Churchill-Livingstone. Vol. L 1986:377-450.

5L Minematsu K, Yamaguehi T. Omae T. 'Spectacular shrinking deficit': rapid


recovery from a major hemispheric syndrome by migration of an embolus. Neurology
1992: 42:157-162.
52.
Caplan LR. TIAsWc need to return to die question. What is wrong with Mr Jones?
Neurology 1988; 38:791-793.

53.
Caplan LR. Are terms such as completed stroke or RIND of continued usefulness?
Stroke 1983; 14:431-433.

54.
Caplan LR. Terms describing brain ischemia h\ tempo are no longer useful: a
polemic (with apologies to Shakespeare). Surg Neurol 1993; 40:91-95.

55.
Marler J. Price TR. Clark GL. et al. Morning increase in onset of ischemic stroke.
Stroke 1989: 20:473-476.

56.
Kittner SJ. Sharkness CM. Price TR. el al. Infarcts with a cardiac source of
embolism in the NINCDS Stroke Data Bank: historical features. Neurology 1990; 40:
281-284.

57.
Ringelstein HB, Kosehorke S. Hoi ling A, et al. Computed tomographic patterns of
proven embolic brain infarctions. Ann Neurol 1989: 26:759-765.

58.
Foulkes MA, Wolf PA. Price TR. Mohr JP. Hier DB. The Stroke Data Bank: design,
methods, and baseline characteristics. Stroke 1988; 19:547-554.

59.
Goretick PB, Hier DB. Caplan LR. Lungenberg P. Headache in acme cerebrovascular
disease. Neurology 1986: 36:1445-1450.

60.
Timsit SG, Saeco RL. Mohr JP. el al. Early clinical differentiation of cerebral
infarction from severe atherosclerotic stenosis and cardioembolism. Stroke 1992:
23: 486-491.

61.
Hems-van Raak HPM. Seizures following a tirst cerebral infarct. Risk factors and
prognosis. Thesis, Rtjksuniversiteit Limberg. Maastricht. Netherlands. 1996.

62.
Delashaw .IB. Broaddus WC, Kassell NF. et al. Treatment of right hemisphere
cerebral infarction by hem (craniectomy. Stroke 1990: 21:874-881.

65. Chaves CJL Caplan LR, Chung C-S, Amarenco P. Cerebellar infarcts. In: Appel
S, ed. Current Neurology. Vol. 14. St Louis: Mosby-Ycar Book, 1994:143
177.
66.
Chaves CJ. Caplan LR, Chung C-S, et al. Cerebellar infarcts in the New England
Medical Center Posterior Circulation Stroke Registry Neurology 1994: 44: ] 1390.

67.
Mohr JP., Pessin M.S. Posterior cerebral artery disease. In: Bamett HJM, Mohr JP,
Stein BM. Yatsu FM. eds. Stroke Pathophysiology. Diagnosis, and Management. 2d cd.
New York: Churchill-Livingstone, 1992:419-442.

68.
Caplan LR. Posterior cerebral artery. In: Bogousslavsky J. Caplan LR, eds. Stroke
Syndromes. New York: Cambridge University Press, 1995:290-299.

69.
Henon II. Godefroy O. Leys D. et al. Early predictors of death and disability
after acute cerebral ischemic event. Stroke 1995; 26:392-398.

70.
Tom sick TA, Brott TG. Olinger CP, et al. Hypcrden.se middle cerebral artery:
incidence and quantitative significance. Neuroradiology 1989; 31:312-315.

71.
Moulin T, Caitin H. Crepin-Leblond T. et al. Early CT signs in acute middle
cerebral artery infarction: predictive value for subsequent infarct location and
outcome. Neurology 19%; 47:366-375.

72.
Ai genii no C. De Michele M. Fiord 11 M. et j1. Posterior circulation infarcts
simulating anterior circulation stroke. Perspective of the acute phase. Stroke
1996; 27: 1306-1309.

73.
Hacke W, Kaste M. Fieschi C, et al. Intravenous thrombolysis with recombinant
tissue plasminogen activator for acute hemispheric stroke. The European
Cooperative Acute Stroke Study lECASS), JAMA 1995: 274:1017-1025.

74.
Caplan LR, Wolpert SM. Angiography in patients with occlusive cerebrovascular
disease: a stroke neurologist and a neuroradiologist's views. AJNR 1991; 12:593

601.

75.
Caplan LR. Stroke, a clinical approach. 2d ed. Boston: Butterworth-Henemann, 1993.

76.
Von Reutern G-M. von Budingen H-J. Ultrasound diagnosis of cerebrovascular
disease. Georg Thieme Verlag. Stuttgart. 1993.

77.
Caplan LR. Allam GJ. Teal PA. The moving embolus. J Neuroimag 1993; 3:195

197.

78.
Georgiadis D. Lindner A, Manz M. et al. Intracranial microembolic signals in 500
patients with potential cardiac or carotid embolic source and in normal controls.
Stroke 1997; 28:1203-1207.

79.
Virchow R. Gesammelle abhandlungen zur wissenschaftlichenmedtezin. Frankfurt:
Meidinger Sohn, 1856:219-732.

80.
Hanna JP. Furlan AJ. Cardiac disease and embolic sources. In: Caplan LR, ed. Brain
Ischemia. London: Springer-Verlag. 1995:299-315.

81.
Baumgartner HR. Haudenschild C. Adhesion of platelets to subendothelium. Ann NY
Acad Sci 1972: 201:22-36.

imracardiovascular cloning in patients with chronic atrial fibrillation. J Am Coll


Cardiol 1990; 16:377-380,
84.
Wolf PA, Abbott RD. Kannel WB. Atrial fibrillation: a major contribution to stroke
in the elderly. The Framingham Study. Arch Intern Med 1987: 147:1561 1564.

85.
Cairns JA, Connolly SJ. Nonrheumalic atrial fibrillation. Risk of stroke and role
of antithrombotic therapy. Circulation 1991: 84:469-481.

86.
Wolf PA, Dawber TR, Thomas HE. Kannel WB. Epidemiologic assessment of chronic
atrial fib rill at ion and risk of stroke. The Framingham Study. Neurology 1978:
28:973-977.

87.
Tanaka II. Ilayashi M. Date C. Imai K. Asada M. Shoji H. Okazaki Y, Yamamoto

H. Yoshikawa K. Shimada T, Lee SI. Epidemiologic studies of stroke hi Shibata, a


Japanese provincial city: preliminary report on risk factors for cerebral
infarction. Stroke 1985: 16:773-780.

88.
Onundarsen PT. Thurgeirsson G. Jonmundsson E, Sigfusson N. Hardason T. Chronic
atrial fibrillationepidemiologic features and 14 year follow-up: a case control
study. Eur Heart J 1987: 8:521-527.

89.
Flegel KM, Shipley MJ, Rose G. Risk of stroke in nonrheumalic atrial fibrillation.
Lancet 1987; 1:526-529.

9n. Dunn V1J. Alexander R, DeSilva F, Hildner P. Antithrombotic therapy in


atrial fibrillation. Chest 1989; 95:118S-127S.
91.
Stroke Prevention in Atrial Fibrillation Investigators. Predictors of
thromboembolism in atrial fibrillation: I. Clinical features of patient at risk.
Ann Intern Med 1992; 116:1-5.

92.
Atrial Fibrillation Investigators. Risk factors for stroke and efficacy of
antithrombotic therapy in atrial fibrillation: analysis of pooled data from five
randomized controlled trials. Arch Intern Med 1994: 154:1449-1457.

93.
Caplan LR, D'Cruz I. Hier DB, Reddy H. Shah S. Atrial size, atrial fibrillation,
and stroke. Ann Neurol 1986: 19:158-161.

94.
Stroke Prevention in Atrial Fibrillation Investigators. Predictors of
thromboembolism in atrial fibrillation- II echocardiographies features of patients
at risk. Ann Intern Med 1992: 116:6-12.

95.
DiPasquale G. Urbinati S. Pinelli G. New echocardiography markers of embolic risk
in atrial fibrillation. Cerebrovasc Dis 1995; 5:315-322.

1 hc Black 1W, Hopkins A P. IJCC LCL. Walsh WF. F valuation of transesophageal


echocardiography before card inversion of atrial fibrillation and flutter in
nonanticoagulated palients. Am Heart J 1993: 126:375-381.
97.
Vernhorst P. Kamp O. Visser CA. Verheughl FWA. Left atrial appendage How velocity
assessment using transesophageal echocardiography in nonrheumatic atrial
fihrillation and systemic embolism. Am J Cardiol 1993; 71:192-196.

98.
Garcia-Fernandez MA, Torrecilla EG. San Roman D, et al. Left atrial appendage
Doppler flow patterns: implications of thrombus formation. Am Heart J 1992; 124:

with nonrhcumatic atrial fibrillation: identification of a subgroup of patients at


in
creased embolic risk. J Am Coll Cardiol 1994; 23:599-607.
100. Buston Area Anticoagulation Trial for Atrial Fibrillation Investigators. The
clTeci
of low-dose warfarin on the risk of stroke in palients with nonrhcumatic atrial fi

brillation. N Engl J Med 1990; 323:1505-1511.


101. Beppu S. Nimura Y, Sakakibara H. Smoke-like echo in the left atrial cavity in

mitral valve disease: ii> features and significance. J Am Coll Cardiol 1985; 6:744

749.
102. Merino A, Hauptman P, Badiman L, etal. Echocardiography smoke' is produced
by an interaction of erythrocytes and plasma proteins modulated by shear forces.
J Am Coll Cardiol 1992; 20:1661-1668.
103. Black IW. Stewart WJ. The role of echocardiography in the evaluation of
cardiac
sources of embolism. Echocardiography 1993: 10:429-439.
104. De Belder MA. Lovat LB, Tourikis L. Leech G, Camm A. Left atrial spontaneous

contrast echoesmarkers of thromboembolic risk in patients w iill atrial


fibrillation.
Eur Heart J 1993; 14:326-335.
105. Black IW. Hopkins AP. Lee LCL. et al. Left atrial spontaneous echo contrast:
a
clinical and echocardiographic analysis. J Am Coll Cardiol 1991: 18:398A.
106. Tsai LM, Chen JH, Fang CJ, Lin LJ. Kwan CM. Clinical implications of left
atrial
spontaneous echo contrasi in noiirheumatic atrial fibrillation. Am J Cardiol 1992;

70:327-331.
107. Leung DY, Black rw, Cranney GB, Hopkins AP, Walsh WF. Prognostic imptica*
tions of left atrial spontaneous echo contrast in nonvalvular atrial fibrillation.
J Am
Coll Cardiol 1994; 24:755-762.
108. Chimowitz MI. DeGeorgiu MA, Poole RM. Hepner A. Armstrong W'F. Left atrial
spontaneous echo contrast is highly associated with previous su-oke in patienls
with
atrial fibrillation or mitral stenosis. Stroke 1993: 24:1015-1019.
109. Miller VT, Pearce LA. Feinberg WM, et al. Differential effect of aspirin
versus
warfarin on clinical stroke types in palients with atrial fibrillation. Neurology
1996:
46:238-240.
110 FAIT Study Group. Silent brain infarction in nonrhcumatic atrial fibrillation.
Neu
rology 1996; 46:159-165.
111. Bogousslavsky J. Van Melle G. Regli F. Kappenherger L Pathogenesis of
anterior
circulation stroke in patients with nonvalvular atrial fibrillation: the Lausanne
Stroke Registry. Neurology 1990; 40:1046-1050.
112. Petersen P, Godtfredsen J, Boysen G, el al. Placebo-controlled, randomized
trial of warfarin and aspirin for prevention of thromboembolic complications in
chronic atrial fibrillation: the Copenhagen AFASAK study. Lancet 1989; 1:175
179.
113. Stroke Prevention in Atrial Fibrillation Investigators. The stroke prevention
in atrial
fibrillation study: final results. Circulation 1991; 84:527-539.
114. EAFT (European Atrial Fibrillation Trial I Study Group. Secondary prevention
in

prevention of thromboembolism in atrial fibrillation: Stroke Prevention in Atrial


Fibrillation II Study. Lancet 1994: 343:687-691.
116. Stroke Prevention in Atrial Fibrillation Investigators. Adjusted-dose
warfarin versus low-intensity, fixed-dose warfarin plus aspirin for high-risk
patients with atrial fibrillation. Stroke Prevention in Atrial Fibrillation III
randomised clinical trial. Lancet 1996; 348:633-638.
I 17. Stroke Prevention in Atrial Fibril kit ion Investigators. Prospective
identification of patients with nonvalvular atrial fibrillation al low risk of
stroke during treatment with aspirin: Stroke Prevention in Atrial Fibrillation III
Study. Circulation 1997; 96(suppl 1:1-281. Abstract.
118. Connolly SJ. Laupacis A, Gent M. Canadian atrial fibrillation
anticoagulation (CAFA) study. J Am Coll Cardiol 1991: 18:349-355.
J19. European Atrial Fibrillation Trial Study Group. Optimal oral anticoagulation
therapy in patients with nonrheumalic atrial fibrillation and recent cerebral
ischemia. N Engl J Med 1995: 333:5-10.
120.
Albers G. Atrial fibrillation and stroke. Three new studies, three remaining
questions. Arch Intern Med 1994: 154:1443-1448.

121.
Koudstaal PJ. Anticoagulation in very elderly patients (>80 years) with stroke and
atrial fibrillation. Ccrebrovasc Dis 1995: 5:8 9.

122.
Bjerkelund CJ, Orning OM, The efficacy of anticoagulant therapy in preventing
embolism related to D.C. electrical conversion of atrial fibrillation. Am J Cardiol
1969; 23:208-216.

123.
Roy D, Marchand E. Gagnc P. Chabot M. Carrier R. Usefulness of anticoagulant
therapy in the prevention of embolic complications of atrial fibrillation. Am Heart
J 1986: 112:1039-1043.

124.
Gersh BJ, Gottdiener .IS Shadown on the cave wall: the role of transesophageal
echocardiography in atrial fibrillation. Ann Intern Med 1995: 123:882-884.

125.
Stoddard MF. Dawkins PR. Prince CR, Ammash NM. Left atrial appendage thrombus is
not uncommon in patients with acute atrial fibrillation and a recent embolic event:
a transesophageal echocardiography study. J Am Coll Cardiol 1995: 25: 452-459,

126.
Fatkin D. Kuchar DL, Thornburn CW. Fenely MP. Transesophageal echocardiography
before and during direct current cardioversion of atrial fibrillation: evidence for
"atrial stunning'" as a mechanism of thromboembolic complications. J Am Coll
Cardiol 1994: 23:307-316.
127.
Fairfax A J, Lambert CD. Leatham A. Systemic embolism in chronic sinoatrial
disorder. N Engl J Med 1976; 295:190-192.

128.
Rubenslein JJ. Schulman CL, Yurchak PM. et al. Clinical spectrum of the sick sinus
syndrome. Circulation 1972: 46:5-13.

129.
Orencia AJ. Hammill SC*. Whisnant J P. Snuis node dysfunction and ischemic

stroke. Heart Dis Stroke 1994; 3:91-94. 1 ^i, Lown B. Electrical reversion of
cardiac arrythmias. Br Heart J 1967; 29:469-489.
monitoring in patients with transient and focal ischemic attacks of the brain.
Stroke
1986; 17:192-195.
133. Slang I K. Seitz K, Wirtzfeld A, All E. Blomer H. Differences between atrial
single
chamber pacing lAAIi and vcinricular single chamber pacing (VVI) with respect
to prognosis and antiarrhythmic effect in patients with sick sinus syndrome. Pacing

Clin Eleelrophysiol 1990; 13:2080-2085.


134. Rosenqvisi M. Brandt J, Schuller H. Long-term pacing in sinus node disease:
effects
of stimulation mode on cardiovascular morbidity and mortality. Am Mean J 1988:
116:16-22.
135. Radford DJ. Julian DG. Sick sinus syndrome. Experience of a cardiac pacemaker

clinic. Br Med J 1974; 3:504-507.


136. Rosenqvisi M, Vail in Ed hag O. Clinical and electrophysiologic course of
sinus
node disease: live year follow-up study. Am Heart J 1985: 109:513-522.
137. Bathen J. Span S. Rokseth R. Embolism in sinoatrial disease. Acta Med Stand
1978; 203:7-11.
138. Cerebral embolism task force. Cardiogenic brain embolism. Arch Neurol 1986;
43:
71-84,
139. Stein PD. Sabbah HN. Turbuleni flow in the ascending aorta of humans with
normal
and diseased aonic leaflets. Circ Res 1976; 39:58-65.
140. Stein PD. Sabbah HN. Measured turbulence and its effect on thrombus
formation.
Circ Res 1974: 35:608-614.
141. Macagno CO, Hung TK. Computational and experimental sludy of a captive annu
lar eddy. J Fluid Mech 1967; 28:43-64.
142. Stein PD. Sabbah HN, Pitha JV. Continuing disease process ol calcific aortic
steno
sis. Am J Cardiol 1977: 39:159- 163.
143. Harris AW. Levine SA. Cerebral embolism in mitral stenosis. Ann Intern Med
1941; 15:637-643.
144. Friedbeig C. Diseases of the Heart, 3d ed. Philadelphia: W.B, Saunders. 1966.

145. Szekely P. Systemic embolism and anticoagulant prophylaxis in rheumatic heart

disease. Br Med J 1964; 1:1209-1212.


146. Keen G, Leveaux VM. Prognosis of cerebral embolism in rheumatic heart
disease.
Br Med J 1958; 2:91-92.
147. Coulshcd N, Epstein EJ. McKendrick CS, et al. Systemic embolism in mitral
valve
disease. Br Med J 1970; 32:26-34.
148. Daley R. Mattingly TW, Holt CL. et al. Systemic arterial embolism in
rheumatic
heart disease. Am Heart J 1951; 42:566-581.
149. Fleming HA. Bailey SM. Mitral valve disease, systemic embolism and anticoagu

lants. Postgrad Med J 1971; 47:599-604.


150. Adams GF, Merrett JD. Hutchinson WM. Pollock AM. Cerebral embolism and
mitral stenosis: survival with and without anticoagulants. J Neurol Neurosurg Psy
chiatry 1974: 37:378-383.
151. Carter AB. The immediate treatment of cerebral embolism, Q J Med 1957; 26:

154, Goldman ME. Mora F, Guarino T. Fuster V, Mindich BP. Miiral valvuloplasty is
superior lo valve replace me in for preservation of left ventricular function: an
intraoperative two-dimensional echocardiographic study. J Am Coll Cardiol 1987:
10:568-575.
155. Edwards JE. On the etiology of calcific aortic stenosis. Circulation 1962;
26:817
818.
156- Pleet AB, Massey EW, V en grow ME. TJA, stroke, and the hicuspid aortic
valve. Neurology 1981; 31:1540- 1542.
157.
O'Donoghue ME, Dangond F, Burger A.l, et al. Spontaneous calcific embolization to
lhe supraclinoid internal carotid artery from a regurgitant bicuspid aortic valve.
Neurology 1993; 43:2715-2717.

158.
Shanmugam V, Chhablani R, Go re lick PB. Spontaneous calcific cerebral embolus.
Neurology 1997; 48:538-539.

159.
Rancurel G. Mare lie L. Vincent D. et al. Spontaneous c ale die cerebral embolus
from a calcific aortic stenosis in a middle cerebral artery infarct. Stroke 1989:
20: 691-693.

160.
Kapila A. Han R. Calcific cerebral emboli and aortic stenosis: detection of
computed tomography. Stroke 1986; 17:619-621.

161.
Soulie P. Caramanian M. Soulie J. Bader JL. Colcher E. Les embolics calcaires des
atteintcsoriticielles calcifeesdu coeurgauche. Arch Mai Coeur 1969:12:1657 1684.

162.
Holley KE, Bahn RC, McGoon DC, Mankin HT. Spontaneous calcific embolization
associated with calcific aortic stenosis. Circulation 1963: 27:197-202,

163.
Brockmcier LB. Adolph RJ. Gustin BW. ct al. Calcium emboli to the retinal artery
in calcific aortic stenosis. Am Heart J 1981: 101:32-37.

164.
Wilson LA, Warlow CP, Ross-Russell RW. Cardiovascular disease in palients with
retinal artery occlusion. Lancet 1979: 1:292-294.

165.
Holley KE. Bahn C. McGoon DC, Mankin HT, Calcific embolization associated with
valvulotomy for calcific aortic stenosis. Circulation 1963: 28:175-181.

166.
Klues HG, Maron BJ. Dollar AL. Roberts WC, Diversity of structural mitral valve
alterations in hypertrophic cardiomyopathy. Circulaiion 1992; 85:1651-1660.

167.
Hardarson T. De la Catzada CS, Curiel R, Goodwin JF, Prognosis and mortality of
hypertrophic obstructive cardiomyopathy. Lancet 1973: 2:1462-1467.

168.
Glancy DL. O'Brien KP. Gold HK. Epstein SE. Atrial fibrillation in patients with
idiopathic hypertrophic subaortic stenosis. Br Heart J 1970; 32:652- 659.

169.
Tajik AJ, Giuliani ER, Fryc RL, et al. Mitral valve and/or annulus calcification
associated with hypertrophic subaortic stenosis (1HSS). Circulation 1972; 16(suppl
II):228.

170.
Furlan AJ. Craciun AR, Raju NR. Hart N. Cerebrovascular complications associated
with idiopathic hypertrophic subaortic stenosis. Stroke 1984; 15:282

284.

171.
Barlow JB, Bosman CK. Aneurysmal protrusion of posterior leaflets of the mitral

Cerebrovascular and Cardiovascular Issues. London: Springer-Verlag, 1987:63


100.
173. Markiewicz W. Sioner J, London E. Hum SA. Popp RL. Milral valve prolapse
in one hundred presumably healthy young females. Circulation 1976; 53:464
473.
174. Cheitlin MD. Byrd RC. Prolapsed mitral valve: the commonest valve disease'.'
Curr
Prob Cardiol 1984; 8(10):3-53.
175. Ranganatham N, Silver MD, Robinson T, et al. Angiographic-morphologicaJ
corre
lation in palients with severe mitral regurgitation due lo prolapse of the
posterior
mitral valve leaflet. Circulation 1973; 48:514-518.
176. Kostuk WJ, Boughner DR. Barnett HJM, Silver MD. Strokes: a complication of
mitral-leaflet prolapse? Lancet 1977: 2:313-316.
177. Hanson MR. Conomy JP. Hodgman JR, Brain events associated with mitral valve
prolapse. Stroke 1980; 11:499-506.
178. Geyer SJ. Franzini DA. M> vomuiouo degeneration of the mitral valve
complicated
by nonbacterial thrombotic endocarditis with systemic embolization. Am J Clin
Pathol 1979; 72:489-492.
179. Levine RA. Stathogiannis E. Newell JB. Harrigan P, Weyman AE. Reconsideration

of echocardiographic standards for mitral valve prolapse. J Am Coll Cardiol 1988:


11:1010-1019.
180. Marks AR. Choong CY. Sanhlltpo AJ. Ferre M. Weyman AE. Identification of
high-risk and low-risk subgroups of patients with mitral-valve prolapse. N Engl J
Med 1989: 320:1031-1036.
IS I. Nishimnra RA. McGoon MD. Shub C. et al. Echocardiographically documented
mitral-valve prolapse: long term follow-up of 237 patients. N Engl J Med 1985:
313:1305-1309.
182. Wynne J. Mitral-valve prolapse. N Engl J Med 1986: 314:577-578.
183. Barnett HJM. Transient cerebral ischemia: pathogenesis, prognosis, and
manage
ment. Ann R Coll Phys Surg Can 1974; 7:153-173.
184. Barnett HJM, Jones MW. Boughner DR, Kostuk WJ. Cerebral ischemic events
associated with prolapsing mitral valve. Arch Neurol 1976; 33:777-782,
185. Barnett HJM. Boughner DR. Taylor DW. et al. Funher evidence relating mitral-
valve prolapse to cerebral ischemic events. N Engl J Med 1980; 302:139-144.
186. Barletta GA, Gagliardi R. Benvenuti L, Fantini F. Cerebral ischemic attacks
as a
complication of aortic and milral valve prolapse. Stroke 1985; 16:219-223.
187. Watson RT. TIA. stroke and mitral valve prolapse. Neurology 1979; 29:886
889.
188. Sandok BA, Giuliani ER. Cerebral ischemic events in paiienls with mitral
valve
prolapse Stroke 1982; 13:448-450.
189. Jones HR. Naggar CZ. Selijan MP. Downing 77,, Mitral valve prolapse and
cerebral
ischemic events. A comparison between a neurology population with stroke and a
cardiology population with mitral valve prolapse observed for five years. Stroke

168 Chapter 2
191. McKcoun EF. Dc scncctu: the FE Williams Lecture. J R Coll Physicians 1975:
10:
79.
192. Savage DD. Garrison RL Casielli WP, et al. Prevalence of submhral (annular)
cal
cium and its correlates in general population-based sample (the Framingham
Study). Am J Cardiol 1983; 51:1375-1378.
193. Korn D, DeSauetis R. Sell S. Massive calcification of the mitral valve, a
elinieo
pathologieal study of fourteen cases. N Engl J Med 1962; 267:900-909.
194. DeBono D, Warlow C. Mitral annulus calcification and cerebral or retinal
ischemia.
Lancet 1979; 2:383-385.
195. Benjamin EJ. Plehn JF. D'Agostino RB. et al. Mitral annular calcification and
the
risk of stroke in an elderly cohort. N Engl J Med 1992: 327:374-379.
196. Pomeranee A. Pathological and clinical study of calcification of the mitral
valve
ring. J Clin Pathol 1970; 23:354-36L
197. Fulkerson PK. Beaver BM. Auscon JC, Graver HL. Calcification of the mitral
annulusetiology, clinical associations, complications and therapy. Am J Med
1979: 66:967-977.
198. Ridolli RL. Mutch ins GM. Spontaneous calcific emboli from calcific mitral
annulus
fibrosus. Arch Pathol Lab Med 1976: 100:117-120.
199. Mouton P. Bioussc V, Crassard I. Bousson V. Bousser M-G. Ischemic stroke due

to calcific emboli from mitral valve annulus calcification. Stroke 1997; 28:2325
2326.
200. Stein JH, Soble JS. Thrombus associated with mitral valve calcification. A
possible
mechanism for embolic stroke. Stroke 1995: 26:1697-1699.
201. Vongpatanasin W, I lillis D. Lange RA. Prosthetic heart valves. N Engl J Med
1996;
335:407-416.
202. Edmunds LH Jr. Thromboembolic complications of current cardiac valvular pros
theses. Ann Thorac Surg 1982: 34:96-106.
203. Metzdorff MT. Grunkemeier GL, Pinson CW. Starr A. Thrombosis of mechanical
cardiac valves: a qualitative comparison of the silastic ball valve and the tilling

disc valve. J Am Coll Cardiol 1984; 4:50-53,


204. Barnhorst DA, Oxman HE, Connolly DC, ci al. I.ong-ierm follow-up of isolated

replacement of the aortic or milral valve with the Starr-Edwards prosthesis. Am J


Cardiol 1975; 35:228-233.
205. Dudezak R, Niessner H, Thaler E. et al. Plasma concentration of platelet-
specific
proteins and fibri no peptide A in patients with artificial heart valves.
Haemostasis
1980: 10:229-238.
206. Pumphrey CW. Dawes J, Elevation of pJasma-thromboglobuHn in patients with
prosthetic cardiac valves. Thromb Res 1981; 22:147-155.
207. Harker LA. Slichier SL Studies of platelet and fibrinogen kinetics in
patients with
prosthetic heart valves. N Engl J Med 1970: 283:1302-1305.
208. Edmunds LH. Thrombotic and bleeding complications of prosthetic heart valves.

Ann Thorac Surg 1987 : 44:430-445.

of thrombus formation after heart valve replacement wilh the Hancock bioprosth
esis. J Thorac Cardiovasc Surg 1980: 80:414-423.
211. Salgado ED, Furlan AJ. Conomy JP. Cardioembolie sources of stroke. In: Furlan

AJ. ed. The Heart and Stroke: Exploring Mutual Cerebrovascular and Cardiovascu
lar Issues. London: Springer-Verlag. 1987:47-61.
212. Cannegieter SC. Rosendaal FR, Briel E. Thromboembolic and bleeding complica
tions in patients with mechanical heart valve prostheses. Circulation 1994: 89:635

641.
213. Cohn LH. Mudge GM, Prattcr F, Collins JJ. Five to eight-year follow-up of
palients
undergoing porcine heart-valve replacement. N Engl J Med 1981. 304:258 262.
214. Braekken KS. Russell D. B rue her R. Svennevig J. Incidence and frequency of
cere
bral embolic .signals in patients with a similar bileaflet mechanical heart valve.

Stroke 1995; 26:1225-1230.


215. Sliwka U, Diehl RR, Meyer B, Schonhube F. Noth J. Transcranial Doppler 'high

intensity transient signals" in the acute phase and long-term follow-up of mechani

cal heart valve implantation. J Stroke Cerebrovasc Dis 1995: 5:139-146.


216. Georgiadis D, Grosset DG. Kelman AW. Faichney A. Lees KR. Incidence and
characteristics of intracranial microemboli signals in patients with different
types
of prosthetic cardiac valves. Stroke 1994; 25:587-592.
217. Georgiadis D, Preiss M, Lindner A, et al. Doppler microemboli signals in
children
with prosthetic cardiac valves. Stroke 1997; 28:1328-1329.
218. Kaps M, Hansen J. Weiher M. et al. Clinically silent microemboli in patients
with
artificial prosthetic aortic valves are predominantly gaseous and not solid. Stroke

1997; 28:322-325.
219. Wingerchuk DM. Kreeke KN. Fulgham JR. Multifocal brain MRl artifacts second
ary to embolic metal fragments. Neurology 1997; 49:1451-1453.
220. Heras M. Chesebro JH, Fuster V, et al. High risk of thromboemboli early idler

bioprosthetic cardiac valve replacement, J Am Coll Cardiol 1995: 25:1111-1119.


221. Turpie AGG, Gunstensen J, Hirsh J. Nelson H. Gent M, Randomised comparison
of two intensities of oral anticoagulant therapy after tissue heart valve
replacement.
Lancet 1988; 1:1242-1245,
222. Turpie AGG. Gent M. Laupacis A, et al. A comparison of aspirin with placebo
in
patients treated with warfarin after heart-valve replacement. N Engl J Med 1993:
329:524-529.
223. Sareli P, England MJ. Berk MR, et al. Maternal and fetal sequelae of
anticoagula
tion during pregnancy in palients with mechanical heart valve prostheses. Am J
Cardiol 1989: 63:1462-1465.
224. Hanania G, Thomas D, Michel PL. et al. Pregnancy and prosthetic heart valves:
a
French cooperative retrospective study of 155 cases. Eur Heart J 1994; 15:1651
1658.
224a. Altnian R, Rouvier J. Gurfinkel E. et al. Comparison of two levels of
anticoagulant
therapy in palients with substitute heart valves. J Thorac Cardiovasc Surg 1991:

224c. Horstkottc D. Schulte H, Bircks W. Strauer B. Unexpected findings concerning


thromboembolic complications and anticoagulation after complete 10 year follow up
of patients with St. Jude mechanical prostheses. J Mean Valve Dis 1993; 2:291
301. 224d, Acar J. Low-dose versus standard-dose anticoagulation for prosthetic
heart valves. Circulation 1995: 92:2360.
224e. Tiede D. Nishimura RAT Gastiueau I), el al. Modern management of prosthetic
valve anticoagulation. Mayo Clin Proc 1998; 73:665-680.
225.
Osier W. Gulsionian lectures on malignant endocarditis. Lancet 1SS5; 1:459-465.

226.
Jones HR, Siekert RG. Gcraei J. Neurologic manifestations of bacterial
endocarditis. Ann Intern Med 1969; 71:21-28.

227.
Salgado AV. Purl an AJ. Keys TF. Nichols TR, Beck G J. Neurologic complications of
endocarditis: a 12-year experience. Neurology 1989: 39:173-178.

228.
Han RG. Foster JW, Luther MF, Kanier MC. Suuke in infective endocarditis. Stroke
1990; 21:695-700.

229.
Kantcr MC. Hart RG. Neurologic complications of infective endocarditis. Neurology
1991: 41:1015-1020.

230.
Keyser DL. Biller J. Coffnian IX Adams HP. Neurologic complications of late
prosthetic valve endocarditis. Stroke 1990; 21:472-475.

231.
Matsushita K. Kuriyama Y. Sawada T, et al. Hemorrhagic and ischemic
cerebrovascular complications of active infective endocarditis of native valve.
Fur Neurol 1993: 33:267-274.
232.
Hart RG, Kagan-Hallet K. Joerns S. Mechanisms of intracranial hemorrhage in
infective endocarditis. Stroke 1987: 18:1048-1056.

233.
Masuda J. Yutani C. Waki R. et al. Histopathologic*! analysis of the mechanisms of
intracranial hemorrhage complicating infective endocarditis. Stroke 1992: 23: 843-
850.

234.
Morawetz RB. Karp RB. Evolution and resolution of intracranial bacterial <mycotic
J aneurysms. Neurosurgery 1984; 15:43-49.

235.
Moskowitz MA, Rosenbaum AE. Tyler HR. Angiographics!ly monitored resolution of
cerebral mycotic aneurysms. Neurology 1974; 24:1103 1 ins.

236.
Bingham WF, Treatment of m\ eotic intracranial aneurysms. J Neurosurg 1977: 46:
428-437,

237.
Salgado AV, Furlan AJ. Keys TF. Mycotic aneurysm, subarachnoid hemorrhage, and
indications for cerebral angiography in infective endocarditis. Stroke 1987: IS:
1057-1060.

238.
Berlorini TE, Laster RE. Thompson BF. Gelfand M. Magnetic resonance imaging of the
brain in bacterial endocarditis. Arch Intern Med 1989: 149:815-817.

239.
Gransden WR. Eykyn SJ, Leach RM. Neurological presentations of native valve
endocarditis, Q J Med 1989; 73:1135-1142.

240.
Berbari EF. Cockerill EF, Steckelberg JM, Infective endocarditis due to unusual or
fastidious microorganisms. Mayo Clin Proc 1997; 72:532-542.

243. Baehr G. Klempcrer P. Schifrin A. A diffuse disease of the |>eripheral


circulation
usually associated with lupus erythematosus an J endocarditis. Trans Assoc Am
Physicians 1935; 50:139-155.
244. Gross L. The cardiac lesions in Libman*Sucks disease, with a consideration of
its
relationship lu acute diffuse lupus erythematosus. Am J Pathol 1940: 16:375-407.
245. Fox IS, Spence AM, Wheelis RF\ Healey LA. Cerebral embolism in Libmun-Saeks
endocarditis. Neurology 1980; 30:487-491.
246 Nancy AM. Shulman LE, Tumulty PA, Conley CL, Sehoenrieh EH. Systemic lu
pus erythematosus: review of the literature and clinical analysis of 138 eases.
Medi
cine 1954; 33:291-437.
247. Johnson RT. Richardson EP. The neurological manifestation* of systemic lupus

erythematosus. Medicine 1968: 47:337-370.


248. Devinsky O. Pelito CK. Alonso DR. Clinical and ncurupathological lindings in

systemic lupus erythematosus: tire role of vasculitis, heart emboli, and thrombotic
thrombocytopenic purpura. Ann Neurol 1988: 23:380-384.
249. Galve E, Candell-Riera J, Pigrau C. et al. Prevalence, morphologic types, and
evolu
tion of cardiac valvular disease in systemic lupus erythematosus. N Engl J Med
1988; 319:817-823.
250. Roldan CA. Shively B. Crawford MH. An echocardiographic study of valvular
heart disease associated with systemic lupus erythematosus. N Engl J Med 1996:
335:1424-1430.
251. Crozier L Li E, Milne M, Nicholls MG. Valvular heart disease in systemic
lupus
erythematosus. (Letter.) N Engl J Med 1989: 320:739-740.
252. Brenner B. Blumenfeld Z. Markiewiez W, Reisner SA. Cardiac involvement in
patients with primary antiphospholipid syndrome. J Am Coll Cardiol 1991: 18:
931-936.
253. Barbul D. Borer J. Gliaravi A. el al. Prevalence of anlicardiolipin antibody
in iso
lated mitral or aortic regurgitation, or both, and possible relation to cerebral
isch
emic events. Am J Cardiol 1992; 70:901-905.
254. Barbut D, Borer J, Wallerson D, Ameisen O. Lockshin M. Anlicardiolipin
antibody
and stroke: possible relation of valvular heart disease and embolic events.
Cardiol
ogy 1991; 79:99-109.
255. Antiphosphojipid Antihodie.s in Stroke Study Group Clinical and laboratory
find
ings in patients with antiphospholipid antibodies and cerebral ischemia. Stroke
1990; 21:1268-1273.
256. Amico L. Caplan LR. Thomas C. Cerebrovascular complications of mucinous can
cer. Neurology 1989; 39:522-526.
257. Reagan TJ. Okazaki H. The thrombotic syndrome Associated with carcinoma. Arch

Neurol 1974; 31:390-395.


258. Kooiker JC, MacLean JM. Sumi SM. Cerebral embolism, marantic endocarditis,
and cancer. Arch Neurol 1976: 33:260-264.
258a. Edoute Y. Haim N. Rinkcvich D, Brenner B. Reisner SA. Cardiac valvular
vegeta

172 Chapter 2
260. Lambl VA. Papillate exkrcszcnzen an dor semiluuar-klappe der aorta. Wien Med

Wochenseshr 1856; 6:244-247.


261. Magarey FR. On the mode of formation of Lambl's excrescences and their re
lation lo chronic thickening of the milral valve. J Pathol Bacleriol 1949; 61:203

208.
262. Freedberg RS. Goodkin GM, Perez JL, Tunick PAT Kronzou I. Valve strands are
strongly associalcd with systemic embolization: a transesophageal echocardio
graphic study. J Am Coll Cardiol 1995; 26:1709-1712.
263. Tice FD, Slivka AP. Walz ET, Orsinelli DA, Pearson AC. Mitral valve strands
in
patients wilh focal cerebral ischemia. Stroke 1996: 27:1183-1186.
264. Nighoghossian N. Derex L, Loire R, el al. Giant Lambl excrescences. An
unusual
source of cerebral embolism. Arch Neurol 1997; 54:41-44.
265. Roberts JK, Omarali I. Di Tullio MR. et al. Valvular strands and cerebral
ischemia. Effect of demographics and sti and characteristics. Stroke 1997:28:2185
2188.
266. Cohen A, Tzourio C Chauvel C et al. Mitral valve strands and the risk of
ischemic
stroke in elderly palients. Stroke 1997: 28:1574-1578.
267. Lee RJ. Bartzokis T, Yeoh TK. et al Enhanced detection of intracardiac
sources
of cerebral emboli by transesophageal echocardiography. Stroke 1991; 22:734
739.
268. Chaturvedi S, Shein N. Coexistence of mitral valve strands and
anlicardiolipin
antibodies in a young woman with bilateral strokes. J Neurovusc Dis 1997: 2:97
100.
269. Komrud MS. Coffey CE. Coffey KS. el al. Myocardial infarction and stroke.
Neu
rology 1984; 34:1403-1409.
270. Johannessen KA. Nordrehaug JE. Von der Lippe G. Left ventricular thrombosis
and cerebrovascular accident in acute myocardial infarction. Br Heart J 1984: 51:
553-556.
271. Weinrcicb DJ. Burke JF. Pauletlo FJ. Left veniricular mural thrombus
complicating
acute myocardial infarction. Ann Intern Med 1984; 100:789-794.
272. Hart RG. Prevention and treatment of eardioeniholic siroke. In: Furlan AJ.
ed. The
Heart and Stroke: Exploring Mutual Cerebrovascular and Cardiovascular Issues.
London: Springcr-Verlag. 1987:117-I3S
273. Veterans Cooperative Study. Anticoagulants in acute myocardial infarction:
results
of a cooperative trial. JAMA 1973: 225:724-729.
274. Medical Research Council. Assessment of short term anticoagulant
administration
after cardiac infarction. Br Med J 1969; 1:335-342.
275. Drapkin A. Mersky C. Anticoagulant therapy alter acute myocardial infarction:

relation of therapeutic benefit to patient's age. sex, and severity of infarction.


JAMA
1972: 222:541-549.
276. Visser CA. Kan G, Meltzer RS. Dunning AJ. Roelandt J. Embolic potential of
left
ventricular thrombi after myocardial infarction: a two-dimensional echocardio

278. Spirito P. Bellotti P. Chiarclla F, Prognostic significance and n.aural


history of left
ventricular thrombi in patients with aeute myocardial infarction: a two-dimensional

echocardiographic study. Circulation 1985: 72:774-780.


279. Davis MJE, Ireland MA. Effect of early anticoagulation on the frequency of
left
ventricular thrombi after anterior wall acute myocardial infarction. Am J Cardiol
1986; 57:1244-1247.
280. Lapeyre AC 111. Steele I1 VI. Kazmier Eh et ul. Systemic embolism in chronic
left
ventricular aneurysm: incidence and the role of anticoagulation. J Am Coll Cardiol

1985; 6:534-538.
28 L Anticoagulants in acute myocardial infarction: results of a cooperative
clinical trial.
JAMA 1973; 225:724-729.
282. Faxon DP. Ryan TJ, Davis KB. el al. Prognostic significance of
angiographically
documented left ventricular aneurysm from the coronary artery surgery study
(CASS). Am J Cardiol 1982: 50:157-164.
283. Reeder GS. Lengyei M. Tajik AJ, et ak Mural thrombus in left ventricular
aneu
rysm. Incidence, role of angiography, and relation between anticoagulation and
embolism. Mayo Clin Proc 1981: 56:77-81.
284. Cabin HS. Roberts WC. Left ventricular aneurysm, intra-aneurysmal thrombus
and
systemic embolus in coronary heart disease. Chest 1980; 77:586-590.
285. Loh E, Sutton M, Wun C-C. et al. Ventricular dysfunction and the risk of
stroke
after myocardial infarction. N Engl J Med 1997; 336:251-257.
286. Smith P, Arnesen IL Holme I. The effect of warfarin on mortality and
rcinfarction
after myocardial infarction. N Engl J Med 1990; 323:147-152.
2S7. Anticoagulants in the Secondary Prevention of Events in Coronary Thrombosis
(ASPECT) Research Group. Effect of long-term oral anticoagulant treatment on
mortality and cardiovascular morbidity after myocardial infarction. Lancet 1994:
343:499-503.
288. Rao PV. Roussak JB, Hershman MJ, Venn GE. Taylor KM. An unusual left ventric

ular mass. J R Soc Med 1990: 83:650-651.


289. DeWitt LD. Pessin MS. Pandian NG. Paulker SG. Sonnenberg FA. Caplan LR.
Benign disappearance of ventricular thrombus after embolic stroke. Stroke I98S;
19:393-3%.
290. Arvan S, Plehn J. Embolization of a left ventricular mural thrombus. Arch
Intern
Med 1982; 142:1952-1953.
291. Yasaka M. Yamaguehi T, Miyashita T. Tsuchiya T. Regression of intracardiac
thrombus after embolic stroke. Stroke 1990; 21:1540 1544.
291a, Oppenheimer SM. Luna J Neurology and the heart, J Neurol Neurosurg
Psychiatry
1998; 64:289-297.
292. Roberts WC, Siegel RJ, McManus BM. Idiopathic dilated cardiomyopathy:
analysis
of 152 necropsy patients. Am J Cardiol 1987: 60:1340-1355,
293. Gaffney JH, Kingston WJ. Metley LA, Gramiak R. Left ventricular thrombus and

systemic emboli complicating the cardiomyopathy of Duchenne's muscular dystro

174 Chapter 2
295. Rice GP. Ehers GC. Newland F. Wysocki GP. Recurrent cerebral embolism in
cardiac: amyloidosis. Neurology 1981: .11:904-906,
296. Dyken ME , Bilicr J. Peripartum cardiomyopathy and stroke. Cerebrova>c Dis
1994:
4:325-328.
297. Hodgman MT . Pessin MS . Homans DC. ct al. Cerebral embolism as the initial
manifestation of peripartum cardiomyopathy. Neurology 1982. 32:0(>S 671
298. Sauer CM. Recurreui embolic stroke and cocaine-related cardiomyopathy. Stroke

1991: 22:1203-1205.
299. Ritter M, Oechslin E, Sutsch G. Cl al. Isolated noncompaction of the
myocardium
in adults. Mayo Clin Proc 1997: 72:26-31.
299a. Koniaris L, Goldhaber SZ. Anticoagulation in dilated cardiomyopathy. J Am
Coll
Cardiol 1998: 31:745-748.
299b. Fusier Y. Gcrsh BJ. Giuliani ER. et al. The natural history of idiopathic
dilated
cardiomyopathy. Am J Cardiol 1981: 47:525-531.
300. Harthorne J. Case records of the Massachusetts General Hospitalcase 46-1975,

N Engl J Med 1975: 293:1138-1145.


301. Pritchard RW. Tumors of the heart: review ol the subject and report of 150
cases.
Arch Pathol Lab Med 1951; 51:98-128.
302. Reynen K. Cardiac myxomas, N Engl J Med 1995; 333:1610-1617.
303. McAllister HA Jr, Fenoglio JJ Jr. Tumors of the cardiovascular system. Atlas
of
Tumor Pathology, 2d ser. Fascicle 15. Washington. DC: Armed Forces Institute of
Pathology. 1978:1-20.
304. St. John Sutton MG. Mcrcier L-A, Giuliani ER. Lie JT. Atrial myxomas: a
review
of clinical experience in 40 patients. Ma\o Clin Proc 1980: 55:371-376.
305. Blondeau P. Primary cardiac tumorsFrench study of 533 cases. Thorac Cardio
vasc Surg 1990; 38{suppl 2): 192-195.
306. Silverman J. Olwin JS. Graettinger JS. Cardiac myxomas with systemic
embolism:
review of the literature and report of a case. Circulation 1962; 26:99-103.
307. Nishmura RN. Right atrial myxoma with a patent foramen ovale. Lancet 1977: 2:

1137-1138.
308. Duvernoy WFC, Drake EH, Reddy MS. et al. Righi atrial myxomas: a review of
9 cases. Cardiology 1975; 60:206-219.
309. Butler MJ. Adams HP, Hiratzka LF. Recurrent cerebral embolism from a right
atrial
myxoma. Ann Neurol 1986: 19:608.
310. Sandok BA, von Estorff I. Giuliani E. CNS embolism due to atrial myxoma.
Clini
cal features and diagnosis. Arch Neurol 1980; 37:485-488.
311. Hirose G, Kosoegawa H. Takado M. et al. Spinal cord ischemia and left atrial

myxoma. Arch Neurol 1979; 36:439.


312. Thompson J. Kapoor W, Wechsler LR. Multiple strokes due to atrial myxoma with

A negative echocardiogram. Siroke 1988; 19:1570-1571.


313. Hunon JT. Atrial myxoma as a cause of progressive dementia. Arch Neurol 1981;

38:533.

316. Damask) 11. Seabra-Gomes R- daSilva JP. ct al Multiple cerebral aneurysms and

cardiac myxoma. Arch Neurol 1975; 32:269-270.


317. Burton C. Johnstone J. Multiple cerebral aneurysms and cardiac myxoma. N Engl

J Med 1970: 282:35-36.


318. Price DL. Harris JL, New PFJ. Cantu RC. Cardiac myxoma: a clinieopalhologie
and angiographic study. Arch Neurol 1970; 23:558-567.
319. Sandok BA. \o n l-siorlT I. Giuliani 1-R. Subsequent neurological events in
patients
with atrial myxoma. Ann Neurol 1980; 8:305-307.
320. Frank RA. Shalen PR, Harvey DG, et al. Atrial myxoma with intellectual
decline
and cerebral growths on CT scan. Ann Neurol 1979; 5:396-400.
321. Read RC. Whitei HJ. Murphy ML. ct al. The malignant potential of left atrial
myx
oma. J Thorac Cardiovasc Surg 1974: 857-867.
322. Kasarskis EJ. O'Connor W. Earle G. Embolic stroke from cardiac papillary
fibro
elastomas. Stroke 1988; 19:1171-1173.
323. Brown RD. Khandheria BK. Edwards WD, Cardiac papillary libroelastoma: a
treat
able cause of transient ischemic attack and ischemic stroke detected by
transesopha
geal echocardiography. Mayo Clin Proc 1995: 70:863-868.
324. Fine G. Primary tumors of the pericardium and heart. Cardiovasc Clin 1973: 5:

207-238.
325. Guereta LG, Burgueros M. Elorza MD. et al. Cardiac rhabdomyoma presenting as

fetral hydrops. Pediati Cardiol 1986; 7:171 174.


326. Hall RJ, Cooley DA, McAllister HA, Frazier OH. Neoplastic heart disease. In:

Schlant RC. Alexander RW. eds. Hurst's The Heart. 8th ed. New York: McGraw-
Hill, 1994:2007-2029.
327. Mata M, Wharton M, Geisinger K. Pugh JE. Myocardial rhabdomyosarcoma in
multiple neurofibromatosis. Neurology 1981: 31:1549-1551.
328. Hagen PT. Scholz DG. Edwards WD. Incidence and size of patent foramen ovale
during the first 10 decades of life: an autopsy study of 965 normal hearts. Mayo
Clin Proc 1984; 59:17-20.
329. Lechat Ph. Mas JL Lascault G. et al. Prevalence of patent foramen ovale in
patients
with stroke. N Engl J Med 1988; 318:1148-1152.
330. Di Tullio M. Saeco RL. Gopal A. Mohr JP, Homma S. Patent foramen ovale as a
risk factor for cryptogenic stroke. Ann Intern Med 1992; 117:461-465.
331. Petty GW. Khanderia BK. Chu C-P. Sicks JD, Whisnanl JP. Patent foramen ovale

in patients with cerebral infraction. A transesophageal echocardiographic study.


Arch Neurol 1997:54:819-822.
332. Jones HR. Caplan LR, Come PC. Swinton NW. Breslin DJ. Cerebral emboli of
paradoxical origin. Ann Neurol 1983: 13:314-319.
333. Biller J. Adams HP. Johnson MR. Kcrber RH. Toffol G.I. Paradoxical cerebral
em
bolism: eight cases. Neurology 1986: 36:1356-1360.
334. Gamier JC, Durr A, Koussa S. Lascault G. Grosgogeat Y. Paradoxical cerebral
embolism with a patent foramen ovale. A report of 29 patients. Cerebrovasc Dis

176 Chapter 2
$36. Shuiah A. Cerebral infarction ami ventricular septal defect. Stroke 1989:
20:957
958.
337. Harvey JR. Teague SM, Anderson JL. Voyles WF. Thadani U. Clinically silent
atrial septal defects with evidence for cerebral embolism. Ann Intern Med 1986;
105:695-697.
338. Reguera JM, Colmenero JD. Guemvro M, Pastor M, Martin-Palanea A. Paradoxical

cerebral embolism secondary to pulmonary arteriovenous fistula. Stroke 1990: 21:


504-505.
339. Stollberger C, Slany J. Schuster 1, et al. The prevalence of deep venous
thrombosis
in patients with suspected paradoxical embolism. Ann Intern Med 1993; 119:461
465.
340. Barbour SI. Izban KF. Reyes CV, McKienian TL, Louie EK. Serpentine dirombus
traversing the foramen ovale: paradoxical embulis sho\\ n by liansesophageal echo
cardiography. Ann Intern Med 1996; 125:111 113.
341. Pell ACH. Hughes D. Keating J. el al. Brief report: fulminating fat embolism
syn
drome caused by paradoxical embolism through a patent foramen ovale. N Engl J
Med 1993; 329:926-929.
342. Chimowitz Ml. Nen.ee JJ. Marwick TH, et al. Transcranial Doppler ultrasound
identifies patients with right-to left cardiac or pulmonary shunts. Neurology 1991;

41:1902-1904.
343. Albert A, Mullcr HR. Hei/el A. Optimized transcranial Doppler technique for
the
diagnosis of cardiac right-la-left shunts. J Neuroimag 1997: 7:159-163.
344. Di Tullio M. Sacco RL, Venketasubramanian N, et al. Comparison of diagnostic

techniques lor the detection of a patent foramen ovale in stroke palients. Stroke
1993 : 24:1020-1024.
345. Schminke Vr Ries S. Daffertshofer M. Staedt U, Hennerici M. Patent foramen
ovale: a potential source of cerebral embolism. Cerebrovasc Dis 1995: 5:133
138.
346. Klotzsch C. Janzen G. Berlil P. Transesophageal echocardiography and
contrast-
TCD in the detection of a patent foramen ovale. Experiences with 111 patients.
Neurology 1994; 44:1603-1606.
347. Nemec JJ. Marwick TH, Lorig RJ, Davison MB, Chimowitz Ml. Litowitz H,
Salcedo EE. Comparison of transcranial Doppler ultrasound and transesophageal
contrast echocardiography in the detection of intraatrial right-to-left shunts. Am
J
Cardiol 1991; 68:1498- 1502.
348. Hanna J P. Sun J P. Furlan AJ. et al. Patent foramen ovale and brain infarct.
Echocar
diography predictors, recurrence, and prevention. Stroke 1994; 25:782-786.
349. Horn ma S, Di Tullio MR, Sacco RL, et al. Characteristics of patent foramen
ovale
associated with cryptogenic stroke. A biplane transesophageal echocardiographic
study. Stroke 1994; 25:582-586.
349a. Ay H. Buonanno FS, Abraham S. Kistler JP. Koroshetz W. An
electrocardiographic
criterion for diagnosis of patent foramen ovale associated with ischemic stroke.

350. Lang FJ, Possclt A. Ancurysmatisehe Vorwolbung tier Fossa Ovalis in Jen
linken
Vorhof. Wien Med Wochenschr 1934; 84:392-395.
35L Silver MD. Dorsey JS. Aneurysms of the septum primuni in adults. Arch Pathol
Lab Med 1978; 102:62-65.
352. Naler B, Bogousslavsky J, Regli F. Stauffer J-C. Stroke patterns with atrial
septal
aneurysms. Cerebrovasc Dis 1992: 2:342-346.
353. Belkin RN, Hurwil/ BJ, kisst o J. Atrial septal aneurysm: association uuli
cerebro
vascular and peripheral embolic events. Stroke 1987; 18:856-862.
354. Cabanes 1.. Mas JL, Cohen A, et aJ. Atria] septal aneurysm and patent foramen

ovale as risk factors for cryptogenic stroke in patients less than 55 years of age.

A study using transesophageal echocardiography. Stroke 1993: 24:1865-1873.


355. Grosgogeat Y, Lhermitte F, Carpenter A. et al. Aneurysmc de lacloison
inierauricu
laire revele par une embolic cerebrale. Arch Mai Coeur 1973: 66:169-177.
356. Bogousslavsky J. Garazi S. Jeanrenaud X, et al. Stroke recurrence in patients
with
patent foramen ovale: the Lausanne study. Neurology 1996: 46:1301-1305.
357. French Study Group on Patent Foramen Ovale and Atrial Septal Aneurysm. Recur
rent cerebrovascular events in patients with patent foramen ovale or atrial septal

aneurysms and cryptogenic stroke or TIA. Am Heart J 1995; 130:1083-1088.


358. Dcvuyst G, Bogousslavsky J. Ruehat P. et al. Prognosis after stroke followed
by
surgical closure of patent foramen ovale: a prospective follow-up study with brain

MRl and simultaneous transesophageal and transcranial Doppler ultrasound. Neu


rology 1996: 47:1162-1166.
359. Bridges. ND. I lellensbrand W. Catson L, ct al. Transcathcter closure of
patent fora
men ovale after presumed paradoxical embolism. Circulation 1992: 86:1902
1908.
360. Meyer WW. Cholesterinkrystallembolie kleiner organarterien und ihre folgen.
Vir-
chows Arch Pathol Anat 1947: 314:616-638.
361. Winter WJ. Atheromatous emboli: ;i cause of cerebral infarction. Arch Pathol
1957;
64:137-142.
362. Fisher CM. Gore 1, Okabe N, White PD. Atherosclerosis of the carotid and
vertebral
arteriesextracranial and intracranial. J Neuropaihol F\p Neurol 1965: 24:455
476.
363. Tunick PA, Kronzon E. Protruding atherosclerotic plaque in the aortic arch of
pa
tients with systemic embolization: a new finding seen by transesophageal echocar
diography. Am Heart J 1990; 120:658-660.
364. Tunick PA. Culliford AT. Lamparello PJ. Kronzon I. Atheromatosis of the
aortic
arch as an occult source of multiple systemic emboli. Ann Intern Med 1991; 114:
391-392.
365. Tunick PA, Perez JL. Kronzon I. Protruding atheromas in the thoracic aorta
and
systemic embolization. Ann Intern Med 1991: 115:423-427.
366. Kara! is DG. C hand rase karan K. Victor MF. Ross JJ. Mintz GS. Recognition
and
emholic potential of intraanrtic atherosclerotic debris. J Am Coll Cardiol 1991;
17:

graphic detection of aortic arch disease in patients with cerebral infarction.


Stroke 1992: 23:1005-1009.
369.
Tobler HG, Edwards JH, Frequency and location of atherosclerotic plaques in the
ascending aorta. J Thorac Cardiovasc Surg 1988; 96:304-306.

370.
Horowitz DR, Tuhrim S, Budd J. Goldman ME. Aortic plaque in palients with brain
ischemia. Neurology 1992: 42:1602-1604.

371.
Di Tullio MR. Saeeo RL. Gersony D. el al. Aortic atheromas and acute ischemic
stroke: a transesophageal echocardiographic study in an ethnically mixed
population. Neurology 1996; 46:1560-1566.

372.
Toyoda PC Yasaka M, Nagala 5, Yamaguehi T. Aurtogenie embolic stroke: a
transesophageal cchocardiogniphic approach. Stroke 1992; 23:1056-1061.
373.
Masuda J, Yutani C. Ogata J, Kuriyama Y, Ynmaguehi T. Aihcromatous embolism in the
brain. A clinicopathologic analysis of 15 autopsy cases. Neurology 1994; 44:1231-
1237.

374.
French Study of Aortic Plaques in Stroke Group. Atherosclerotic disease of the
aortic arch as a risk factor for recurrent ischemic stroke. N Engl J Med 1996: 334:
1216-1221.

375.
Mitusch R, Doherty C. Wucherpfcnnig H. et al. Vascular events during follow-up in
patients with aortic arch atherosclerosis. Stroke 1997; 28:36-39.

376.
Wickremasinghe HR. Peiris J, Thenabadu PN. Sherifdeen AH. Transient emboligenie
aortoarteritis. Noteworth new entity in young stroke patients. Arch Neurol 1978:
35:416-422.

377.
Hirst AE, Johns VJ. Kime SW. Disseeiing aneurysms of ihe aorta: a review of 505
cases. Medicine 1958; 37:217-279.

378.
Zurbrugg HR. Leupi F, Schupbach P, Althaus U. Duplex scanner study of carotid
artery dissection following surgical treatment of aortic dissection type A. Stroke
1988: 19:970-976.

37o. stecker M, Ba\ana JE, Barclay DK, et al. Carotid dissection with acute
aortic dissection. J Neurovasc Dis 1997: 2:166-171.
380.
Bruns JL, Segel DP. Adler S. Control of cholesterol embolization by
discontinuation of anticoagulant therapy. Am J Med Sci 1978; 275:105-108.

381.
Blaekshear JL. Jahangir A. Oldenberg WA, Safford RE. Digital embolization from
plaque-related thrombus in the thoracic aorta: identification with transesophageal
echocardiography and resolution wilh warfarin therapy. Mayo Clin Proc 1993: 68:
268-272.

382.
Freedberg RS, Tunick PA. Culliform AT, Tatelbaum RJ, Kronzon 1. Disappearance of a
large intraaortic mass in a patient with prior systemic embolization. Am Heart J
1993: 125:1445-1447.

382a. Fine MJ. Kapoor W. Falanga V. Cholesterol crystal embolization: a review of


221 cases in the English literanire. Angiology 1987: 38:769-784.
383. Hausmann D. Gulba D, Bargheer K. et al. Successful thrombolysis of an
aortic-arch ihromhus in a patient after mesenteric embolism. N Engl J Med 1992:
327:
385. Duncan A. RLimhaugh C, Caplan LR. Cerebral embolic disease, a complication of

earolid aneurysms. Radiology 1979: 133:379-384.


386. Fisher M, Davidson R. Marcus E. Transient focal cortical ischemia as a
presenting
manifestation of unruptured cerebral aneurysms. Ann Neurol 1980: 8:367-372.
387. Pessin MS, Chimowitz MI, Levine SR. et al. Stroke in patients with fusiform
verte
brobasilar aneurysms. Neurology 1989; 39:16-21.
388. Caplan LR, Stein R, Pat el IX et al. Intraluminal clot of the carotid artery
detected
radiographically. Neurology 1984; 34:1175- 1181.
389. Hcnnerici M, Sitzcr G, Weger H-D. Carotid Artery Plaques. Basel: Karger,
1987.
390. Fisher CM, Ojcmann RG. A clinico-pathologic study of carotid endarterectomy
plaques. Rev Neurol (Paris) 1986; 142:573-589.
391. Fisher CM. Ojcmann R. Roberson G. Spontaneous dissection of eervicocercbrul
arteries. Can J Neurol Sci 1978: 5:9-19.
392. Caplan LR, Zarins C. Hemmatli M. Spontaneous dissection of the ex trite rani
al ver
tebral artery. Stroke 1985: 16:1030-1038.
393. Siebler M. Kleinschmidt A. Sitzer M. et al. Cerebral microembolism in
symptom
atic and asymptomatic high-grade internal carotid artery stenosis. Neurology 1994:

44:615-618.
394. Ries S, Sehniinke I'. Daffertshofer M. et al. High-intensity transcranial
signals in
carotid artery disease. Cerebrovasc Dis 1995; 5:124-127.
395. Siebler M. Sitzer M. Rose G. ct al. Silent cerebral embolism caused by
neurologi
ealh symptomatic high-grade carotid stenosis: event rates before and after carotid

endarterectomy. Brain 1993: 116:1005-1015.


396. North American Carotid Endarterectomy Trial Collaborators. Beneficial effect
of
carotid endarterectomy in symptomatic palients with high-grade carotid stenosis.
N Engl J Med 1991; 325:445-453.
397. European Carotid Surgery Trialists Collaborator Group. MRC European Carotid
Surgery Trial: interim results for symptomatic patients with severe (70-99^) and
with mild (0-29%) carotid stenosis. Lancet 1991: 337:1235-1243.
398. Streiflcr JY. Eliasziw M. Benavente OR. et al. The risk of stroke in patients
with
first-ever retinal or hemispheral transient ischemic attacks and high-grade carotid

stenosis. Arch Neurol 1995: 52:246-249.


399. Hcnnerici M, Hulsbower HB, Hefter K. et al Natural history of asymptomatic
e*
tracranial disease: results of a long term prognostic study. Brain 1987; 110:777
791.
4(K). Norris JW. Zhu CZ. Silent stroke and carotid stenosis. Stroke 1992; 23:483-
485.
401. Norris JW. Risks of cerebral infarction, myocardial infarction and vascular
death
in patients with asymptomatic carotid disease, transient ischemic attacks and
stroke.
Cerebrovasc Dis 1992; 2(suppl l):2-5.
402. Norris JW. Zhu CZ, Bornstein N, Chambers BR. Vascular risks of asymptomatic
carotid stenosis. Stroke 1991; 22:1485-1490.
403. Executive Committee for the Asymptomatic Carotid Atherosclerosis Study.
Endar

180 Chapter 2
AD, Nicolaides AJ, Shifrin EG. eds. Cerebral Revascularisation. London: Mcd-
Orion, 1993:159-178.
405. Fazekas F. Fazekas G. Schmidt R. et al. Magnetic resonance imaging correlates
of
transient cerebral ischemic attacks. Stroke 1996; 27:607-611.
406. Lodder J, Hupperls R, Boreas A. Kessels F. The size of territorial brain
infarction
on CT relates to the degree of internal carotid artery obstruction. J Neurol 1996;

243:345-349.
407. Wechsler LR, Kistler JP, Davis KR, Kaminski MJ. The prognosis of carotid
siphon
stenosis. Stroke 1986; 17:714-718.
408. Craig DR. Mcguro K, Wutridge C. el al. Intracranial internal carotid artery
stenosis.
Stroke 1982; 13:825-828.
409. Chimowitz MI. Kokkinos J. Strong J, ct al. The Warfarin-Aspirin Symptomatic
Intracranial Disease Study. Neurology 1995: 45:1488-1493.
410. Imparato AM. Riles TS, Gorstcin F. The carotid bifurcation plaque:
pathological
findings associated wilh cerebral ischemia. Stroke 1979: 10:238-245.
411. Gronholdt M-LM, Nordestgaard BG. Nielsen TG. Sillesen H. Echolueenl carotid
artery plaques are associated with elevated levels of fasting and postprandial tri

glyceride-rich lipoproteins. Stroke 1996: 27:2166-2172.


412. European Carotid Plaque Study Group, Carotid artery plaque composition:
relation
ship to clinical presentation and ultrasound B-mode imaging. Eur J Vase Eudo\ asc
Surg 1995; 10:23-30.
413. Geroulakos G, Ramaswami G, Nieolaides A, el al. Characterization of
symptomatic
and asymptomatic carotid plaques using high-resolution real-time ultrasonography.
Br J Surg 1993; 80:1274-1277.
414. Caplan JR. Gorelick PB. Hier DB. Race, sex. and occlusive cerebrovascular
dis
ease: a review. Stroke 1986: 17:648-655.
415. Gorelick PB. Caplan LR. Hier DB. et al. Racial differences in the
distribution of
anterior circulation occlusive disease. Neurology 1984; 34:54-59.
416. Gorelick PB. Caplan LR. Hier DB. et al. Racial differences in the
distribution of
posterior circulation occlusive disease. Stroke 1985; 16:785-790.
417. Feldmann E, Daneaull N, Kwan E. ct al. Chinese-white differences in ihe
distribu
tion of occlusive cerebrovascular disease. Neurology 1990; 40:1541-1545.
418. Hutchinson EC. Yates PO. Carotieo-vertebral sienosis. Lancet 1957: 1:2-8.
419. Hutchinson EC, Yates PO. The cervical portion of the vertebral artery, a
ctinico
pathological study. Brain 1956: 79:319-331.
420. Caplan LR. The E Graeme Robertson lecture. Vertebrobasilar embolism. Clin Exp

Neurol 1991; 28:1-23.


421. Caplan LR. Tetlenborn B. Vertebrobasilar occlusive disease: review of
selected
aspects. 2. Posterior circulation embolism. Cerebrovasc Dis 1992; 2:320
326.
422. Caplan LR, Tetlenborn B. Vertebrobasilar occlusive disease: review of
selected
aspects. 1. Spontaneous dissection of extracranial and intracranial posterior
circula

the dViL'Liion of intracardiac embolic sources in patients with transient ischemic


attacks. Stroke 1990; 21:560-565.
425. DeRook FA. Comess KA. Albers CW, Popp RL. Transesophageal echocardiogra
phy in the evaluation of stroke. Ann Intern Med 1992; 117:922-932.
426. Orullon C, Alum M, Rosman HS, el al. Transesophageal echocardiography in
uuse
lected palients with focal cerebral ischemia: when is it useful? Cerebrovasc Dis
1994; 4:139-145.
427. Daniel WG, Mugge A. Transesophageal echocardiography. N Engl J Med 1995;
332:1268-1279.
428. Horowitz DR. Tuhrim S, Weinberger J. et al. Transesophageal echocardiography:

diagnostic and clinical applications in the evaluation of the stroke patient. J


Stroke
Cerebrovasc Dis 1997: 6:332-336.
429. McNamara RL. Lima JAC. Whelion PK. Powc NR. Echocardiographic identitica
tion of cardiovascular sources of emboli to guide clinical management of stroke:
a cost-effectiveness analysis. Ann Intern Med 1997: 127:775-787.
430. Johnson LL. Pohost GM. Nuclear cardiology. In: Schlani RC Alexander RW. eds.

Hurst's The Heart. 8lh ed. New York: McGraw-Hill. 1994:2281-2323.


431. Ezekowiz MD, Wilson DA, Smith EO, et al. Comparison of indium-111 platelet
scintigraphy and two-dimensional echocardiography in the diagnosis of left ventric

ular thrombi. N Engl J Med 1982: 306:1509-1513.


432. Weinberger J. Azhar S. Danisi F. Hayes R, Goldman M. A new noninvasive tech
nique for imaging atherosclerotic plaque in the aortic arch of stroke patienls b\
transcutaneous real-time B-mode ultrasonography. Stroke 1998; 29:673-676.
433. Branl-Zawadzki M. Atkinson D. Detrick M. Bradley WG, Scidmore G. Fluid-atten

uated inversion recovery (FLAIR) for assessment ol cerebral infarction: initial


clini
cal experience in 50 palients. Stroke 1996; 27:1187-1191.
434. Kido DK. Panzer RJ. Szumowski J. et al, Clinical evaluation of stenosis of
the
carotid bifurcation with magnetic resonance angiographic techniques. Arch Neurol
1991; 48:484-489.
435. Riles TS. Eidelman EM, Lift AW. et al. Comparison of magnetic resonance
angiog
raphy, conventional angiography, and Duplex scanning. Stroke 1992; 23:341 -346
436. Anderson CM, Saloncr D. Lee RH. et al. Assessment of carotid artery stenosis
by
MR angiography: comparison with x-ray angiography and color-coded Doppler
ultrasound. AJNR 1992: 13:989-1003.
437. Gil lard JH. Oliverio P. Barker PB. Oppenheimer SM, Bryan RN, MR angiography

in acute cerebral ischemia of the anterior circulation: a preliminary report. AJNR

1997; 18:343-350.
438. Johnson BA, Heiserman JE, Drayer BP. Keller P. Intracranial MR angiography:
its role in the integrated approach to brain infarction. AJNR 1994; 15:901-908.
439. Rother J, Wentz K-U. Rautenberg W, et al. Magnetic resonance angiography in
vertebrobasilar ischemia. Stroke 1993; 24:1310-1315.
440. Bogousslavsky J. Regli F, Maeder P. et al. The etiology of posterior
circulation

182 Chapter 2
442. Sorcnson AG, B no nan no FS, G on/ales RG. et al. Hyperacute stroke:
evaluation
with combined mu hi see lion diffu si on-weighted and hemodynamic ally- weigh ted
echo-planar M R imaging. Radiology 1996; 199:391-401.
443. Schwartz RB. Jones KM, Chemoff DM, el al. Common carotid artery bifurcation:

evaluation with spiral CT. Radiology 1992; 185:513-519.


444. Alberico RA, Palel M. Casey S, et al. Evaluation of the circle of Willis with
three-
dimensional CT angiography in patients with suspected intracranial aneurysms.
AJNR 1995; 16:1571-1578.
445. von Reutern G-M, von Budiugen HJ. Ultrasound diagnosis of cerebrovascular
dis
ease. Doppler sonography of the extra- and intracranial arteries, Duplex scanning.

New York: Thieme, 1993.


446. Hcnnerici M, Freund H-J. Efficacy of C-W Doppler and Duplex system examina
tions for the evaluation of extracranial carotid disease. J Clin Ultrasound 1984:
12:
155-161.
447. Stcinke W. Kloetzsch C. Hcnnerici M. Carotid artery disease assessed by color

Doppler flow imaging: correlation with standard Doppler sonography and angiogra
phy. AJNR 1990: 11:259-266.
448. Steinke W, Hennerici M. Rautenberg W. Mohr JP. Symptomatic and asymptomatic
high-grade carotid stenosis in Doppler color-flow imaging. Neurology 1992: 42:
131-138.
449. Sitzer M. Furst G, Fischer H, et al. Between-mcthod correlation in
quantifying
carotid stenosis. Stroke 1993: 24:1513-1518.
450. Aekersiaff RGA. Duplex scanning of the aortic arch and vertebral arteries.
In: Bern
stein EF. ed. Vascular Diagnosis. 4th ed. St. Louis: Mosby. 1993:315-321.
451. Touboul PJ, Bousser M-G. LaPlanc D, Castaigne P. Duplex scanning of the
verte
bral arteries. Stroke 1986; 17:921-923.
452. Sturzenegger M. Ultrasound findings in spontaneous carotid artery dissection:
the
value of Duplex sonography. Arch Neurol 1991; 48:1057-1063.
453. Sturzenegger M. Mattle HP. Rivon A. et al. Ultrasound findings in spontaneous

extracranial vertebral artery dissection. Stroke 1993; 24:1910-1921.


454. Caplan LR, Brass LM, DeWitt LD. el al. Transcranial Doppler ultrasound:
present
status. Neurology 1990; 40:696-700.
455. Caplan LR, Feinberg WM. Fisher MJ. del Zoppo GJ. The Blood in Brain Ischemia.

Basic Concepts and Clinical Relevance. Caplan LR, ed. London: Springer-Verlag,
1995:83-126.
456. Yasaka M. Yamaguehi T. Miyashita T. et al. Predisposing factors of recurrent
em
bolization in cardiogenic cerebral embolism. Stroke 1990: 21:1000-1007.
457. Takano K. Yamaguehi T, Kato H, Omae T. Acivation of coagulation in acute
cardi
oembolic stroke. Stroke 1991; 22:12-16.
458. Sevitt S. Eat Embolism. London, Burterworth & Co.. 1962.
459. Thomas JE, Ayyar DR. Systemic fat embolism. A diagnostic profile in 24
patients.
Arch Neurol 1972: 26:517-523.

462. Jacobson DM, Tcrrenee CF. Rcinmuth OM. The neurologic manifestations of fat
embolism. Neurology 1986; 36:847-851.
463. Hill JD. Aguilar MT Bar unco AP, Gerbode F, Neuropalhological manifestations

of cardiac surgery. Ann Thorac Surg 1969; 7:409-517.


464. Ghalal NR, Sinnenberg RJ. DeBIois GG. Cerebral fat embolism following
cardiac-
surgery. Stroke 1983: 14:619-621.
465. Charaehe S. Page DL. Infarction ofbone marrow in sickle cell disorders. Ann
liuern
Med 1967: 67:1195-1200.
466. Hutchinson RM, Merrick MV, White JM. Fat embolism in sickle cell disease. J
Clin Pathol 1973; 26:620-622.
467. Vichinsky E. Williams K. Das M, et al. Pulmonary fat embolism: a distinct
cause
of severe acute chest syndrome in sickle cell anemia. Blood 1994; 83:3107
3112.
468. Shelley WM, Curtis EM. Bone marrow and fat embolism in sickle cell anemia and

sickle cell-hemoglobin C disease. Bull Johns Hopkins Husp 1958: 103:8-25.


468a, Rosen JM. Mark EJ. Case records of the Massachusetts General Hospital: case
23
1998. N Engl J Med 1998: 339:254-261.
469. Oh WH, Mital MA. Fat embolism: current concepts of pathogenesis, diagnosis,
and treatment. Orthop Clin North Am 1978: 9:769-779.
470. Ing HR. Pellegrini VD. Fat embolism syndrome: a review of the
pathophysiological
basis of treatment. Clin Orthop 1982: 165:68-82.
471. Fuchsig P. Brucke P. Blumel G, Gottiob R. Current concepts. A new clinical
and
experimental concept on fat embolism. N Engl J Med 1967: 276:1192-1193.
472. Pell AC. Hughes D, Keating J. et al. Brief report. Fulminating fat embolism
syn
drome caused by paradoxical embolism through a patent foramen ovale. N Engl J
Med 1993: 329:926-929.
473. Oostenbrugge RJ. Freling G. Lodder J. Lalisang R. Twijnstra A. Fatal stroke
due
to paradoxical fat embolism, Cerebrovasc Dis 1996; 6:313-314.
474. Chastre J, Fagon J-Y. Soler P. et al. Bronchoalveolar lavage for rapid
diagnosis of
the fat embolism syndrome in trauma patients, Ann Intern Med 1990; 113:583
588.
475. Godeau B, Schaeffer A. Bachir D, et al. Bronchoalveolar lavage in adult
sickle cell
patients with acute chest syndrome: value for diagnostic assessment of fat embo
lism. Am J Respir Care Med 1996; 153:1691 - 1696.
476. Kamenar E. Burger PC. Cerebral fat embolism: a neuropathologies! study of a
microembolic slate. Stroke 1980; 11:477-484.
477. Menkin M. Schwartzman RJ. Cerebral air embolism. Report of five cases and re

view of the literature. Arch Neurol 1977; 34:169-170.


477a Wijman CAC. Kase CS. Jacobs AK. Whitehead RE. Cerebral air embolism as a
cause of stroke during cardiac catheterization. Neurology 1998: 51:318-319.
478. Gillen HW. Symptomatology of cerebral gas embolism. Neurology 1968; 18:507
512.

184 Chapter 2
481. Bancrjce AK, Chopra JS, Cerebral embolism from a ihyroid carcinoma. Arch Neu

rol 1972; 27:186-187.


482. Kasc CS, While R. Vinsou TL. Eiehelberger RP. Shoigun pellet embolus to the
middle cerebral artery. Neurology 1981; 31:458-461.
483. Langenbach M, Leopold H-C, Henneriei M. Neck trauma with embolization of the

middle cerebral artery by a metal splinter. Neurology 1990;40:552.


484. North K. Kan A. de Silva M. Ouvrier R. 1 leniiplegia due to posterior
cerebral artery
occlusion. Stroke 1993; 24:1757-1760.
4S5. Caplan LR. Thomas C, Banks G. Central nervous system complications of *'Ts
and blues" addiction. Neurology 1982; 32:623-628.
486. Apian LR. Hier DB, Banks G. Stroke and drug abuse. Curr Concepts Cerebrovasc

Dis (Stroke) 1982: 27:9-13.


487. Alice W. Talc and cornstarch emboli in the eyes of drug abusers. JAMA 1972;
219:49-51.
488. Mizutami T. Lewis R. Gonatas N. Medial medullary syndrome in a drug abuser.
Arch Neurol 1980; 37:425-428.
489. Chillar RK. Jackson AL. Alaan L. Hemiplegia after inlracarotid injection of
methyl
phenidate. Arch Neurol 1982: 39:598-599.
490. Garcia JH. Mechanisms of cell death in ischemia. In: Caplan LR, ed. Brain
Isch
emia. Basic Concepts and Clinical Relevance. London: Springer-Verlag, 1995:7
18.
491. Caplan LR. Stroke: new iherapies. Arch Neurol 1997; 54:1222-1224.
492. Fisher M. Prophylactic neuroprotection. In: Fisher M, ed. Stroke Therapy.
Boston;
B utterworlh-l t cine man n, 1995:233 -245.
493. Onal MZ. Fisher M. Thrombolytic and cytoprotective therapies for acute
ischemic
stroke: a clinical overview, Drugs Today 1996; 32:573-592.
494. O'Brien MD. Ischemic cerebral edema. In: Caplan LR. ed. Brain Ischemia.
Basic-
Concepts and Clinical Relevance. London: Springer-Verlag. 1995:43-50.
495. National Institute of Neurological Disorders and Stroke rt-PA Study Group.
Tissue
plasminogen activator for acute ischemic stroke. N Engl J Med 1995: 333:1581
1587.
496. Hacke W. Kaste M, Fieschi C. et al. Intravenous thrombolysis with recombinant

tissue plasminogen activator for acute hemispheric stroke. The European Coopera
tive Acute Stroke Study (ECASS). JAMA 1995; 274:1017-1025.
497. Pcssin MS, del Zoppo GJ, Furlan AJ. Thrombolytic rreaimeni in acute stroke:
re
view and update of selective topics. In: Moskowitz M, Caplan LR, eds. Cerebrovas
cular Diseases. Nineteenth Princeton Stroke Conference, Boston: Buitcrworth-
Heinemann, 1995:409-418.
498. Higashida RT, Halbach W.Tsai FY. DowdCF, HieshimaGB. Interventional neuro
vascular technique for cerebral revascularization in the treatment of stroke. AJR
1994; 163:793-800.
499. Casto L. Cavcrni L, Camerlingo M. et al. Intraarterial thrombolysis in acute
ischae

Brain Embolism
angioplasty adjunct to thrombolysis for acute middle cerebral artery rethrombosis.

AJNR 1994; 15:1823-1829.


501. Caplaji LR, Mohr JP, Kistler JP. Korelitz WS, Grotta J. Should thrombolytic
ther
apy be the first-line treatment for acute ischemic stroke? N Engl J Med 1997; 337:

1309-1313.
502. Caplan LR. Vertebrobasilar disease and thrombolytic treatment. Arch Neurol
1998:
55:450-451.
503. Wijdicks EFM, Nichols DA. Thielen KR. et al. Intra-arterial thrombolysis in
acute
basilar artery thromboembolism; the initial Mayo Clinic experience. Mayo Clifl
Proc 1997: 72:1005-1013.
504. Caplan LR. Stroke thrombolysisgrow ing pains. Mayo Clin Proc 1997; 72:1090

1092.
505. Hossman V. Dieter-Heiss W. Bewermeyer H. el al. Controlled trial of ancrod in

ischemic stroke. Arch Neurol 1983; 40:803-808.


506. Olinger CP. Brott TG. Barsan TG. et al. Use of ancrod in acute or progressing

ischemic cerebral infarction. Ann Ernerg Med 1988: 17:1208-1209.


507. Caplan LR. Of birds, and nests and brain emboli. Rev Neurol (Paris) 1991:
147:
265-273.
508. Helgason CM, Tortoricc KL. Winkler SR, ct al. Aspirin response and failure in

cerebral infarction. Stroke 1993; 24:345-350.


509. Helgason C.Vh Bolin KM, Hoff J A. ct al, Development of aspirin resistance in

persons with previous ischemic stroke. Stroke 1994; 25:2331-2336.


510. Coull BM, Beamer NB, dcGarmo PL. et al. Chronic blood hyperviscosity in sub
jects with acute stroke, transient ischemic attacks, and risk factors for stroke.
Stroke
1991; 22:162-168.
511. CAPRIE Steering Committee. A randomized blinded trial of cloipidogrcl versus

aspirin in patients al risk of ischemic events (CAPRIE), Lancet 1996; 348:1329


1339.

Encephalopathies and Neurological Effects of Drugs Used in Cardiac Patients


INTRODUCTION
Confusion, decreased state of alertness, diminished intellectual functioning, and
local neurological signs arc very common in palients with heart disease,
especially those who have congestive heart failure. Sonic of ihese neurological
abnormalities are explained by brain embolism arising from the heart, aorta, and
occlusive lesions within the cervicocranial arteries, a topic lhat was thoroughly
discussed in Chapter 2, Occasionally, the neurological abnormalities relate to
episodes of hypotension and systemic hypoperfusion, a topic discussed in Chapter L
In many other patients the neurological symptoms and signs are caused by various
physiological and biochemical perturbations that develop in patients with cardiac
disease and congestive heart failure. Sometimes the neurological findings are side
effects or complications of medicines used to treat patients with cardiovascular
disease. This chapter considers non-stroke-related complications of cardiac
diseases and congestive heart failure and their medical treatments,
ENCEPHALOPATHY
Definition of Encephalopathy
Brain function depends to a great extent on the milieu in wThich the brain exists.
Just as a freshwater fish cannot swim, or even survive, in ocean waters, die brain
is quite sensitive to any alteration in its chemical or physical environment. A
186
very common example of this sensitivity is provided by experience with alcohol,
inebriation and drunkedness are examples of altered brain functioning hopefully
reversed completely by a sober interval of abstention from alcohol. Most
biochemical perturbations affect the brain globally, often first affecting the
most complex intellectual functions which arc niosi \ ulnerable. Diffuse brain
dysfunction related to potentially reversible biochemical and physiological
changes is usually referred to as encephalopathy. When the dysfunction relates to
endogenous abnormalities in various body organs, the term metabolic encephalopathy
is often used, while dysfunction due to exogenous factors such as drugs and toxic
substance exposure is usually called toxic encephalopathy.
Although the brain accounts for only about 2% of body mass, it is a
disproportionate consumer of resources. The brain receives about 209c of cardiac
output, consumes about 65*7t of the glucose used by the body, and uses about 20 ^
of the body's oxygen supply [I]. Cerebral cortical gray matter nerve cells
metabolize about 15c/r of the oxygen used by the brain although gray matter
accounts for only 20% of brain mass [ 1 j. The brain has enormous needs and demands
for nutritional substrates and blood flow, explaining the vulnerability of this
very complex and precise organ to metabolic perturhations. Most of the metaholism
of the brain is aerobic (utilization of sugars in the presence of oxygen) and much
of the energy produced in the brain is used to maintain normal ionic gradients
between brain cells and the extracellular space [ 1 J. The most important of these
gradients across cell membranes are those for sodium, potassium, hydrogen ion, and
calcium [ I f.
The first metabolic encephalopathy that was studied and described in clinical
detail was hepatic encephalopathy [2.3]. Adams and Foley analyzed the clinical
findings in patients with liver failure, usually due lo alcoholism, who were
hospitalized al the Boston City Hospital [2], They emphasized the presence of a
wide variety of intellectual and behavioral abnormalities, personality changes, and
reduced states of alertness as prominent findings 12J, Table I lists the findings
during various stages of hepatic encephalopathy. Sometimes the palients studied by
Adams and Foley had acute and severe neurological deterioration <acute en*
cephalopathy). and in other patients the neurological symptoms and signs were more
chronic and fluctuated from lime to time. Since recognition of the hepatic
encephalopathy syndrome during the 1950s, similar encephalopathic findings have
been recognized in patients who have a wide variety of metabolic and biochemical
disorders. The chronicity and reversibility of the neurological signs depend on
the nature, severity, and course of the causative metabolic disorder.
Recognition of the Presence of an Encephalopathy
ium follow if the encephalopathy worsens. Patients may be unable to remain still,
move restlessly in bed, and become unable to hold and continue a coherent
conversation. They Hit from one topic to another and become quite unable to
concentrate on queries or directions. Stupor and coma ensue as the encephalopathy
becomes more severe.
All intellectual functions are usually compromised to some extent. The most complex
and difficult functions, e.g., mathematical computations, abstractions, and
writing, are affected earliest and most severely. Memory, language, planning,
concentration, persistence in tasks. vjsuaJ-spatial abilities, and computational
skills are all affected to some degree. Stroke and other focal brain disorders
such as tumors and abscesses, in contrast, usually affect only isolated cognitive
and behavioral functions depending on the side and region of the brain involved by
the focal process. Perceptual abilities arc also affected and patients may have
visual illusions and frank hallucinations. Testing of intellectual functions is an
integral part of the physical examination, at least as important as testing of
strength, sensation, and vision.
Screening of cognitive abilities can usually be performed during a short period of
time using rather simple tests. Language should always he checked
first, because the ability of patients to follow and understand spoken and written
questions and directions and patients' ability to communicate answers and follow
directions depend on preservation of language. When the patient speaks another
language, either because their native tongue is different or because of aphasia,
other intellectual functions are very difficult to assess. Table 2 lists bedside
tasks used to check the intactness of language abilities. The brain's language
zones are localcd in the parasylvian region of the dominant cerebral hemisphere.
Visual-spatial abilities are also very important to assess. Patients are asked to
draw simple objects such as a house, clock, daisy, or bicycle, Then they are asked
to copy a simple diagram such as that shown in Figure I or the Reye Jigure shown in
Figure 2, Depicting accurately the shape, size, angles, symmetry, and proportions
on spontaneous drawings and in making copies of objects is mostly
TABU: 2 Screening of Language Functions
1.
Write a few sentences about: your work, the town in which you now live, the last
or next election, etc.

2.
Read aloud a paragraph from the newspaper or a magazine

3.
Name common objects present in theroom or in the examiner's doctor bag or pockets
e.g. keys coin pen button buttonhole tic shoelace watch ring etc

FIG. 1 A complex ligure for lhe paiient u> copy.

a function of the inferior parietal lobe on the right side of the brain. Another
very useful strategy for screening visual-spatial functions as well as
observational facility and language is to show patients pictures or cartoons in
magazines. The examiner watches the patient scan the picture. Do they search the
picture carefully and systematically or instead direct their gaze randomly or in a
cursory fashion? After the picture has been removed from the patient's vision, the
patient is asked to describe what he or she saw. Specific queries can then be posed
depending on the patient's initial responses, such as. how many people are shown in
the picture? How many are men and how many women? What are the people doing? Where
do you think the scene took place? Memory retention can then be tested later by
asking the patients to recall the pictures shown earlier.
Memory should always be tested actively by giving the patient items lo be recalled
later. Passive memory testing, that is. asking the patient to describe recent
personal activities such as meals and occurrences, is very unreliable because
patients with severe amnesia such as those with Korsakoff's syndrome, often
confabulate answers which the examiner usual IN has no way to verify. To save
time, the patient can be asked to recall items used in previous tests. Ask patients
to tell you about the paragraph that they read, the items that you had asked them
to name, the picture scenes that you had already shown them, and the names of
famous people that they had been asked to identify from pictures shown earlier.
Alternatively, patients are told a brief story that contains five or more facts,
and 5 to 10 minutes later they are asked to recall the story. Testing is more
effective if patients are told at the time of the original tests that they will be
asked later to recall the items shown as a test of their memory.
Encephalopathic palients have difficulty maintaining concern ration on tasks.
Although they may understand the nature of a request and can begin to answer
correctly, they are unable to persevere and linish the task. For example, ask the
patient to name 10 colors, zoo animals, articles of clothing, fruits, etc. If they
can begin by producing two or three correct names then they clearly understand the
directions and the nature of the task and have sufficient language abilities to
supply items within the category requested. The inability to persevere and give
further items usually means that they cannot sustain attention long enough to
finish the task. The frontal lobes and their reciprocal connections with the basal
ganglia and thalamus are the anatomical structures most responsible for initiating
and persevering with tasks. These structures are quite vulnerable to metabolic
perturbations. Alternative tests of concentration and attention are: counting
backward quickly from 20 to 0; reciting numbers after the examiner both forward and
backward; crossing off all the letter A's on a printed page; countin backward fro
100 b three
periodically? Are they alert enough to read, watch television, carry on
conversations with visitors, etc,1? Are they difficult to arouse in the morning or
after naps? Are they alert enough to till out their menu requests and to eat the
\oo<i served on their (ray?
Asterixis. a metabolic Hap, is an important sign in patients wilh encephalopathy.
Although asterixis was iirst described in patients with hepatic encephalopathy, it
is a nonspecific sign and is present in patients with encephalopathy of diverse
causes. Asterixis is most often elicited by asking the patient lo hold the upper
limbs outstretched in front of them with the wrists and lingers held in full
extension. After a short latency, side-to-side movements of the fingers, and
flexion/extension movements of the fingers at the metacarpophalangeal joints and at
the wrist appear 14.5J. The flexion movements arc quick; the flexion phase is much
more rapid than ihe extension movements used to return the lingers and wrists to
their former positions. Asterixis can also be elicited in the lower limbs by having
patients dorsiflex the feel with the legs elevated and extended |4|. Alternatively
ihe examiner can use his or her arms placed under the patient's knees to gently
lift the lower extremities off the bed while the patient's thighs and legs are
flexed- Flapping movements of the legs and feet appear. Electrical studies during
asterixis show an absence of electrical activity during the flapping movements
followed by compensatory muscle contractions as ihe extensor muscles restore the
posture of the limbs |4,5J, Asterixis is really a failure to maintain a sustained
posture 11,4-6]. It represents a central nervous system disorder of the mechanisms
that sustain muscle contractions. Just as the patient cannot sustain concentration
on mental tasks, they also cannot sustain attention lo hold a fixed limb posture.
Asterixis usually can be elicited when some degree of reduced alertness develops.
Some degree of attention and wakefulness is required. When patients become frankly
stuporous, asterixis may nol he elicitable.
Differential Diagnosis of Toximetabolic Encephalopathy in Cardiac Patients
Cardiac patients, especially those who are acutely ill with congestive heart
failure, have a wide variety of potential explanations for encephalopathy. Most
often encephalopathy is related to perturbations of the biochemical makeup of the
body's internal milieu. In fact, encephalopathies are often referred to as
"toximetabolic" to capture the biochemical nature of the disorder. Acute and
rapidly developing metabolic changes are more likely to cause an encephalopathy
than disorders that develop slowly. The most common causes of encephalopathy in
cardia patient (1) dysfunctio f othe systemi especiall th kid diagnosis of
toximetabolic encephalopathies can be thought of in terms of whether the condition
is endogenous or exogenous and whether the abnormality involves too little or too
much of a biochemical/metabolic ingredient. Endogenous disorders arise from
changes within the biochemical milieu of the body whereas exogenous conditions
include various deficiency states and exposure to potentially toxic substances.
Table 3 lists the differential considerations using these categories. The effects
of drugs used to treat cardiac patients are discussed in more detail in the second
half of this chapter.
Organ dysfunctions and organ failures are common in patients with cardiac
decompensation. All organs are dependent on the heart to supply an adequate amount
of blood. Organ dysfunction is often related to poor perfusion or congestion with
increased venous pressure, or a combination of decreased perfusion and congestion.
In order to adequately perfuse organs that have increased venous pressures and
impaired venous drainage, the perfusion pressure supplying that organ wilh blood
must increase in order to maintain an effective arterio-venous pressure
differential Circulatory compromise due to cardiac dysfunction may impair the
ability to augment perfusion. The nutritive contents of the blood, espe-
TABLE 3 Differential Diagnosis of Toxinietabolic Encephalopathies
Too much Too little
Endogenous Liver failuresubstances not detoxified
Oa
in the liver
Na
Renal failureurea and other excreta Thyroid
Pulmonary failureC02 Blood (anemia)
Na*

lntra\ascular volume
Ca:~ Sugar
Thyroid Phosphate

Adrenal corticosteroids
Viscosity
Sugar
Ketone bodies
Acid {reduced pHj
Osmolality Exogenous
Alcohol
Psychotropic drugs Thiamine
haloperidol Niaci
cially oxygen, sugar, and ketone bodies, also effects the delivery of needed
metabolic substrates to each organ. Although most organs can utilize a variety of
substrates, neurons in the brain are quite dependent on sugar and oxygen lor
survival.
Pulmonary congestion, pulmonary edema, and pleural effusions are all common in
palients with cardiac decompensation. Patients with heart disease very often also
have concurrent chronic bronchopulmonary disease, especially if they smoke
cigarettes. Depression of alertness and toximetabolic disorders of all causes can
depress respiratory function causing hypoventilation 11|. Hypoventilation can lead
to hypoxia and CO : retention. Morphine, sedatives, and psychotropic agents that
are often used to treat cardiac pain and anxiety can depress ventilatory drive and
further decrease ventilation. Pulmonary embolism, an important complication of
congestive heart failure, can further compromise ventilation and perfusion wiihin
the lung.
Liver congestion is another very frequent accompaniment of congestive heart
failure, especially in patients with right heart disease and tricuspid valve
incompetence. Increased pressure in the interior vena cava and hepatic veins is
caused by the heart's inability to efficiently pump blood coming to it from the
systemic venous system. The increased pressure in veins draining the liver leads to
an increase in pressure in the intrahepatic veins with compression and necrosis of
hepatic lobules. Abnormalities of liver enzymes may occur in patients with
congestive heart failure but frank hepatic coma is rare. Some patients with chronic
congestive heart failure or constrictive pericarditis may develop cardiac cirrhosis
related to chronic liver congestion. These patients may develop signs of liver
failure when acute heart failure is superimposed on the chronic slate.
Renal dysfunction with elevation of blood urea nitrogen and blood creatinine
levels may also occur in patients with acute cardiac decompensation. Many patienls
with hypertension and atherosclerotic coronary artery disease have nephrosclerosis
and chronic kidney disease due to concurrent involvement of the small and large
renal arteries. Changes in blood and serum volume and acid-base components are
common in patients with congestive heart failure and are often related to the use
of diuretics and other pharmacologic agents, Kidney congestion and reduced
perfusion also occur. Renal failure is especially common in patients who have
transient or persistent hypotension during cardiac decompensation and its
treatment. Renal and hepatic dysfunction affect the metabolism and excretion or
drugs. The serum level of drugs excreted by the kidneys increases and remains
higher in pat SenK when they haw ruial failure. Toxic effeci.s ol drugs previously
well tolerated may develop in the presence of renal failure even when the dose f th
drug i changed
and other septic complications are common in patients wilh cardiac decompensation.
Chest pain is also common and may be multifile (oral. The release of substances
into the circulation such as cytokines, endorphins, and other agents, some as yet
undiscovered and unidentified, are probably responsible for ihe encephalopathy of
infectious illnesses and pain.
Patients who are acutely ill because of congestive heart failure frequently have
more than one metabolic abnormality. For example, a patient with conges ti\e heart
failure who has an encephalopathy may have slight hypoxemia, slight hyponatremia,
modest elevation of blood urea nitrogen, and a low-grade fever. Each of these
problems may be insufficient alone to explain the encephalopathy, but when added
together the combined effect of all the metabolic changes may be enough lo cause
important brain dysfunction. If a person takes two shots of Scotch, one shot of
bourbon, three glasses of wine, and two cans of beer, he or she would become
"drunk." Yet the level of Scotch, bourbon, beer, or wine, if separately measurable,
would not be very high. When summed, the effect of all of these alcohol-containing
drinks can be profound.
The clinical neurological findings arc very similar in patients with
encephalopathies of all CULINC -* uiih ^oiue minor differences. Patients with
hepatit encephalopathy nearly always have tachypnea and a respiratory alkalosis.
Abnormal movements, myoclonic jerks, dystonic posturing of the limbs, and
choreoathetotic movements of the arms are often present in patients with hepatic
encephalopathy but are less common in other encephalopathies. Most patients with
liver failure have important abnormalities of motor and reflex function found on
examination, including weakness, stiffness, limb ataxia and incoordination,
increased deep tendon reflexes, and Babinski signs.
Uremic patients and those with severe hypoventilation i"C02 narcosis*') are usually
apathetic, abulic. and inactive and have less motor abnormalities and abnormal limb
movements than those with hepatic encephalopathy. Abulic patients have a markedly
reduced amount of speech and spontaneous activity. When asked questions or directed
to do an action, they often fail to respond or do so only after a long latent
interval. Their responses are brief. They have difficulty persevering with tasks.
Abulic palients are described as generally inactive, disinterested, and quiet.
Seizures and twitching movements of the limbs are common in palients with renal
failure and those with hyponatremia and severe hyperglycemia. Uremic patienis
often have fine muscular twitching resembling fascicular lions and may also have
multifocal myoclonic muscle contractions especially involving facial muscles [4.61.
Patients will, chronic renal insufficiency are invariably pale and anemic and have
a polyneuropathy characterized by burning feet absen ankl reflexes reduced kne
jerks d diminished vibratio d posi tion of normal brain function often takes lime
even after blood tests return to norma 1. Patients with electrolyte and acid-base
abnormalities, and hyperosmolar states may take a particularly long time to regain
their baseline neurological functions. We have cared for patienls who. for weeks
after correction of hyponatremia, acidosis, and nonketotic hyperosmolar coma,
remain confused, hallucinate, and show prominent intellectual and behavioral
abnormalities. These neurological signs often return to normal slowly over days to
weeks after correction of the metabolic abnormality.
Cardiac Encephalopathies Without Apparent Other Causes
Some palients with acute and chronic congestive heart failure have the clinical
neurological findings of an encephalopathy without any recognized liver, renal,
pulmonary, or definite biochemical or metabolic abnormality delected by blood tests
sufficient to explain the encephalopathy. These patients are often sleepy,
confused, inattentive, and unable to consistently sustain intelligent
conversations, Thetc are i.wo different el ntieal s\ ndromo. found in patients w
till cardiac enceph
alopathyone that resembles in every way the findings discussed in patienls with
systemic organ failures and metabolic perturbations, and a different clinical
syndrome that closely mimics that found in patients with hydrocephalus.
The mechanisms of brain dysfunction in patients with congestive heart failure arc
multifactorial, Systemic venous pressure is increased causing pari passu an
increase in pressure in the venous dura I sinuses and veins in the cranial cavity,
Increased intracranial venous pressure diminishes absorption of CSF and so an
increased amount of fluid accumulates in the cisterns around the brain, in the
subarachnoid spaces, and sometimes within the ventricles. The CSF pressure may be
elevated when measured by lumbar puncture. Brain edema may result from the
increased venous pressure and increased amounts of CSF. In order to perfuse the
brain and maintain an effective arteriovenous pressure difference adequate for
brain perfusion, arterial pressure and cerebral blood flow must be maintained and
even augmented in patients with elevated intracranial venous pressures, Cardiac
decompensation can limit the ability of the heart and systemic circulation to
augment cerebral blood flow. Hypoxia related to pulmonary dysfunction and
hypoventilation reduces the oxygen content of the blood that reaches neurons in the
brain. Of course, dysfunction of other organs, and electrolyte, blood volume, acid-
base abnormalities, and drugs also can compound the cardiac encephalopathy.
Neurological abnormalities occur when cardiac failure is most severe and th
clinical sign indistinguishabl fro thos found i patient with l syndrome can develop
during treatment of congestive heart failure and may occur even after cardiac
compensation when the patient is recovering from heart failure. The major feature
of this syndrome is abulia. Abulic patienls have severely reduced spontaneous
behavior. They seem content to sit or lie about without doing much. They show
little or no interest in television, reading, listening to the radio,
conversations, or any other activity. The quantity of spontaneous initiated speech
is much reduced. When asked questions or urged to perform tasks, abulic patients
often fail to respond or do so only after a relatively long interval. When
questicms or directions are repeated, patients often say that they had heard you
the hrst time but just couldn't get rolling to reply or act. Responses, when they
are forthcoming, are generally short, laconic, and terse. Patients don't persist
with familiar tasksfor example, name 10 zoo animals, 10 articles of clothing:
count backward from 20 to 1. Intellectual functions including memory, language,
and ability to draw and copy are preserved although these functions lake longer
than usual to perform and require frequent prodding lo complete. The palients
remain alert despite their inactivity an J slnu ness in contrast to alt other
encephalopathies thai are invariably accompanied by drowsiness and later stupor.
Friends and family describe abulic patients as "bumps on a log*' or "couch
potatoes.
A clinical example of this syndrome may serve to illustrate the findings. Several
years ago one of the authors (L.R.C.) was asked to consult on a patient because of
a change in behavior. A <S7-year-old woman, the wife of a former governor of the
state, had entered the Michael Reese Hospital in severe congeslive heart failure.
She was known lo have severe aortic and mitral valve disease and had lower-
extremity edema, ascites, and pleural effusions. She was vigorously Heated with
diuretics, bed rest, and thoracentesis and her congestive heart failure greatly
improved. As her heart failure improved, her husband and fan lib noted a marked
personality change, Usually gregarious, outgoing, friendly, and talkative, now she
had become very quiet, uninterested, and inert. When asked, she said that she was
not discouraged or depressed. She seemed not to heed questions. Her replies were
usually one or two wordsyes, no, or single-word nameswhich were usually correct.
Her motor, sensory, visual, and reflex examinations were normal except that she
had bilateral Babinskt signs. After lumbar punctures that removed CSF, she returned
to her former self and her plantar responses became Hcxor.
The abulic syndrome is most likely caused by retention of CSF wiihin the
intracranial cavity. Pericardial, pleural, and peritoneal effusions are quite
common and well known in patients with congestive heart failure. Effusions within
the cranial cavity probably have the same explanation as pleural and peritoneal
effusions Th meninge connectiv tissu simila i The amount of CSF increases and fluid
accumulates in the cisterns around the brain, in the subarachnoid space, and
sometimes in the ventricles. As is well known, compensation and correction of
congestive heart failure do not necessarily result in full reabsorplion of pleural
and pericardial effusions and ascites. The pressure in the intracranial venous
sinuses and neck and cranial veins lhat drain the head may normalize sufficiently
to prevent further CSF effusions but not enough to allow absorption and clearing of
the effusions already present. Similarly, thoracentesis and abdominocentesis may
be required to remove persistent pleural fluid and ascites even after treatment
with diuretics and cardiac drugs.
Computed tomography (CT) scans in patients with the hydrocephalic, abulic syndrome
are often read as showing "brain atrophy/* Radiologists see increased CSF between
cerebral and cerebellar gyri and interpret the widening of the sulci as indicating
loss of brain tissue. Of course, increased quantity of intracranial CSF can expand
the sulci and cause an increased amount of fluid outside ihe brain (so-called
external hydrocephalus) as well as some enlargement of ihe ventricular system
(internal hydrocephalus). Usually there is not a major enlargement of the cerebral
ventricles. Lumbar puncture in patients with the abulic syndrome is often followed
by clinical improvement and normalization of the "brain atrophy" shown by CT. Sulci
become smaller and the gyri widen. CT scans may take time to normalize after lumbar
puncture and after treatment of congestive heart failure.
Some reports of patients with severe heart disease, syncope, and congestive heart
failure have noted a high frequency of cognitive abnormality although none has
defined the pathogenesis of the loss of intellectual function. Zuccala el al.
studied 57 consecutive patients with chronic congestive heart failure [7|. The
average age of these patients was 76.7 years. More than half (53%) had low scores
on a battery of tests that quanlitate cognitive functions, and the presence of low
scores was highly correlated with left ventricular ejection fractions of <30% 17].
Rosenberg and colleagues performed detailed neuropsychological testing on seven
patients with recurrent cardiogenic syncope, six of whom had documented arrythmias
[X], The patients with syncope had abnormalities on tests of memory function not
found in age- and education-matched control subjects [8J. Garcia et al. performed
neuropsychological testing on 100 consecutive cardiac palients admitted to a
rehabilitation hospital, and found lhat 4/24 (I6.7fi ) patients with ischemic heart
disease but no known strokes had significant cognitive impairment |9].
The most detailed information about cognitive and intellectual functions in
patients with severe heart disease comes from studies of patients considered fo
cardia transplantatio |10,l II Neuropsychological ofte included cardiomyopathies
[101. The mean left ventricular ejection fraction of these pa* tients was 20% and
the mean cardiac index was 2,6 L/min/m:. The major impairments were in tests of
memory and visual and tactile perception; 56% of patients were moderately impaired
on logical memory tests and this increased to 61% when 30-minute delays were
introduced into the testing [ I Of Among the 54 pa* tients, 20 were retested, (mean
of 7.7 months after cardiac transplantation) and were found to have only slight
improvements 110]. Bornstein et al. studied 62 patients (mean age 44.7 years) who
were evaluated extensively for cardiac transplantation 1111; 45% of the patients
had dilated cardiomyopathies and 40% had ischemic cardiomyopathies. The patients
were impaired on 507r of the neuropsychological measures, and 58% of patients met
the criteria for overall impairment that 45c/c or more of the cognitive test scores
fell into the impaired range. The highest rates of impairment were on tests of
memory, speed of motor activity, and measures of attention, reasoning, and concept
formation. Impaired intellectual functioning correlated with elevated righi atrial
pressure. Better performance correlated with higher stroke volume, stroke volume
index, and cardiac index. Pulmonary capillary wedge pressures and left ventricular
ejection fractions did not correlate with results of neuropsychological testing in
this series. Only 11 of these patient*, were retested (seven who had
transplantation and four who did not) a mean of 36 months after the initial test
battery. In general, the transplant patients showed improvement, and patients who
did not have transplantation usually did worse than they had before [ 11 J. The
authors considered that elevated right atrial pressure was probably a marker for
biventricular failure and low cardiac output and thai the cognitive deficits might
relate to chronically reduced brain blood flow 11 11.
Nontoximetabolic Encephalopathies
It is important for cardiologists to know that some conditions that effect the
brain multifocally and diffusely, or involve the meninges, can cause clinical
syndromes indistinguishable from toximetabolic disorders.
Bacterial endocarditis is well known to cause an encephalopathy syndrome. Symptoms
include lethargy and decreased level of consciousness, confusion, agitation, poor
concentration, and poor memory. In some patienls encephalopathy is a toxic effect
related to fever and to acute infection. Patients who have Staph, aureus acute
endocarditis are more likely to develop encephalopathy than patients with
endocarditis caused by other organisms. Necropsy and CT/MRl studies of patients
with endocarditis and encephalopathy often show multiple small d brai infarct and/o
microabscesse [ 12-14] Encephalopath of brain infarction, edema, and hemorrhage.
The clinical syndrome is that of an encephalopathy. Thrombotic thrombocytopenic
purpura | 15.16", cancer, especially mucinous adenocarcinomas [ 17.18], and
disseminated intravascular coagulation (D1C) [19,20] are often associated with
multiple small brain infarcts and hemorrhages. Some patients with leukemia who have
very high leukocyte counts and high leukocrits, and some palients wilh
thrombocytosis (counts of over
1,000.000 platelets) can develop encephalopathie syndromes due to altered blood How
and multiple small hemorrhages and infarcts.
Oct 71 tsion of vet i on s dura I sit 11 tses can pre s e nt c I i n i eaJI y as a
s y ndro me that mimics an encephalopathy. Occlusion of the deep venous system
including usually the vein of Galen and the straight sinus cause edema and
ischemia bilaterally in the thalamus, basal ganglia, and deep white matter of the
brain [21-23]. Headache and decreased consciousness ensue, often with bilateral
motor abnormalities. Because the brain dysfunction is bilateral and often
relatively symmetrical, there may not be prominent focal signs. Similarly,
occlusion of the superior sagittal sinus, or the transverse sinuses bilaterally,
can cause bilateral brain edema, infarction, and hemorrhage and can be accompanied
by a syndrome that mimics an encephalopathy [21.24],
lav reused whole-Mood viscosity can lead to reduced brain and retinal blood flow,
causing a syndrome closely resembling LI toximetabolic encephalopathy. The two most
important contributors to whole-blood viscosity are the hematocrit and the
fibrinogen levels [25]. Patients with severe polycythemia develop headache,
drowsiness, and confusion, symptoms lhat improve after the hematocrit is lowered.
Waldenstrom's macroglobulincmia. other disorders such as multiple myeloma which
involve an overabundance of abnormal globulins, and occasionally severe
hyperlipidemia can be associated with a hyperviscosity syndrome. The neurologic
findings in patients with hyperviscosity syndromes include somnolence, stupor,
headache, seizures, confusion, ataxia, and blurred vision 126]. The retinal vessels
usually provide an important elue to die presence of hyperviscosity. Retinal veins
are dilated and may show segmentation of blood columns within the vessels.
Occasionally, retinal hemorrhages, exudates, microaneurysms, and even papilledema
are found in patients wilh severe hyperviscosity.
Encephalitis is, of course, included within the differential diagnosis of
encephalopathies since infections and inflammatory disorders can affect the brain
diffusely. During the summer months gastrointestinal viruses such as Coxsackie and
eehovirus are common pathogens. During the winter months, herpes simplex is the
most important viral cause. Viral infections, especially childhood exanthema, can
be followed by a postinfectious diffuse perivenous demyelmating disorde ofte
called postinfectiou encephalomyelitis Feve d othe sign that can mimic an
encephalopathy [27,28]. Centra] nervous system arteritis is extremely rare. The
diagnosis is probably considered in 1000 patients for every one that actually lias
the condition. Arteritis or a subacute encephalitis can follow herpes zoster
infection, especially herpes zoster oplhalmicus.
Patients with systemic lupus erythematosis, polyarteritis nodosa, severe rheumatoid
arthritis, Wegener's granulomatosis^ lymphomatoid granulomatosis, and other
collagen and systemic inflammatory disorders can develop central nervous system
findings. The signs and symptoms in patients with these conditions can mimic an
encephalopathy but diagnosis of the underlying inflammatory disease almost always
precedes brain involvement.
Laboratory Investigations of Patients Suspected of Having an Encephalopathy
The most important diagnostic tests are usually biochemical analyses of the blood.
Complete blood counts including quantification of platelets should be routinely
ordered. Blood electrolytes. pO> pCO:, pH, blood urea nitrogen, Ca :\ and POJ are
also important to assess and monitor. B, ^ folate, and iron levels are important in
appropriate patients, especially those with anemia. Measurement of prothrombin
time, partial thromboplastin time, and other coagulation testing is important,
especially in patients taking anticoagulants and those with clinical evidence of
bleeding. Liver enzymes, thyroid hormone and TSH levels, and early-morning levels
of corticosteroids arc often helpful in patients with suspected liver, thyroid, and
adrenal cortical disease. Levels of drugs such as digitalis and antidepressants
arc also important in patients who are taking these medications. Blood levels of
various potential exogenous toxins are sometimes useful when palients are suspected
of using potentially toxic substances and drugs surreptitiously.
Since bronchopulmonary problems are extremely common in patients with congestive
heart failure, assessment of lung functions is often useful. Monitoring of blood
gasses should be routine in encephalopathy patients. Ordinarily, pulse oximetry is
adequate but periodic measurements of pO:, pCO:, and 02 saturation are also
important since circulatory factors and peripheral vasoconstriction in the limbs
can affect the pulse oximetry' readings. Even when lung disease is not the initial
cause of the encephalopathy, any disorder that clouds alertness can be complicated
by secondary ventilatory abnormalities, most often hypoventilation. Measurement of
lung volumes, tidal volume, and other respiratory functions is often helpful in
quantitating the role of pulmonary factors in causing or contributing to an
encephalopathy. Some patients who breathe quite normally during the day whil the
awake develo hypoventilatio durin sleep Night lopathies and in following their
clinical course. The EEG is invariably diffusely abnormal in encephalopathy
patients in contrast to focal or multifocal abnormalities usually found in
patients with localized structural central nervous system disease, in patients with
a variety of different toximelabolic conditions sufficient to cause an
encephalopathy, the background activity is slow and there is an excess of theta
(four to six cycles per second) and delta waves (one to three cycles per second).
Alpha Nullum arc suppressed. There may be a loss of amplitude of waves [3.291.
Paroxysmal triphasic waves may appear especially in patients with hepatic
encephalopathy. Evoked potentials after visual, auditory, or somatosensory stimuli
may also be altered in patients with encephalopathy but these electrophysiologic
tests arc seldom required to make the diagnosis, Occasional patients with
encephalopathy will have spike discharges or frank seizures recorded by EEG, The
severity of the EEG abnormalilies does not always parallel clinical findings. The
EEG may become abnormal even before clinical neurological symptoms and signs
develop. On the other hand, the EEG may remain abnormal for some time after the
patient seems to have clinically recovered well. In some patients it is useful to
perform sleep EEG studies in search of sleep apnea or hypoventilation during sleep.

Brain imaging using CT or magnetic resonance imaging (MRl) ts sometimes helpful,


especially in patients who are unconscious or heavily sedated or narcotized. Such
patients are difficult to examine clinically and of course they cannot tell us of
any neurological or other symptoms. In patients with severe atherosclerotic
disease, vascular imaging studies (magnetic resonance angiography [MRA1. computed
tomography angiography [CTA], or extracranial and transcranial ultrasound) may be
useful in detecting and quantifying occlusive cerebrovascular disease. Similarly,
echocardiography will define the ejection fraction, myocardial dysfunction, and
potential cardiac and aoriic donor sources of emboli. Vascular testing has been
described in detail in Chapter 2 on brain embolism.
Lumbar puncture is occasionally helpful in encephalopaihie patients. The most
common indication for a spinal lap is fever. Meningitis, encephalitis, and
bacterial endocarditis can yield diagnostic cerebrospinal fluid findings even when
brain imaging tests are normal. In patients with cardiac encephalopathy and a
hydrocephulic-likc syndrome, lumbar puncture wilh measurement of the opening
pressure and removal of a large quantity of cerebrospinal fluid can be both
diagnostic and therapeutic. After the opening pressure is obtained, fluid can be
removed in 5-mL increments. Each time fluid is removed, the pressure should be
reeheeked. In general, when there is a large volume of cerebrospinal fluid, as is
th i patient with subarachnoid effusion related congestiv hear fail
NEUROLOGIC SIDE EFFECTS AND TOXICITIES OF DRUGS
Who would choose to practice medicine today or tomorrow without pharmacological
drugs? In Tact, the word medicine is used as a synonym for drug as well as lhe
designation of our profession. More and more medicines and more potent medicines
are introduced each year, making it quite difficult for practicing physicians to
keep up with the rapidly expanding drug armamentarium available. Among patients
with cardiovascular diseases, polypharmacy is the rule rather than the exception.
Ask an elderly cardiac patient to show you the medicines he or she is taking, and
soon their pocketbooks or sacks will be emptied of many bottles that have been
prescribed.
Drugs are clearly two-edged swords. Although some have great therapeutic potentials
when used appropriately, many drugs are not prescribed or taken correctly, and
many have important side effects and potential toxicity. Old, sick, frail palients.
many of whom have multiple system abnormalities and multiple organ failure,
tolerate medicines poorly.
In this section, we will attempt to summarize concisely the nervous system side
effects of drugs commonly used by cardiac patients. We will emphasize the most
common and most important neurological side effects. Larger reviews should lie
consulted for more details, discussions, and references [30.31]. We will first
discuss medicines primarily used to treat cardiovascular disease. We will then turn
to pharmacological agents that are frequently used in cardiac patients (e.g.,
antibiotics, anti-peptic ulcer drugs, sedatives, psychotropic drugs,
antidepressants, neuromuscular blocking drugs) but are not directed primarily at
the cardiovascular problems.
Interpretation of published reports of drug side effects are often difficult to
interpret. Some symptoms mentioned* such as headache, dizziness, lightheadedness,
depression, sleep abnormalities, and tinnitus, are quite common in older patients
who have cardiovascular diseases. In most studies, the authors simply report
symptoms mentioned by patients who are taking the drugs studied, but no attempt has
been made to compare the frequencies of these symptoms with comparable patients who
are not taking these or other drugs. Moreover, it is difficult to find patients
with important cardiovascular disease who are not taking any medication. Herein we
simply note side effects prominently mentioned, some of which may more probably be
attributed lo the nature of lhe patients and their diseases than to the drug or
drugs used.
lion. Drug activity on the heart is related to inhibition of sodium- and potassium-
activated adenosine triphosphatase, but the drug also affects neuronal sodium-
potassium ATPasc. accounting for neurological side effects [32J, Neurological side
effects are dose related and arc more common in elderly patients. Hyperactive,
restless states characterized by agitation, excitement, insomnia, irritability,
euphoria, and manic psychoses and delirium have been reported [331. In other
patients, decreased alertness, somnolence, apathy, and depression occur. Visual and
auditory hallucinations have been described [34|. Visual symptoms are especially
prominent and characteristic of digitalis toxicity. Some patients describe white
borders around dark objects and altered color perception: most often yellow tints
are reported but green, red, blue, and brown discoloration have also been
described. Some patients describe rather vivid visual hallucinations such as seeing
friends dressed in unusually bright colored clothes, butterflies, bird houses, and
Confederate soldiers [34]. Optic neuropathy with persistent visual loss has also
been reported [30]. Neuropsychological side effects can occur in patients wilh
plasma levels of digoxin within the accepted therapeutic range.
Diuretics
Most of the neurological side effects of diuretics are related to decreased plasma
volume, hyponatremia, and hypokalemia. Palients treated wilh thin:hit' diuretics
(e.g.. chlorothiazide, hydrochlorothiazide, chlorthalidone, methylclothiazide)
often report fatigue and dizziness soon after starting the diuretic therapy.
Blurred vision can occur in relation to fluid changes in the retina or lens 130].
Vertigo and neuropsychialric symptoms are especially frequent in patients treated
with indapamide [30]. Headache, limb paresthesias, and muscle cramps are often
repotted. Depression and decreased sexual desire and function have also been
described 12,35],
Carbonic anhydrase inhibitors (e.g., acetazolamide, dichlorphenamide,
methazolamide) can cause a metabolic acidosis with resultant confusion and
seizures. Headaches, limb paresthesias, tremor, and altered taste are also
reported. Loop diuretics (e.g., furosemide, bulhetanide, ethacrynic acid) can cause
deafness probably related to electrolyte changes in the labyrinthine endolymph
1301, Hearing loss can persist even after the loop diuretics have been stopped.
These drugs can cause acute hyperglycemia. Loop diuretic use can decrease the renal
clearance of lithium and salicylates, resulting in toxic levels of these drugs and
accompanying toxic side effects [301. Syncope can resuh from volume depletion.
The toxicity or potassium-sparing diuretics (e.g., spironolactone, triamterene,
amiloride) is mostly related to hyperkalemia. Muscle cramps, muscle weakd cardia
rhyth abnormalitie atirihuied elevated potassiu
Antiarrythmic Drugs Quinidine
Derived from the cinchona plant and used even in the J 8lh century to treat pal
pita* lions, quinidine has long been recognized as causing neuropsychiatry symptoms
as a manifestation of toxicity. The toxic symptoms of quinine and quinidine are
often referred to as cinchonism. The proarrhythmic and potential toxic effects of
[he drug se> ereiy limit its useful ne w I lie mi >M common side el U\ [s are
tinnitus, dizziness, nausea, and headache. Some patients become restless and
excited and may develop a manic type of delirium. Confusion and even a reversible
dementia have been described [36,37]. One patient who had been taking quinidine for
14 years and was considered quite demented, had greatly improved mental
functioning within 24 hours of stopping quinidine |36], Visual blurring and
distortion also occur but could be at least partially attributable to concurrent
use of digitalis [38J. Fisher reported five patients who had recurrent visual
aberrations; especially prominent was visual dimming or other visual obscuration
soon after exposure to bright light [38]. Four of these five palients were also
taking digitalis derivatives, and quinidine is known to elevate digitalis levels.
Quinidine is also known to potentiate neuromuscular blocking agents, and its use
can cause increased muscle weakness in patienls who have mystheuia gravis.
Procainamide
This drug can cause increased muscle weakness in patients with myasthenia gravis
and peripheral neuropathies [30,39,39a]. Procainamide has also been reported to
cause an immune-mediated form of chronic inflammatory demyelinaling
polyradiculoneuropathy, usually accompanied by other serological and clinical
manifestations of drug-induced systemic lupus erythematosis [39b,39cJ. The
anticholinergic effects of the drug can cause blurred vision, dry mouth, and
tremors. Cerebellar type ataxia [40] and mental abnormalities including frank
psychosis have been reported but rarely 141,421, The proarrhythmic and toxic side
effects of this drug limit its clinical usefulness.
Ltdocaine
Lidocainc toxicity is especially likely to occur when rapid intravenous infusions
of drug are given. Paresthesias in the lips and fingers, tinnitus, decreased
hearing, and lethargy are very common during infusions [43 f Central nervous system
side effect are prominent and are estimated to occui in (Y r to 20', of heated
pattenls
[43.441. In a review of 750 patients treated with lidocaine, 31 {4r/c) had
important neurological toxicit includin agitation confusion dysarthria
tremulousness has seen several patients who developed coma with absent ocular and
limb movements while receiving lidocaine infusions through automatic pumps.
Brainstem hemorrhage or infarction was suspected until it was discovered that
Udocaine had been infused very quickly in larger-than-desired quantities due to
faulty function of the infusion pumps. Coma and muscle paralysis were reversible,
but the respiratory depression that occurred during the paralysis led to some
cortical brain damage. One reported patient who had liver disease with ascites
developed coma and decerebrate rigidity while receiving lidocaine [45]. Since the
liver is responsible for the catabolism of the drug, lidocaine must be used very
cautiously or not
it all in patients with liver disease.
Tocainide and Mexiletine
These drugs are chemically similar to lidocaine and arc associated with similar
neurologic toxicity. Dizziness, headache, and fatigue are common. Patients often
report paresthesias, especially around the mouth, and altered taste. Tremors and
incoordination are especially common after mexiliiine [30], Blurred vision,
seizures, hallucinations, vivid nightmares, confusion, paranoia, and psychosis
have all been reported in patients given these drugs [31,461.
Disopyramide
The side effects of this antiarrhythmic agent are dose related and are explained
primarily by anticholinergic side effects. Dizziness, dry mouth, fatigue, headache,
urinary retention, and blurred vision arc prominent. Nervousness and agitation have
been described and can progress to psychosis |30J. Impotence is also an important
side effect of this drug [47],
Flecainide
Dizziness, headache, and blurred vision are common side effects [301. Visual
hallucinations, dysarthria, and seizures have been reported |481.
Amiodarone
This drug blocks sodium channels as well as potassium and calcium currents.
Neurological toxicity is very common and can be severe- Many parts of the nervous
system are affected by amiodarone as well as the skin, lungs, thyroid glands, and
other vital organs. Weakness, fatigue, tremors, and unsteady gait are very common
side effects. Tremor is probably the most frequent symptom and begins soon after
starting the drug. Other types of abnormal movements can also occur. Som patient
develo Parkinsonia syndrome th Parkinsonia d [50,511. Sensory symptoms of numbness
and paresthesias are prominent: loss of deep tendon reflexes and gait ataxia are
part of the neuropathy. Weakness, especially of the lower extremities, may also be
found and can be caused by the sensori-motor neuropathy or to a toxic myopathy.
Myopathic weakness can be severe. Visual symptoms arc due lo corneal deposits of
lipofuchsin or to an optic neuropathy. Feiner et at. reported 13 patients who
developed an optic neuropathy related to amindarone [521. The onset of acute
sudden-onset visual loss occurred on average 10 months after starting the drug. In
five patients the visual loss was bilateral and in eight unilateral. Visual loss
usually persisted even after stopping amiodarone 1521. Abnormal taste and smell
function, decreased libido and sexual function, confusion, delirium 153],
pseudotumor cerebri, and psychosis have also been attributed lo amiodarone.
Moricizine
Headache, dizziness, and fatigue are commonly reported in patients who take this
antiarrhythmic drug. Psychosis and seizures have been reported to occur but rarely
[30].

Propafenone
Neurologic side effects occur in about 2ir% of patients who take propafenone [30].
Symptoms include headache, dizziness, abnormal taste, blurred vision, drowsiness,
and paresthesias. Psychiatric side effects and seizures arc rare.

Drugs Used to Treat Hypertension


Centrally Acting Drugs {Clonidine, Methyl do pa, Guanabenz)
Common side effects include sleepiness, dry mouth, fatigue, and headache. Sedation
is the most frequent side effect noted in patients who take these drugs. Chnidine
has been reported to cause sleep disturbances, confusion, and paranoia 131,54]. A
withdrawal syndrome has been descrihed after abruptly stopping clonidine in
patients who have been taking the drug lor a long period 154-56]. Symptoms of the
withdrawal syndrome include iremor. sweating, anxiety, headache, vivid dreams, and
rebound hypertension. These findings have been explained by sympathetic
overactivity and increased catecholamine production [54-561, Methyldopa has been
known to precipitate or exacerbate Parkinson' diseas [54,57-59] Depressio d
psychosi othe sid effect
Ganglionic Blocking Sympatholytic Drugs {Mecamylamine, Trimethaphan)
Mecamyiamine has been associated with limb paresthesias, abnormal movements of ihe
limbs, and seizures 1301- Depression, hallucinations, and delirium have
occasionally been reported but most often in patients who are taking inecamylamine
wilh other drugs (54,62 J. Pupillary dilatation, blurred vision, sedation, and
restlessness are reported in patients taking these ganglionic blocking drugs.
Postganglionic Blocking Sympatholytic Drugs (Guanethidine. Reserpine, Guanadrel)
Headache occurs in about 30% of patients taking guanethidinc [63J, Postural
syncope, impotence, failure to ejaculate, and muscle fasciculations and weakness
are common after guanethidine use 164,65J.
Parkinsonian side effects are common after reserpine use and improve when the drug
is slopped, Reserpine worsens Parkinson's disease. Depression, often severe, is a
very important and serious side effect of reserpine use 1661. Sedation, decreased
concentration, decreased intellectual functions, hallucinations, and psychosis
have also been described in patients taking reserpine |671
Alpha-Adrenergic Blocking Sympatholytic Drugs (Prazosin, Phentolamine,
Phenoxybenzamine, Doxazosin, Tarazosin, Tolazoline)
Postural light-headedness, headache, fatigue, and weakness are the major
complaints in patients taking ibese drugs. Hallucinations and psychosis can
develop in patients taking doxazosin, prazosin, and terazosin [301, These agents
can signilicantly exacerbate narcolepsy.
ACE Inhibitors (Captopril, Enalapril, Lisinopril, Losartan, Benazepril)
Altered taste and a nonproductive cough are common in patients taking ACE
inhibitors. Mood elevation and euphoria sometimes occur in patients taking
captopril and this drug may have some antidepressant effect 131 J. Visual
hallucinations, psychosis, and manic behavior have occasionally been reported [68-
70). Peripheral neuropathy and a Guillain-Barre-type syndrome have also been
attributed to captopril 171,72].
Hydralazine
Hydralazine can cause paresthesias and a peripheral polyneuropathy, The neuropathy
is dose dependent and responds well to the administration of pyridoxine 130J.
Headache, tremor, dizziness, and muscle cramps are relatively common side effects.
Occasional patients have had psychiatric side effects including anxiety,
depression, and manic behavior 154]. Although hydralazine is well known to cause a
lupus erythematosis-tike syndrome, this invariably spares the nervous system
[30,54].
Diazoxide
Diazoxide can cause tinnitus and decreased hearing, symptoms that are usually
reversible when the drug is stopped [30], Headache, dizziness, altered taste and
smell sensations, and sleepiness are also complained of in patients taking di*
azoxide. Diazoxide administration frequently causes significant hyperglycemia which
can progress to ketoacidosis even in nondiabetic patients.
Sodium Nitroprusside
Sodium nitroprusside given in high doses can lead to an accumulation of cyanide and
thiocyanate which can cause a toxic encephalopathy and psychosis L30J.
Nitroprusside is a cerebral vasodilator which can increase intracranial pressure,
a potential problem in palients with brain tumors and large strokes.
Beta-Adrenergic-Blocking Drugs (Propanolol, Atenolol, Labetalol, Metoprolol,
Esmolol, Nadolol, Pindolol, Solatol, Timolol)
Fatigue and reduced exercise tolerance are very common side effects in palients
taking beta blockers. Sedation and drowsiness are also often reported in patients
taking relatively high doses. Depression is usually thought: to be an important
potential side effect of treatment 173-75). In a review of 31 studies of patients
treated with propanolol. the frequencies of neuropsychiatry symptoms were:
drowsiness and fatigue (3.5%); depression (1.1%); hallucinations and illusions
(0.6%); nightmares < 1.6%); and sleep abnormalities (0.7%) |31 J. After reviewing
the 19 reports of depression attributed by the authors to beta-blocker treatment.
Paykel et al. concluded that the frequency of depression reported was similar to
controls with hypertension and felt that the data "did not indicate that propanolol
causes depression" 1541.
Impaired coordination severe enough to affect driving has been reported
[30] Dimsdal d colleague summarized th result d 55 studie chosis are described but
are rare complications of beta-blocker drugs [73-75).
Pindolol often causes tremor and impaired hearing; diplopia, muscle weakness, and
impotence are occasionally noted.
Although propanolol and other bet a-blocking agents have been used lo prevent
migraine headaches, there is concern that these drugs could potentiate stroke in
migraineurs [76,77). James Lance, a noted headache expert, concludes.
"Betablockers are best avoided in patients with a prolonged aura or severe focal
neuro
logic xwnpliniis because Iheie ha\e been reports of niiyrainoLi^ Mmke with then-
use in such instances" [771.
Calcium Channel Blockers (Diltiazem, Verapamil, Nifedipine, Nimodipine,
Nicardipine, Amlodipine, Flunarizine, Cinnarizine, Lidoflazine)
Dizziness, paresthesias, and headache are common side effects reported by patients
taking calcium channel blockers. Restlessness, tremors, dysequilibrium,
nervousness, tinnitus, and insomnia are relatively common side effects, especially
in patienls taking high doses. Serious neuropsychiatries toxicity has been reported
but is relatively rare. Depression, delirium, confusion, mania, and psychosis have
occasionally been reported [31,78,79). Muscle weakness can occur and may be due to
hypokalemia. Parkinson's disease can be exacerbated during treatment with calcium
channel blockers [X0|. Parkinsonism is an especially important toxic side effect in
older patients who take cinnarizine or rlunarazine [80].
Coronary Dilating Drugs
Organic nitrates (nitroglycerin, isosorbide dinitrate. isosorbide mononitrate,
erythityl tctranitrate, pentaerythritol) are very often prescribed for patients
with coronary artery disease and angina pectoris. Headache is the most common side
effect and can be a severe problem in patients who have migraine headaches before
taking nitrates. In fact, nitroglycerin has been used to induce headache to test
the effectiveness of various antimigraine agents [81 J. Headaches are usually
diffuse and throbbing, and begin shortly after nitrates are taken, especially when
nitrates arc used sublingually. Some patients taking isosorbide mononitrate report
restlessness, insomnia decrease d concentration, and depression, but these
symptoms are also common in patienls with coronary artery disease who do not take
nitrates (301. An overdose of nitrates can cause methemaglobinemia with all of its
complications.
Lipid-Lowering Drugs
tors or in patients with hypothyroidism or renal insufficiency [30], The onset of
myopathy varies from days to weeks after fibrutes are begun [82]. The onset of
myalgias in the lower limbs and back is usually abrupt. Muscle tenderness and
weakness are often present [82J. The severity of myopathy can range from elevation
of creatine kinase with few or no symptoms, lo slight muscle cramps and weakness,
to acute rhabdomyolysis with myoglobinuria [30,82]. Headache is an important side
effect of gemfibrozil treatment [83,84], Impotence has also been reported in
palients who take clofibrate or gemfibrozil [851.
Ion Exchange Resins (Cholestyramine, Colestipol)
Important neurological side effects are rare in patients taking ion exchange
resins. Myalgia, headache, paresthesias, and dizziness arc occasionally reported.
Malabsorption of vitamins K, D, and A can result in bleeding, muscle weakness, and
impaired vision.
Hydroxymethylgtutaryl Coenzyme
A-Reductase Inhibitors (Lovostatin, Pravastatin,
Simvastatin, Atorvastatin)

Myopathy can develop in palients taking HMG Co-A reductase inhibitor drugs
especially when these agents are used with tibrates, cyclosporine, erythromycin, or
niacin [301. Serious neurological side effects are very rare. Some palients
complain of headache, insomnia f861, altered taste, and tremor.
Probucol
Probucol. .i pro motor of the clearance of lipoproteins, has rarely been associated
with important neurological toxicity. Paresthesias, headache, and blurred vision do
occasionally occur 130]-
Ntcotinic Acid
Visual loss can occur either due to a toxic amblyopia or to reversible macular
edema [87]. The cystoid maculopathy that is often responsible for the visual loss
usually improves when the drug is stopped 187]. Myopathy has been reported
especially when nicotinic acid is used with HMG Co-A reductase inhibitors [88,89J.
Rushing, headache, and syncope are common transient symptoms in patients taking
nicotinic acid.
Drugs That Modify Platelet Functions
rotic plaques. They have been used to prevent myocardial infarction and ischemic
stroke, and to treat patients with occlusive peripheral vascular disease.
Dipyridamole use often causes headaches, especially when 300 mg or more of drug is
taken each day 189]. Recently drugs that inhibit the platelet glycoprotein llb/llla
complex and its binding to librinogcn have been developed such as abciximab
(ReoPro), which consists of monoclonal antibodies to this complex. These platelet
llb/ITIa inhibitors show promise for lysing and preventing the development of
white platelet-(ibrin thrombi. Abciximab when given intravenously can cause
dizziness and difficulty concentrating and thinking |30], Myopathy may also be an
unusual side effect of abciximab therapy 130J. Because antiplatelet aggrcgants are
known to precipitate and exacerbate bleeding in various parts of the body,
physicians have naturally been concerned that intracranial bleeding might be an
important complication of the use of these agents. There is to date very little
evidence on this subject. In the Physicians Health Study there was a slightly
increased frequency of hemorrhagic strokes in patients takitig aspirin lhat was of
borderline stntisiieal significance [90]. In other studies, the frequency of
hemorrhagic stroke has not been increased in patients taking antiplatelet
aggregants. There is reason \\ r c< mceni that patients w ho have subarachnoid or
inn acere bra! bleeding or bleeding at other sites may have more extensive
hemorrhaging if they are taking antiplatelet aggrcgants.
Anticoagulants
Anticoagulant drugs (heparin, hepurinoids. low-molecular weight heparins,
warfarins) have most often been given lo patients with cardiovascular disease to
prevent brain and systemic embolism. These drugs all have the potential to cause
serious bleeding. Heparin also can cause a syndrome of thrombocytopenia and
disseminated thrombosis of small blood vessels tthe "white clot syndrome") [92,93].
Tin is syndrome can be associated with brain infarction and hemorrhages. Warfarin
can also cause a disseminated vascular occlusion syndrome, perhaps related to
activation of protein C, that is characterized by skin necrosis, muscle pain, and
infarction of the kidneys, spleen, liver, pancreas, brain, and spinal cord 194,95].

The most important complication of anticoagulant therapy is bleeding. The frequency


of bleeding depends heavily on the quality and consistency of the supervision of
anticoagulant therapy. Older age, higher intensity of treatment, variability of
the parameters used (International Normalized Ratios [TNR] or prothrombin time
ratios [PTR]), use of substances known to affect warfarin metabolism d th f seriou
comorbid condition clearl increas three categorized as serious, two as life-
threatening, and four as fatal [97]. In another large series of antieoagulated
patients, among 2376 patienls treated for 3702 patient-years. Ihere were XI2 lirsi
bleeding episodes including four fatal. 33 life-threatening, and 222 serious bleeds
[98], Intracranial bleeding was responsible for 20% of lhe bleeds judged lo be
cither life-threatening or fatal 198J. In these two vers large series, all fatal
hemorrhages (eight in all) were intracranial. Intracranial bleeding is most often
directh into the brain substance bui also can be subdural or subarachnoid.
All of the medications described so far have been used directly or indirectly to
treat the primary cardiac and cardiovascular diseases and their risk factors. The
drugs discussed below are also commonly used in patients with cardiovascular
diseases but ihey are most often not primarily directed at the cardiovascular
disorders. Narcotics and other analgesics, sedatives, and psychotropic agents are
often used to treat the pain, anxiety, and Tear that often accompany myocardial
infarction and oilier severe, lite-threatening disorders. Antibiotics are most
often used to treat coexisting infections, especially of the respiratory and
genitourinary systems. Neuromuscular blocking agents are used in patients with
hypoxia and pulmonary insufficiency. Histamine H: antagionists are now widely used
both in and outside the hospital to prevent or treat peptic ulcer disease and
gastric hyperacidity. Neurological complications and side effects related to the
use of these drugs are very important to recognize.
Antibiotics
Sulfonamides and trimethoprim occasionally cause an allergic type of aseptic
meningitis [99). High doses of trimethoprim can cause headache, difficulty
concentrating, and confusion. Quinolone antibiotics (nalidixic acid,
ciprofloxacin, cinoxacin, norfloxacin, tomefloxacin, ofloxacin, enoxacin.
levofloxachu sparfloxacin, perloxacin. trouafloxacin) can cause headache, anxiety,
and abnormal visual and sensory perception. Increased brightness of lights, changed
colors, double vision, and difficulty focusing vision are described 130].
Fluorinated -4-quinolones (norfloxacin, ofloxacin, perloxacin) can exacerbate
muscle weakness in patients with myasthenia gravis and have been shown to have an
effect on neuromuscular transmission by decreasing the amplitude of miniature
endplate potentials and currents [99a|, Nalidixic acid is more likely than
ciprofloxacin and other, newer quinolones to cause these sensory aberrations.
Nitrofurantoin often causes a peripheral neuropathy, especially when taken over a
prolonged period of time and in patients with impaired kidney function [100J. High
doses of penicillin potentiat seizure f 101 f I experimental condition usin also
cause or potentiate seizures especially in patients with renal dysfunction
Cefuroxime can cause an encephalopathy characterized by stupor, myoclonic jerks,
and confusion, especially when given in high doses or in patients w ith renal
disease 1101 aJ. Altered taste and muscle cramps are occasionally noted in patients
given cephalosporins.
Aminoglycoside antibiotics (amikacin, gentamicin, kanamycin, streptomycin,
tobramycin, paromomycin, neomycin) have hearing loss and tinnitus as important
side effects. The effects on hearing are dose related; hearing loss often persists
even wilh cessation of the antibiotic. The aminoglycosides also have a curare I ike
action which can potentiate neuromuscular blocking agents and can lead to increased
muscle weakness, especially in patients wTith myasthenia gravis and other
neuromuscular diseases | I02|,
Macroiide antibiotics (erythromycin, clarithromycin, azithromycin, troleandomycin,
dirithromycin) cause hearing loss which is reversible when the II HJL^ are Mnppeil
['arai.oi.i :ind hailnciualiou-. are occasional Is reported m pa tients given
macrolides. Lincomycin and clindamycin have a curare effect similar to but
quantitatively less than that of the aminoglycosides, and should be used very
cautiously in patients with myasthenia gravis and patients given neuromuscular
blocking agents 11021. Vancomycin can cause hearing loss. Similar to the situation
with the aminoglycosides, hearing loss is dose related, more likely to occur in
patients with renal insufficiency, and often not reversible when the drug is
stopped II03J. Hearing loss is more apt to occur if vancomycin is used with an
aminoglycoside antibiotic.
Analgesic, Sedative, and Psychotropic Medications
These types of medical ions are often given to patients with cardiogenic pain and
anxiety in an attempl to alleviate discomfort and allay anxiety and agitation.
Opioid drugs can cause drowsiness and difficulty concentrating as well as feelings
of euphoria [ 10-41. Respiratory depression is the most important neurological side
effect of morphine use f 1041, Opioids can increase intracranial pressure, so these
agents should be used cautiously in patients with large strokes or brain tumors.
Meperidine can cause delirium, myoclonus, and seizures when administered in high
doses 130]. Fentimyi administered in high doses can cause muscular rigidiiy as a
side effect [1051.
Barbiturates were formerly the most common drug used for sedation. Unfortunately,
barbiturates can cause paradoxical excitement that can progress to delirium and
hallucinations, especially in older patients [30,106], Barbiturates als likel
respirator depression Benzodiazepines (alprazolam
epam is given intravenously. Amnesia has been described, especially after triazolam
] lOSf Abnormal movements have also been described including dystonia, restless
movements, ami tardive dyskinesia-like movements of the mouth, lips, and tongue
130.109.110]. Respiratory depression is less apt to occur with benzodiazepines than
with barbiturates, in caring for cardiac patients, short-acting benzodiazepines
such as triazolam and midazolam, and intermediate-duration drugs such as
alprazolam, lorazepam, and oxazepam are preferred over long-acting (30 to 100
hours) drugs such as diazepam, chlordiazepoxide. flurazepam. and chlo raze pate.
Buspirone is less likely to produce drowsiness or excitement or memory loss than
the benzodiazepines, hut tremors, abnormal movements, and dystonia sometimes occur
[11 If
Among psychotropic agents, haloperidol is the only drug used frequently in
previously nonpsychotic cardiac patients. In our opinion, the side effects and
adverse reactions associated with this drug far outweigh any potential benefits.
We believe that haloperidol should not be used in elderly nonpsychotic patients for
sedation or tranquilization. When haloperidol is given to animals undergoing
physical therapy after strokes, their recovery rate is greatly retarded for nearly
3 weeks compared to animals not given haloperidol fl 12.1 131. There is some
evidence that haloperidol also retards recovery from strokes in humans, especially
when given as part of polypharmacy 1112-1141, Haloperidol produces a "wooden"
feeling, stiffness, rigidity, and Parkinsonian-like extrapyramidal signs. Excretion
is slow, so Parkinsonian signs can last for weeks after haloperidol is stopped.
Other neuroleptic drugs also often cause Parkinsonian side effects 130,115.116|.
The neuroleptic malignant syndrome can occur with the use of haloperidol,
especially if given in high doses parcmerally. This disorder is life-threatening
and consists of bradykinesia, rigidity, stupor, high fever, myoglobinuria, renal
failure, labile pulse and blood pressure [30,117,118], Neuroleptic drugs should
generally be avoided, especially in older, frail, sick patients.
Restlessness, hyperactivity, and agitation often follow withdrawal from
analgesics, sedatives, and psychotropic agents. The higher the doses of medicines,
the more likely there are to be rebound effects of agitation. Unfortunately, all
too often a self-perpetuating cycle occurs in which rebound excitation is treated
each time it occurs with more sedatives or psychotropics. Agitation is a natural
response to being knocked down artificially with drugs. With time and reassurance
and nursing supervision the agitation usually can be calmed without prescribing
more sedatives or psychotropics. Overuse of narcotics, sedatives, and psychotropic
agents is an important cause of morbidity and mortality in our hospitals today,
especially in intensive care units.
i Vic-itntiJiftressartts (amitriptyline, i mi pi amine, desipramine. doxepin,
maprottline, nortriptyline, protriptyhne, trimipramine) often cause sedation
1119,120}. Anticholinergic side effects such as blurred vision, dry mouth, urinary
retention, and constipation cause problems in older patients. Nightmares,
delusions, hallucinations, and delirium are occasionally described II 19,120J.
Tremor has also been noted. These antidepressant drugs lower seizure threshold,
which can be a problem in patients with epilepsy or known brain lesions. Sexual
dysfunction including decreased libido, impotence, and delayed ejaculation are
common.
Serotonin uptake inhibitors (fluoxetine, fluvoxamine, paroxetine, sertraline,
venlafaxine) 112L122J, like the tricyclic antidepressants, lower seizure threshold
1123J and cause sexual dysfunction. Sedation characterized by drowsiness and
fatigue is common, Lxcitation with agitation and manic delirium are occasionally
described. The "acute serotonin syndrome'' is a serious complication of the use of
these drugs and includes restlessness, rigidity, myoclonus, agitation, diarrhea,
sweating, fever, and rhabdomyolysis, and can progress to coma and death [30.124].
Abnormal movements and exacerbation of Parkinsonism has been noted with fluoxetine
and other serotonin uptake inhibitors [30,125.126]. The concurrent use of
fluoxetine and tries elk ami depressants can cause serious side effects since
fluoxetine may result in a two- to fivefold increase in levels of tricyclic drugs,
benzodiazepines, and trazadone; seizures, confusion, and mania can result
[127,128].
Trazadone commonly causes drowsiness. Some patients develop priapism 130].
Bupropion sometimes causes amphetamine!ike nervous system stimulation, and both
anticholinergic and Parkinsonian side effects have been described |30[. Lithium has
a host of neurologic complications and is probably best avoided in older patients
who have not been taking the drug previously. Tremors, abnormal movements and
dystonia, ataxia, peripheral neuropathy, and impaired intellectual functions are
relatively common after lithium use, especially when the dose or blood levels are
high 13(). t 2-f\. Sometimes the neurologic \\ mptoms develop even when blood
levels are within therapeutic range. Sometimes the neurologic signs are not
reversible even when lithium is stopped [130], Lithium toxicity has been reported
in palients who take drugs that cause excretion of sodium, including ACL inhibitors
[131], When lithium is used in elderly patients, therapeutic blood levels are lower
than those used in younger patients and should be very carefully and frequently
monitored.
Neuromuscular Blocking Drugs
(e.g., pancuronium, tubocuranne, vercuronium}. It is now well recognized thai the
use of these drugs is often followed by prolonged paralysis even after the drugs
are stopped. Factors that potentiate these drugs include cholinestcrasc deficiency
(either hereditary or acquired) renal disease, and liver disease. A host of other
drugs exert an effect on the neuromuscular blocking action of these drugs including
estrogens, glucocorticoids, lithium, quinidine. verapamil, aminoglycoside
antibiotics, lineomycin, clindamycin [30,1021.
Drugs Used for Gastrointestinal Symptoms
Histamine H2 antagonists (cimetidine, ranitidine, nizatidine, famotidine) are now
very often used in the community at large and so are often prescribed to patients
with cardiac disorders. Some of these drugs are now available over the counter.
Hallucination, psychosis, and choreiform movements are occasionally reported after
cimetidme use ( M21. Cimetidine also can cause decreased libido and impotence.
Occasional patients develop a myopathy or peripheral neuropathy 130}, Hydrogen ion
pump inhibitors (omeprazole and lansoprazole) can cause headache, dizziness,
somnolence, myalgias, and paresthesias. Misoprostol use is associated with
headache. Metoviopramide often causes sedation, restlessness, and fatigue.
Extrapyramidal side effects also occur [1331.
For ease of reference, we close this chapter with tables that list drugs that are
well known to cause specific important neurological side effects. Table 4 shows
those drugs that cause headache as a prominent symptom. Table 5 lists lhe drugs
known to cause agitation, delusions, and psychosis. Tabic 6 lists those drugs that
are recognized as causing decreased intellectual functiona dementialike
presentation. Table 7 lists those drugs that cause or potentiate seizures.
TABLE 4 Drugs Thai Cause Headache as a Prominent Side Effect
Nitroglycerin and other organic nitrates Dipyridamole Caffeine withdrawal Alcohol
and sedative drug withdrawal Guaiiethidine
Hydralazine Gemfibrozil Nicotinic acid Omeprazole TABLE 5 Drugs Thai Cause
Agitation. Delirium, and Psychosis
Amiodan >ne Procainamide Amphetamines Tocainide Anticholinergics Reserpine
Antihistamines Hydralazine Bupropion Alcohol and sedative Calcium channel hlockers
drug withdrawal Caffeine L-dopa Captopril Lidocaine Cimetidine Lithium Cocaine
Theophylline Digitalis Methyldopa Quinidine
Soime: Ret'. 134.
TABLE 6 Drugs Thai Cause Prominent Loss of Cognitive Function (a Dcmcntialike
Presentation)
Alcohol Barbiturates Antihistamines Neuroleptic antipsychotic drugs Cimetidine
Digitalis Quinidine L-dopa Lithium Narcotics Anticonvulsants Sedative/lranquilizing
drugs Reserpine
Trimethoprim
Anticholinergics
Source: Ref. 134.
TABLE 7 Drugs Thai Potentiate or Cause Seizures
Amoxapine Insulin Amphetamines Isoniuzid Flecaiuide Neuroleptics Meeamylarnine
Lidocaine Cephalosporin antibiotics Lithium Tricyclic antidepressants Meperidine
Serotonin uptake inhibitors Penicillins Cocaine Phenylpropanolamine De xtropr opox
y phene Salicylates Ethano] and se J alive drug withdrawal Theophylline
Source-. Ref. 134.
REFERENCES
1.
Arieff Al, Griggs RC General considerations in metabolic encephalopathies and
systemic disorders affecting the nervous system. In: Arieff Al. Griggs RC, eds.
Metabolic Brain Dysfunction in Systemic Disorders. Boston: Little Brown & Co..
1992:1-20,

2.
Adams RD, Foley JM, The neurological disorders associated with liver disease. Proc
Assoc Res Nerv Ment Dis 1952; 32:198-237.

3.
Jones LA, Wei sen born K. Neurology and the liver. J Neurol Neurosurg Psychiatry
1997; 63:279-293.

4.
Raskin NH, Neurological complications of renal failure. In: Ami noli M. ed.
Neurology and General Medicine. The Neurological Aspects of Medical Disorders. 2d
ed. New York: Churchill Livingstone. 1995:303-316.

5.
Leavilt S. Tyler HR. Studies in asterixis. Arch Neurol 1964; 10:360.

6.
Raskin NH, Fishnian RA. Neurologic disorders in renal failure. N Engl J Med 1976;
294:143, 204.

7.
Zuccala G. Cattel C, Mancs-Gravina E, Di Niro MG, Cocchi A, Berrmbei R. Left
ventricular dysfunction: a clue to cognitive impairment in older patients with
heart failure. J Neurol Ncurosurg Psychiatry 1997: 63:509-512.

R. Rosenberg GA. Haaland KY. Cardiogenic dementia. Lancet 1981: 2; 1171.


9.
Garcia CAT Tweedy JR. Blass JP. Underdiagnosts of cognitive impairment in a
rehabilitation selling. J Am Geriatr Soc 1984; 32:339-342.

10.
Sella)I RR, Petrueci RJ, Bnwna SC. Cavarocehi NC. Jessup M. Cognitive function in
patients wilh symptomatic dilated cardiomyopathy before and after cardiac
transplantation. J Am Coll Cardiol 1989; 14:1666-1672.

I I. Bomsiein RA, Siarling RC. My crow it/ P. Haas GJ, Neuropsychological


function
13.
Bertorini TE, Laster RE. Thompson BF, Gclfand M. Magnetic resonance imaging of ihe
brain in bacterial endocarditis. Arch Intern Med 1989; 149:815-817.

14.
Grans den WR. Eykyn SJ. Leach RM, Neurological presentations of native valve
endocarditis. Q J Med 1989; 73:1135-1142.

15.
Amorosi EL, Ultmann JE. Thrombotic thrombocytopenic purpura: report of 16 eases
and review of the literature. Medicine 1966: 45:139-159,

16.
Ridolfi RLT Bell WR. Thrombotic throinboeyiopenie purpura: report of 25 cases and
review of the literature. Medicine 1981: 60:413-427.

17.
Amieo L. Caplan LR. Thomas C Cerebrovascular complications of mucinous cancers.
Neurology 1989; 39:523-526.

18.
Graus F, Rogers LR, Posner JB, Cerebrovascular complications in patients with
cancer. Medicine 1985: 64:16-35.

19.
Schwartzman RJ. Mill JB. Neurologic complications of disseminated intravascular
coagulation. Neurology 1982; 32:791-797.

20.
Schwartzman RJ. Disseminated intravascular coagulation. In: Bogousslavsky J.
Caplan LR, eds. Stroke Syndromes. Cambridge: Cambridge University Press. 1995:470-
475.

21.
Bousser M-G. Ross Russell R. Cerebral Venous Thrombosis. London: W.B. Saunders
Co.. 1997.

22.
Haley EC. Brashear R. Barth J, et al. Deep cerebral venous thrombosis: clinical,
neuroradiology and neuropsychological correlates. Arch Neurol 1989; 46:337-340.

23.
Caplan LR. Venous and dura! sinus ilirombosis. In: Caplan LR, ed. Posterior
Circulation Disease. Clinical Findings, Diagnosis, mid Management. Boston:
Blackwell Science. 1996:569-592.

24.
Bousser M-G. Cruras J. Bories J. Castaigne P. Cerebral venous thrombosisa review
of 38 cases. Stroke 1985; 16:199-213.

25.
Grotta J. Ackerman R. Correia J. el al. Whole blood viscosity parameters and
cerebral blood flow. Stroke 1982: 13:296-301.
26.
Fancy JL. Barth WF, Solomon A. Serum hyperviscosity syndrome. JAMA 1965:
192:464^*67,

27.
Moore PM. Diagnosis and management of isolated angiitis of the central nervous
system. Neurology 1989; 39:167-173.

28.
Hankcy GJ, Isolated angiitis/angiopathy of the central nervous system.
Cerebrovasc Dis 1991; 1:2-15.

29.
Parsons-Smith BG. Summcrskill WHJ. Dawson AM. The electroencephalograph in liver
disease. Lancet 1957: 2:867-871.

30.
Brust JCM. Neurotoxic side effects of prescription drugs. Boston: Butterworth-
Heinemann, 1996.

31.
Keller S. Irishman WH, Nurenberg J. Neuropsychiatric effects of cardiovascular
medications. In: Frishman WH, Sonnenblick EH. eds. Cardiovascular
Pharmacotherapeutics. New York: McGraw-Hill, 1997:1053-1071.

32.
Sweadner KJ. Overview: summit diversity in the Na-K ATPase. In: Kaplan III,

34.
Volpc BT. Soave R, Formal visual hallucinations as digitalis toxicity. Ann Intern
Med 1979; 91:865-866.

35.
Okada F. Depression after treatment with thiazide diuretics for hypertension. Am J
Psychiatry 1985: 142:1101-1102.

36.
Gilbert GJ. Quinidine dementia. JAMA 1977; 237:2093-2094.

37.
Billig N. Buongiorno P. Quinidine induced organic mental disorders. J Am Gerialr
Soc 1985; 33:504-506.

38.
Fisher CM. Visual disturbances associaied with quinidine and quinine. Neurology
1981; 31:1569-1571.

39.
Draehman DA. Skom JI J. Procainamide: a hazard in myasthenia gravis. Arch Neu

rol 1965: 13:316-320. 39a. Ahmad S. Procainamide and peripheral neuropathy. South
Med J 1981: 74:509
510.
39b. Sahenk Z. Mendel. JR. Rossio JL. Poly radiculopathy accompanying procainamide*
induced lupus erythematosis: evidence for drug-induced enhanced sensitization to
peripheral nerve myelin. Ann Neurol 1977: 1:378-384.
39c. Erdem S. Frcimer ML. O'Dorisio T. Mendel] JR. Procainamide-induced chronic
inflammatory demy el inating polyradiculoneuropathy. Neurology 1998; 50:824-825.
40.
Schwartz AB. Klausner SC. Yee S, Turchyn M. Cerebellar ataxia due lo procainamide
toxicity. Arch Intern Med 1984; 144:2260-2261.

41.
McCrum ID, Guidjy JR. Proeainauiide-induccd psychosis. JAMA 1978: 240: 1265-1266.

42.
Berry K. Garlett EL. Relict S. el a). Use of pronestyly in the treatment of
ectopic rhythms. Am J Med 1951: 11:431-441.

43.
Wayman MG, Lalka D. Hammersmith L, Cannon DS. Goldreyer BN. Multiple bolus
technique for lidocaine administration during the first hours after an acute
myocardial infarction. Am J Cardiol 1978: 41:313-317.

44.
Pfeifer HJ. Greenblau DJ, Koch-Weser J. Clinical use and toxicity of intravenous
lidocaine. A report from the Boston Collaborative Drug Surveillance Program. Am
Heart J 1976:92:168-173.

45.
Sckden R, Sasahara A. Central nervous system toxicity induced by lidocaine. JAMA
1967; 202:908-909.

46.
Clarke CWF, El-Mahdi EO. Confusion and paranoia associated with oral toeainide.
Postgrad Med J 1985; 61:79-81.

47.
Ahmad S. Disopyramide and impotence. South Med J 1980; 73:95R.

48.
Ramhumadany E, Mackenzie S. Rams dale DR. Dysarthria and visual hallucinations
due lo tlecainide toxicity. Postgrad Med J 1986; 62:61-62.

49.
Werner EG, Olanow CW. Parkinsonism and amiodarone therapy. Ann Neurol 1989;
25:630-632.

50.
Jacobs JM. Costa-Jussa PR. The pathology of amiodarone neurotoxicity, II.
Peripheral neuropathy in man. Brain 1985; 108:753-769.

51.
Pellister JF, Pouget J. Gros D. Victor B. Scrratricc G. Toga M. Peripheral
neuropa

53.
Trohman RG. Castellanos D, Castellanos A, Kcsslcr KM. Amiodaronc induced delirium.
Ann Intern Med 1988: 108:68-69.

54.
Paykel ES. Fleminger R. Watson JP. Psychiatric side effects of antihypertensive
drugs other than reserpine. J Clin Psychopharmacol 1982: 2:14-39.
55.
HunyorSN. Hansson L. Harrison TST HooblerSW. Effects of clonidine withdrawal:
possible mechanisms and suggestions for management. Br Med J 1973; 2:209-211.

56.
Hansson L. Hunyor SN, Julius S Hooblei SW. Blood pressure crisis following
withdrawal of clonidine (Cataprcs, Catapresan) with special reference to arterial
an J urinary catecholamine levels and suggestions for acute management. Am Heart J
1973: 85:605-610.

57.
RafLos J. Julian DG, Valentine PA. The prolonged use of alpha methyldopa in the
treatment of hypertension. Med J Aust 1964; 1:837-842.

58.
Strang RR. Parkinsonism occurring during methyldopa therapy. Can Med Assoc J 1906:
95:928 929.

59.
Prescoll LF. Methyldopa and Parkinsonism. Br Med J 1964: 2:687.

60.
Newman RJ. Salerno HR. Sexual dysfunction due to methyldopa. Br Med J 1974;

4:106.

61.
Alexander WD. Evans Jl. Side effects of methyldopa. Br Med J 1975; 1:501,

62.
Harrington M. Kincaid-Smith P. Psychosis and tremor due to mecamylamine. Lancet
1958; 1:499-501.

63.
Lowther CP. Turner RWD. Guanethidine in the treatment of hypertension. Br Med J
1963; 3:776-781.

64.
Scedat YK. Pillay VKG. Further experiences with guanethidinea clinical
assessment of 103 patients. S Afr Med J 1966; 40:140-143.

65.
Dollery CT, Emslie-Smith D. Milne MD. Guanethidine in the treatment of
hypertension. Lancet 1960; 3.381-387.

66.
Fries ED. Mental depression in hypertensive patients treated for long periods with
large doses of reserpine. N Engl J Med 1954; 251:1006-1008.

67.
Kass I. Brown EC. Treatment of hypertensive patients with rauwolha compounds and
reserpine. JAMA 1959; 159:1513-1516,

68.
Haffner CA, Smith BS. Pepper C. Hallucinations as an adverse effect of
angiotensin-converting enzyme inhibition. Postgrad Med J 1993: 6";240.

69.
Gillman MA, Sandyk R. Reversal of captopriI-induced psychosis with naloxone. Am J
Psychiatry 1985; 142:270.

70.
Patten SB. Brager N. Sanders S. Manic symptoms associated with the use of
captopril. Can J Psychiatry 1991; 36:314-315.

71.
Samanta A. Burden AC. Peripheral neuropathy due to captopril. Br Med J 1985;
291:1172.

72.
Chakrabarty TK. Ruddell WS. Guillain-Barre neuropathy during treatment with
captopril. Postgrad Med J 1987; 63:221-222.

73.
Dimsdale JH. Newton RP. Joist T. Neuropsychological side effects of beta blockers.
Arch Intern Med 1989: 149:514-525.

76.
Bardwell A. Trott JA. Stroke in migraine as a consequence of propanolol. Headache
1987: 27:381-383.

77.
Lance JW. Preventive treatment in migraine. In: Goadsby PJ. Silberstein SD, eds.
Headache. Boston: Bulterworth-Heinemann. 1997:131-141.

78.
Kalm JK, Nifedipine-associated psychosis. Am J Med 1986; 81:705-706.

79.
Palal GK, Movaled A. Secondary mania associaied with dilliazem. Clin Cardiol 1986:
9:39.

80.
Garcia-Ruiz PJ, Garcia de Yebanes FJ, Jiminez-Jimine/ A. et al. Parkinsonism
associated with calcium channel blockers: a prospective follow-up study. Clin
Neuropharmacol 1992; 15:19-26.

81.
lverscn HK, Olesen J, Tfelt-Hanscn P. Intravenous nitroglycerine as an
experimental model of vascular headache: basic characteristics. Pain 1989; 38:17-
24.

82.
Magarian GL, Lucas LM. Colley C. Gemfibrozil-induced myopathy. Arch Intern Med
1991: 151:1873-1874.

83.
Alvarez-Sabin J. Codina A, Rodriguez C, Laporte JR. Gemfibrozil induced headache.
Lancet 1988: 2:1246.

84.
Arellano F. Dc Cos MA. Valienle R, Quiros C. Gemfibrozil-induced headache. Lancet
1988; 1:705.

85.
Pizzaro S. Bargay J. D'Agosto P Gemfibrozil-induced impotence. Lancet 1990:
336:1135.
86.
Black DM. Lamkin G, Olivera EH, ci al. Sleep disturbance and HMG CoA reductase
inhibitors. JAMA 1990; 264:1105.

87.
Mi Nay RH. Klein ML, Itlingworth DR. Niacin maculopathy. Opthalmology 1988;
95:930-936.

88.
Reaven P. Wiiztum JL. Lovostatin. nicotinic acid and rhabdomyolysis, Ann Intern
Med 1988: 109:597-598.

89.
Litin SC. Andersewn DF. Nicotinic acid-associated myopathy. A report of three
cases. Am J Med 1989; 86:481-483.

90.
Schafer Al. Antiplatelet therapy. Am J Med 1996: 101:199-209.

91.
Steering Committee of the Physician's Health Study Research Group, Final report on
the aspirin component of ihe ongoing Physicians* Health Study. N Engl J Med
1989;321:129-135,

92.
Rankin JA. Heparin-induced thrombosis (white clot syndrome) secondary to
prophylactic subcutaneous administration of heparin. Can J Sun? 1988; 31:33-34,

93.
Laster J, Cikrit D, Walker N, Silver D. The heparin-induced thrombocytopenia
syndrome: an update. Surgery 1987; 102:763-770.

94.
Sallah S, Thomas DP. Roberts HR. Warfarin and heparin-induced necrosis and the
purple me syndrome: infrequent complications of anticoagulant treatment, Thromb
Haemost 1997:78:785-790.

95.
Raskob GE. George JN. Thrombotic complications of antithrombotic therapy: a
paradox with implications for clinical practice. Ann Intern Med 1997; 127:839

841.
plications of chronic anticoagulation. A muliiccmer study. Ann Intern Med 1993;
118:511-520,
98.
Finn SD. Callahan C. Martin D. MeDoncll MB, Henikoff JG, White RH. for die
National Consortium ot* Anticoagulation Clinics. The risk tor and severity ol
bleeding complications in elderly patients treated with warfarin. Ann Intern Med
1996: 124:970-979.

99.
Joffe AMT Farley JD, Linden D, eL al. Trimethoprim-sulfamethoxazole associated
aseptic meningitis: case report and review of the literature. Am J Med 1989; 87:
332-338.

99a. Sieb JP. Fluoroquinolone antibiotics block neuromuscular transmission.


Neurology 1998; 50:804-807.
100. Toole JF, Parrish ML. Nitrofurantoin polyneuropathy. Neurology 1973: 23:554

559. I0L Grondahl TO, Lajigmoen LA. Epileptogenic effect of antibiotic drugs. J
Neurosurg 1993; 78:938-943.
101a. Herishanu YO. Zlotnik M. Mostoslavsky M. et al. Cefuroxime-induced
encephalopathy. Neurolog) 1998:50:1873-1875.
102.
Howard JF. Adverse drug effects on neuromuscular transmission. Semin Neurol 1990:
10:89-102.

103.
Kavanagh KT. McCabe BF. Ototoxicity of oral neomycin and vancomycin. Laryngoscope
1983: 93:649-653.

104.
Brusl JCM. Opioids. In: Neurological Aspects of Substance Abuse. Boston:
Bultcrworth-Heinemann, 1993:16-59.

105.
Christian CM. Waller JL, Moldenhauer CC. Postoperative rigidity following
fenlanyl anaesthesia. Anesthesiology 1983; 58:275-277.

106.
Brusl JCM. Barbiturates and other hypnotics and sedatives. In: Neurological
Aspects of Substance Abuse. Boston: Bullerworth-Heinemann, 1993:115-130.

107.
Woods JH, Katz JL. Winger G. Benzodiazepines. Use. abuse, and consequences.
Pharmacol Rev 1992: 44:151-347.

108.
Morris HH. Estes ML. Traveler's amnesia: transient global amnesia secondary to
triazolam. JAMA 1987; 258:945-946.

109.
Stolarek IH. Ford MJ. Acute dystonia induced by midazolam and abolished by
tlumazcnil. Br Med J 1990; 300:014.

110.
Rosenbaum AH. De la Fuente JR. Benzodiazepines and tardive dyskinesia. Lancet
1979: 2:900.

111.
Boylan K. Persistent dystonia associated with buspirone. Neurology 1990; 40:1904.

112.
Davis JN, Crisostomo EA. Duncan P. Propst M. Feeney DM. Amphetamine and physical
therapy facilitate recover) of function from stroke: correlative animal and human
studies, In: Raichle V1K. Powers WJ. eds. Cerebrovascular Diseases. New York: Raven
Press. 1987:297-304.

113.
Feeney DM. Gonzales A, Law WA. Amphetamine, haloperidol, and experience interact
to affect the rate of recovery' after motor cortex injury. Science 1982: 217:

and results of treatment with levodopa. J Neurol Neurosurg Psychiatry 1988; 51;
850-854.
116. Levinson DF. Simpson GM. Neuroleptic-induced extrapyramidal symptoms with
fever. Arch Gen Psychiatry 1986; 43:839-848.
117. Keck PE. Pope HG. MeElroy SL. Frequency and presentation of neuroleptic
malig
nant syndrome: a prospective study. Am J Psychiatry 1987: 144:1344-1346.
118. Levenson JL. Neuroleptic malignani syndrome. Am J Psychiatry 1985; 142:1137

1145.
119. Preskorn SH, Jcrkovich GS. Central nervous system toxicity of tricyclic
antidepres
sants: pharmacology, course, risk factors, and role of therapeutic drug monitoring.

J Clin Psychopharmacol 1990; 10:88-95.


120. Bryant SG, Fisher S. Kluge RM. Long*term vs short-term amilrypiilline side
effects
as measured by a post-marketing surveillance system. J Clin Psychopharmacol
1987: 7:78-82.
121. Gram LF. Fluoxetine. N Engl J Med 1994; 331:1354-1361.
122. Grimsley SR. Jann MW. Paroxetine, sertraline, and fluvoxamine. new selective

serotonin reuptake inhibitors. Clin Pharm 1992: 11:930-957.


123. Weber JJ. Seizure activity associated with fluoxetine therapy. Clin Pharm
1989:
8:296-298.
124. Bodner RA. Lynch T. Lewis L. Kahn D, Serotonin syndrome. Neurology 1995:
45:219-223.
125. Choo V. Paroxetine and extrapyramidal reactions. Lancet 1993; 341:624.
126. Stcur ENHS. Increase of Parkinsonian disability after fluoxetine medication.
Neu
rology 1993; 43:211-213.
127. Preskorn SH. Beber JH. Faul JC, Hirschfeld RMA. Serious adverse effects of
com
bining fluoxetine and tricyclic antidepressants. Am J Psychiatry 1990: 147:532.
128. Aranow RB. Hudson JL. Pope HG Jr. et al. Elevated antidepressant plasma
levels
after addition of fluoxetine. Am J Psychiatry 1989: 146:911-913.
129. Ananth J. Ghadirian AM. Engelsmann F, Lithium and memory: a review. Can J
Psychiatry 1987: 32: 312-316.
130. Schou M. Long-lasting neurological scqucllae after lithium intoxication. Acta

Psychiatr Scand 1984; 70:594-602.


131. Ruddy. MC, Kostis JB, Frishman WH. Drugs that affect the renin-angiotensin
sys
tem. In: Frishman WH, Sonnenbliek EH. eds. Cardiovascular Pharmacotherapeu
tics. New York: McGraw-Hill, 1997:131-192.
132. Colin Jones D, Langman MJS, Lawson DM. Vessey MP. Postmarketing surveil
lance of the safety of cimetadine: twelve-month morbidity report. Q J Med 1985:
54:253-268.
133. Bateman DN, Darling WM. Boys R. Rawlins MD. Extrapyramidal reactions to
metoclopramide and prochlorperazine. Q J Med J 989: 71:307-311
134. Benowitz NL. Central nervous system manifestations of toxic disorders In:
Arieff
Al. Griggs RC. eds. Metabolic Brain Dysfunction in Systemic Disorders. Boston:

Neurological Complications of Cardiac Surgery


INTRODUCTION
Central and peripheral nervous system complications are a major cause of morbidity
following cardiac surgery. This chapter focuses on the frequency, cause, and
prevention of these complications. The data presented largely apply to coronary
artery bypass graft surgery (CABG) since our knowledge of these neurological
complications is derived mostly from studies of this operation. Complications of
valvular heart surgery are similar to CABG, but the frequency of complications may
be lower with valvular surgery [I].
HISTORICAL BACKGROUND
After extensive laboratory work, Gibbon performed the first successful
intracardiac operation using extracorporeal circulation on a patient in 1953 [2J.
Several oxygenating techniques were subsequently used during open heart surgery
until 1955, when DeWall and Lillihei developed a bubble oxygenator that became the
method of choice for oxygenation during cardiopulmonary bypass (3]. In the early
1960s, Ehrenhaft and others published the first clinical reports on the
neurological complications of open heart surgery 14-7]. These reports on patients
undergoing valvular procedures suggested that the frequency of persistent brain
dysfunction after open heart surgery was as high as 23%. Most of diesc events were
attributed
226
to air embolization or inadequate cerebral blood flow during cardiopulmonary
bypass.
The introduction of membrane oxygenators and arterial line filters (20 to 40 (im)
greatly reduced the risk of air and paniculate-matter microemboli during
cardiopulmonary bypass. This development, along with improvements in surgical and
anesthetic techniques, led to a reduction in the risk of stroke and encephalopathy
during cardiac surgery. The first aorto-coronary bypass in man was performed by
David C. Sabiston in 1962 following an unsuccessful right coronary endartereetomy
1119], Two years later, again as a result of difficulties during coronary
endarterectomy, Garret, Dennis, and DeBakey performed an aorto-coronary bypass to
the left anterior descending artery 18J, The procedure was later popularized by
Favaloro 19J. Subsequently. CABG has become one of the most commonly performed
operations in the United States, with approximately 400,000 operations performed
annually. Despite the improvements in bypass, surgical, and anesthelic techniques,
recent data suggest thai neurological morbidity and mortality from CABG is
increasing, largely because the percentage of sicker and older patients undergoing
CABG has increased substantially f 101,
PATHOPHYSIOLOGY OF CARDIOPULMONARY BYPASS AND POTENTIAL IMPACT ON THE BRAIN
Considering the number of potential threats to the brain during heart surgery, it
is remarkable that the frequency of neurological complications from CABG is not
substantially higher than reported. The major threats to the brain include
embolization and hypoperfusion, which are related in part lo ihe myriad effects of
the heart-lung machine on blood constituents. Plasma proteins, particularly
fibrinogen, are adsorbed onto the synthetic surfaces of the bypass machine [11].
Activation of platelets by blood-synthetic surface contact leads to uncovering of
fibrinogen receptors on the platelet membrane f 12,131. In some patients,
increased levels of thromboxane A; and B? have been detected in plasma during
bypass 114]. These events promote adherence of platelets on synthetic surfaces of
the bypass machine despite heparinization. Erythrocytes and leucocytes are also
affected by bypass. Osmotic stresses, turbulence, and trauma from the cardiotomy
suction system induce hemolysis and impede the ability of erythrocytes to change
shape during passage through capillaries [151. This predisposes to erythrocyte
sludging in areas of reduced blood flow. Leucocytes are activated largely by the
complement cascade and accumulate in pulmonary capillaries [16,171. Plasm protein d
lipoprotein denatured which lead increas i
changes in blood constituents during bypass is to predispose to thromboembolism
and hypoperfusion.
There are numerous potential sources of emboli during bypass. These include plate
let-fibrin aggregates from the aorta or the synthetic surfaces of the bypass
machine: atherosclerotic or calcified emboli from the aorta: thrombus from the
cardiac chambers; air emboli introduced during the operation or generated by the
oxygenator (particularly bubble oxygenators); and fat emboli formed by the effects
of bypass on serum lipids or introduced into the circulation from direct trauma to
mediastinal and epicardial fat. Additionally. talc, silicone anti-foam products,
and other foreign material can be introduced during bypass and act as a source of
emboli [20]. Modern surgical techniques and bypass technology, including the use of
arterial line liIters (20 to 40 u_m), have reduced but not eliminated the risk of
embolization during open heart surgery [20]. In fact, there is substantial evidence
thai the brain is constantly bombarded by microemholi during cardiopulmonary
bypass, and accumulating evidence that these mieroemboli may cause encephalopathy
and cognitive disorders following cardiopulmonary bypass.
As early as 1965, Austen and Howry used ultrasound to detect gaseous and
particulate microemholi in the arterial line during bypass [211. In more recent
years, the development of transcranial Doppler ultrasound has enabled the
evaluation of cerebral hemodynamics during CABG [22]. This technique permits
quantification of cerebral blood flow velocity in the major intracranial arteries
and detection of microemholi to the brain (Fig. 1). The use of transcranial Doppler
lo monitor brain embolization has been discussed al length in Chapter 2. on brain
embolism.
Using transcranial Doppler ultrasound, several investigators have shown that
microemholi to the cerebral circulation are detectable in virtually all patients
undergoing CABG [22-25J, In one study, in which transcranial Doppler ultrasound
was compared to transesophageal echocardiography for detecting microemholi during
CABG, the mean number of emboli detected by transcranial Doppler of a middle
cerebral artery was 133 28 per patient, and the mean number of emboli detected by
transesophageal echocardiography of the aortic arch was 535 M)9 per patient 126J.
Since the smallest particle size detectable is at least 50 pirn for transcranial
Doppler ultrasound and 200 p.m for transesophageal echocardiography, it is
probable that an even higher number of microemholi (i.e.. <50 u.m) travel to the
brain during CABG. Most of the microemboli are detected during manipulation of the
aorta, i.e., during aortic eamiulation, cross clamping of the aorta, and
particularly when aortic cross clamps are released [23,25] Although transcranial
Dopple ultrasound d transesophageal echocar

(a) <b) (c)


FIG. 1 Example of air emboli detected in the middle cerebral artery by transcranial
Doppler ultrasound during a bubble test in n patient with pulmonary A-V fistulac.
(a) Normal middle cerebral artery signal before intravenous contrast injection, (b)
Multiple micro air emboli initially detected in the middle cerebral artery after
contrast injection, (c) Thirty to 60 seconds later, individual air emboli detected
in the middle cerebral artery. Note that gaseous emboli are associated with high-
amplitude, intense, bidirectional signals whereas particulate microemboli delected
during CABG are more likely to be associated with less intense, lower-amplitude,
unidirectional signals. From Ret. 120.
liculate microemboli are more likely to be associated with less intense, lower-
amplitude, unidirectional signals [27J.
Other evidence that microemboli travel to the brain during CABG is provided by
retinal microvascular studies using fluorescein angiography during bypass, and
neuropathologies! studies of patients dying following bypass. Blauth ct al.
performed retinal fluorescein angiograms preoperatively and again 5 minutes before
bypass was discontinued in 21 patients [281. All palients developed retinal
microvascular occlusions indicative of microemboli sm during bypass. The mean
number of blocked arterioles <5 0 \im in size was 3.5 per patient and the mean
microembolie count was 12.6 per patient. Repeat studies at 30 minutes showed a
reduced mean microembolie count of 4,8 per patient. The use of a 40\xm arterial
filter in 11 patients did not reduce the total microembolie count 128],
In an elegant neuropathologies! study that utilized an alkaline phosphatase
histochemical stain to visualize brain arterioles and capillaries in patients dying
after cardiopulmonary' bypass or noncardiac operations. Moody et al. [291 provided
strong evidence that numerous microemboli travel to the brain during bypass. Four
of five patients undergoing bypass and none or 34 palients undergoing noncardiac
operations had numerous small-capillary and arteriolar dilatations (SCADs)
scattered throughout the brain (Fig, 2), These SCADs were typically 10 l 40 i siz d
th lamin clea d fre f blood products The

FlG, 2 Sausagelike dilatations in a medium-sized arteriole from white matter of a


patient dying following CABG. These putative emboli are 40 urn in diameter. Another
of these emboli is seen in a smaller arteriole (arrow). From Ref. 29.
Hypoperfusion is also a potential threat to the brain during bypass. Most studies
have shown a substantial reduction in cerebral blood flnw (CBF) that is coupled to
a decrease in the cerebral metabolic rate during hypothermic bypass [30,31 ].
Factors other than metabolic rate also have an impact on CBF during CABG. The most
important factors include mean arterial pressure (MAP), carbon dioxide levels, and
pump flow rate. In normotensive normothermic humans, cerebral autoregulation
maintains a constant CBF between MAPs of 50 to 150 mm Hg. At MAPs below or above
this range. CBF is directly proportional to MAP. Based on these data. MAP during
CABG is typically maintained above 50 mm Hg, One study suggested that CBF is
preserved at MAPs as low as 30 mm Hg during hypothermic bypass |30|: i.e.. the
lower limit of cerebral auioregulation is extended during bypass. However, there
are conflicting data on cerebral autoregulation during bypass, with some studies
showing a poor correlation between CBF d MAP [30.32] (i.e. preservatio f
autoregulation) d othe studie could cause brain ischemia. Hypertensive patients may
be at highest risk of ischemia from low MAPs because the lower and upper limits of
MAP at which autoregulation is abolished are higher in hypertensive patients.
Clues to the effectiveness of cerebral autoregulation during bypass are provided
by clinical studies that have correlated neurological outcome lo CBF or CBF
velocity during bypass. While some studies have not shown a correlation between
neurologic outcome and MAP during bypass 135,361, other studies have shown a strong
correlation 132,37-391. Tufo el al. [371 observed that 78% of patients whose MAP
was maintained at <40 mm Hg had a neurological deficit, compared with 27% whose MAP
was maintained >60 mm Hg. In a recent prospective study, 248 patients undergoing
CABG were randomized to a MAP of
u> 60 mm llg or 80 to 100 mm Hg during bypass 139]. The impact of MAP on mortality,
cardiac morbidity, stroke, cognitive dysfunction, and functional status was
evaluated in the postoperative period and at 6 months. The overall incidence of
postoperative cardiac and neurological complications was 4.8% in the higher
pressure group vs. 12,9% in the lower pressure group (P = .03). At 6 months, the
two groups had the following event rates (higher-pressure group first): mortality
t,6% vs. 4^; stroke 2.4<# vs. 7,2I>: cardiac complications 2.4l7r vs, 4.8%,
Cognitive and functional status did not differ between the two treatment groups |
39|.
Maintaining normal PaCO: levels during bypass is important because the response of
the cerebral circulation to changes in COi tension is maintained during
hypothermic bypass, i.e., a fall (rise) in PaCO^ is associated with lower (higher)
CBF. Since CO^ is more soluble at lower temperatures, it exerts a lower partial
pressure. Therefore, maintaining a PaCO: of 40 mm Hg at a body temperature of 28C
(the pH-slat technique) is approximately equivalent lo a PaCO: of 60 mm Hg al
normal body temperature. Use of the pH-stal technique increases total CO2 and CBF.
which carries the risk of hyperemia and cerebral edema. Therefore, PaCO: is
typically maintained at a level of approximately 26 mm Hg at 28nC during bypass
(the alpha-stat method), which is equivalent to 40 mm Hg at normal body temperature
[401. The effect of pump flow rates on CBF during bypass is also controversial,
Govier et al, found that varying pump How rates between 1.0 and 2.0 L/min/nr in 10
patients did not significantly affect CBF [30]: however, other investigators have
suggested that pump flow rates arc an important deierminant of CBF [411.
Cooling of body temperature to 28C during cardiac surgery became routine after
Bigelow and others employed this technique in the 1950s, to protect the brain from
ischemia f42|. The neuroprotective effects of hypothermia include reducin cerebral
metabolism inhibitin th releas f toxi excitator bypass has disadvantages including
the king perfusion limes required on bypass for cooling and rcwurmmg the paiieni.
and inhibition of lhe en/ymatic reactions of ihe coagulation cascade, which can
lead to increased blood loss |44j. These disadvantages have prompted interest in
normothermic bypass [451 A few studies have compared the outcome of patients
undergoing hypothermic versus normothermic bypass. In one small trial of 155
patients randomized to hypothermia or normodiermia, the frequency of stroke and
cognitive problems was similar in the two groups [46]. In a larger study of 1732
patients randomized to hypothermia or normothermia, the Warm Heart Investigators
found no difference in the frequency of stroke in the two groups [ 10]. However,
in another large randomized trial, involving I (MM patients, the normothermic group
had a significantly higher frequency of total neurological complications (4,5%
normothermic vs. [A% hypothermic) and stroke (3.1% normothermic vs. 1 %
hypothermic) but similar rates of mortality (\% normothermic vs. 1.6% hypothermic),
Q wave infarction (1.4<; normothermic vs. 0,8c/r hypothermic), and need of an
intra-aortic balloon pump
i 1.4'? normothermic \s. ~l.\Yr hypolhennici [45
ISCHEMIC STROKE DURING CORONARY ARTERY BYPASS SURGERY
Recent prospective studies of consecutive patients undergoing CABG show thai the
risk of ischemic stroke is 2% to 6% [47-49J. Therefore, of the 400,000 palients
undergoing CABG annually in the United Slates, 8000 to 24,000 suffer a stroke. The
magnitude of the problem of slroke during CABG is underscored when one considers
thai up to 6% of all ischemic strokes in the United States occur after CABG, 36<3f
of patients who have a slroke during CABG die, and the annual economic burden from
stroke and other complications of CABG amounts to approximately $750 million for
in-hospital treatment and $500 million for posthospitalization care [501.
Studies that have attempted to identify risk factors for slroke during CABG have
shown inconsistent results. In one prospective study of 421 patients undergoing
CABG, none of a large number of preoperative, intraoperative, or postoperative
variables emerged as an important risk factor for stroke [48]. However, in a more
recent prospective study of 456 patients undergoing CABG, rive factors correlated
with stroke [511. These were previous stroke, carotid bruit, history of
hypertension, increasing age, and history of diabetes. Other studies have also
shown that advanced age is an important risk factor for stroke during CABG. In stud
th strok fou time highe i patient d 76 HO tha
This is a critical issue since prevention of stroke during CABG will require
identifying specific mechanisms of stroke so thai surgical or pharmacological
intervention can be instituted.
Clues to the mechanisms of stroke during CABG come from studies that have evaluated
the clinical and radiological features of ischemic stroke following CABG. These
studies have shown that 25% to 65% of strokes are bilateral or multiple [53,541,
Many of these strokes are located in tne border zone regions, predominantly between
the middle cerebral artery (MCAi and the posterior cerebral artery iK'Ai {Fig. 3).
Many of the border zone infarcts occur in patients with intraoperative hypotension
and are attributed to hypoperfusion. Multiple brain infarcts occurring in regions
supplied by individual intracranial arteries (territorial infarcts) are invariably
embolic in origin. Since it is highly unlikely that emboli would arise from both
carotid arteries or from a carotid artery and a vertebral artery simultaneously, it
is likely lhat the source of multiple territorial infarcts is a more proximal
sitee.g., aortic arch or cardiac chambers. Moreover, since it is distinctly
unusual for intracardiac lesions (e.g.. left atrial thrombus in patients with
atrial fibrillation, left ventricular mural thrombus) to be the source of multiple
simultaneous emboli, it is likely that multiple territorial infarcts occurring
during CABG are probably related to a "shower of emboli"4 produced by manipulation
of an atherosclerotic aorta (e.g., aortic arch cannulation, cross clamping).
Support for this is provided by pathological studies of patients dying from
multiple strokes following CABG that have shown multiple lipid laden intracerebral
emboli |55J.
Microemholi/alion and hypoperfusion may interact to compound brain infarction
acquired during cardiopulmonary bypass. Reduced systemic and brain perfusion
associated with low mean arterial pressures may reduce clearance i wa^houi! ol mien
icmhoji. especially in border zone regions where cerebral blood flow is most
compromised. I55a| The poor washout of emboli can lead to more prolonged
obstruction of small brain arteries and more extensive brain infarction than if
perfusion were well maintained.
In patient with a single, miila.er.il renitorial infarci thai occurs during CABG,
the mechanism is most likely embolic with potential sources including the cervical
carotid and vertebral arteries, aorta, and heart. The heart is the most common
source of such maeroemboli. Many patients undergoing CABG surgery have regions of
myocardial damage thai are associated with thrombi within the heart, Unfortunately,
many patients undergoing CABG have not had recent echo-cardiography which could
assess the presence of myocardial thrombi or myocardial lesions that might
predispose to thrombus formation wiihin the heart during or immediately after
surgery.
Small deep infarcts are also sometimes noted alter surgery. Most studies have shown
that small (<1.5 cm) subcortical or brainstem infarcts (lacunar infarcts) are
uncommon following CABG. although one study showed that 16% of post-CABG strokes
were lacunar [53]. These infarcts are typically caused by stenosis or occlusion of
one of the small branches ol ihe middle cerebral artery (lenticulostriate arteries)
or basilar artery (paramedian penetrators, thalamogeniculate arteries, th alamo
perforators) that penetrates the suhstance of the brain. Narrowing of these small
arteries ts typically caused by microaiheroma or lipohyalinosis, an occlusive
hypertensive-related vasculopathy. The mechanism of lacunar infarction during CABG
is uncertain but may be related to hypoperfusion of the subcortical or brainstem
region perfused by a diseased penetrating artery. Another possible cause of lacunar
infarction following CABG is mieroembolism.
Most studies have shown that patients with previous stroke are at increased risk of
recurrent stroke during CABG. The mechanisms of recurrent slroke during CABG have
been evaluated in a few studies. In a retrospective study of 127 patients with a
history of stroke, 17(13%) had a new stroke or worsening of their prio neurological
deficit I patient whos initial strok withi 3 month f The authors suggested that
patients with recent stroke have peri-infarction hemodynamic vulnerability which
may lead to extension of infarction during bypass induced hypotension. In patients
wilh more remote infarcts (i.e., >3 months old). 75% ol' recurrent strokes were in
a different vascular territory and 50% had perioperative atrial fibrillation or
flutter 156J. These findings suggest that embolism, in particular cardioembolism
related to atrial fibrillation, was the cause of most of these strokes. In a
prospective study of 71 patients with previous stroke who underwent CABG. 31 (44%)
had a focal neurological deficit postoperatively. These deficits were a new stroke
in six patients (9%) and reappearance or worsening of a previous deficit without a
new infarct on brain imaging in 25 (35%) [57], These findings confirm the
vulnerability of previously ischemic brain to cardiopulmonary bypass.
CAROTID ARTERY DISEASE AND RISK OF STROKE DURING CABG
Extracranial carotid artery disease is frequently suggested as an important cause
of stroke during CABG. This has prompted the practice of performing prophylactic
staged or combined carotid end arte rce lomy/CABG in asymptomatic patients who are
discovered to have carotid stenosis (usually through the detection of a bruit)
during the preoperative evaluation. Since up to 10% of patients undergoing CABG
have coexistent moderate or severe asymptomatic carotid stenosis 15SJ.
clarification of the role of endartercctomy in this setting is important.
Unfortunately, most of the studies that have evaluated the risk of peri-CABG
stroke in patients with carotid stenosis [48,59-64] have one or more of the
following design flaws: retrospective study design: no control groups: low power,
neurologists not involved in determining whether a stroke occurred; neurological
evaluation not blinded to the presence of carotid disease: strokes contralateral to
carotid stenosis included in some series; evaluation for other potential causes of
stroke not performed; accuracy of techniques used for documenting degree of carotid
stenosis not validated.
Given the differences in the design of these studies, it is not surprising that the
results of these studies are discordant. Some studies have shown no increase in the
risk of peri-CABG stroke in palients with asymptomatic carotid stenosis [48.59,651.
whereas other studies suggest that ihe risk of stroke in patients with carotid
stenosis is significantly increased 158,60-64]. In a retrospective study in which
angiography was used to document percent stenosis of the carotid artery, Furla al |
661 identified 155 stenoti (>50%) occluded carotid arterie i IOUIKJ a low risk of
ipsi lateral stroke in patients with carotid stenosis undergoing CABG. In one
prospective study, the frequency of ipsilateral TIA or stroke in paticnis with
carotid stenosis not repaired during CABG was 2%; however, ihe rale of ipsihttcral
TIA or stroke in patients wilh carotid occlusion was 17% 167].
Other studies have suggested that the risk of stroke during CABG is related to the
degree of carotid occlusive disease. In one study of 582 veterans who had a high
frequency (22%) of carotid stenosis (>50%) or occlusion, Schwartz et al,
[63] found thai none of the 52 patients with unilateral 50% to 79% carotid stenosis
had a stroke, but that 4 of 75 palients (5.3%) with unilateral 80% to 99% stenosis,
bilateral 50% to 99% stenosis, or unilateral occlusion with contralateral stenosis
>50%> had a stroke. In a well-designed prospective study of 1631 consecutive
patients. Mickleborough et al. [68] showed that the risk of stroke was 0%; in
patients without carotid stenosis, 3.2'? in patients with >70% stenosis, and 27% in
patients wilh carotid occlusion. Faggioli et al. [58] reported that 4 of 28
palients i I4ci I had ;i siroke ipsilateral to carotid stenosis -75%; lume\er,
Kicotia et aJ, 162J found no increased risk of siroke in palients with >75%
stenosis.
Since the risk of peri-CABG stroke in patients with asymptomatic carotid stenosis
is uncertain, the rote of carotid endarterectomy for asymptomatic carotid stenosis
hefnrc m combined with CABG is contro\cisial. In a Niugle-ceniei prospective,
randomized irial of 129 patients with asymptomatic carotid stenosis >70% who
underwent CABG. Hertzer et al. 169| reported a stroke rate of 7% in patients
undergoing CABG alone (i.e.. without prophylactic endarterectomy) versus 3% in
patients undergoing combined CABG/carolid endartcreclomy. "Hie difference between
the Iwo groups was not statistically significant: however, a benelil from carotid
endarterectomy cannot be excluded because of the very low power of ihe study. The
most comprehensive data in ailable on the role of staged or combined carotid
endarierectomy/CABG comes from a meta-analysis of 56 studies 17(1 ] (virtualh all
retrospeem e: onl\ I'Hud >0 patients I that evaluated three operative strategies:
simultaneous endarterectomy and CABG. endarterectomy followed by CABG. and CABG
followed by endarterectomy. Stroke rates for these three groups were 6%. 57c, and
10%, respectively. The frequency of stroke was significantly higher {P < .05) if
CABG preceded endarterectomy. Myocardial infarction rates lor the three groups were
5%-. II1-'-. and 3%, respectively, and death rates were 6%, 9%, and 4%. The
frequency of myocardial infarction {P = .01) and death {P - .02) was higher when
carotid surgery preceded CABG [70]. Combining all endpoints shows that
endarterectomy followed by CABG is associated with the worst outcome of the three
strategies, with similar outcomes in the other two groups. Clarification of the
optimal strategy for managin asymptomati carotid stenosi i patient undergoin CABG
will requir
differences in ihe outcome of the treatment groups can be attributed to the
performance of carotid endarterectomy.
In summary, the available data on the risk of stroke associated with asymptomatic
carotid stenosis in patients undergoing CABG suggests that ( I) there is no
increase in the risk of pcri-CABG stroke in patients with moderate carotid stenosis
i.e., 50% to 75%; (2) it is probable that a subgroup of patients with severe
asymptomatic carotid stenosis <>75%) are at increased risk of stroke during CABG;
(3) patients with carotid occlusion or bilateral carotid stenosis (especially if
high grade) are at increased risk of stroke: (4> currently available data do not
support the strategy of prophylactic endarterectomy prior to CABG in patients with
asymptomatic carotid stenosis >75%>.
The management of symptomatic carotid stenosis in patients undergoing CABG is also
challenging. There are limited data on the risk of pcri-CABG stroke in patients
with symptomatic high-grade carotid stenosis. In one study. Hertzer et al. [69]
reported that 2 of 23 patients (9%) with symptomatic or bilateral carotid stenosis
> 70% who underwent CABG had a stroke. In another study, 3 of iO patients with
symptomatic carotid stenosis >50% had ipsilateral perioperative stroke |6l)J.
Although there are no studies on the safety and efficacy of staged or simultaneous
endarterectomy/CABG in patients with symptomatic carotid stenosis, most surgeons
and neurologists advocate endarterectomy prior to CABG (if the cardiac symptoms are
stable) or during CABG (if the cardiac symptoms are active) in these patients. This
strategy is based on the North American Symptomatic Carotid F.ndarterectomy Trial,
which showed a 17% absolute reduction in the risk of ipsilateral stroke over 2
years in patients with symptomatic carotid stenosis 5:70% treated surgically
compared with patients treated medically 12year ipsilateral stroke rates were 26%
in the medical arm and 9% in the surgical arm; P < .001) 17If There are virtually
no data on the risk of stroke during CABG in patients with vertebrobasilar
occlusive disease. Anecdotal experience of the authors suggests that the risk of
stroke may be high in patienls with symptomatic intracranial vertebral artery or
basilar artery stenosis undergoing C\B G (Fig, 4).

AORTIC ATHEROSCLEROSIS AND THE RISK OF STROKE DURING CABG


While carotid artery disease has received considerable attention as a potential
cause of stroke during CABG. it is important to recognize that the vast majority of
strokes in the setting of CABG occur in patients without carotid stenosis.
Moreover, strokes that occur in patients with carotid stenosis are frequently in a
different territory from the stenotic carotid artery or are bilateral. These data
imply that other vascular pathologies must be responsible for these strokes. Over
the last few years, aortic atherosclerosis has emerged as an important cause of
peri-CABG stroke. Studies in which transesophageal echocardiography orepiaoruc
ultrasound have been used to image the aorta during CABG have shown that embolism
produced by surgical manipulation of the aorta (i.e., cannulation for bypass, cross
clamping, insertion of vein grafts or the cardioplegia needle) is probably the most
common cause of stroke during CABG (Fig. 5). One of the lirst studies to suggest a
correlation between aortic arch disease and peri-CABG stroke was an autopsy study
by Blauth et al, f72|. These investigators performed autopsies in 221 patients who
died following CABG or valvular surgery. Atheroemboli were found in 48 palients
(22%) and were most common in the brain i }<y ol patients). Multiple embolic
sites were lound in 63% ol patients Riubnli
significantly i patient undergoin CABG (26%) tha i

FIG. 5 Aortic arch atheroma detected by transesophageal echocardiography. Insert on


the right is a diagram of the Iff on ihe left. AoL aortic lumen: P. plaque. From
Ref.
122.
sclerosis but in only 2 (2%) of 98 patients who did not have severe aortic
atherosclerosis CP < .0001) f721.
Other studies using transesophageal echocardiography have consistently confirmed
the importance of atherosclerosis of the aorta as a cause of stroke during CABG.
Hosoda et al. [73 J reported that 3 of 13 (23%) patients with severe
atherosclerosis of the ascending aorta had a peri-CABG stroke, compared to 0 of 87
with mild or moderate aortic disease. In another transesophageal echocardiography
study, 3 of 9 patients (33%) wilh mobile plaques of the aortic arch had peri-CABG
stroke versus 2 of 74 patients (2.7%) with nonmobile plaque [P = .01) [74J. In
another study, in which atherosclerosis of the descending aorla was classified
into one of five grades (1 = normal; V = >5 mm intraluminal plaque with mobile
component), no strokes occurred in 123 patients with grade 1 or II atheroma, while
9 of 66 patients (14%) with grades III to V atheroma had a stroke CP = .00001), In
patients with grade V atheroma. 5 of 11 patients (46%) had a stroke 1751. Although
the atheromas in the descending aorta were probably not responsible for the
s;n>kes, it i> likely thai patient wilh severe atherosclerosis of the descending
aorta also had atherosclerosis of the ascending aorta.
The emergence of aortic atherosclerosis as a major cause of siroke has led to
studies on the appropriate diagnosis and management of aortic atherosclerosis
during CABG. These studies show that the traditional technique of inspection/
palpation of the ascending aorta during CABG is insensitive for detecting aortic
ence (P < .001) and severity (P < .001) of aortic atherosclerosis compared with
ultrasound. Age and diabetes were shown to be independently associated wilh severe
aortic atherosclerosis (761, In another study by the same group, palpation
identified only 38% of patients with significant aortic atherosclerosis [77J.
Management of aortic atherosclerosis during CABG has also been evaluated by a few
investigators. Wareing et al. |77] used intraoperative ultrasound to identify 68
(14%) of 540 consecutive patients undergoing CABG who had significant
atherosclerosis of the ascending aorta. The authors applied Doppler probes to the
external surface of the aorta after the chest was opened, and surveyed the aorta
for regions of severe plaque disease. A total of 168 modifications in the standard
technique for cannulation and clamping of the aorta were made in the 68 patients.
These included changing the sites of aortic cannulation. aortic clamping, insertion
of vein grafts, and insertion of the cardioplegic needle. Additional^ 10 patients
with severe diffuse atheromatous aortic arch disease underwent graft replacement
of the ascending aorta wilh hypothermic circulatory arrest without aortic clamping.
Remark a bfy. none of the 68 patients with significant aortic atherosclerosis in
whom surgical modifications were performed had a stroke f77l. In a subsequent study
by the same group. 47 patients with atheromatous aortic arch disease underwent
graft replacement of the ascending aorta during CABG. Two palients (4.3%) died
within 30 days of CABG, both from myocardial infarction, and none of the surviving
patients had a perioperative stroke 178].
In a case control study, Duda et al. [79J performed intraoperative surface aortic
ultrasonography on 195 consecutive patients (study group) undergoing CABG and
compared their outcome wilh a historical control group of 164 consecutive patients
in whom the ascending aoita was assessed during CABG by inspection and palpation
alone. Based on the presence of aortic atherosclerosis, changes in ihe operative
technique (hypothermic fibrillaiory arrest wilh no cross clamping of the aorta and
left ventricular venting, single cross clamping, modification in aortic
cannulation site or placement of arterial grafts) were made in both groups. The
frequency of moderate/severe aortic atherosclerosis was 14% in patients having
epiaortie ultrasound versus 2% in the control group. Surgery was modified in 19
study patients (10%) and 3 control patients (2%). None of the sUidy patients had a
perioperative stroke, versus 5 (3%) in the control group (P < .02) 179].
In summary, these studies suggest that (1) 14% to 29% of patients undergoing
epiaortie ultrasound during CABG have moderate or severe atherosclerosis of the
ascending aorta, and that age is the most important predictor of aortic
atherosclerosis; (2) patients with severe aortic atherosclerosis may have a 23%
46% risk f peri-CABG stroke (3) modification f th operativ techniqu
replacement of the ascending aorta with hypothermic circulatory arrest without
aortic clamping) may also have a role in patients with severe diffuse aortic arch
atherosclerosis. However, these techniques need further study,
The importance of aortic disease as a cause of postoperative neurological
complications has been one of the factors that has favored the use of minimally
invasive coronary artery bypass grafting, and coronary artery grafting without the
use of cardiopulmonary bypass. Minimally invasive coronary artery bypass grafting
can be performed with or without cardiopulmonary bypass and does not use a median
sternotomy incision [79a,79b|. Coronary artery bypass grafting has also now been
performed quite effectively off cardiopulmonary bypass using a number of techniques
to obtain cardioplegia during the grafting I79c,79d], When cardiopulmonary bypass
is not used, cannula! ion of the aorta is avoided.
POST-CABG ATRIAL FIBRILLATION AND THE RISK OF STROKE
Another important treatable condition that may cause stroke following CABG is
trial fibrillation (AF). AF occurs in up to 32% of patients after CABG and in up
to 64% of patients after CABG and aortic valve replacement [80|. AF occurs most
commonly 24 to 72 hours after surgery [81 J. Risk factors for the development of
post-CABG AF include advanced age, preoperative withdrawal of p blockers, chronic
obstructive pulmonary disease, and prolonged aortic cross clamp time [80]. Post-
CABG AF usually resolves in a few days in most patients who do not have a history
of preoperative AF. Most studies have shown a three-io livefold increase in stroke
risk post-CABG in patients who develop AF [61,80K2|. However, one study showed
similar stroke rates in patients with AF (3.6%) compared with patients without AF
(3.5%) 183].
In view of the increased risk of posi-CABG stroke and prolonged hospital stay in
patients who develop AF, the role of prophylactic therapy to prevent post-CABG AF
has been studied extensively. In a meta-analysis of 12 placebo controlled trials, p
hlockers alone or in combination with digoxin was effective for preventing post-
CABG AF whereas digoxin alone was not [84J. In another meta-analysis, the frequency
of post-CABG AF was 8.7% in palients given p blockers preoperatively, compared to
34% in patients not prescribed p blockers. This meta-analysis also showed that
digoxin or verapamil alone were not effective for preventing post-CABG AF [851.
Othcj medications thai are effective for pie-venting post-CABG AF are procainamide
[86] and amiodarone [87J. In a recent double-blind randomized study patient give
eithe l amiodaron Additionally, the length of stay was significantly lower in the
amiodarone group than the placebo group (6.5 2.6 vs. 7.9 4.3 days: P = .04) |
X7|.
The management of posi-CABG AH is similar to the treatment of AF in other settings,
Pircs ct ah [81J have suggested the following approach thai we have found useful in
clinical practice. If postoperative AF causes hemodynamic instability, urgent
electrical cardioversion is required. If postoperative AF is not associated with
hemodynamic instability, control of the ventricular response can he achieved using
digoxin. 3 blockers, or calcium channel blockers. The use of digoxin in this
situation is controversial. Since most episodes of post-CABG AF resolve within a
few days of surgery, antiarrhythmic agents lhat convert AF to sinus rhythm
(quinidine, procainamide, amiodarone, sotalol) are usually not instituted unless
the episode of AF lasts longer than 48 lo 72 hours. When this occurs,
anticoagulation is also recommended. Since it is unknown whether palients who
haw .i brief episode of pos! CABG M are al highei risk of developing chronic AF in
the future, long-term anticoagulation is not warranted after post-CABG AF lasting
less than 72 hours.
COGNITIVE ABNORMALITIES FOLLOWING CABG
Cognitive abnormalities that arc not associated with local motor, sensory, or
visual dysfunction are the most common neurological complication of CABG, The
spectrum of cognitive problems is wide: some patients have obvious cognitive
problems thai are detectable al the bedside whereas others may have subtle
problems thai are only detectable by detailed neuropsychological testing,
lis;imales of the incidence of cognitive problems post-CABG range from 30% [88] to
88% [89], depending on the t\ pe and liming of the neuropsychological diagnostic
tests performed, Advanced age and length of bypass appear to be the most important
risk factors for cognitive abnormality following CABG [90].
The most common cognitive abnormalities are disturbances of memory, cot ice ni rati
on. and attention, and rapidity of responses to stimuli 189]. Although these
cognitive problems resolve within a few months in a substantial number of palients.
a few studies have shown lhal cognitive problems persist in up to 35% of patients
at I year 191J and in 20% of patients at 3 years after surgery [92], In a recent
well-designed prospective study, testing of eight cognitive domains was performed
preoperatively, at 1 month, and 1 year postoperatively in 127 palients undergoing
CABG f891. Only 12% of patients showed no decline across all domains tested. Of the
88% with abnormalities in at least one domain, 10% had persistent decline in the
domains of verbal memory, visual memory, attention d visuoco io l 1 |89| Depressio
als evaluated
cognitive decline, suggesting thai depression did not account for ihe cognitive
abnormalities |93].
The causes of cognitive decline following CABG arc uncertain. Abnormal i-lies of
intellectual function and behavior are frequently attributed to cerebral
hypoperfusion during bypass, medications (analgesics, sedatives), and metabolic
disturbances. Studies of the relationship between hypoperfusion and cognitive
problems have produced discordant results. Tufo et al. 137] found neurological
deficits (slroke or cognitive problems) in 78% of patients whose mean arterial
pressure was maintained at <40 mm Hg during bypass, compared with 27% of patients
whose mean arterial pressure was maintained >60 mm Hg. However, in a recent
prospective randomized study comparing mean arterial pressures of 50 to 60 versus
80 to 100 mm Hg during bypass, neuropsychological testing revealed no differences
in the incidence of cognitive problems in the two groups, whereas the incidence of
stroke was higher (7.2%) in the lower-pressure group than in the higher-pressure
group (2.4%) [39J. Other studies have also failed lo show a correlation between
cerebral hypoperfusion during CABG and cognitive dysfunction (35,941. Although
medications or metabolic disorders may account for some cases of cognitive decline
following CABG, they do not account for the high incidence of persistent cognitive
problems at 1 and 5 years after surgery.
Recent prospective studies provide accumulating evidence that microemboli sm is
probably the most important cause of cognitive decline following CABG. Using
transcranial Doppler or carotid ultrasound to detect brain microemboli during
CABG, several investigators have shown that patients with cognitive deficits post-
CABG have a significantly higher frequency of microemboli during surgery than
palients with no cognitive decline. In a study of 395 patients, Hummon el al. |95]
found thai more than I Off cerebral emboli per case was significantly (P < .04)
associated wiih postoperative neurobehavioral abnormalities, Pugsley et al [96J
found that 43% of patients with intraoperative embolic counts >1000 had cognitive
decline at 8 weeks after CABG, versus only 8.6% of palients with <200 emboli.
In a study of 20 patients, Barbut et al, f231 showed a correlation between the
number of emboli at cross clamp removal and severity of aortic arch disease (P < ,
04). Additionally, the mean number of embolic events at clamp removal was 166 in
six palients with cognitive deterioration, compared with 73 in 11 patienls without
deterioration (P < ,05). This study suggests that in addition to being a source of
macroemboli, aortic arch atheroma is an important source of microemboli during
CABG. This implies that emboli/ation from aortic arch disease may be the most
important cause of cognitive decline (from microembolization) well strok (fro
macroembolization) durin CABG
within the first 5 postoperative days in 4 patients (6%), but resolved by the sixth
postoperative day in all palients |97f. The cause of post-CABG encephalopathy is
usually multifactorial and is typically related to one or more of the following
problems: medications (particularly sedatives and narcotics), fever, sepsis,
hypoxia, metabolic abnormalities, and hypotension. Microemboli might also cause
reversible encephalopathy following CABG. but this needs further study.
OTHER POST-CABG NEUROLOGICAL PROBLEMS
Complications involving the peripheral nervous system occur in up to 13% of
patients fallowing CABG 198J. In the most comprehensive study to date, Ledermaii
el al. 198] prospectively evaluated 421 patients following CABG and found that 55
palients (13%) developed 63 new problems involving the peripheral nervous system.
These included brachial plexopaihy (23 patients), saphenous neuropathy (13).
common peroneal palsy (8), phrenic nerve palsy (6), ulnar neuropathy (5),
recurrent laryngeal nerve palsy (5), radial sensory neuropathy (1), Horner's
syndrome (I), and facial patsy (1). Most of these deficits were transient but two
patients, one wilh a brachial plexopathy and another with peroneal palsy, had
persistent weakness. Risk factors for the development of peripheral nervous system
complications in this study were hypothermia and male sex. The predominance of men
is difficult to explain, bui hypothermia is a recognized cause of neuropathy
199,100]. Surprisingly, diabetes was not associated with peripheral nervous
problems despite the we 11-recognized risk of stretch and compressive nerve
injuries in diabetics 198].
Brachial plexopathy is the most common and potentially serious peripheral nervous
lesion after CABG. Typically, the lower trunk or C8-TI nerve roots are involved
resulting in the syndrome of pain (which may be very severe), dysesthesias, and
weakness of the hand. In one study. 85% of brachial plexus injuries involved the
lower trunk and 73% of plexus lesions correlated with the side of internal jugular
vein cannulation 1101]. These findings suggest that trauma of the lower trunk of
the brachial plexus during jugular vein cannulation is a common mechanism of
brachial plexus injury during CABG. Another mechanism of brachial plexus injury
during CABG is stretching of the plexus from chest wall retraction. Harvesting the
internal mammary artery for use as a donor vessel for bypass carries the highest
risk because this typically requires more chest wall retraction. Patients with
weakness of ihe hand (lower trunk) or arm (more extensive brachial plexopathy) may
be misdiagnosed as having bad a stroke following CABG. A careful history and
neurological examination and brain imaging (if
) will distinguish betwee thes tw disorders Ulna d l pal presentation of ulnar
neuropathy. Saphenous neuropathy is related to injury to the nerve during
harvesting of the saphenous vein and typically presents with sensory loss of the
medial calf. Some patients develop meralgia paresthetica, a disorder due to
pressure on the lateral femoral cutaneous nerve, during or more likely after
surgery. These patients complain of paresthesias and burning in the lateral upper
thigh without any accompanying motor or reflex abnormalities. Compression of the
nerve in the groin near the inguinal ligament is the presumed cause of this minor
disorder.
Coma is a rare complication of CABG, occuring in <1 % of patients. The cause of
coma is not always apparent. In one study of 34 patients who failed to
waken following open heart surgery, the cause of coma was uncertain in 19 patients
(56%). In the other patienls, the causes of coma were well-documented episodes of
global cerebral ischemia or hypoxia (7 patients), large hemispheric infarction with
brain herniation (5), and multifocal infarctions (3) [102], It is likely that
global ischemia is responsible for the majority of cases of coma of uncertain
cause. Although severe hypotension (e.g., mean arterial pressure < 40 mm Hg) may
not have occurred in these cases, it is probable that cerebral blood flow was
inadequate in some patients (e.g., those with impaired autoregulation) at levels of
mean arterial pressure that are commonly used during bypass, i,e., 40 to 60 mm Hg.
The absence of infarcts on brain imaging does not prove that ischemia was not the
cause of coma because the pathology associated with cerebral hypoperfusion may be
limited to diffuse cortical laminar necrosis that is typically not delected by CT
and may not be detected by MRI.
A few other rare neurological complications of CABG have been reported. These
include intracranial hemorrhage [103J. unilateral hearing loss | 1041. and
pituitary apoplexy [105]. Intracerebral hemorrhage may be due to anticoagulation
during bypass, unilateral hearing loss has been attributed to embolism to end
arteries that supply the cochlea, and pituitary apoplexy is typically caused by
infarction (less commonly, hemorrhage) of a preexisting pituitary adenoma.
Pituitary apoplexy may be misdiagnosed in ihe postoperative setting. Obtundation
may be attributed to medications or metabolic problems, and the visual loss and
ophthalmoplegia may be missed. If ophthalmoplegia and visual loss are recognized,
a diagnosis of brainstem/occipital infarcts from a top of the basilar artery
embolus may be made. Awareness that pituitary apoplexy may occur in this setting,
coupled with a careful neurological examination and detection of the pituitary
mass on brain imaging, leads to the correct diagnosis.
be taken in the preoperative, intraoperative, and postoperative periods to kmer the
risk of these complications. Preoperative evaluation should include a detailed
neurological history and examination to determine if the patient has had previous
TIAs or stroke. Given the increased risk of extending a recent stroke during
cardiopulmonary bypass 156J. we suggest delaying CABG for 3 months unless the
patient has unstable cardiac symptoms. All patients with T1A or stroke should have
an extensive diagnostic evaluation to determine the cause of the symptoms. At LL
minimum this should include a carotid ultrasound (if the symptoms are in the
distribution nf a carotid artery). MRA or transcranial Doppler ultras*mm. .!
intracranial stenosis is suspected), and transesophageal echocardiography (if a
cardioembolic source is suspected).
Palients with symptomatic high-grade carotid stenosis should undergo carotid
endarterectomy before CABG if the coronary symptoms are stable; otherwise,
endarterectomy should be combined with CABG. The evaluation and management of
asymptomatic carotid stenosis in the selling of CABG is controversial, In the
absence of a prospective, randomized clinical trial on the efficacy of carotid
endarterectomy in this setting, the following approach is recommended. Patients
with carotid bruits detected preoperatively should undergo carotid ultrasound. If
the degree of stenosis is <75%, endarterectomy is not recommended in the peri-CABG
setting. If the degree of carotid stenosis is >75%\ one approach is to determine
cerebral perfusion reserve ipsilateral to the carotid stenosis using transcranial
Doppler ultrasound or single-photon emission computed tomography (SPECT) after the
administration of acetazolamide 1106|. In patienls with normal ipsilateral reserve,
acetazolamide produces arteriolar vasodilation and a marked increase in ipsilateral
CBF or CBF velocity. In patients with impaired reserve, the cerebral arterioles are
already maximally dilated to maintain CBF. Therefore the administration of
acetazolamide does not produce the expected increase in CBF or CBF velocity. Since
autoregulation is impaired in these patients, they arc probably at high risk of
stroke during bypass induced hypotension and therefore should be considered for
simultaneous carotid endarterectomy /CABG. However, this hypothesis remains
untested. For patients with bilateral carotid stenosis >75%, we usually recommend
simultaneous CABG and carotid endarterectomy on the side of the most severe
stenosis. If the degree of stenosis is similar on both sides, endarterectomy is
performed on the side ipsilateral to the brain hemisphere responsible for language,
i.e., usually the left side,
Palients with TIA or stroke caused by high-grade intracranial stenosis are probahK
at increased risk of Mmke during (' ABG. Identification ol symptomatic intracranial
stenosis will sometimes lead to a decision to cancel CABG, e.g., a patien with 90%
basila stenosi whos diseas i asymptomatic agulation postoperatively. Another option
to consider before surgery is the use of pharmacological agents (e.g., beta
blockers, amiodarone) to prevent post-CABG atrial librillation 184,87], This is
especially true for high-risk palients such as those of advanced age with chronic
obstructive pulmonary disease |80J.
Several measures should be taken intraoperativeiy to lower the risk of
neurological complications. Available data favor the use of high mean arterial
pressure (at least 60 mm Hg: preferably 80 to 100 mm Hg) during bypass to lower
the risk of stroke [39]. Until the last decade, moderate hypothermia was used
routinely in palients undergoing CABG. Recently, normothermie bypass has gained
some support on the basis of a few randomized studies, suggesting thai neurological
outcome is similar in patients undergoing normothermie versus hypothermic bypass
110.46]. However, other randomized studies have suggested dial nonnothermia is
associated widi a significantly higher rate of stroke |45|. Some centers now use
**lepid,, cardiopulmonary bypass in which the temperature is allowed to remain at
between 28 and 32C but no active cooling is employed. Further studies are needed
to clarify whether the rates of stroke and encephalopathy arc similar or higher in
patients undergoing normothermie bypass versus hypothermic bypass.
Several techniques are used intraoperative!) lo minimize the risk of embolization
during CABG. These include using arterial filtration and membrane oxygenators |
20|. epiaortie ultrasound or transesophageal echocardiography |76], and
transcranial Doppler ultrasound [22,24]. Since the aortic arch is an important
source of both mucrocmboli and microemboli during CABG, we recommend, when
possible, performing transesophageal echocardiography in all patients before CABG
to scan ihe aorta for atherosclerosis. The in formal ion gained from
echocardiography can be used by the cardiac surgeon and cardiologist to plan ihe
optimal procedure for the patient. This would permit the besi site for cannulation
and cross clamping of the aorta to be planned in advance of the operation, and to
detect potential cardiac sources of emboli (e.g.. left atrial appendage thrombus in
a patient with atrial fibrillation). The ascending aorta can also be iusonuted
using a Duplex ultrasound probe placed in the right supraclavicular fossa, and the
arch and proximal descending thoracic aorta can be imaged using a left
supraclavicular probe 1107a]. The results so far are preliminary hut promising.
Most plaques are located in the curvature of the arch from the dislal ascending
aorta to the proximal descending aorta, regions well shown using B-mode ultrasound.
When transesophageal echocardiography is not feasible before surgery, insonation of
the aorta using Duplex ultrasound can be performed at the same time as ultrasound
study of the carotid and vertebral arteries. In some patients minimall invasiv d
off bypas could b selected whe an Lime liable technique for detecting aortic
atherosclerosis [771. If focal aortic atherosclerosis is identified, relatively
simple modifications of the operative technique should be made. These include
changing the sites of aortic cannulation. aortic clamping, insertion of vein
grafts, and insertion of cardioplegic needle, the use of a single aortic clamp, or
cannulation of the femoral artery instead of the aona [77.107]. In patients with
severe diffuse aortic arch atherosclerosis, more invasive techniques may need to be
considered, e.g., hypothermic fibrillatory arrest without cross clamping of the
aorta and left ventricular venting, graft replacement of the ascending aorta with
hypothermic circulatory arrest without aortic clamping [78J. Coronary artery bypass
grafting without cardiopulmonary bypass is another option in selected patients
[79c,79d,l()8]. In one nonrandomized study, the frequency of stroke in 378
patients who underwent CABG without cardiopulmonary bypass was 1.1%, compared with
3.8% in 689 patients who underwent CABG with cardiopulmonary bypass [108].
Some investigators are currently using transcranial Doppler ultrasound
iniraoperatively for microemboli detection and to monitor cerebral perfusion.
Detection of a fall in cerebral blood flow velocities or microemboli in the middle
cerebral arteries enables corrective action to be taken. If a drop in cerebral
blood flow velocities is detected, pump flow rates can be increased to maintain
cerebral perfusion. Detection of multiple emboli when the aorta is not being
manipulated should raise suspicion of another source of emboli, e.g.. gaseous
emboli from the cardiac chambers. Using transesophageal echocardiography, pockets
of air in the cardiac chambers can be detected and removed by irrigation or
balloting 1109]. Barbut el al. [ 1101 have shown the prognostic value of
intraoperative embolic counts delected during CABG by comparing embolic counts in
patients with and without various complications following CABG. The mean number of
embolic counts was 449 in patients with slroke. versus 169 in patients without
stroke; the major cardiac complication rate was 4.3% in patients with <400 emboli,
versus 30.7% in patients with > 400 emboli: and the mean length of hospitalization
was 8.6 days in patients with < 100 emboli, versus 55.8 days in patients with >500
emboli. The relationship between embolic counts and hospital stay was similar even
in the absence of cardiac complications or stroke.
Pharmacological therapies have also been used to prevent or ameliorate the effects
of cerebral ischemia during CABG. There is some evidence that prostacyclin
infusion prevents adhesion of platelets to the extracorporeal tubing, thereby
lowering blood loss and plateletTibi in embolization during cardiopulmonary bypass
[111,112]. However, prostacyclin may also cause hypotension 1111,1131 and therefore
is not routinely used during CABG. Although barbituhav bee show th brai durin CABG
i shee model f
ministration of heparin and ending after aortic decannulution. the thiopental group
required more inotropic drugs during separation from bypass and required a
significantly longer lime for awakening and for tracheal exlubation than the
placebo group. Moreover, the frequency of stroke was 5 of 149 (3.3%) in the
thiopental group, versus 2 of 151 (13%) in the saline group [115]. Recent
development of other neuroprotective pharmacological agents (e.g.. glutamate
antagonists, GM1 gangltostde) that have ameliorated the effects of cerebral
ischemia in animal models has led to the suggestion that these agents should be
tested as neuroprotective agents during CABG 1116.117 j. Efforts to prevent
peripheral nerve injuries during CABG include paying special attention to
positioning the patient during anesthesia, using guards to protect against
compression neuropathies at the elbows and knees, avoiding excessive chest wall
retraction, and improving techniques of jugular vein cannulation and harvesting of
the saphenous veins.
In ihe postoperative period, it is important to monitor patients closely for post-
CABG atrial fibrillation and hypotension, both of which can lead to stroke. The
management of post-CABG atrial fibrillation is described above, in the section
^Post-CABG Atrial Fibrillation and the Risk of Stroke/1 Postoperative hypotension
should be treated promptly with intravenous fluids, pressors, or an intra-aortic
balloon pump if necessary. Neurological symptoms or signs following CABG should
prompt consultation with a neurologist. Diagnostic evaluation usually involves
brain CT or MRl. carotid ultrasound (if stroke is in the territory of a carotid
artery), transcranial Doppler ultrasound or MRA, and consideration of
echocardiography (mandatory following valvular surgery). Fever and siroke
following valvular surgery should always raise the suspicion of bacterial
endocarditis.
The management of acute siroke following CABG is similar to the routine management
of stroke, with a few exceptions. Since one of the contraindications of intravenous
thrombolytic therapy for acute ischemic stroke is major surgery within 14 days of
the stroke [118], intravenous thrombolytic therapy is not an option in the post-
CABG setting. Intraarterial thrombolysis has been used occasionally in the
postoperative setting (e.g., for acute stroke following carotid endarterectomy),
but the safety and efficacy of this approach remain lo be established. Intravenous
heparin can be used to prevent recurrent brain embolization in a patient wilh
cardioembohc stroke following CABG (e.g., in a patient with atrial fibrillation or
an intracardiac thrombus) as long as the patient has no evidence of an
intracerebral hematoma on brain imaging or aciive systemic bleeding.
parison between coronary artery bypass grafting and valve surgery. Ane.sih Aiialg
1993: 76:222-227.
2.
Gibbon JH Jr. Application of mechanical heart and lung apparatus to cardiac
surgery. Minn Med 1954: 37:171-180.

3.
Lillehei CW. A personalized history of extracorporeal circulation. Trans Am Soc
Artif Intern Organs 1982; 28:5-16.

4.
Oilman S. Cerebral disorders after open-heart operations. N Engl J Me J 1965; 272:
489-498.

5.
Brierley J. Neuropathologies! findings in palients dying after open-heart surgen.
Thorax 1963; 18:291-304.

6.
Ehrenhaft J, Claman M. Cerebral com plications of open-heart surgery. J Thorac
Cardiovasc Surg 1961: 41:503-506.

7.
Ehrenhaft J. Claman M. Luyton J. Zimmerman G. Cerebral complications of open-heart
surgery: further observations. J Thorac Cardiovasc Surg 1961; 42:514-526.

8.
Garrett H. Dennis E, DeBakes M. Aortocoronary bypass with saphenous vein graft.
Seven-year follow-up. JAMA 1973; 223:792-794.

9.
Favaloro R. Saphenous vein autograft replacement of severe segmental coronary
artery occlusion: operative technique. Ann Thorac Surg 1968: 5:334-339.
10.
Warm Heart Investigators. Randomised trial of normothermic versus hypothermic
coronary bypass surgery. Lancet 1994: 343:559-563.

11.
Gorman JH, Edmunds LH. Blood anesthesia for cardiopulmonary bypass. J Card Surg
1995; 10:270-279.

12.
Rindcr CS. Mathcw JP. Rinder HM. Bonan J. Auli KA. Smith BR. Modulation of
platelet surface adhesion receptors during cardiopulmonary bypass. Anesthesiology
1991: 75:563-570.

13.
Lindon J. McManama G, Kushner L. Merrill E. Sal/man E. Does the confirmation of
absorbed fibrinogen dictate platelet-surface interaction,' Blood l<>8n; 68:355

362.

14.
Hashimoto K, Miyamoto H, Suzuki K. Horikoshi S, Matsui M, Arai T. Kurosawa

H. Evidence of organ damage after cardiopulmonary bypass. The role of elastase and
vasoactive mediators. J Thorac Cardiovasc Surg 1992; 104:666-673.

15.
Tsai SK. Chan P, Lee IT. Yung J. Hong CY. Trilinolein improves erythrocyte dc-
formability during cardiopulmonary bypass. Br J Clin Pharmacol 1994; 37:457-459.

16.
Chenoweth D, Cooper 5, Hugli T. Stewart R, Blacks tone E, Kirklin J. Complement
activation during cardiopulmonary bypass. N Engl J Med 1981: 304:497-503.

17.
Mosre DS. Adams DT Magnani B. Platelet and neutrophil activation during cardiac
surgical procedures: impact of cardiopulmonary bypass. Ann Thorac Surg 1998;
65:691-695.

18.
Wright E. Sarkozy E, Dobell A, et al. Fat globulinemia in extracorporeal
circulation. Surgery 1963; 63:500-504.

19.
Clark R. Magraf H, Beauchamp R. Fat and solid filtration in clinical perfusion.
Surgery 1975; 77:216-224.

matter in the arterial line during cardiopulmonary bypass. J Surg Res 1965: 5:283
284.
22.
Padayaehee T. Parsons S, Theobokl R, Lin ley J, Gosling R. Deverall P. The d
election of microemboli in the middle cerebral artery during cardiopulmonary
bypass: a transcranial Doppler ultrasound investigation using membrane and bubble
oxygenators. Ann Thorac Surg 1987; 44:298-302.

23.
Barbui D, Hinton RT Szatrowski T, Hariman G. Bruefach M. Williams-Russo PT
Charlson M. Gold J. Cerebral emboli detected during bypass surgery are associated
with clamp removal. Stroke 1994; 25:2398-2402.

24.
Georeiadis D. Wenzel A, Zerkowski I1R, Zierz S. Lindner A. Automated inlraoper*
alive detection of Doppler microemboli signals using lhe bigate approach. Stroke
1998; 29:137-139.

25.
Van der Linden J, Casimir-Ahn H. When do cerebral emboli appear during open heart
operations? A transcranial Doppler study. Ann Thorac Surg 1991: 51:237

241.

26.
Barbut D. Yao F. Hager D. Kuvanaugh P. Tritiletti R. Gold J. Comparison of
transcranial Doppler ultrasonography and transesophageal echocardiography to
monitor emboli during coronary artery bypass surgery. Stroke 1996: 27:87-90.

27.
Ringelsiein F. Drosie D. Babikian V, Evans D. Grosscl D, Kaps M. Markus H. Russell
D. Siebler M. Consensus on microembolus detection by TCD. International Consensus
Group on Microembolus Detection. Stroke 1998; 29:725-729.

28.
Blauth C, Arnold J, Schulenberg W, McCartney A, Taylor K. Cerebral microembolism
during cardiopulmonary bypass: retinal microvascular studies in vivo with
fluorescein angiography. J Thorac Cardiovasc Surg 1988; 95:668-676.

29.
Moody D, Bell M. Challa V, Johnston W. Prough D. Brain microemboli during cardiac
surgery or aortography. Ann Neurol 1990; 28:477-486.

30.
Govier A. Reves J, McKay R. Karp R. Zom G. Morawelz R. Smith L. Adams M, Freeman
A. Factors and their influence on regional cerebral blood flow during nonpulsatile
cardiopulmonary bypass. Ann Thorac Surg 1984: 38:592-599.

31.
Nevin M, Adams S. Colchester A. Pepper J, Evidence for involvement of hypocapnia
and hypoperfusion in aetiology of neurological deticii after cardiopulmonary
bypass. Lancet 1987: 2:1493-1495.

32.
Brusino P. Reves J. Smith L. Prougli D. Stump D, Melntyre R. The effect of age on
cerebral blood flow during hypothermic cardiopulmonary bypass. J Thorac Cardiovasc
Surg 1989: 97:541-547.

33.
Lundar T, Lindegaard K-F. Froysaker T. Aaslid R, Wiberg J. Nomes H. Cerebral
perfusion during nonpulsatile cardiopulmonary bypass. Ann Thorac Surg 1985; 40:
144-150.

34.
Lundar T, Lindegaard K-F. Froysaker T. Aaslid R, Grip A, Nornes H. Dissociation
between cerebral autoregulation and carbon dioxide reactivity during nonpulsatile
cardiopulmonary bypass. Ann Thorac Surg 1985; 40:582-587.

35.
Slogoff S. Girgis K. Keats A. Etiologic factors in neuropsychiatric complications
37.
Tufo H. Ostfcld A, Shckellc R. Central nervous system dysfunction following open-
heart surgery. JAMA 1970: 212:1333-1340.

38.
Stockard J. Biekford R. Seliauble J. Pressure-de pendent cerebral ischemia during
cardiopulmonary bypass. Neurology 1973: 23: 521-529.

39.
Gold J. Charlson M. Williams-Russo P. Szalrowski T. Peterson J. Pirraglia P.
Hartman G, Yao F, Hollenberg J, Barbut D. Improvement of outcomes after coronary
artery bypass: .i raotlooii/cd trial comparing intraoperali\e high \s. lou mean
ancrial pressure. J Thorac Cardiovasc Surg 1995: 110:1302-1314.

40.
FYough 0. Suirtip [>, Ro> R. Guv Ice G. Williams I'. Mills S. I Imshclw ood I..
Howard G. Response of cerebral blood flow to changes in carbon dioxide tension
during hypothermic cardiopulmonary bypass. Anesthesiology 1986: 64:576-581.

41.
Barbut D, Lo Y. Trif iletti R, et al. Cerebral perfusion is determined by
cardiopulmonary bypass flow rate. Outcomes '97. Key West 1997. Abstract.

42.
Bigelow W. Callaghan J. Hopps J. General hypothermia for experimental
intracardiac surgery: the use of eleclrophrenic respirations, an artificial
pacemaker for cardiac standstill, and radio-frequency rewarming in general
hypothermia. Ann Surg 1950; 132:531-539.

43.
Conroy B, Lin C, Jenkins L. DeWttt D. Zornow M. Uchida T, Johnston W, Hypothermic
modulation of cerebral ischemic injury during cardiopulmonary bypass in pigs.
Anesthesiology 1998; 88:390-402.

44.
Rohrer M, Natale A. Effect of hypothermia on the coagulation cascade. Crit Care
Med 1992; 20:1402-1405.

45.
Martin T. Craver J, Gott J. Weintraub W. Ramsay J, Mora C. Guyton R. Prospective,
randomized trial of retrograde warm blood cardioplegia: myocardial benefit and
neurologic threat. Ann Thorac Surg 1994: 57:298-304.

46.
McLean R, Wong B. Naylor C, Snow W. Harrington E, Gawel M. Fremes S.
Cardiopulmonary bypass, temperature, and central nervous system dysfunction.
Circulation 1994; 90(5 part 2):11250-II255.

47.
Roach G. Kanchuger M. Mangano C. Newman M. Nussmeier N, Wolman R, Aggarwal A.
Marschall K. Graham S. Ley C. Adverse cerebral outcomes after coronary bypass
surgery. Multicenter Study of Perioperative Ischemia Research Group and the
Ischemia Research and Education Foundation Investigators. N Engl J Med

1996: 335:1857-1863.

48.
Breuer A, Furlan A. Hanson M. Led e mi an R. Loop F. Cosgrove D, Greenstreel

R. Estafanous F. Central nervous system complications of coronary artery bypass


graft surgery: prospective analysis of 421 patients. Stroke 1983; 14:682-687.

49.
Shaw P, Bates D. Curtlkige N. Heaviside D, Julian D. Shaw D. Early neurological
complications of coronary artery bypass surgery. Br Med J 1985; 291:1384-1387.

50.
Mangano D. Miihicenter outcome research. J Cardiothorac Vase Anesth 1994; 8: 10-
12.

51.
McKfrann G. Goldsborough M. Borowicz L. Mellits E, Brookmeyer R, Quaskey S,
Baumgartner W. Cameron D. Stuan R, Gardner T. Predictors of stroke risk in

53.
Libman R, Wirkowski E, Neystat M. Barr W, Gclv S, Graver M. Stroke associated with
cardiac surgery. Determinants, timing, and stroke subtypes. Arch Neurol 1996;
54:83-87.

54.
Barbul D. Grassineau D, Heier L, et al. Radiologic appearances in CABG-relaled
strokes are characteristic of embolic infarction predominantly affecting the
posterior circulation. Outcomes '97, Key West 1997. Abstract.

55.
Masnda J, Yutam C. Ogata J. Rumania Y. Yaniaguchi T. Atheromatous emholisin in the
brain: a clinicopathologie analysis of 15 autopsy cases. Neurology 1994; 44: 1231-
1237.

55a. Caplan LR, Hcnnerici M. Impaired clearance of emboli is an important link


between hypoperfusion, embolism, and ischemic stroke. Arch Neurol 1998: 55: 1475-
1482.
56.
Rorick M, Furlan A. Risk of cardiac surgery in patients with prior stroke.
Neurology 1990; 40:835-837.

57.
Redmond J, Greene P. Goldsborough M. Cameron D. Stuart R, Suss man M, Watkins L,
Laschinger J. McKhann G. Johnston M. Baumgartner W. Neurologic injury in cardiac
surgical patients with a history of slroke. Ann Thorac Surg 19%; 61: 42-47.

58.
Faggioli G. Curl G, Rieotta J. The role of carotid screening before coronary
arter> bypass. J Vase Surg 1990; 12:724-729.

59.
Ropper A, Wechslcr L. Wilson L. Carotid bruit and the risk of stroke in elective
surgery. N Engl J Med 1982: 307:1388-1390.

60.
Gerraty R. Gates P, Doyle J. Carotid stenosis and perioperative stroke risk in
symptomatic and asymptomatic patients undergoing vascular or coronary surgery.
Slroke 1993; 24:1115-1118.
61.
Reed G. Singer D, Picard E, DcSanctis R. Stroke following coronary artery bypass
surgery: a case control estimate of the risk from carotid bruits. N Engl J Med
1988: 319:1246-1250.

62.
Rieotta J, Faggioli G. Castilone A. Hassett J. Risk factors for slroke after
cardiac surgery. Buffalo Cardiac-Cerebral Study Group. J Vase Surg 1995: 21:359

363.

63.
Schwartz L. Bridgman A. Kieffer R, Wilcox R. McCann R. Tawil M. Scott S
Asymptomatic carotid artery stenosis and stroke in patients undergoing
cardiopulmonary bypass. J Vase Surg 1995: 21:146-153.

64.
Dashe J, Pcssin M, Murphy R. Payne D. Carotid occlusive disease and stroke risk in
coronary artery bypass graft surgery. Neurology 1997: 49:678-686.

65.
Hart R, Easlon J, Management of cervical bruits and carotid stenosis in
preoperative paiienis. Stroke 1983; 14:290-297.

66 Furlan A, Craciun A. Risk of stroke during coronary artery bypass graft


surgery in patients with internal carotid artery disease documented by angiography.
Stroke 1985; 16:797-799.
67. Brencr B, Brief D. Alpert J. Goldendranz R, Parsonnet V. Feldman S,
Gielchinsky factors for stroke in patients undergoing coronary artery bypass
grafting. J Thorac Cardiovasc Surg 1996: 112:1250-1258.
69.
Hertzer N. Loop F, Seven. E, O'Hara P, Krajewski L. Surgical staging for
simultaneous coronary and carotid disease: a study including prospective
randomization. J Vase Surg 1989: 9:455-463.

70.
Moore W, Barnett H. Beebe H. Bernstein E, Brener B, Brott T. Caplan L, Day A,
Goldstone J, Hobson R. Guidelines for carotid eiularterectomy. A niultidiseiplinary
COD sen MIS statement from the Ad Hoe Committee, American Heart Association. Stroke
1995; 26:188-201.

71.
North American Symptomatic Carotid Endarterectomy Trial Collaborators. Beneficial
effect of carotid endarterectomy in symptomatic patients with high-grade carotid
stenosis. N Engl J Med 1991: 325:445-453.

72.
Blauth C. Cosgrove D. Webb B. Ratliff N. Boylan M. Piedmonte M. Lytic B. Loop

F. Athcroemholism from the ascending aorta. An emerging problem in cardiac


surgery. J Thorac Cardiovasc Surg 1992; 103:1104-1 f 11.

73.
Hosoda Y, Watanabc M. Hirooka Y, Ohse Y. Tanaka A. Watanabe T. Significance of
atherosclerotic changes of the ascending aorta during coronary bypass surgery with
intraoperative detection by echography. J Cardiovasc Surg 1991; 32:301-306.

74.
Barbut D. Lo Y. Hartman G. Yao F. Trifilctti R. Hager D. Minton R. Gold J. Isom

O. Aortic atheroma is related to outcome but not numbers of emboli during coronary
bypass. Ann Thorac Surg 1997: 64:454-459,

75.
Hartman G, Yao F, B rue tacit M, B;u*bul D. Peterson J, Puree 11 M, Charlson M,
Gold J, Thomas S. Szatrowski T. Severity of aortic atheromatous disease diagnosed
by transesophageal echocardiography predicts stroke and oLher outcomes associated
with coronary artery surgery: a prospective study. Anesth Analg 1996; 83:701

708.

76.
Davila-Roman V. Barzilai B. Wareing T, Murphy S, Kouchoukos N. Intraoperative
ultrasonographic evaluation of the ascending aorta in 100 consecutive patients
undergoing cardiac surgery. Circulation 1991: 84(suppl 5}:11I47-III53.

77.
Wareing T, Davila-Roman V. Barzilai B. Murphy S, Kouschoukos N. Management of the
severely atherosclerotic ascending aorta during cardiac operations. A strategy for
detection and treatment, J Thorac Cardiovasc Surg 1992; 103:453^462.

78.
Kouchoukos N. Wareing T, Daily B. Murphy S. Management of the severely
atherosclerotic aorta during cardiac operations. J Card Surg 1994; 9:490-494.

79.
Duda A. Letwin L. Sutter F, Goldman S. Does routine use of aortic ultrasonography
decrease the stroke rate in coronary artery bypass surgery J Vase Surg 1995; 21:
98-107.

79a. AcufT TE. Landreneau RJ. Griffith BP. Mack MJ. Minimally invasive coronary
artery bypass grafting. Ann Thorac Surg 1996: 61:135-137.
79b. Ribakove GH. Miller JS, Andersen RV, et al. Minimally invasive port-access
coronary artery bypass grafting with early angiographic follow-up: initial
clinical experience. J Thorac Cardiovasc Surg 1998: 115:1101-1110.
the healing heart without the use of extracorporeal circulation: review of 2052
cases. J Thorac Cardiovasc Surg 1998: 116:68-73.
80.
Creswell L, Schuessler R. Rosenhlootn M, Cox J. Hazards of postoperative atrial
arrhythmias. Ann "Thorac Surg 1993; 56:539-549.

81.
Pires L, Wagshal A, Lancey R. Huang S. Arrhythmias and conduction disturbances
after coronary artery bypass graft surgery: epidemiology, management, and
prognosis. Am Heart J 1995; 129:799-808.

82.
Taylor G, Malik S, Colliver J, Dove J. Moses H, Mikcll F, Batehelder J, Schneider
J, Wcllons H. Usefulness of atrial fibrillation as a predictor of stroke after
isolated coronary artery bypass grafting. Am J Cardiol 1987; 60:905-907.

83.
O'Neill BJ 111. Furlan AJ. Hobbs RD. Risk of slroke in patients with transient
postoperative atrial fibrillation/flutier. Stroke 1983: 14:133.

84.
Kowey P. Taylor J. Rials S. Marinehak R. Meta-analysis of the effectiveness of
prophylactic drug therapy in preventing supraventricular arrhythmia early after
coronary artery bypass grafting. Am J Cardiol 1992; 69:964-965.

85.
Andrews T, Reimotd S, Berlin J. Amman E. Prevention of supraventricular
arrhythmias after coronary artery bypass surgery. Circulation 1991; 84(Suppl
1111:111236 111243. Abstract.

86.
Gold M. O'Gara P, Buckley M. DeSanclis R. Efficacy and safety of procainamide in
preventing arrhythmias after coronary artery bypass surgery. Am J Cardiol 1996:
78:975-979.

87.
Daoud E, Strickberger S. Man K, Goyal R, Deeb G, Boiling S. Pagani F, Bitar C,
Meissner M, Morady F. Preoperative amiodarone as prophylaxis against atrial
fibrillation after heart surgery. N Engl J Med 1997: 337:1785-1791.

88.
Sotaniemi K. Mononen H. Hokkanen T. Long-term cerebral outcome after open-

heart surgery. Slroke 1986; 17:410-416. S9. McKhaun G. Goldsbomugh M. Borow jez L.
Seines O. Mellits E. EngerC. Quaskey
S. Baumgartner W, Cameron D, Stuart R, Gardner T. Cognitive outcome after coronary
artery bypass: a one-year prospective siudy. Ann Thorac Surg 1997: 63:510
515.
90. Borowicz L, Goldsbomugh M, Seines (). McKhann G. Neuropsychologic change
after cardiac surgery: a critical review. J Cardiothorac Vase Anesth 1996: 10:105
111.
91.
Venn G, Klinger L. Smith P. Neuropsychologic sequelae of bypass twelve months
after coronary artery surgery. Br Heart J 1987; 57:565.

92.
Martzke J, Murkin J, Baird D, et al. Perioperative predictors of
neuropsychological outcome 3 years after coronary artery bypass surgery. Anesth
Analg 1996; 82: SCA37.

93.
McKhann G. Borowicz L. Goldsborough M. EngerC, Seines O. Depression and cognitive
decline after coronary anery bypass grafting. Lancet 1997; 349:1282 1284.

94.
Freeman A, Folks IX Sokol R, Govicr A, Reves J. Fleece E, Hall K. Zorn G. Karp

of ncurobchavioral changes after coronary artery bypass grafting. Ann Thorac Surg
1997: 63:1613-1618.
96.
Pugs ley W, K linger L, Paschal is C. Treasure T. Harrison M. Newman S. The impact
of microemboli Juring cardiopulmonary bypass on neuropsychological functioning.
Stroke 1994: 25:1393-1399.

97.
Calabroe J. Skwerer R. Gulledge A. Gill C. Mullen J. Rodgers D. Taylor P, Go-ding
L. Lytic B. Cosgrove D, Buzarel M. Loop F. Incidence of postoperative delirium
following myocardial revascularization. Cleve Clin J Med 1987: 54:29
32.

98.
Lederman R. Breuer A. Hanson M, Furlan A. Loop F. Cosgrove D. Eslafanuu.s F,
GrcensLreet R. Peripheral nervous system complications of coronary artery bypass
graft surgery. Ann Neurol 1982; 12:297-301.

99.
Denny-Brown D. Adams R. Brenner C, et al. The pathology of injury to nerve induced
by cold. J Neuropadiol Exp Neurol 1945: 4:305-323.

100.
Swan H. Virtue R. Blount G. et al. Hypothermia in surgery: analysis of 100
clinical cases. Ann Surg 1955; 142:382-400.

101.
Hanson M. Breuer A. Furlan A, Lederman R, Wilbourn A, Cosgrove D. Loop F,
Estafanous F. Mechanism and frequency of brachial plexus injury in open-heart
surgery; a prospective analysis. Ann Thorac Surg 1983: 36:675-679.

102.
Furlan A, Craciun A. Central nervous system complications of open heart surgery.
Stroke 1984; 15:912-915.

103.
Humphreys R. Hoffman H. Mustard W, Trusler G. Cerebral hemorrhage following heart
surgery. J Neurosurg 1975: 43:671-675.

104.
Plasse H, Millleman M, Frost J. Unilateral sudden hearing loss alter open heart
surgery: a detailed study of seven cases. Laryngoscope 1981; 91:101-109.

105.
Cooper D. Bazaral M, Furlan A. Seuilla E, Ghatias M. Sheeler L. Little J. Hahn

J. Sheldon W. Loop F Pituitary apoplexv: a complication of cardiac surgery. Ann


Thorac Surg 1986; 41:547-550.

106.
Chimowitz M. Furlan A. Jones S. Sila C. Lorig R. Paranandi L. Beck G.
Transcranial Doppler assessment of cerebral perfusion reserve in patients with
carotid occlusive disease and no evidence of cerebral infarction. Neurology 1993;
43:353

357.

107.
Aranki S, Sullivan T. Cohn L. The effect of the single aonic cross-clamp technique
on cardiac and cerebral complications during cardiac bypass surgery. J Card Surg
1995: 10:498-502.

107a. Weinberger J. Azhar S. Danisi F, Hayes R. Goldman M. A new noninvasive


technique for imaging atherosclerotic plaque in the aortic arch of siroke patients
by transcutaneous real-lime B-mode ultrasonography. Stroke 1998; 29:673-676.

108.
Buffolo E. deAngrade C. Branco J. Teles C. Aguiar L. Gomes W. Coronary artery
bypass grafting without cardiopulmonary bypass. Ann Thorac Surg 19%: 61:63
66.

109.
Topol E. Humphrey L. Borkon A. Baumgartner W. Dorsey D. Rcitz B. Weiss J.

of embolization during coronary artery bypass grafting on outcome and length of


stay. Ann Thorac Surg 1997: 63:998-1002.
111.
Fish K, Sainquist F. van Steennis C, Mitchell P. Hilbennan M. Jamieson S. Linet O,
Miller D. A prospective, randomized study of the effects of prostacyclin on
platelets and blood loss during coronary bypass operations. J Thorac Cardiovasc
Surg 1986; 91:436-442.

112.
Pokar H. Uleese N, Fischer-Dusterhoff H, et al. Prevention of postoperative
psychic and neurological disturbances after open-heart surgery using prostacyclin:
a clinical study. In: Becker R. Karz J, Plonius M-J, Speidel H, eds.
Psychopaihological and Neurological Dysfunction Following Open-Mean Surgery. New
York: Springer-Verlag, 1982:312-319.

113.
Aran C, BlomsLrand C. Wikkelso C. Radcgran K. Hypotension induced by prostacyclin
treatment during cardiopulmonary bypass does not increase the risk of cerebral
complications. J Thorac Cardiovasc Surg 1984; 88(5 pt l):748-753.

114- Swain J. Anderson R. Siegman M. Low-How cardiopulmonary bypass and cerebral


protection: a summary of investigations. Ann Thorac Surg 1993: 56:1490-1492.
115.
Zaidan J. Klochany A. Martin W. Ziegler J. Hartess D. Andrews R. Effect of
thiopental on neurologic outcome following coronary artery bypass grafting.
Anesthesiology 1991; 74:406-411.

116.
Fisher M, Jonas S. Sacco R. Prophylactic neuroprotection for cerebral ischemia.
Stroke 1994; 25(5): 1075-1080.

117.
Grieco G, d'Hollosy M. Culliford A, Jonas S. Evaluating neuroprotective agents for
clinical anii-ischemic benefit using neurological and neuropsychological changes
after cardiac surgery under cardiopulmonary bypass: methodological strategies and
results of a double-blind, placebo-control led trial of GM, gangtioside. Stroke
1996; 27:858-874.

118.
National Institute of Neurological Disorders and Slroke rt-PA Stroke Study Group.

Tissue plasminogen activator for acute ischemic stroke. N Engl J Med 1995: 333:
1581-1587.

119.
Baldwin J, Sanchez J, Bing RJ, Coronary Artery Surgery. In; Bing RJ. ed.
Cardiology: The evolution of the science and the art. Switzerland: Harwood
Academic Publishers. 1992:173,

120.
Chimowitz Ml, Nemec JJ, Marwick TH, Lorig RJ, Furlan AJ, Salcedo FE. Transcranial
Doppler ultrasound identities patients with right-to-left cardiac or pulmonary
shunts. Neurology 1991; 41:1902-1904.

121.
Chimowitz MI. Furlan AJ. Preventing cerebral complications of cardiac surgery. In:
Norris JW, Hachinski VC, eds. Prevention of Slroke. New York: Springer-Verlag,
1991:222.

122.
Poole RM. Chimowitz Ml. Cardiac imaging for stroke diagnosis. In: Fisher M.
Bogousslavsky J, eds. Current Review of Cerebrovascular Disease. Philadelphia:
Current Medicine, 1996:195.

Neurological Complications of Nonsurgical Cardiac Interventions


INTRODUCTION
Neurological complications of nonsurgical cardiac interventions are relatively
uncommon but their occurrence may lead to death or major disability. This chapter
focuses on the neurological complications of common cardiac interventions such as
coronary angiography and angioplasty, valvuloplasty, cardiac assist devices,
thrombolytic therapy, and cardioversion.
PERCUTANEOUS CORONARY ANGIOGRAPHY AND ANGIOPLASTY
Modern percutaneous coronary angiography was pioneered by Seldinger in 1953 [1J and
Sones in 195912J. Subsequently it has become one of the most commonly performed
invasive diagnostic tests in the United States. In an early study of
46.904 patients undergoing coronary angiography at 173 hospitals, stroke occurred
in 106 patients (0,23%) [3]. Subsequent studies thai have incorporated modern
catheter design have shown an even lower stroke rate following coronary angiography
(0.07% lo 0.11%) |4.5|. Initial concern about the possibility of higher thrombotic
events with the use of nonionic contrast has largely abated because of studies
showing no difference in the rates of cerebral embolic events when nonionic vs.
ionic contrast agents are used |6.7]. Predisposing risk factors
258
for neurological complications following coronary angiography have heen evaluated
in one case control study. Using multiple logistic regression analysis. Lazar el
al. found thai female gender, left ventricular hypertrophy, depressed ejection
fraction, and presence of >50% stenosis of two or more coronary arteries were
independent predictors of neurological events 18J.
The risk of embolism during transeptal left heart catheterization has also been
evaluated. With this technique, a catheter is threaded into the right atrium via a
femoral vein. Subsequently, the atrial or ventricular septum is punctured lo gain
access to the left atrium or left ventricle. Indications for this procedure are
direct measurement of left atrial pressure, mitral valvuloplasty, or access to the
left ventricle in patients with prosthetic aortic or mitral valves. In one study of
1279 patients undergoing transeptal left heart catheterization, only one patient
(0.08%) had a systemic embolus [9],
Most [5,10.11], but not all [8|, studies show that the majority of strokes
following coronary angiography occur in ihe vertebrobasilar circulation. In
contrast, ischemic siroke usually imnlves rbe \ertebrobusilar circulation in
approximately 10% to 20% of cases. One possible explanation for the preponderance
of vertebrobasilar strokes is injury to the proximal vertebral artery when the
brachial artery approach (Sones technique) is used. However, centers using the
Seldinger technique (femoral artery approach} have also reported that the majority
of events occurred in the posterior circulation 112]. One explanation for the high
frequency of vertebrobasilar symptoms is that many of these events may not be
ischemic in origin. The preponderance of transient visual symptoms suggests
migraine may be the cause in many palients.
Postangiography strokes involving the vertebrobasilar circulation typically
manifest as combinations of a confusional stale wilh memory difficulties (medial
temporal lobe ischemia), visual field defects such as hemianopia or cortical
blindness (occipital lobe ischemia), and a brainstem syndrome. Carotid territory
strokes occur in approximately 30% to 40% of patients and typically manifest as
combinations of hemiparesis, hemisensory loss, hemianopia, and aphasia (left
hemisphere) or neglect (right hemisphere). Some series have shown lhat >50% of
patients have mild or no residual neurological signs following cerebral ischemia
related to coronary angiography [5,8,12J. In one series of 30,000 patients who
underwent coronary angiography, 35 patients had a stroke (0.11%). The neurological
deficit resolved within 48 hours in 19 patients but persisted in 16 palients, two
of whom died [5J.
Invariably the cause of stroke following coronary angiography is emboliza* tion
related to guide wire or catheter manipulation. The most common embolic protrudin
atheroma i th 113| th origin f th brachio
lodged by guide wire or catheter manipulation. Several techniques have been
employed to prevent embolization during coronary angiography; however, none of
these approaches have been evaluated in controlled studies. The strategies include
pretreatment with aspirin, use of heparin during the procedure, and the use of
frequent, small test injections of contrast to establish lhe presence of rapid
runoff. This runoff indicates that the catheter tip is properly placed and not
trapped or subintimal 115], It has also been suggested that transesophageal
echocardiography or spiral CT should be used before angiography to detect
protruding atheromas in the aortic arch [13]; however, this is unlikely to be a
cost-effective approach
j. \ en the low rate of stroke following coronary angiography.
Until recently there was little to offer patients with stroke related to coronary
angiography. However, recent evidence that thrombolytic therapy is effective for
patients presenting wiihin 3 hours of an ischemic stroke 116] provides a strong
rationale for using thrombolytic therapy in this setting [17]. Frequently ihe
stroke is reco-ni/ed during the procedure, when the arterial sheath is still in
place. This provides a unique opportunity to perform selective cerebral
intraarterial thrombolysis (rather than intravenous thrombolysis) and thereby
limit the risk of hemorrhage from the site of cannulation. Immediately after
recognition of a significant neurological deficit, a brain CT should be performed
to rule out a cerebral hemorrhage. Although cerebral hemorrhage is rare in this
setting, the authors have personally seen such ca>cs. If the brain CT does not show
a hemorrhage, a diagnostic cerebral angiogram is performed to determine if a
cerebral artery is occluded. If so, selective inlra-arterial thrombolysis can be
performed. Since most mild neurological deficits resolve spontaneously following
coronary angiography, we reserve intra-arterial thrombolysis for those patients
with a disabling deficit (hemiplegia, aphasia, cortical blindness) and occlusion
of a major intracranial artery (middle cerebral artery, basilar artery).
Other central nervous system complications of coronary angiography include
migraine, encephalopathy, and occasionally seizures [10], Many of these
complications probably occur as a reaction to the contrast agent, and use of
nonionic agents may lower the incidence of these events. Elderly, dehydrated
patients may be particularly susceptible to developing encephalopathy if a large
volume of contrast agent is used. Hypotension or microemboli may also be
responsible for encephalopathy following coronary angiography. In a
neuropathologies] study of patients dying after cardiopulmonary bypass or invasive
diagnostic procedures, Moody et ah [ 18] reported that two palients who underwent
coronary angiography or aortography without cardiopulmonary bypass had numerous
small capillary and arteriolar dilatations (SCADsj scattered throughout the brain
(see Fig. 2 in Chapte 4) Thes SCAD typicall 10 40 i siz d th lumin
Peripheral nerve injury is an uncommon complication of coronary angiography. In a
prospective study of coronary angiography performed via the femoral approach, Kent
el al, [19] reported thai 20 of 9585 patients (0.2% ) had damage to the femoral
nerve. The neurological symptoms in most of these patients resolved. Kennedy ct al,
|20J reported live patients with high median neuropathy following coronary
angiography via the brachial route. All patients were followed for 6 to 22 months
and had persistent sensory disturbance or weakness of the hand. One patient
developed reflex sympathetic dystrophy. The authors estimate that median neuropathy
may occur in 0,2% to 1.4% of patients undergoing coronary angiography via the
brachial route 120], Possible mechanisms of nerve injury during coronary
angiography include compression of a peripheral nerve by a hematoma at the site of
cannulation, direct trauma to the nerve by cutdowns. cannulation of the nerve
sheath, incorrectly placed sutures, ischemia lo the nerve from local arterial
thrombosis, and tight arm boards. Rare cases of brachial plexopathy complicating
axillary cannulation have also been reported 120].
Percutaneous transluminal coronary angioplasty, which was performed lirst by
Gruntzig in 1977 [21], is performed in more than 500,000 patients per year
worldwide [22]. The neurological complications of coronary angioplasty are similar
to those of coronary angiography. Dorros etal. [23] reported that 5 of 1500
patients (0,3%) undergoing coronary angioplasty had a central nervous system
complication (one stroke, three TIAs, and one anoxic encephalopathy). Gal breath et
al. [24] reported that four of 1968 patients (0.2%) had cerebrovascular
complications (three stroke, one TIA). Two patients had strokes while the
angiograpftcr was searching the ascending aorta for ihe sites of aortosaphenous
vein grafts. One patient had a stroke during a hypotensive episode following
technically successful angioplasty, and one palienl had a TIA that was attributed
to injection of a small quantity of air through the guiding catheter.
VALVULOPLASTY
Percutaneous balloon valvuloplasty is an alternative to surgery in selected
patients with mitral stenosis or aortic stenosis. The technique was developed by
Kan ct al. [25J in 1982 for the treatment of pulmonary valve stenosis and
subsequently refined for the treatment of mitral stenosis and aortic stenosis by
Inoue
[26] and others [27-29].
There are several variations of the technique used for mitral valvuloplasty. but
the cardiac outcome and complication rates of the various techniques are simila
[30] Th l antegrad h i commonl used A cathe is positioned across the mitral vaive
and inflated briefly, thereby splitting Lhe mitral commissures [31].
The major neurological risk of mitral valvuloplasty is cerebral embolism. The
typical sources of embolism are left atrial thrombus or calcification of the mitral
valve. Hence, mitral valve calcification and left atrial thrombus are
contraindications to the procedure. In order to lower the risk of embolism during
the procedure, transesophageal echocardiography (TEE) is performed before the
procedure to rule out left atrial thrombus 1321. If thrombus is found, the
procedure is delayed and anticoagulation is instituted for 2 lo 3 months [31 j.
Subsequently, TEE is repeated to ensure that the left atrium is free of thrombus.
Some authors have also advocated using online TEE during the procedure to guide the
transeptal puncture and the positioning of the balloon catheter across the mitral
valve 133 J.
By paying close attention to patient selection and use of anticoagulation during
ihe procedure, experienced operators lui\e reported relative!) low rates of
neurological complications from mitral valvuloplasty. Early studies reported
embolic rates of up lo 4% 131 J. but recent studies report lower rates. Fu et al.
[30] reported that 3 of 262 patients {1.1%) had embolic events (two cerebral, one
coronary), Chioin et ah [34] reported that 2 of 235 patients (0.85%) had TIAs. and
Demirtas et al, [351 reported, that I of 50 patients (2%) had systemic embolism
related to mitral valvuloplasty. In a very large study of 4832 patients with
rheumatic mitral stenosis from 120 medical centers in China, the rate of
thromboembolism associated with mitral valvuloplasty was 0.48% [36].
Aottk' valvuloplasty is usually performed in patients with symptomatic aortic
stenosis who are not candidates for aortic valve replacement. The procedure is
performed retrograde from one of the femoral arteries. A balloon catheter is
advanced over a guidewire traversing the aortic valve. The balloon catheter must be
large enough to cause transient hypotension with full dilatation. Multiple
dilatations of the balloon are typically performed [31 J.
Transcranial Doppler (TCD) has been used to monitor cerebral hemodynamics during
aortic valvuloplasty. Karnik et al. [37] performed TCD of a middle cerebral artery
during valvuloplasty in 12 elderly patients. In three patients whose systolic blood
pressure fell to <75 mm Hg during balloon inflation, middle cerebral artery mean
blood Mow velocity fell to <35 cm/sec (normal range, 45 to 65 cm/sec). Deflation
and retraction of the balloon resulted in restoration of systemic blood pressure
and middle cerebral artery blood flow velocity. In palients whose blood pressure
remained >75 mm Hg during balloon inflation, middle cerebral artery mean blood flow
velocity did not drop significantly.
The risk of neurological events from aortic valvuloplasty is higher than tha f
mitral valvuloplasty Mos serie hav show strok f approximatel patients had calcific
bicuspid aortic stenosis. Stroke from aortic valvuloplasty is probably related to
embolism rather than hypotension, which is usually transient. Since many of the
elderly patients undergoing this procedure have calcific aortic stenosis, it is
likely that calcium deposits are the substrate of emboli that occur during the
procedure. Younger patients wilh congenital, noncalcific aortic stenosis appear to
have a low risk of embolism during aortic valvuloplasty. In one series of 18
patients between the ages of 17 and 40 years undergoing aortic valvuloplasty, none
had an embolic event [401.
CARDIAC ASSIST DEVICES Intra-aortic Balloon Pump
The intra-aortic balloon pump, which was developed in 1962 by Moulopoulos et al.
[411, provides mechanical circulatory support in a number of life-threatening
cardiovascular conditions, e.g., difficulty weaning from cardiopulmonary bypass and
cardiogenic shock. The balloon catheter is usually inserted percutaneously through
the femoral artery. Given the relatively large size of the balloon pump catheters
(French 8.5 or 9.5), a dilator is used to expand the artery before a 10 French
arterial sheath is inserted over a guidewire. A French balloon catheter is then
inserted over the guidewire through the sheath and advanced up the descending
thoracic aorta so that the tip is distal to the left subclavian artery. The balloon
is rapidly inflated in diastole and deflated in systole, producing an increase in
diastolic pressure and a decrease in peak systolic left ventricular pressure.
Patients are amicoaguluted with heparin while the balloon is in place [42].
The major neurological complications of ihe intra-aortic balloon pump are
myelopathy and lower extremity nerve injury. Myelopathy from spinal cord ischemia
is rare, occurring in 8 of 100,000 patients with an intra-aortic balloon pump
according to a report by Riggle and Oddi [43 J. Potential mechanisms of spinal cord
ischemia include aortic dissection [44], hypoperfusion of the spinal cord, and
ihromboemholism to the spinal cord. Peripheral nerve injury may occur as a result
of trauma to the femoral nerve during insertion of the balloon catheter or ischemic
injury to a lower-extremity peripheral nerve (monomelic neuropathy) as a
consccmcnce of limb ischemia. Lower-extremity ischemia, which accounts for 80% of
all complications of intra-aortic balloon pump, may result from reduction of the
functional size of the femoral artery by the balloon catheter or from distal
thromboembolism [421. In one study of 77 patients with an intra-aortic balloon
pump. 12 developed limb ischemia and 3 developed permanent foot drop
[44] Patient t highest risk f limb ischemi thos with peripheral vascula
Left Ventricular Assist Devices
These devices are used as a bridge to cardiac transplantation in patients with end
stage cardiac failure. The first successful bridge to transplantation was performed
by Reemtsma et al. [45] in 1978 using an intra-aortic balloon pump. Subsequently,
left ventricular assist devices or a pneumatic total artificial heart were used for
this purpose. The typical assist device consists of a pneumatically driven
implantable blood pump connected via a drive line to a portable external console.
The pump consists of a housing that holds a pusher-plate diaphragm. One side of the
diaphragm is in contact w:ith the blood chamber and the other side is in contact
with the air chamber. Pulses of air from the external console are delivered to the
pump air chamber, which propels the blood out of the pump into ihe arterial system.
During cardiopulmonary bypass, the pump inflow cannula is passed through the apex
of the left ventricle, and the outflow cannula is inserted into the proximal aorta.
Bioproslhetic valves are placed in the inflow and outflow cannulas to ensure
unidirectional How [46J.
The use of early left ventricular assist devices was associated with a high
frequency of thromboembolism, despite the use of anticoagulation. A study using
transcranial Doppler ultrasound to detect microemboli in the middle cerebral
artery in six patients with a Novacor left ventncular assist device showed that
multiple microemholi were detected in all six patients and in 143 of 170 (84%)
monitoring periods (typically lasting 30 minutes). Although most of these
microemboli were asymptomatic, the six study palients had a total of 12 clinically
detectable embolic events (10 cerebral, 2 peripheral) during a total observation
period of 177 days [47]. Other, larger studies have shown that the use of the early
left ventricular assist tie vices were associated with at least a 30% risk of
thromboembolism despite adequate anticoagulation [48-50], Additionally, the rate of
anticoagulation-associated hemorrhage was high, approaching 31% in one study [48].
In recent years, a new left ventricular assist device has been developed to lower
the rate of thromboemholism. The HeartMate 1000 device contains textured interior
surfaces to promote formation of a densely adherent pseudoimima 146,51] when the
device conies into contact with blood. This biological lining derived from blood
acts as an interface between blood and the device and obviates the need for
anticoagulation. Electron microscopic studies have shown the various steps that
occur in the formation of lhe pseudointima. When the surface of the device
initially comes into contact with blood, a fibrin-cellular layer forms over the
surface. Subsequently, thrombus forms over the surface and is anchored b fibri
depositio withi th textured surfac |461 Th pseudointim I linin vice, but llic low
rate of thromboembolism associated with the use of the device suggests that these
pathways are well balanced 157].
The most comprehensive evaluation of the HearlMate 1000 was reported by Slater et
al. 146J. who described the risk of thromboembolism in 223 patients who were
supported by the device at 22 centers. Antithrombotic therapy (anticoagulation or
antiplatelet therapy) was allowed but not mandated in the study. Transcranial
Doppler ultrasound was performed on selected patients to detect microemboli in the
middle cerebral artery. Overall, the total time of support by the device was 531.2
patient-months during which warfarin was used for a total of 42.4 months, i.e.,
8.2% of the total support time. Despite the limited anticoagulation used in the
study, only six patients (2.7%?) had a clinically detectable thromboembolic event
(four strokes, one seizure, one axillary artery thrombus). This represents 0.01 I
clinically detectable thromboembolic events per patient-month use of the device
[46].
Autopsy studies, which were performed in 69 patients who died during the study,
revealed previously undetected evidence of thromboembolism in another eight
patients (3.6%): four of these patients had disseminated intravascular
coagulopathy from sepsis and multiple splenic infarcts; two patients who had been
managed preoperatively with an intra-aortic balloon pump had thrombi in the distal
aorta and common iliac arteries: one patient had a peripheral renal artery
thrombus; and another patient had an internal carotid artery thrombus 146]. Given
the clinical settings and location of the thrombi, it is unlikely that the
HeartMate device was responsible for most of these previously undetected thrombi.
Transcranial Doppler of ihe middle cerebral artery detected a mean of 0.52 1.0
microemboli per 30-minule evaluation in each of the eight patients tested during
left ventricular as si si support [46]. This rate of microemboli with the HeartMate
device is substantially lower than the 3 to 40 microemboli per 30-minute session
detected by Nabavi et al. [47] in their evaluation of the Novacor device.
THROMBOLYTIC THERAPY FOR MYOCARDIAL INFARCTION (MI)
The most common neurological complication of thrombolytic therapy for acute Ml is
intracerebral hemorrhage. Spinal epidural hematoma has also been reported but is
rare [581. In the pre thrombolytic era, virtually all strokes that occurred
following acute MT were ischemic in origin. The mechanism of ischemic stroke in
this setting is typically cardioembotism, with left ventricular mural thrombus th l
f th embolus Othe possibl f cardioembotis follow frequency of stroke (hemorrhagic
and ischemic combined) following MI would increase because of the higher risk ol
intracranial hemorrhage. The results of randomized, placebo-controlled thrombolytic
trials suggest thai this may be the case. Analysis of aggregate stroke rates
(ischemic and hemorrhagic combined) in six placebo-controlled thrombolytic trials
show that 161 of 18,824 (0.86%) patients treated with placebo and 195 of Ix.jsOb
il.04fM patient treated with thrombolysis had a stroke following MI |59h While
thrombolysis increased the risk of stroke following MI, the additional risk was
small and was far outweighed by the substantial reduction in mortality.
A recent community-based study by Longstreth et al. t60] suggests that thrombolysis
actually lowers the risk of ischemic stroke while increasing the risk of
hemorrhagic stroke following Ml. In this study of 5635 patienls. thrombolysis was
used in 1413 (25%) patients and was associated with relative risks of 3.6 (95%
confidence interval 1,7 to 8.0) for hemorrhagic stroke and 0.4 <95'* confidence
interval 0.2 to 0.9) for ischemic stroke. Overall, thrombolysis was not associated
with an increased risk of ischemic and hemorrhagic stroke combined (relative risk
1,0; 95% confidence interval 0.6 to 1.7); however, the risk of death following
stroke was significantly higher in patients treated with thrombolysis (relative
risk 3.0; 95% confidence interval 1.4 to 6.4). Thrombolysis may lower the risk of
ischemic stroke after MI by reducing the size of MI and by preserving left
ventricular function. The higher rate of death from stroke in the thrombolytic
group reflects the fact that hemorrhagic stroke has a worse prognosis than
ischemic stroke.
Frequency and Risk Factors for Thrombolysis-related Intracranial Hemorrhage
The risk of intracranial hemorrhage has varied between 0.2% and 1.3% [61 671 in
most trials of thrombolysis for acute Ml. Most of these hemorrhages are
parenchymal, i.e., occur within the brain. Subdural hematoma is much less com mon.
occurring in approximately 0,01% of patients receiving thrombolytic therapy for
acute Ml [59]. In one study, subdural hematoma was significantly associated with
head trauma within 2 weeks of treatment and syncope within 48 hours of treatment
[87J.
Factors that have been associated with an increased risk of parenchymal
inlracranial hemorrhage following thrombolysis include advanced age. severe
hypertension, previous stroke, dose and type of thrombolytic agent, concomitant
use of antithrombotic therapy, small body size, and female sex. In one case conl
stud f 150 patient with intracranial hemorrhag d 294 matched control
dence interval 1.2 to 3.2); and treatment with tissue plasminogen activator (tPA)
todds ratio 1.6; 95% confidence interval 1.0 to 2.5). With a 0.75% risk of
intracranial hemorrhage overall, patients with one. two, or ihree of these four
risk factors had the following rates of intracranial hemorrhage: 0.96%, 1.32%, and
2.17% [68].
Advanced age has consistently been associaied with increased risk of intracranial
hemorrhage in thrombolytic trials. Nevertheless, studies have clearly shown the
beneftt of thrombolytic therapy in this subgroup. A recent meta-analysis of five
targe thrombolytic trials shows that the mortality rate in elderly patients is
17.9% if treated with thrombolysis, compared with 22.1% if untreated (P < ,0001)
169], In this meta-analysis, the magnitude of the reduction in mortality was
highest in the elderly subgroup. Decision analysis performed in another study
showed lhat for a 10% relative risk reduction in mortality from the use of thro m
holy sis, the maxima! acceptable nonfatal intracranial hemorrhage rate for elderly
palients is 5.9%, which far exceeds the rale of intracranial hemorrhage in the
elderly in thrombolytic trials [70J.
Severe hypertension (systolic > 180 mm Hg or diastolic > 110 mm Hg) is also
associated with an increased risk of intracranial hemorrhage following thrombolytic
therapy and is considered a relative contraindication for the use of thrombolysis
[71 J. In TIMl-Il, 2 of 22 patients (9.1%) with severe hypertension had
intracranial hemorrhage following thrombolysis, compared with 9 of 647 patients
without severe hypertension |65J. In GUSTO-I, the rate of ischemic and hemorrhagic
stroke combined was 3.4% in patients with systolic blood pressure ^17 5 mm Hg,
compared with 1.2% in patients with systolic pressure between 100 and 124 mm Hg.
Nevertheless, palients wilh systolic blood pressure ^ 175 mm Hg who received
accelerated tPA had a lower rate of death within 30 days (4.3% versus 7.8%; P = .
04) and a lower rate of death plus disabling stroke (4.9% versus 8.9%; P ,031)
despite having a higher rate of hemorrhagic siroke (2.3% versus 1.5%) than patients
treated with streptokinase 172|. Further analysis of the GUSTO-I data showed that
in hypertensive patients who have a low risk of cardiac death (no previous Ml,
Killip class I), the risk/benefit ratio with thrombolysis is 1. with approximately
13 lives saved per 1000 persons treated al the risk of about 13 intracranial
hemorrhages [72J, However, in hypertensive patients at high risk of cardiac death
following MI, the reduction in mortality with the use of thrombolysis outweighs the
increased risk of intracranial hemorrhage, A subgroup analysis of patients w ith
systolic blood pressure > 175 mm Hg in ISIS* 2 also supports the use of
thrombolysis in patients with severe hypertension. In this study, the mortality
rate was 5.7% in patients treated with streptokinase,
d with 8.7% i untreated patient [63| 2.46) for each 10-poini increase in pulse
pressure after adjusting for age [731. Further studies are needed to determine
risk/benefit ratios of thrombolysis in patients with severe hypertension and lo
determine the effects of lowering blood pressure before initiation of thrombolytic
therapy on the subsequent risk of death and intracranial hemorrhage.
It is paradoxical that stroke beyond 3 months is not a contraindication to
thrombolytic therapy for acute stroke, yet stroke within 6 to 12 months is often
recommended as a contraindication to thrombolytic therapy for acute Ml f71.741.
Recent guidelines have gone as far as suggesting that any history of stroke should
he a contraindication to thrombolysis [75.76], and some thrombolytic trials for
acute Ml have excluded patients with any history of stroke orTIA [66].
Clarification of the risk/benefit of thrombolysis in this setting is important
since 6% to
10% of patients presenting with Ml have a history of stroke [75,77,78].
The evidence thai prior stroke is a significant risk for intracranial hemorrhage
following thrombolytic iherapy is based on sparse data. In the TIM 1-11 trial, in
which patients with stroke wiihin 6 months of Mi were excluded, 3 of 89 patients
(3.4%) with a history of stroke, TIA, or ^neurological disease'* had an
intracranial hemorrhage, compared with 20 of 3835 patients (0.5%) without
neurological problems [65], Although the difference in intracranial hemorrhage
rates between the two groups was significant, the increased risk is based on only
three events. The results of a more recent case control study suggests that
thrombolytic therapy for Ml may be advantageous in patients with a remote cerebral
ischemic event 175j. In this study, 29 palients with an acute Ml and previous
cerebral ischemic event who were treated with thrombolysis were compared to 46
palients wilh a previous cerebral ischemic event who were not treated with
thrombolysis. Approximately 80% of cerebral events had occurred beyond t year of
the MI in both groups. Despite the fact that patients treated wilh thrombolysis
were older, had a higher rate of anterior wall infarction, and received aspirin and
anticoagulation more often than the control group, the rates of intracranial
hemorrhage were zero in both groups and the 1-year mortality rate was twice as high
in palients not receiving thrombolysis (33% versus 18%; odds ratio 2.4; 95%
confidence interval 0.78 to 7.64). The authors conclude that patients with previous
cerebral ischemic events should not categorically be excluded from receiving
ihrombnlyiic therapy 751. further studies are needed 10 clarify the risk/benefit of
thrombolysis for acute Ml in patients with recent (3 to 6 months) or remote (>6
months) strokes.
The dose and type of thrombolytic agent have also been linked to risk of
intracranial hemorrhage In the TIMI-H trial the dose of tPA was reduced from 150
tPA 100 tPA becaus f abou th intracranial hemorrhag trials have used wei^lu-based
doses of tPA that do not exceed a total dose of 90 to 100 rag tPA |661.
Several studies have suggested that intracranial hemorrhage rates arc higher in
patients treated with iPA than in those treated with streptokinase. Simoons et al.
168J have estimated that the relative risk of intracranial hemorrhage from the use
or tPA compared with streptokinase is 1.6 (95% confidence interval LO to 2.5). In
ISIS-3 definite or probable intracranial hemorrhage occurred in 0.24% of patients
treated with streptokinase, compared with 0.66% of patients treated with tPA [67].
In G1SSI-2, the rates of intracranial hemorrhage in streptokinase-versus tPA-
trcated patients were 0.3% vs. 0.4% in patients S 70 years and 0.3% vs. 0.7% in
patients >70 years 179]. Since brain imaging was not routinely performed as part
of the protocol in patients who had a neurological event in these trials, the true
rate of intracranial hemorrhage in patients treated with I PA versus streptokinase
is uncertain.
The most compelling evidence that tPA is associated with a higher rate of
intracranial hemorrhage comes from GUSTO-I, in which 93% of patients with stroke
had brain imaging. In GUSTO-1, four different thrombolytic regimens were used:
streptokinase and subcutaneous heparin, streptokinase and intravenous heparin,
accelerated tPA and intravenous heparin, or a combination of streptokinase. tPA,
and intravenous heparin. The rates of intracranial hemorrhage in these four groups
were 0-49%, 0.54%. 0.72%, and 0.94%, respectively, which represents a significant
increase in intracranial hemorrhages for accelerated tPA (P .03) and for combined
tPA/streptokinase (P < .001) compared wilh streptokinase only. Moreover, total
hemorrhage volume was significantly higher {P = .03) in the combined
tPA/streplokinase group than in the other treatment groups. Despite the increased
risk of intracranial hemorrhage wilh accelerated tPA compared with streptokinase,
the combined endpoint of death or disabling siroke was significantly lower in
patients treated with accelerated tPA group than in patients treated with
streptokinase only (6.9% vs. 7.8%; P = .006) [661
Concomitant use of antithrombotic agents (aspirin, heparin) with thrombolysis
is .i standard pan of ihe cure of patients with acute Ml The rationale foi these
agents is to maintain coronary artery patency after successful thrombolysis by
preventing rethrombosis while ihe ruptured plaque is stabilizing. Concomitant use
of aspirin and/or heparin with thrombolysis has been shown to lower mortality
compared with thrombolytic therapy alone 163,80]. Therefore, most patients with
acute Ml are given a combination of a thrombolytic agent, 160 to 325 mg of chewable
aspirin, and imravenous heparin to maintain the activated partial thromboplastin
time (aPTT) al 1.5 to 2 times control for 24 to 72 hours. Although th rol f hepari
i uncertai i patient treated wilh streptokinas urokinase perimemal intracranial
hemorrhage, ihe incidence and severity of intracranial hemorrhage was significantly
increased when heparin was given in conjunction with tPA in spontaneously
hypertensive rats. Furthermore, the potentiation of intracranial hemorrhage by
heparin was dose dependent and proportional to the prolongation of the aPTT 181 J.
In humans, one study showed that palients laking anticoagulation before admission
had a higher risk of intracranial hemorrhage 164]: however, in TIMMI, patients
treated with tPA alone had a similar rate of intracranial hemorrhage to patients
treated with tPA and heparin [651. Moreover, in TIMI-II there was no correlation
between aPTT and risk of intracranial hemorrhage. In GUSTO-1, patients treated
with streptokinase and subcutaneous heparin had a slightly lower (but not
significantly so) rate of intracranial hemorrhage than patienls treated with
streptokinase and intravenous heparin i()Al)l'i vs< 0.54%) [66]. Mahaffcy el al.
[82] have recently compared the frequency of intracranial hemorrhage in palients
treated with heparin versus no heparin in six randomized controlled thrombolytic
trials. The frequency of intracranial hemorrhage was 0.6% in 878 patienls allocated
lo heparin versus 0,3% in 857 patients not receiving heparin. This difference was
not statistically significant: however, this may fun c been due u I vv pou ci\
Recent studies have compared the efficacy and safety of hirudin, a new thrombin
inhibitor, with heparin as adjunctive therapy with thrombolysis. These studies have
produced discordant results. In HIT-llh the study was terminated early because of
the higher rate of intracranial hemorrhage in the hirudin group 5 of 148 (3.4%),
versus 0 of 154 (0%) in the heparin group [83J. On lhe other hand, in T1M1-9A the
rates of intracranial hemorrhage were L7% in the hirudin group and 1.9% in the
heparin group [84], and in TIM1-9B the rates of intracranial hemorrhage were 0.4%'
in the hirudin group and 0.9% in the heparin group [85],
Most studies have shown a correlation between low body weight and increased risk
of intracranial hemorrhage. Simoons et al, |68] have estimated that the relative
risk of body weight below 70 kg for intracranial hemorrhage following thrombolysis
is 2.1 (95% confidence interval 1.3 to 3.2), Weight-adjusted dosing of thrombolytic
iherapy may lower the risk of intracranial hemorrhage. Females appear to have a
higher risk ol l h mm bo lytic-related intracranial hemorrhage. In one study
intracranial hemorrhage occurred in 5.3% of females and 0.7% of males (P = ,04),
and mortality was also significantly higher in females (14% vs. 3.5%, P
.006) 1861. However, ii is uncertain whether lhe higher intracranial hemorrhage
rale in females is largely explained by lower body weight.
trial, brain imaging was performed in ol patients who ucrc clav^licd as having a
hemorrhagic stroke [871. There were 298 hemorrhages in 244 patients in GUSTO-l. of
which 81% were parenchymal hemorrhages alone, 15% were parenchymal and subdural. 3%
were subdural alone, and 1% were intraventricular. Subarachnoid hemorrhage was
present in 11% of palients, all of whom had parenchymal hemorrhage as well. In
another, smaller study of 13 patients with 33 hemorrhages, 36% of hemorrhages were
parenchymal, 33% were subdural, 24% were subarachnoid, and 6% were intraventricular
[881 ^ The high frequency of subarachnoid and intraventricular hemorrhages in these
series is explained by the tendency of large parenchymal hemorrhages to decompress
into the subarachnoid space.
In GUSTO-l the locations of parenchymal hemorrhages were lobar (Le., involving
frontal, parietal, temporal, or occipital lobes) in 77%, cerebellar in 9%.
putaminal or capsular in 8%, and thalamic in 3%. The brainstem was involved in 3%
(871, Other studies have also found that thrombolytic-related intracranial
hemorrhages are usually lobar [88J. This paitern is distinct from lhat of
hypertensive parenchymal hemorrhages, which are most common in the basal ganglia,
brainstem, and cerebellum and are lobar in only 10% of cases.
Other characteristic features of parenchymal intracranial hemorrhages in GUSTO-l
were the large volume of the hemorrhages, multiple hemorrhages (30% of patients in
GUSTO-l), and the high percentage of hemorrhages with a blood/ fluid level (82% in
GUSTO-l) (Fig. L) [87[. This last finding, which is probably related to ongoing
fibrinolysis within the hemorrhage, is unusual in spontaneous hypertensive
parenchymal hemorrhage. In GUSTO-l. the median volume of parenchymal hemorrhage
was 48 mL (range 21 lo 85 mL}. which is substantially larger than the average
volume of spontaneous parenchymal hemorrhages. Features that were significantly
associated wilh large-vol time hemorrhages were elevated diastolic blood pressure,
treatment with combined streptokinase/lPA, older age, hemorrhages occurring ^ 13
hour after treatment (median time to hemorrhage was 14 hours: range 8 to 30
hours), hydrocephalus, mass effect, and blood/ fluid level within the hematoma
[871,
It is common to tind preexisting lesions (e,g., brain atrophy, periventricular
white matter lesions, infarcts) in patients with thrombolytic-related intracranial
hemorrhage (44% of cases in GUSTO-l) [87J. However, the significance of these
lesions is unknown since none of the thrombolytic trials provided brain imaging
data in patients who did not have intracranial hemorrhage.
Etiology of Thrombolysis-related Hemorrhages

Fig, 1 CT scLin examples ol' intracerebral hematoma following thrombolysis for


acute myocardial infarction (top left, lop right, bottom right). Note
intraventricular extension (top right, bottom right} and blood fluid level <bottom
right). The bottom left image shows a large area of hypodensity (a cerebral infarct
wilh mass effect) wiihin which there are scattered areas of hyperdensity
(hemorrhagic infarction). Hemorrhagic infarction frequently occurs with
cardioembolic stroke regardless of whether anticoagulation or thrombolytic therapy
is used, (From Ref. 87.)
cause of spontaneous hypertensive intracranial hemorrhage [891, this is probably
responsible for a minority of parenchymal hemorrhages following thrombolysis. The
strongest evidence for this is the lobar location of most thromholytic-related
The predominance of lobar hemorrhages, multiple hemorrhages in up to 30% of
patients, and the strong association of advanced age with increased risk of
hemorrhage suggests that amyloid angiopathy may be an important pathological
substrate of thrombolytic-related intracranial hemorrhages. Neuropathological
studies in patients who have died from intracerebral hemorrhage following
thrombolysis for acute MI have confirmed that amyloid angiopathy is responsible
for some of these hemorrhages 190.91], Amyloid angiopathy affects the cerebral
vasculature selectively and is not seen in combination with systemic amyloidosis.
The neuropathology consists of amyloid iuliUrution of the walls of small and
medium-size arteries of the cerebral cortex and leptomeninges 192). The frequency
of amyloid angiopathy increases with age, as demonstrated in an autopsy study
showing Oiat approximately 10% of patients aged 60 lo 69 years, 20% of patients
aged 70 to 79 years, 37% of patienls aged 80 to 89 years, and 44% of palients 90
years and older having the disorder [93], There is an association between
Alzheimer's disease and amyloid angiopathy, with approximately 80% of demented
palients having the angiopathy. The mechanism of intracranial hemorrhage
associated with amyloid angiopathy is uncertain but may be associated with
fibrinoid necrosis of the vessels infiltrated with amyloid [92]. Another suggested
mechanism of intracranial hemorrhage is that amyloid beta protein precursor is a
potent inhibitor of coagulation factors XIa and lXa 194|.
Other neuropathological lesions that have been identified in patients with
intracerebral hemorrhage following thrombolysis are arteriovenous malformations,
hemorrhagic transformation of an ischemic infarct, and cerebral vasculitis.
Srinivasan ct al. 195] recently reported a 49-ycar-old who died of multiple
intracranial hemorrhages following thrombolytic therapy. Autopsy showed poly arte
litis nodosa of the coronary arteries and cerebral vasculitis.
Diagnosis, Treatment, and Prognosis of Thrombolysis-related Hemorrhages
Most (70% to 83%) intracerebral hemorrhages occur within 24 hours of thrombolysis
165,87], The initial symptoms and signs depend on the location of the hemorrhage.
Lobar hemorrhages typically present with one or more of the following:
hemiparesis, hemisensory Joss, hemianopia, aphasia, neglect, eye deviation,
confusion, headache, seizure, vomiting, and decrease in level of consciousness,
which is an ominous sign. Basal ganglia or internal capsule hemorrhages typically
present with contralateral hemiparesis and eye deviation to the side of the
hemorrhage. Confusion, somnolence, aphasia, and hemisensory loss may also occur if
th hemorrhag i large Small thalami hemorrhage with hemisensor brainstem hemorrhages
occur in the pons and present with long tract signs (hemiparesis, quadra pare sis,
hemisensory toss)T abnormal eye movements (sixth-nerve palsy, unilateral horizontal
gaze palsy, bilateral horizontal gaze palsy with vertical ocular bobbing, the one-
and-a-half syndrome), and cerebellar signs (ataxia, nystagmus). Crossed sensory or
motor signs, e.g.. ipsilateral face weakness (or sensory loss) and contralateral
arm and leg weakness (or sensory loss) always imply a brainstem location.
Since many of the neurological syndromes associated with intracranial hemorrhage
are similar to ischemic stroke syndromes, it is difficult on clinical grounds alone
to be certain of the diagnosis. Clinical signs favoring a hemorrhage include
markedly elevated blood pressure (i.e., >220/!20), early somnolence, vomiting, and
seizure at onset. Coma at onset is invariably caused by hemorrhage. Early severe
headache suggests intraventricular or subarachnoid extension of the hemorrhage.
Brain imaging (preferably CT) should be performed in any patient with suspected
siroke following thrombolysis to distinguish between hemorrhagic and ischemic
stroke.
The management of intracranial hemorrhage following thrombolysis is challenging,
Sloan [591 has suggested the following approach which we have found useful in
clinical practice. As soon as a stroke is suspected, thrombolytic agents and
anticoagulation should be stopped. At a mini mum. the following coagulation
studies should be sent for urgent testing: aPTT. PT INR. platelets, bleeding time,
hematocrit, and fibrinogen. An urgent CT of the brain must be performed. Early
involvement of a neurologist, hcinatologisl, and neurosurgeon will facilitate
optimal care for the patient. If any intracranial hemoniiagc is detected by CT,
eryoprccipitate is given lo increase the fibrinogen and factor VI11 levels. If the
aPTT is elevated. I mg of protamine for every 100 units of heparin administered in
the preceding 4 hours should be given intravenously. If the PT INR is elevated,
fresh frozen plasma should be given. If the bleeding time is prolonged, an infusion
of platelets is given. Even though these treatments may increase the risk of
coronary reocclusion, they should be administered because of the risk of continuing
intracranial hemorrhage and fibrinolysis of the intracranial hematoma.
The optimal treatment for blood pressure control in this setting is controversial.
We usually attempt to maintain a mean arterial pressure of 90 to 100 mm Hg in the
setting of intracranial hemorrhage but permit higher blood pressures if the patient
develops raised intracranial pressure. All palients should be managed in an
intensive care unit (preferably a neurointensi ve care unit), and insertion of a
Camino catheter to measure intracranial pressure should be considered. The rol f
craniotom with evacuatio f th hematom i controversial Whil
of thromboiytic-related intracranial hemorrhages is very poor. Mortality from
intracranial hemorrhage has varied between 36% and 83% in previous thrombolytic
studies [60,65,87]. Of palients that survive, up lo 54% have major or moderate
disability 170J.
Cardioversion
Direct-current cardioversion (DC cardioversion) was first used to restore sinus
rhythm in patients wilh atrial fibrillation in 1962 by Lown et al. [96]. Subsequent
studies have shown that DC cardioversion restores sinus rhythm in 80% of patients
with recent-onset atrial fibrillation, whereas the success rate with
pharmacological therapy may be as low as 40% [97]. Following successful
cardioversion, sinus rhythm al 1 year is maintained in 50% to 70% of patients on
antiarrhythmic therapy, compared to 30% to 50% in patients without antiarrhythmic
therapy [97.98]. Features that are associated with failure of DC cardioversion or a
high recurrence rale of atrial fibrillation include untreated thyrotoxicosis,
mitral valve disease, congestive heart failure, atrial fibrillation lasting > I
year, left atrial enlargement, and increased body size [98].
The major risk of cardioversion (electrical or pharmacological) in patients with
atrial iibrillation is embolic stroke, which occurs in 0.6% to 5.6% of patients
196.99,100], Stroke occurs when thrombus is dislodged from the left atrium or left
atrial appendage following cardioversion. Since left atrial thrombus may be
detected by transesophageal echocardiography (TEE) in 10% to 15% of patients with
atrial fibrillation lasting at least 48 hours 116.18,48], it is possible that eai
l> cardioversion (i.e., within 48 hours) may be associated with a lower risk of
embolism. This inference is supported by a recent study in which only 3 of 375
patients (0.8%) had a thromboembolic event after converting from alriaJ
fibrillation to sinus rhythm within 48 hours [101 J.
While most strokes foil owing cardioversion probably occur when preexisting
thrombus is dislodged from the left atrium, recent studies have shown that left
atrial thrombus may also develop after sinus rhythm is restored. This occurs
because left atrial contractile function may be compromised for up to a week after
cardioversion 199,102-104]. Echocardiographic features of left atrial contractile
dysfunction ("atrial stunning") include diminished left atrial appendage ejection
fraction, diminished left atrial appendage peak systolic velocity, and the presence
of left atrial spontaneous echo il ig, 2), In one .study of 20 patient?
undersoilI;J TEE afler successful cardioversion, spontaneous echo contrast
developed de novo in four patients and increased in intensity in three palients
following the procedure 11041 On stud suggest that patient wh underg DC
cardioversio hav

FlG. 2 Transesophageal echocardiography showing prominent left atrial (LA)


spontaneous echo contrast (SEC) in a patient with atrial fibrillation. Spontaneous
echo contrast has the appearance of smoke swirling and circulating through the
atrial chamber (From Kef. 112.)
recommendations regarding the use of anticoagulation before and after
cardioversion [105]. These recommendations are to use warfarin (INR 2-3) for 3
weeks before and 4 weeks after cardioversion. One study, which evaluated
cardioversion practice patterns at a tertiary care teaching hospital, showed that
pin sicians failed to follow the American College of Chest Physicians
recommendations in 18 of 5\ (35%) [106|
1&Z ISO
--* *
51 :2

FIG. 3 Transesophageal echocardiography showing thrombus (T) in the left atrium


(LA) in a patient with atrial fibrillation. The thrombus is attached to the atrial
wall by a stalk (St). (From Ref, 112.)
or heparin (inpatients). TEE is scheduled as soon as a therapeutic level of
anticoagulation is achieved (INR 2-3 or partial thromboIplastin time of L5 to
2.5). DC cardioversion is performed within 24 hours of TEE if there is no evidence
of left atrial thrombus and anticoagulation is continued for 4 weeks. If thrombus
is detected at TEE (Fig. 3)T cardioversion is postponed, warfarin is continued for
4 weeks, and TEE is repeated. If the thrombus has resolved, cardioversion is
performed d warfari i continued fo 4 weeks If thrombu i stil
in patients with left atrial thrombus; (2) lowering the risk of hemorrhagic
complications by decreasing the duration of anticoagulation; (3) increasing the
rate of successful cardioversion and maintenance of sinus rhythm because
cardioversion is performed earlier: and (4) decreasing health care costs associated
wjth deprocedure. A recent study employing decision analysis suggests that the
TEE-guided approach is more cost effective than the conventional approach if the
risk of stroke from cardioversion after TEE is slightly less than that of
conventional therapy. The decision analysis showed that the TEE approach is most
cost effective in patients with an increased risk of hemorrhagic complications of
anticoagulation [110].
Only one randomized study has compared the feasibility and safety of the TEE-guided
approach to the conventional approach for performing DC cardioversion. In a
multicenter pilot study of patients wilh atrial fibrillation lasting >2 days. 62
palients were randomized to the TEE-guided protocol for DC cardioversion and 64
palients were randomized lo the conventional protocol [107]. The two groups were
compared with respect to the following outcome variables: frequency of DC
cardioversion, frequency of conversion to sinus rhythm, time to convert to sinus
rhythm, embolic events, hemorrhagic complications, and hemodynamic instability.
The patients in both groups were well matched with respect to clinical and
echocardiographic features such as age, hypertension, coronary artery disease,
valvular heart disease, duration of atrial fibrillation, prior DC cardioversion,
concomitant antiarrhythmic therapy, left atrial size, and left ventricular
ejection fraction. At the time of cardioversion, heparin was used significantly
more frequently (P < .01) in the TEE-guided group, whereas warfarin was used
significantly more frequently (P < ,01) in the conventional group [107].
Of the 62 patients randomized to the TEE group, 6 (10%) did not undergo TEE because
of spontaneous conversion to sinus rhythm (3 patients), patient refusal (1
patient), technical reasons (1 patient), and clinical instability (I patient). The
latter 2 patients subsequently underwent successful DC cardioversion. Of the 56
patients who underwent TEE, left atrial thrombus was detected in 6 patients < 11%).
right atrial thrombus was detected in I patient (1%), and spontaneous echo contrast
was detected in the left atrium or left atrial appendage in 44 patients (79%). DC
cardioversion was performed in 45 patients undergoing TEE with immediate
achievement of sinus rhythm in 38 (84%). DC cardioversion was not performed after
the first TEE in 11 patients because of the presence of left atrial thrombus in 6
patients, right atrial thrombus in I patient, or conversion to sinus rhythm
(spontaneous, phamiacological, or pacemaker overdrive) in 4 patients. The 7
patients with atrial thrombus underwent repeat TEE after a mean period f 6 week
anticoagulation Th atri fre f thrombu i 4 f thes
guided group at a mean of I week after enrollment in the study, and was achieved
later {at least 6 weeks after enrollment) in 3 patients who had atrial thrombus on
the initial TEE. The frequency of sinus rhythm at 8 weeks after enrollment was 34
of 62 (55%) in the TEE-guided group. None of the TEE-guided group had an embolic
event and I patient (1.6%) had "hemodynamic instability and bleeding/' but the
clinical details were not provided 1107|.
In the conventional therapy group, 37 of 64 patients (58%) had DC carditvversion
which was successful in 28 patients (76%). DC cardioversion was not performed in 27
patients because of spontaneous or pharmacological conversion to sinus rhythm in 20
patients or other reasons in 7 patients. Overall, sinus rhythm was achieved in 48
of the 64 patients (75%) in the conventional therapy group at a mean of 4.3 weeks
after enrollment in the study. The frequency of sinus rhythm al 8 weeks after
enrollment was 37 of 64 (56% ) in the conventional group. One patient (1.6%) in ihe
conventional-therapy group had an embolic evenl (to an upper extremity), and live
patients (7.8%) had "hemodynamic instability and bleeding" | 107] '
Comparison of the two groups shows that the TEE-guided group had a significantly
shorter mean time to sinus rhythm (1 week vs. 4.3 weeks: P < .01). a significantly
shorter mean duration of anticoagulation (5,7 weeks vs 7.7 weeks; P < ,01), and
lower (but not significant) rates of embolism (0% vs. L6%) and hemodynamic
instability and bleeding (1.6% vs. 7.8%). Despite the longer time to achieve sinus
rhythm in the conventional group, the frequency of sinus rhythm at 8 weeks was
virtually identical in the two groups (56% conventional, 55% TEE guided). Moreover,
significantly fewer patients in the conventional group had lo undergo DC
cardioversion [37 of 64 (58%)] in the conventional group, versus 51 of 62 (82%) in
the TEE group {P < .05) because of ihe high rate of spontaneous or pharmacological
conversion while awaiting DC cardioversion [1071.
Overall, this pilot study suggests that the TEE-guided approach is feasible and may
result in fewer embolic and hemorrhagic events than the conventional approach;
however, a larger randomized study with sufficient power is needed to confirm or
refute this hypothesis. Such a trial, which will involve 3000 patients at 65 sites,
is currently being planned | I I 11.
REFERENCES
1 Scldingcr SI. Catheter replacement of needle in percutaneous arteriography; new
technique. Acta Radiol 1953; 39:368-376.
nary angiography 1984-1987: a report of the registry of the Society for Cardiac
Angiography and Inter veniions. I. Re sails and Complications Caihet Cardiovuse
Diagn 1989: 17:5-10.
5.
Lock wood K. Capraro J, Hanson M. Conomy J. Neurologic complications of cardiac
catheterization. Neurology 1983; 33(suppl 2): 143.

6.
Levorslad K, Vatne K. Brodahl U. Aaklius T. Simonsen S. Vik H. Cerebral
thromboembolic complications associated wilh the use of a nonionic contrast medium
in coronary angiography. Acta Radiol 1995: 36:69-71.

7.
Da\ idson C. Mark D, Peiper K, Kisslo K. Hlaiky M, Gabriel D, Bashorc T.
Thrombotic and cardiovascular complications related to nonionic eonuasi media
during coronary angiography: analysis of 8,517 patients. Am J Cardiol 1990:65:1481
- 1484.

8.
Lazar J, Urclsky B. Denys B, Reddy P. Counihan P. Ragosla M. Predisposing risk
factors and natural historv of aeulc neurologic complications ofleli-sided coronary
angiography. Am J Cardiol 1995; 75:1056-1060.

9.
Roelke M Si null A. Palacius I. The technique and safen of traiiscpial left heart
caihctci ization; the Massachusetts General Hospital experience wilh 1.279
procedures. Calhet Cardiovasc Diagn 1994: 32:332-339.

10.
Dawson D, Fischer E. Neurologic complications of coronary angiography. Neurology
1977; 27:496-497.

11.
Kosmorsky G, Hanson M, Toms a k R. Neurophthalmology complications of coronary
angiography. Neurology 1988; 38:483-485.

12.
Keilson G, Schwartz W. Reehi L. The preponderance of posterior circulatory events
is independent of the mute of coronary angiography. Stroke 1992; 23:1358 1359.

13.
Shmuely H, Zoklan J. Sagie A, Maimon S, Pitlik S. Acute slroke after coronary
angiography associated with protruding mobile thoracic aortic atheromas. Neurology
1997; 49:1689-1691.

14.
Kirk G, Johnson J. Computed tomography detection ol a cerebral calcific embolus
following coronary catheterization, J Neuroimag 1994; 4:241-242,

15.
Clements S. Prevention and treuimeni of complications in coronary angiography In:
LutzJ, ed. Complications of Interventional Procedures. New York: Igaku-Shom,
1995:64-71.

16.
National Institute of Neurological Disorders and Stroke rt-PA Stroke Study Group.
Tissue plasminogen activator for acute ischemic stroke. N Engl .1 Med 1995: 333:
1581-1587.

! 1 Dwivedi S, Ban sal S, Atrawal A, Saran R. Thrombolysis for stroke


complicating cardiac catheterisation. Indian Heart J 1997; 49:545-546.
18.
Moody D, Bell M, Challa V, Johnston W. Prough D, Brain microemboli during cardiac
surgery or aortography. Ann Neurol 1990; 28:477-486.

19.
Kent K. Moscucct M. Gallagher S, Di Mania S. Skillman L Neuropathy after cardiac
catherization: incidence, clinical patterns, long term outcome. J Vase Surg 1994:
19:1008-1014.

20.
Kennedy A, Grocott M, Schwartz M. Modarres H, Scott M. Schon F. Median nerve

Psyx
No nsu rgical Ca rd iac I n tervention s 281
22.
Douglas J. Complications of percutaneous transluminal coronary angioplasty. In Luiz
J, ed. Complications of Interventional Procedures. New York: lgaku-Shoin 1995:173-
185.

23.
Dorros G. Cawley M, Simpson J, Bentivaglio L. Block P. Bourassa M, Detre K Gosselin
A. Grunlcig A. Kelsey S. Kent K, Mock M. Mullin S. Me>cr R. Passaman E, Stertzer S,
Williams D. Percutaneous transluminal coronary angioplasty: repor of complications
from liie National Heart. Lung, and Blood Institute PTC A registry Circulation
1983; 67:723-730.

24.
Galbreath C. Salgado P. Parian A. Hollman J. Central nervous system complications
of percutaneous transluminal coronary angioplasty. Stroke 1986; 17:616-619

25.
Kan J. Write R, Mitchell S, Gardner T. Percuameous balloon valvuloplasty: a new
method for treating congenital pulmonary-valve stenosis. N Engl J Med 1982: 307
540-542.

26.
Inoue K. Owaki T. Nakamura T. Kitamura Miyamoto N. Clinical application of
transvenous mitral commissurotomy by a new balloon catheter. J Thorac Cardiovasc
Surg 1984: 87:394-402.

27.
Lock J. KliaJihillah M. Shrivastuva S. Bahl V. Keane J. Percutaneous catheter
commissurotomy in rheumatic mitral stenosis. N Fngl J Med 1985; 313:1515-1518.

28.
L.etac B, Cribier A. Koning R. Bellefleur J-P. Results of percutaneous translumina
valvuloplasty in 218 adults with valvular aortic stenosis. Am J Cardiol 1988: 62
598-605.

29.
Cribier A. Scroudi N. Besland J. Savin T. Roc ha P. Letac B. Percutaneous
transtcrminal valvuloplasty of acquired aortic stenosis in elderly patients: an
alternative to valve replacement? Lancet 1986: 1:63-67.

30.
Fu X, Zhang D. Schiele F. Anguenol T, Bernard Y. Bassand J. Complications of
percutaneous mitral valvuloplasty; comparison of the double balloon and the Inoue
techniques. Arch Mai Coeur Vaiss 1994; 87:1403-1411.

31.
Block P. Complications of valvuloplasty. In: Lutz J, ed. Complications of Interven
tional Procedures. New York: lgaku-Shoin. 1995:164-172.

32, Li S, Yang H, Liu H. Dai R. Role of transesophageal echocardiography in pre


and post-percutaneous balloon mitral valvuloplasty. Chin Med J 1994: 107:897
902.
33.
Goldstein S. Campbell A. Mitral stenosis. Evaluation and guidance of valvuloplasty
by transesophageal echocardiography. Cardiol Clin 1993: 11:409-425.

34.
Chioin R. Ramondo A. DcConti F. Isabella (1 Cardan >li P, Marchiori M, LoPrest A,
Cam pi si F. Razzolini R. Percutaneous mitral valvuloplasty: the immediate and

38.
Drohinski GT Leehar P. Metzger J. Lcpailleur C, Vacheron A, Grosgogcat Y. Results
of percutaneous catheter valvule plasty for eaicified aortic stenosis in the
elderly. Eur Heart J 1987; 8<4):322-328.
39.
Davidson C, Skelton T. Kisslc. K, Kong Y. Peter R. Simonton C. Phillips H, Behar
VT Bashore T. The risk for systemic embolization associated with percutaneous
balloon valvuloplaslv in adults. A prospective comprehensive evaluation. Ann
Intern Med 1988; 108:557-560.

40.
RosenfeId H. Landzherg M, Perry S, Colan S, Keane J, Lock J. Balloon aortic \al\
uloplasty in the young adult wilh congenital aortic stenosis. Am J Cardiol 1994;
73:1112-1117.

41.
Moulopoulos 5, Topaz S. Kolff W. Diastolic balloon pumping I with carbon dioxide
j in lhe aortaa mechanical assistance to the failing circulation. Am Heart J
1962:63:669-675.

42.
Smith A. Complications of the intra aortic balloon pump. In: Lutz J. ed.
Complications of Interventional Procedures. New York: Igaku-Shoin. 1995:80-85.

43.
Riggle K. Oddi M. Spinal cord necrosis and paraplegia as complications of the
intra-aortic balloon. Cril Care Med 1989: 17:475-476.

44.
Harvey J. Goldstein J. McCabe M. Hoover E. Gay W. Subramanian V. Complications of
percutaneous intraaortic balloon pumping. Circulation 1981: 64(2 Pt 2): III 14-
11117.

45.
Reemtsina K, Drusin R. Edie R, Bregman D. Dobelle W, Hardy M. Cardiac
transplantation for patients requiring mechanical circulatory support. N Engl J
Med 1978: 298:670-671.

46.
Slater J. Rose E. Levin II. Frazier O. Roberts J, Weinberg A. Oz M. Low
thromboembolic risk without anticoagulation using advanced-design left ventricular
assist devices. Ann Thorac Surg 1996: 62:1321-1328.

47.
Nabavi D. Georgiadis D Mlimine T. Sehmid C. Mackay T, Scheld H. Ringelsten

t
E. Clinical relevance of intracranial microembolic signals in patients with left
ventricular assist devices: a prospective study, Stroke 1996; 27:891-896.
48.
Pennington D, McBride L, Peigh P. Miller L. Swartz M. Eight years experience with
bridging to cardiac transplantation. J Thorac Cardiovasc Surg I^oj; 107:472-481.

49.
Icenogle T, Smith R. Cleavinger M. Vasu M, Williams R, Sethi G. Copeland J.
Thromboembolic complications of the symbion AVAD system. Artif Organs 1989; 13:532-
538.

50.
Didisheim P, Olsen D, Farrar D. PonnerP. Griffith B. Pennington I), Joist J,
Sehoen F, Gnstina A, Anderson J. Infection and thromboembolism with implantable
cardiovascular devices. ASAIO Trans 1989; 35:54-70.
51.
McGee M Myers T. Abou-Awdi N, Dasse K. R ado va nee vie B, Lonquist J, Duncan

r
J, Frazier O. Extended support with a left ventricular assist device as a bridge to
heart transplantation. ASAIO Trans 1991; 37(3):M425-M426.
52. Graham T, Dasse K. Conmbe A. Neo-inrimal development on textured biomaterial
surfaces during clinical use of an implantable left ventricular assist device. Eur
J
54.
Rafii S, Oz M, Seldomridge J, ct al. Characterization of hematopoietic cells
arising on the textured surface of left ventricular assist devices. Ann Thorac Surg
1995; 60:1627-1632.

55.
Menconi M, Pockwinse S, Owen T. Dasse K, Stein G, Li an J. Properties of blood-
contacting surfaces of clinically implanted cardiac assist devices: gene
expression, matrix composition, and ultrastructural characterization of cellular
linings. J Cell Bioehem 1995: 57:557-573.

56.
Menconi M^ Owen T, Dassc K, Stein G, Li an J. Molecular approaches to the
characterization of cell and blood/biomaterial interactions, J Cardiac Surg 1992:
7:177

187.

57.
Spanicr T. Oz M, Levin H. Weinberg A, Stamatis K, Stern D. Rose E. Schmidt

A. Activation of coagulation and fibrinolytic pathways in patients wilh left


ventricular assist devices. J Thorac Cardiovasc Surg 1996; 112:1090-1097.

58.
Connolly E. Win free C, McComiiek P. Management of spinal epidural hematoma after
tissue plasminogen activator. A case report. Spine 19%; 21:1694-1698.

59.
Sloan M. Stroke associated with thrombolytic therapy for acute myocardial
infarction. Heart Dis Stroke 1992: 1:287-294.

60.
Longstreth W, Litwin P, Weaver W. Myocardial infarction, thrombolytic therapy, and
stroke. A community based stud>. Stroke 1993: 24:587-590.

61.
Maggioni A. Franzosi M, Farina M. Santoro E. Celani M. Ricci S, Tognoni G.
Cerebrovascular events after myocardial infarction: analysis of the GISSI trial.
BMJ 1991; 302:1428-1431.

62.
Schroder R, Neuhaus K-L. Leizorovicz A, Linderer T. Tebbc U. A prospective
placebo-controlled double-blind multicentcr trial of intravenous streptokinase in
acute myocardial infarction (ISAM): long-lerm mortality and morbidity. J Am Coll
Cardiol 1987; 9:197-203.

63.
1SIS-2 (Second International Study of Infarct Survival) Collaborative Group.
Randomised trial of intravenous streptokinase, oral aspirin, both, or neither
among 17,187 cases of suspected acute myocardial infarction. Lancel 1988; 2:349-
360.

64.
DeJaegere P, Arnold A, Balk A. Simoons M. Intracranial hemorrhage in association
with thrombolytic therapy: incidence and clinical predictive factors. J Am Coll
Cardiol 1992; 19:289-294.

65.
Gore J. Sloan M. Price T. Young-Randall A. Bovill E. Collcn D. Forman S.
Knatterud G, Sopko G, Terrin M. Intracerebral hemorrhage, cerebral infarction, and
subdural hematoma after acute myocardial infarction and thrombolytic therapy in the
thrombolysis in myocardial infarction study; thrombolysis in myocardial
infarction. Phase II. Pilot and and clinical trial. Circulation 1991: 83:448-459.

66.
GUSTO lnvestigaiors. An iniernaiional randomized trial comparing four
thrombolytic strategies for actue myocardial infarction. N Engl J Med 1993;
329:673

682.

67.
ISIS-3 (Third International Study of Infarct Survival) Collaborative Group. ISIS

3: A randomised comparison of streptokinase vs tissue plasminogen activator vs for


intriiLTJtmtt In.-innThage during ihrotnKihtic therapy Lancet 1993: 342:1523 1528.

69.
Grines C. DeMariu A. Optimal utilization of thrombolytic therapy for acute
myocardial infarction. J Am Coll Cardiol 1990; 16:223-231.

70.
Hillegass W, Jollts J. Granger C. Ohman E, Califf R. Mark D. Intracranial
hemorrhage risk and new thrombolytic therapies in acute myocardial infarction. Am
J Cardiol 1994; 73:444-449

71.
Anderson H, Willerson J. Thrombolysis in acute myocardial infarction. N Engl J Med
1993; 329:703-709.

7Z Ay 1 ward P. Wilcox R. Horgan J, White H, Granger C Califf R. Topol E. Relation


of increased arterial blood pressure to mortality and stroke in the context of
contemporary thrombolytic the rap > for acute myocardial infarction. A randomized
trial. GUSTO-1 investigators. Ann Intern Med 1996: 125:891-900.
73. Selkcr 11. Beshansky J. Schmid C. Griffith J. Longstreth W. O'Connor C.
Caplan
L. Massey E, D'Agostino R. Laks M. el al. Presenting pulse pressure predicts
thrombolytic therapy-related intracranial hemorrhage. Thrombolytic Predictive
Instrument (TPI> Project results. Circulation 1994: 90:1657-1661.
74.
Ryan T, Anderson J. Amman E. Braniff B. Brooks N. Califf R. Htllis L Hiratzka L,
Rapaport E. Rieget B. Russell R, Smith E. Weaver W. ACC/AHA guidelines for the
management of patients with acute myocardial infarction. A report of the American
College of Cardiology/American Heart Association Task Force on Practive Guidelines
(Committee on Management of Acute Myocardial Infarction). J Am Coll Cardiol 1996;
28:1328-1498.

75.
Tanne D. Gottlieb S. Caspi A, Hod H. Palant A. Reisin L. Rosenfeld T. Peled B,
Marmor A. Balkin J. Boyko V. Behar S. Treatment and oucome of patients with acute
myocardial infarction and prior cerebrovascular events in the thrombolytic era: the
Israeli Thrombolytic National Survey. Arch Intern Med 1998: 158:601-606.

76.
Rawles J. Guidelines for general practitioners administering thrombolytics. Drugs
1995: 50:615-625.

77.
Ketley D. Woods K. Selection factors for the use of thrombolytic treatment in
acute myocardial infarction. Br Mean J 1995; 74:224-228.

78.
Cupples A, Gagnon D. Wong N, Ostfeld A, Dannel W. Preexisting cardiovascular
conditions and long-term prognosis after initial myocardial infarction: the Farm
ingham Study. Am Heart J 1993; 125:863-872.

79.
Maggioni A, Franzosi M, Samoro E. White H. Vande Werf F, Tognoni G. The risk o!
stroke in palients with acute myocardial infarct it m after thrombolytic and
antithrombotic treatment, Gruppo lialiano per lo Studio della Sopravvivenza
nelI'lnfarto Miocardico It (GISSI-2), and the International Study Group. N Engl J
Med 1992; 327:1-6.

80.
Tiefenbrunn A, Sobel B. Thrombolysis and myocardial infarction. Fibrinolysis 1991;
5:1-15.

81.
Paonr M. Met7 HS. Gillert N. Retino C, Badillo .1, Bunting S. An experimental

myocardial infarction treated with thrombolytic therapy. Am J Cardiol 1996; 77:


551-556.
83- Ncuhaus K, Von Essen R, Tcbbe L\ Jesscl A, Heinrichs H, Maurer W, Doring W.
Harmjanz D, Roller V, Kalhammer E, el al. Safely observations from the pilot phase
of the randomized r-Hirudin for Improvement of Thrombolysis (HlT-llli study. A
study of the Arbeitsgemeinschafl Leitender Kardiologischer Kiankenhausar/te
(ALKK), Circulation 1994; 90:1638-1642.
84.
Amman E. Hirudin in acute myocardial infarction. Safety report from the
Thrombolysis and Thrombin Inhibition in Myocardial Jnfareiion (T1M1) 9A Trial.
Circulation 1994; 90:1624-1630.

85.
Antman E. Hirudin in acute myocardial infarction. Thrombolysis and Thrombin
Inhibition in Myocardial Infarction (TIMI) 9B Trial. Circulation 1996; 94:911-921.

86.
Stone G, Grines C, Browne K. Marco J. Rolhbaum D. O'Keelc J. Hartzler G. Overlie
P, Donohue B. Chelliah N, el al. Comparison of in-hospital outcome in men versus
women treated by either thrombolytic iherapy or primary coronary angioplasty for
acute myocardial infarction. Am J Cardiol 1995 ; 75:987-992.
87.
Gcbel J. Sila C. Sloan M. Granger C. Mahaffey K, Weisenberger J. Green C, White H,
Gore J, Weaver W, Califf R. Topol E. Thrombolysis-related intracranial hemorrhage:
a radiographic analysis of 244 cases from the GUSTO-l Trial with clinical
correlation. Stroke 1998; 29:563-569.

88.
Uglietia J. O'Connor C. Boyko O. Aldrieh H, Massey E, Heinz E. CT patterns of
intracranial hemorrhage complicating thrombolytic therapy for acute myocardial
infarction. Radiology 1991; 181:555-559.

89.
Caplan L. Stein R. Intracerebral hemorrhage. In: Caplan L. Siein R. eds. Stroke: A
Clinical Approach. Boston: Butlerworths. 1986:266.

90.
LeBIanc R. Haddad G. Robitaille Y. Cerebral hemorrhage from amyloid angiopathy and
coronary thrombolysis. Neurosurgery 1992; 31:586-590.

91.
Pendlebury W, lole E, Tracy R, Dill B. Intracerebral hemorrhage related to
cerebral amyloid angiopathy and t-PA ireaunent. Ann Neurol 1991; 29:210-213.

92.
Kase C. Cerebral amyloid angiopathy. In: Feldntann E, ed. Current Diagnosis in
Neurology. St. Louis: Mosby-Yearbook, 1994:58-62.

93.
Masuda J. Tanaka K. Ueda K. Omae T. Autopsy study of incidence and distribution of
cerebral amyloid angiopathy in Hisayama, Japan. Stroke 1988; 19:205-210.

94.
Schmaier A, Amyloid beta-protein precursor: A new anticoagulant? J Lab Clin Med
1997; 130:5-7.

95.
Srinivasan G, Boschman C, Roth S. Ilcndel R. Unsuspected vasculitis and
intracranial hemorrhage following thrombolysis. Clin Cardiol 1997; 20:84-8b,

96.
Lown B, Perlroth M, Kaidey S. Abe T, Harken D. Cardioversion of atrial
fibrillation: a report on the treatment of 65 episodes in 50 patients. N Engl J
Med 1963: 269:325-31.

97.
Golzari H. Cebul R, Bahler R. Atrial fibrillation: restoration and maintenance of
sinus rhythm and indications for anticoagulation therapy. Ann Intern Med 1996:

286 Chapter 5
99. Stein B, Halpcrin J. Fuster V. Should patients with atria) lihrillation he
anticoagu
lated prior to and chronically following cardioversion? Caidiova.sc Clin 1990: 21:

231 247.
100. Grimm R. Stewart W, Black. I, Thomas J. Klein A. Should all patients undergo

transesophageal echocardiography before electrical cardioversion of atrial


fibrilla
tion? J Am Coll Cardiol 1994: 23:533-541.
101. Weigner M, Caulfield T, Uanias P. Silvennan D, Manning W. Risk for clinical
ihromboemholism associated with conversion to sinus rhythm in patients wilh atrial

fibrillation lusting less than 48 hours. Ann Intern Med 1997; 126:615-620.
102. Harjai Mobarek S, Cheirif J. Boulos L, Murgo J, Abi-Samra F. Clinical
variables
affecting recovery of left atrial mechanical function after cardioversion from
atrial
fibrillation. J Am Coll Cardiol 1997; 30:481-486.
103. TabaLu T. Oki T, luchi A. Tamada H. Manabe K. Fukuda K. Abe M. Fukuda N,
ho S. Evaluation of left atrial appendage function by measurement of changes in
How velocity patterns after electrical cardioversion in patients with isolated
atrial
fibrillation, Am J Cardiol 1997; 79:615-620,
104. Grimm R. Stew nil W. Maloney J. Cohen G. Pearce G. Salcedo E. Klein A. Impact

of electrical cardioversion for atrial fibrillation on left atrial appendage


function
and spontaneous echo contrast: characterization by simultaneous transesophageal
echocardiography. J Am Coll Cardiol 1993: 22:1359-1366.
105. Laupacis A. AlbcrsG, Dalen J, Dunn M. Weinberg W. Jacnbson A. Antithrombotic

therapy in atrial fibrillation. From the fourth AC CP Consensus Conference on Anti

thrombotic Therapy. Chest 1995; 108:352S-359S.


106. Schlicht J, Davis R. Maqi K. Cooper W. Rao B. Physician practices regarding
anticoagulation and cardioversion of atrial fibrillation. Arch Intern Med 1996:
156:
290-294.
107. Klein A. Grimm R. Black I, Leung D, Chung M. Vaughn S, Murray R, Miller D,
Arheart K. Cardioversion guided by transesophageal echocardiography: the
ACUTE pilot study. A randomized, controlled trial. Ann Intern Med 1997; 126:
200-209.
108. Manning W, Silverman D, Gordon S. Drumholz H, Douglas P. Cardioversion from
atrial fibrillation without prolonged anticoagulation with use of transesophageal
echocardiography to exclude the presence of atrial thrombi. N Engl .1 Med 1993;
328:750-755.
109. Manning W. Silverman D, Keighley C, Octtgen P. Douglas P. Transesophageal
echocardiography facilitated early cardioversion from atrial fibrillation using
short-
term anticoagulation: final results of a prospective 4.5-year study. J Am Coll
Cardiol 1995; 25:1354-1361.
110. Seto T. Taira D. Tsevat J. Manning W. Cost-effectiveness of transesophageal
echo-
card iographic-guided cardioversion: a decision analytic mode] for patients a
drained
to the hospital with atrial fibrillation. J Am Coll Cardiol 1997; 29:122-130.
111. Steering and Publications of the ACUTE Study. Design of a clinical trial for
the

Asymptomatic Coronary Artery Disease in Patients with Carotid Artery Stenosis;


Incidence, Prognosis, and Treatment
INTRODUCTION
Atherosclerosis is a systemic disease thai typically involves multiple arterial
trees [ 1 ]. One implication of the systemic nature of atherosclerosis is that once
a patient develops extracranial carotid artery disease (or intracranial arterial
stenosis) there is a high likelihood that the patient will have coronary artery
disease (CAD). Indeed, several studies have shown that 30% to 45% of patients
presenting with carotid stenosis have a history of CAD |2,31 and 25% to 50% of the
remaining patients have evidence of asymptomatic CAD on provocative tests for
myocardial ischemia (e.g.. exercise electrocardiography (ECG) or myocardial
perfusion imaging) 1471. Therefore, it is not surprising that virtually every
population study and stroke therapy trial has shown that CAD is a major cause of
death in patients with carotid stenosis.
Recent trials have shown that carotid endarterectomy and medical therapy (aspirin,
modification of risk factors) are significantly more effective than medical therapy
alone for preventing stroke in patients with carotid stenosis. The benefit is
substantial in patients with symptomatic carotid stenosis >70% (absolute risk
reduction of 17% at 2 years, 13.2% at 5 years) [2] and modest in patients with
asymptomatic carotid stenosis ^60 % (absolute risk reduction of 5.9% at 5 years)
IS] or symptomatic carotid stenosis 50% to 69% (absolute risk reduction of 6.5% at
5 years) 19]. The results of these trials will lead to a substantial increase in
287
the number of carotid endurtereetomies performed worldwide and a concomitant demand
on physicians to diagnose and treat coexistent CAD in these patients. While
strategies have evolved for evaluating and treating symptomatic CAD in patienls
with carotid stenosis IIOJ. this is not true for asymptomatic CM) I he focus of
this chapter is on the incidence, prognosis, evaluation, and treatment of
asymptomatic CAD in patients with carotid stenosis.
INCIDENCE OF ASYMPTOMATIC CAD IN PATIENTS WITH CAROTID DISEASE
The frequency of asymptomatic CAD in patients presenting with T1A or stroke has
been evaluated in several studies. Rokey et al. [ 1 IJ performed exercise
thallium-201 scintigraphy and exercise radionuclide ventriculography on 50
consecutive patienls presenting with TIA or slroke. Sixteen patients had symptoms
suggestive of cardiac ischemia, ami the oiher 34 patients were asymptomatic.
Fifteen of 16 symptomatic (94%) patients and 14 of 34 (41%) asymptomatic patients
had abnormal myocardial perfusion imaging. Twenty-two patients wilh abnormal
myocardial perfusion imaging underwent coronary angiography, which showed severe
CAD f >l()rt stenosis of the lumen of al leasl one coronar\ artery) in 18 patients
(10 of 13 symptomatic patienls. S ol si asymptomatic patients). Twelve of these 18
patients had multivessel disease.
Di Pasquale el al. [ I2J performed exercise ECG on 83 consecutive patienls wilh TLA
or minor slroke who had no symptoms of ischemic heart disease. Palients with
positive exercise ECG subsequenlh underwent exercise lhallium-201 myocardial
scintigraphy. Asymptomatic CAD was delected in 28% of patienls studied with ihese
noninvasive techniques. Coronary angiography was performed in only two patienls:
one had three-vessel CAD and the other had two-vessel CAD. In another study. Di
Pasquale et ah 1131 performed dipyridamole thallium myocardial imaging in 23
patients without a history of CAD who presented with cerebral ischemia. Sixteen
patients (70%) had perfusion defects (reversible in 15 patients, fixed in 1
patient). Love el al. J141 performed thullium-201 myocardial scintigraphy in 27
patients presenting with asymptomatic carotid disease, TIA, or small slroke and
without symptoms of CAD. Nine patients (33%) had perfusion defects (reversible in
seven patients, fixed in one patient and both in an* other).
While these studies show that patients with TIA or stroke have a high frequency of
asymptomatic CAD, none of the studies evaluated the frequency of asymptomati CAD i
patient with differen vascula f TIA stroke of a major cerebral artery (i.e.,
cervical carotid artery or a major intracranial artery) versus 39 palients with
other causes of cerebral ischemia (penetrating artery disease, eardioembolism,
cryptogenic stroke). All 69 patients in the studs presented wilh TIAs or ischemic
stroke and no overt CAD. The frequency of risk factors was similar in the two
groups except that palients wilh cervical carotid or intracranial atherosclerosis
had a significantly higher frequency of peripheral vascular disease (P - .04), and
palients with other causes of causes of cerebral ischemia had a significantly
higher frequency of hypertension (P = .03).
In patients with cervical carotid or intracranial atherosclerosis, the rates of
abnormal stress tests were 8 of 16 (50%) in patients wilh isolated cervical carotid
stenosis, 2 of 8 (25%) in patients wTith isolated intracranial artery stenosis, and
5 of 6 (83%) in patients with coexistent carotid and intracranial stenoses. In
patients with other causes of brain ischemia, the rales of abnormal cardiac stress
tests were 4 of 20 (20%) in patients with cryptogenic stroke. 3 of 15 (20%-)
inpatients with penetrating artery disease, and 2 of 4 (50%) in patients with non-
valvular atrial fibrillation. Overall, patients with cervical carotid or
intracranial atherosclerosis had a significantly higher frequency of abnormal
cardiac stress tests than patients with other causes of cerebral ischemia (15 of 30
[50%| vs. 9 of 39 [23%1; P ,04). Coronary angiography was performed in seven
patients with cervical carotid or intracranial artery stenosis. This showed severe
(3:70% stenosis), one-vessel CAD in two patients, severe two-vessel CAD in two
palients, and severe three-vessel CAD in three patients. Additionally, two of the
seven patients also had left main CAD (50% lo 60% stenosis in one patient, 40% to
50% stenosis in the other). Logistic regression analysis showed lhat smoking (odds
ratio 6.5: 95% confidence interval 1.3 to 32.1) and carotid or intracranial
atherosclerosis (odds ratio 2.9: 95% confidence interval 1.0 to 8.7) were the only
independent risk factors for abnormal stress tests in this study. Another recent
study confirms the strong association between carotid artery disease and exercise-
induced myocardial ischemia in asymptomatic patients. Okin et al, |I5] performed
carotid ultrasound and exercise ECG in 204 asymptomatic subjects free of clinical
evidence of cardiovascular disease. Exercise-induced myocardial ischemia was
detected in 35 patients, 6 of 12 (50%) with carotid atherosclerosis versus 29 of
192 (17%) without carotid disease (P = ,007), Multivariate analysis showed that
carotid artery cross-sectional area (P = .0007) and systolic hyperten* sion (P = .
005) were the only variables that were independently associated with exercise-
induced myocardial ischemia.
Other studies have evaluated the frequency of asymptomatic CAD in consecutive
patients wilh carotid artery stenosis. Urbinati et al. 141 performed thalliu
myocardial perfusio imagin i 106 patient withou cardia
cise ECG. Only one study has systematically utilized coronary angiography for
defining the frequency of asymptomatic CAD in a population presenting with carotid
disease. Hertzcr ct al. 16] performed coronary angiography on 200 patients without
symptoms of CAD. most of whom presented with carotid broils. Eighty patients (40%)
had severe CAD defined by >7U% stenosis of al least one coronary artery. 93
patients (46f#) had mild or moderate CAD. and only 27 patients (14%) had normal
coronary arteries. The numbers of patients with single-vessel, multivessel, and
left main CAD were not described; however, 22% were considered to have severe, but
compensated, CAD; 16% had severe, surgically correctable CAD; and 2% had
inoperable CAD.
Overall, these studies suggest that 25% to 50% of patients with carotid disease and
no symptom^ of CAD have abnormal provocative tests for myocardial ischemia or
angiographic evidence of severe CAD. Since provocative tests for myocardial
ischemia do not identify patients with atherosclerotic coronary plaques thai are
not flow-limiting, the Hue frequency of asymptomatic CAD (i.e.. How-limiting and
non-flow-limiting combined) in patients wilh carotid stenosis is probably
substantially greater than 25% to 50%. Patients with non-flow-limiting coronary
plaques are at risk of acute Ml or sudden death from rupture of an atherosclerotic
plaque; however, there are no reliable noninvasive techniques to identify this
important subgroup of palients with asymptomatic CAD.
PROGNOSIS OF ASYMPTOMATIC CAD IN PATIENTS WITH CAROTID STENOSIS
Although the risk of myocardial infarction (MI) within 30 days of carotid
endarterectomy in patients without a history of CAD is low (1% to 2%) [3|. a few
studies have established that the long-term cardiac prognosis in these patients is
far" from benign. Urbinati et al. [4] followed 106 asymptomatic palients who
underwent cardiac stress tests prior to carotid endarterectomy and found that 8 of
27 patienls (29.6%) with abnormal thallium myocardial perfusion imaging studies had
Ml or unstable angina during an average of 5.4 years of follow-up. compared with
only 1 of 79 patients (1.3%-) with normal myocardial studies (P < .01).
In another study of 93 palients without overt CAD who underwent carotid
endarterectomy, the cumulative incidence of important cardiac events (cardiac
death. Ml, CABG pulmonary edema, or ventricular tachycardia) at 8 years after
endarterectomy was 25% (i.e., approximately 3% per year) [16). In a large study f
444 mal with carotid stenosis 67 (33%) f 200 patient with histor
sudden death rate of approximately 8% per year in patients with a history of CAD
and 6% per year in patients without a history of CAD [31. The higher rate of MI or
sudden death in this study [3] may be due lo the presence of more severe CAD in
veterans who have a higher frequency of vascular risk factors than nonvcterans.
These two studies suggest that the rate of Ml or sudden death in patients with
carotid stenosis and no history of CAD is 3% to 6% per year. However, patients with
carotid stenosis and no symptoms of CAD consist of three subgroups: patients
without CAD; palients with asymptomatic flow-limiting CAD (approximately 25% to 50%
of the entire group); and patients with coronary plaques that are not How-limiting.
Since virtually all of the cardiac events in these two studies would have occurred
in the latter two subgroups of patients, the rate of major cardiac events in
patients wilh carotid stenosis and asymptomatic CAD may be as high as 4% to 8% per
year 13,16].
TREATMENT OF ASYMPTOMATIC CAD
Although patients with carotid stenosis have a high frequency of asymptomatic CAD
and are al high risk of major cardiac events during long-ierm follow-up, studies
have not been performed to evaluate optimal treatment for asymptomatic CAD in these
patients. However, there are limited data on the treatment of asymptomatic CAD in
noncercbrovascular patients. In a nonrandomized study, Weiner et al. fl7j followed
692 patients with asymptomatic ^70%' stenosis of at least one coronary artery who
were treated medically (424 patients) or surgically (268 palients). Over a 7-year
follow-up period, there were no significant differences in survival rates between
ihe two groups among palients with one-vessel or two-vessel CAD, However, in
patients with three-vessel CAD, 58% of medically treated patients survived 7 years,
compared with 85% of surgically treated patients (P < .0001). Mosi of the patients
who benefited from surgery had impaired left ventricular function. In another
nonrandomized siudy (Uie CASS registry), 53 patients with asymptomatic > 50%
stenosis of the left main CAD were treated medically or surgically. Over a 5-year
follow-up, survival rates were 57% in the medical group and 88% in ihe surgical
group iP = .02) 118J.
A few randomized studies have evaluated different therapies for silent myocardial
ischemia in patients with known CAD. These studies focused on patients who were
asymptomatic or minimally symptomatic and who had frequent episodes of myocardial
ischemia detected by ambulatory ECG. It is well established tha patient with silen
myocardial ischemi high risk f majo cardia symptomatic patients w itii known CAD
and e\ idence of silent ischemia to atenolol (100 mg/day) or placebo [21 f The
primary outcome was event-free survival at 1 year. Primary events consisted of
death, resuscitated ventricular tachycardia/ fibrillation. ML hospitalization for
unstable angina, aggravation of angina, or revascularization. Event-free survival
improved in patients randomized to atenolol (P < .007). These patients had fewer
total first events than palients randomized to placebo (relative risk, 0,44; 95%
confidence interval. 0,26 to 0.75; P ~ .001). There was a trend for fewer serious
events (death, resuscitated ventricular tachycardia/fibrillation. Ml,
hospitalization lor unstable angina) in patients treated with atenolol (relative
risk, 0.55; 95% confidence interval, 0.22 to 1.33; P = ,175). lite most powerful
correlate of event-free survival was absence of ischemia on ambulatory ECG
monitoring at 4 weeks [211. The results of AS 1ST have subsequently been supported
by another recent trial, which showed that a beta blocker (Bisoprolol) or a calcium
channel blocker (Nifedipine) reduced major cardiac events in patients wilh silent
myocardial ischemia [22].
A recent randomized pilot study also suggests that revascularization is more
effective than medical therapy for preventing major cardiac events in patients with
silent myocardial ischemia detected hy ambulatory ECG [23 j. hi the Asymptomatic
Cardiac Ischemia Pilot (ACIP) study, 558 patients with 1^50^ stenosis of at least
one major eoronary artery, at least one episode of asymptomatic ischemia on
ambulatory ECG, and a positive exercise stress test were randomized to one of three
treatments; (I) medication to suppress angina (angina-guided group); (2) medication
to suppress angina and silent ischemia (ischemia-guided group); (3)
revascularization (angioplasty or CABG). The medication consisted of a titrated
regimen of atenolol followed by sustained-release nifedipine if needed, or a
titrated regimen of diltiazem followed by sustained release isosorbide dt nitrate
if needed. At 1 year, the mortality rate was 4.4% in the angina-guided group, 1.6%
in the ischemia-guided group, and 0% in the revascularization group (overall. P = .
004; angina-guided vs. revascularization, P = ,003; other pairwise comparisons not
significant). The frequency of death, Ml, nonprotocol revascularization, or
hospital admissions at I year was 32% in the angina-guided group, 31/f in lhe
ischemia-guided group, and 18% in the revascularization group [P = .003). The
revascularization group also had less ischemia on serial ambulatory ECG recordings
than the medically treated groups [23J. Bypass surgery was superior to angioplasty
in suppressing cardiac ischemia despite the fact that palients who underwent CABG
had more severe CAD [24],
Longer follow-up data, on the ACIP patients has recently been published [25]. The
2-year mortality rate was 6.6% in the angina-guided group, 4.4% in th ischemia-
guided d 1.1% i th revascularizatio (P .02)
zation (especially CABG) is more effective than medical therapy for preventing
major cardiac events in patients with known CAD and silent myocardial ischemia.
SUGGESTED MANAGEMENT OF ASYMPTOMATIC CAD IN PATIENTS WITH CAROTID STENOSIS
In view of the low rate of cardiac complications in the periendartenectomy period
in palients without a history of CAD {\c/c to 2%) 13 [ the low positive predictive
value of provocative tests tor myocardial ischemia for predicting perioperative Mi
126,27], and the current emphasis on cost containment in medical care, recent
guidelines from an American College of Cardiology/American Heart Association
(ACC/AHA) task force do not recommend rouline cardiac stress testing in patients
without a history of CAD who are undergoing carotid endarterectomy [261, The
results of a recent siudy that used decision analysis to evaluate the role of
coronary angiography and coronary revascularization before peripheral vascular
surgery or abdominal aortic surgery supports the ACC/AHA recommendations. Since
patients undergoing these procedures have a higher rate of MI or cardiac death than
patients undergoing carotid endarterectomy [26]. ihe benefit, if any, of coronary
angiography and coronary revascularization before wiscular surgery should be
evident in these patients. In this study, patients who had no angina or mild angina
and an abnormal dipyridamole-thallium myocardial study were candidates for three
management strategics: (1) lo undergo vascular surgery without cardiac
intervention: (2) to perform coronary angiography, followed by selective coronary
revascularization before vascular surgery or lo cancel vascular surgery in
palienls with inoperable CAD; or (3) to perform coronary angiography, followed by
selective coronary revascularization before vascular surgery or proceed directly
to vascular surgery in patients with inoperable CAD. The main outcome measures
included mortality, nonfatal MI. stroke, and cost within 3 months of surgery.
Decision analysis showed that proceeding directly to vascular surgery in patients
with an estimated perioperative mortality of ^5 % led to better outcomes 128].
The ACC/AHA recommendations 126], which focus on the preoperative management of CAD
in patients undergoing vascular surgery, do not address the long-term management of
asymptomatic CAD in patients with carotid stenosis. Given the high annual raio of
major cardiac events in these palients and mounting evidence that treatment of
silent myocardial ischemia improves cardiac outcome, a strong case can be made for
performing noninvasive screening for asymptomati CAD i patient with carotid
stenosi afte fro carotid endarterec identify subgroups or asymptomatic patients
with carotid stenosis who are at highest risk of cardiac events. In one study,
factors- that weie independculK associated with cardiac events in patients with
carotid stenosis and no history of CAD were coexistent diabetes (relative risk,
2.14; 95% confidence interval, LIS to 3.97), intracranial occlusive disease
(relative risk. 2.13: 95% confidence interval,
1.13 to 4.02), and peripheral vascular disease (relative risk, 2.04; 95% confidence
interval, 1.14 to 3.66), Forty-two percent of patients with two of these factors
and 69% of patients wilh all three factors had cardiac events during a mean follow-
up of 4 years [3].
Given these data, what should the cardiac evaluation and treatment of patients
with carotid stenosis and no history of CAD entail? A definitive answer is not
possible until a randomized study has clearly established the value of screening
for CAD and treating asymptomatic CAD in this population. Until such a study is
performed, the following approach is suggested based on currently available data;
palients with carotid stenosis and no history of CAD who are at high risk of major
cardiac events (i.e., diabetics, patients wilh coexistent intra cranial occlusive
disease or peripheral vascular disease) [31 should undergo a provocative tesi for
myocardial ischemia. Other patients that should be considered for screening
include patienls widt premature carotid stenosis (he,, patients younger than 50
years) and patients with a family history of CAD. especially if the CAD occurred at
a young age. The most commonly used provocative tests for myocardial ischemia are
exercise ECG. myocardial perfusion imaging study, or dobuiaminc stress
echocardiography, A recent meta-analysis has shown that ihcsc procedures have
similar accuracy rates for detecting underlying CAD [27\. Exercise ECG has the
advantage of providing an estimate of the functional capacity of the patient, but
is unreliable in patienls wilh an abnormal resting ECG, e.g., left bundle branch
block* left ventricular hypertrophy, Dobutamine stress echocardiography is the
preferred approach when evaluation of the cardiac chambers and heart valves is
necessary.
Patients with abnormal screening studies should be referred to a cardiologist.
These patients should he considered for ambulatory ECG monitoring to delect
episodes of silent myocardial ischemia. When the noninvasive cardiac studies
suggest severe underlying CAD (e.g., patients with a large reversible perfusion
defect on a myocardial perfusion imaging study). the patient should undergo
coronary angiography, which can be combined safely with carotid angiography [30|.
Based on currently available data, patients with severe multivessel or tefi main
disease should be considered for CABG 117.181, especially if they have episodes of
silent myocardial ischemic 123-251. The timing of CABG in patients undergoin
carotid endarterectom i discussed 246 f Chapte 4 Patienl or calcium channel
blockers, and antithrombotic therapy) should be instituted, especially in patients
with silent myocardial ischemia [21-23.251. Additionally, management of vascular
risk factors (especially hyperlipidcmia [31.32], hypertension, diabetes, and
smoking) is a critical component of the treatment plan for all patients.
REFERENCES
1.
McGill HC Jr. Strong JP. The geographic pathology of atherosclerosis. Ann NY
AcadSci 1968; 149:923-927.

2.
North American Symptomatic Carotid Endarterectomy Trial Collaborators. Beneficial
effect of carotid endarterectomy in symptomatic patients with high grade carotid
stenosis. N Engl J Med 1991; 325:445-453.

3.
Chimowitz MI, Weiss DG, Cohen SL. Starling MR, Hobson RW II. Veterans Affairs
Cooperative Study Group 167. Cardiac prognosis of patients with carotid stenosis
and no history of coronary artery disease. Stroke 1994: 25:759-765.

4.
Urbinati S, Di Pasquale G, Andreoli A. Lusa AM, Ruflini M, LanzinO G, Pinelh G.
Frequency and prognostic significance of silent coronary artery disease in patients
with cerebral ischemia undergoing carotid endanerectomy. Am J Cardiol 1992: 69:
1166-1170.

5.
Sconocchini C. Racco F. Pratillo G, Alesi C. Zappelli L. Patients \\ ith carotid
stenosis and clinical history negative for coronary disease Usefulness of the
crgometric lest for the identification of ischemic myocardial disease. Minerva Med
1997; 88: 173-181.

6.
Hertzer NR, Young JR. Beven EG. Graor RA. CTHara PJ, Ruschhaupl WF, rle Wolfe G,
Maljovee LC. Coronary angiography in 506 patients with extracranial
cerebrovascular disease. Arch Intern Med 1985: 145:849-852.

7.
Chimowilz MI. Poole RM. Starling MR. Schwaiger M. Gross MD. Frequency and severity
of asymptomatic coronary disease in patients with different causes of stroke.
Siroke 1997; 28:941-945,

8.
Executive Committee for the Asymptomatic Carotid Atherosclerosis Study.
Endarterectomy for asymptomatic carotid artery stenosis. JAMA 1995: 273:1421-1428,

9.
Barnett HJM. Taylor DW, Elias?Jw M, Fox AJ, Ferguson GG, Hayncs RB, Rankin RN.
Clagctt GP, Hachinski VC, Sackett DL. Thorpe KE, Meldrum HE, for the North American
Symptomatic Carotid Endarterectomy Trial Collaborators. Benelil of carotid
endarterectomy in patients wilh symptomatic moderate or severe stenosis. N Engl )
Med 1998; 339:1415-1425.

10.
Graor RA, Hertzer NR. Management of coexistent carotid artery and coronary artery
disease. Stroke 1988; 19:1441-1444.

11.
Rokey R, Rolak LA, Harali Y, Kuika N, Verani MS. Coronary artery disease in
patients with cerebrovascular disease: a prospective study. Ann Neurol 1984: 16:

l.r Di Pasquale G. Andieoh A. Gra/i P. Urhinaii S, Corbclli G, Carini G, Pinelli


G, Detection of silem myocardial ischemia in cerebrovascular palients by
dipyridamole thallium myocardial imaging. Stroke 1989; 20:155. Abstract.
14. Love BB, Grover-McKay M, Biller J, Rezai K, McKay CR. Coronary artery
disease and cardiac events wilh asymptomatic and symptomatic cerebrovascular
disease. Stroke 1992; 23:939-945.
I 5. Ok in PM, Roman MJ. Pickering TG , Devereux RB. Relation of eveicise-induced
m\oeardial ischemia to cardiac and carotid structure. Hypertension 1997: 30:1382-
1388.
16.
Rihal CS, Gersh BJ. Whisnant JF\ Rooke TW, Sundt TM Jr, Fallon WM, Ballard DJ.
Influence of coronary heart disease on morbidity and mortality after carotid
endarterectomy: a population-based study in Olmsted County, Minnesota l 1970-
1988). J Am Coll Cardiol 1992: 19:1254-1260.

17.
Werner DA, Ryan TJ. MeCabe CH. Chairman BR. Sheffield LT. Ng G. Fisher LD,
Tristini FE, CASS Investigators. Comparison of coronary artery bypass surgery and
medical therapy in patients with exercise-induced silent myocardial ischemia: a
report from the Coronary Artery Surgery Study (CASS) registry. J Am Coll Cardiol
1988: 12:595-599.

18.
Taylor HA, Deumite NJ. Chaitman BR. Davis KB. Killip T. Roger WJ. Asymptomatic
left main coronary artery disease in the Coronary Artery Surgery Study (CASS)
registry. Circulation 1989; 79:1171-1179.

19.
Gill JB, Cairns JA Roberts RS, Costantini L. Sealcy BJ. Fallen EF. Tomlinson

t
CW, Gent M. Prognostic importance of myocardial ischemia detected by ambulatory
monitoring early after acute Ml. N Engl J Med 1996; 334:65-70.
20.
Gottlieb SO. Weisfeklt ML, Ouvang P. Mel I ills ED. Gerstenblith G. Silent
ischemia predicts infarction and death during 2 year follow-up of unstable angina.
J Am Coll Cardiol 1987: 10:756-760.

21.
Pepine CJ, Conn PF, Deedwania PC, Gibson RS, Handberg E. Hill JA. Miller F, Marks
RCThadani U, for the ASIST Study Group. Effects of treatment on outcome in mildly
symptomatic patients with ischemia during daily life. The Atenolol Silent Ischemia
Study I ASIST). Circulation 1994: 90:762-768,

22.
von Arnim T. for ihe TIBBS (Total Ischemic Burden Bisoprolol Study) investigators.
Prognostic significance of transient ischemic episodes; response to treatment shows
improved prognosis. Results of the TIBBS follow-up. J Am Coll Cardiol 1995;
25(suppl):88A. Abstract.

23.
Rogers WJ. Bourassa MG, Andrews TC. Bcrtolet BD. Blumenthal RS, Chaitman BR.
Forman SA. Geiler NL. Goldberg AD. Habib. el al. for the ACIP investigators.
Asymptomatic Cardiac Ischemia Pilot (ACIP) sludy: outcome at I year for palients
wilh asymptomatic cardiac ischemia randomized to medical therapy or
revascularization. J Am Coll Cardiol 1995; 26:594-605.

24.
Bourassa MG, Pepine CJ. Forman SA. Rogers WJ. Dyrtla I, Stone PH. t 'haitman BR,
Sharaf B, Mahmarian J. Davies RF, et al. for the ACIP investigators. Asymptomatic
Cardiac Ischemia Pilot (ACIP) study: effects of coronary angioplasty and coronary

Carotid Artery Stenosis


study two-year follow-up: outcomes of patients randomized 10 initial strategics of
medical therapy versus revascularization. Circulation 1997*. 95:2037-2043.
26.
Eagle KA. Brundage BH. Chaiunan BR. Ew> GA, Fteisher LA. Hertzer NR. Leppo JA.
Ryan T, Schlant RC, Spencer WH III. Spittell JA Jr. Twiss RD. Ritchie JL. Cheitliu
MD. Gardner TJ, Garson A Jr, Lewis RP, Givvons RJ, O'Rourke RA. Ryan TJ. Guidelines
for perioperative cardiovascular evaluation for noncardiac surgery. Report of the
American College of Cardiology/American Heart Association Task Force on Practice
Guidelines. Committee on Perioperative Cardiovascular Evaluation for Noncardiac
Surgery. Circulation 1996; 93:1278-1317.

27.
Mantha S. Roizen MF. Barnard J. Thisted RA. Ellis JE, Foss J. Relative
effectiveness of four preoperative tests for predicting adverse cardiac outcomes
after vascular surgery: a meta-analysis. Ancsth Aualg 94: 79:422-433.

28.
Mason JJ. Owens DK, Harris RA. Cooke JP. Illalky MA. The role of coronary
angiography and coronary revascularization before noncardiac vascular surgery. JAMA
1995: 273:1919-1925.

29.
Goldman L. Cost-effectiveness perspectives in coronary heart disease. Am Heart J
1990: 119:733-740.

30.
Chimowitz ML Lafranchise fc!K Furlan AJ. Dorosti K, Paraiiandi L. Beck GJ.
I.valuation of coexistent carotid and coronary disease by combined angiography. J
Siroke Cerebrovasc Dis 1991; 1:89-93.

31.
Scandinavian Simvastatin Survival Study Group. Randomised trial of cholesterol
lowering in 4444 patients wilh coronary artery disease: the Scandinavian
Simvastatin Survival Study (4S). Lancet 1994; 344:1383-1389.

32.
Sacks FM. Pfeffer MA. Move LA. Rouleau JL, Rutherford JD. Cole TG. Brown L,
Warnica JW, Arnold JMO. Wun C-C. Davis BR. Braunwald E. for the Cholesterol and
Recurrent Events Trial Investigators. The effect of pravastatin on coronary events
alter myocardial infarction in patients with average cholesterol levels. N Engl J
Med 1996; 335:1001-1009,

Cardiac and Cardiovascular Findings in Patients with Nervous System Diseases


ANATOMY AND PHYSIOLOGY
Cardiologists and internists will lind it useful to think of the cardiac and
cardiovascular effects of neurological conditions in terms of nervous system
anatomy. (Figs. 1-3), The heart is innervated primarily hy the parasympathetic and
sympathetic nervous systems. The parasympathetic innervation comes from the vagus
nerve, whose neurons are located in the medulla in the dorsal motor nucleus of the
vagus. The cardiac termination of the vagus nerve is divided into superior, middle,
and inferior cardiac rami. The predominant neurotransmitter is acetylcholine.
Preganglionic libers synapse in the cardiac ganglia in which nicotinic cholinergic
receptor types predominate. Hexamethonium and other nicotinic receptor blocking
agents can inhibit transmission between preganglionic and postganglionic
parasympathetic nerve fibers. The short postganglionic libers then innervate
tnuscarinic cholinergic terminals in the sinoatrial and atrioventricular nodes, and
also lerminate on cardiac blood vessels, and on heart muscle libers in all cardiac
chambers [11. Atropine suppresses transmission from postganglionic fibers to
cardiac effector cells [2]. Vasoactive intestinal polypeptide is also released from
parasympathetic nerve endings and has some effect on cardiac tissues [21.
Parasympathetic fibers innervate the sinoatrial and atrioventricular nodes more
than the ventricles and coronary blood vessels [2J. Termination of parasympathetic
nerve endings is asymmetrical; the left vagus nerve terminals predominantly in

FIG. 1 Artists drawing of the cerebral hemispheres al the level of the foramina of
Monro
(f) and the third ventricle <3t showing (he insular cortex (ii. medial temporal
lobe limbic system ta for amygdala), and hypothalamic areas (h) posited lo be
involved in autonomic functions. Drawn by Gloria Wu. M.D.
nervate the atrioventricular node white the right vagus innervates the sinoatrial
node [2]. Tonic vagus nerve stimulation prolongs both the length of the cardiac
cycle and the refractory period of atrioventricular node fibers [2]. Vagal activity
also inhibits atrial contraction and so diminishes the atrial contribution lo
ventricular filling |2].
The sympathetic nervous system originates in the hypothalamus and the medulla.
Descending fibers from these regions synapse in the in termed iolateral cell
columns of the thoracic spinal cord. Fibers from nerve cells in the anterolateral
cell columns exit the cord by way of the anterior roots and connect with the
sympathetic chain of ganglia which lie outside the spinal cord up and down tis
length on each side of the vertebral bodies. The bundles that contain preganglioni
fiber goin fro th spinal d th sympatheti gangli usuall
Brd Nuclei* of Sin,* Termini)i i
Thalamus
Pj nummula r HypoihaUmie Nuclei** Cewrit Nucleus of the Amygdala
Hlrd Ventfjcle
Central Gray Mjiler Vesirar TejfiktiLjJ At if J. Substantia NlfTl
Ixvufi Coca Irui
Parifccfchul Nut tnt* Ko |Krr>Fu Nut leu*
*5 Voradreiiei^H; Cell Group
Dor^l Vagal Ntdeu> Nucletii Tncttii SoJ.uhut Cauda! Raphe Nuctevt Nucleus Artist|
uus Rp^rnJ VcntroUtcral Mfdulla Voiunnafdial MrdulH
iMCimedioJjleul c*lt tolurnr
it the thoracic spinal em*

FlG. 2 Descending projections of the central autonomic network (CAN). (From


Chokroverty S. Functional anatomy of the autonomic nervous system: autonomic
dysfunction and disorders of the central nervous system. Presented in Neurology
course No. 144 Correlative Neuroanatomy and Neuropathology for the Clinical
Neurologist. Minneapolis: American Academy of Neurology. 1991:77-103. Reproduced
with permission.)

F ig.3 Cartoon showing the arrangement of the efferent fibers in the sy mpathetic
nervous system. Preganglionic sympathetic fibers (solid lines) from neurons in the
intcrmediolateral cell column leave the spinal cord through the ventral roots and
enter the sympathetic trunk via white rami communicant rami lo end in one or more
sympathetic ganglia. Some preganglionic libers continue in the splanchnic nerves.
Most postganglionic libers (broken lines) from neurons in the ganglia reenter the
spinal nerves via gray communicant rami and follow the nerve peripherally to the
skin, supply glands, or to small or major blood vessels. (From Brodal A.
Neurological anatomy in relation to clinical medicine, 3rd ed. New York: Oxford
University Press. 1981:707. Reproduced with permission.)
each contains fibers from each thoracic segment. The lower cervical and first
thoracic ganglia are usually fused to form the stellate ganglion on each side.
Sympathetic nerve fibers travel from the ganglia lo peripheral nerves by unmy
The left and right stellate ganglia have different innervation patterns. The left
stellate ganglion fibers terminate in the sinoatrial and atrioventricular nodes and
on most of ihe left ventricle. The right stellate ganglion contains cells whose
fibers terminate in the septum, right ventricle, and atria. The postganglionic
sympathetic libers terminate on adrenergic receptors of the alpha or beta types.
Stimulation of alpha receptors primarily causes vasoconstriction while stimulation
of beta fibers causes more vasodilatation, although there are subtypes of each
receptor. Electrical stimulation of the Tl to T5 thoracic anterior roots
containing sympathetic nervous system fibers elicits changes in blood pressure,
localized changes in cardiac muscle contractile force, and changes in heart rate
and electrical impulse conduction 14J.
Affen'cnt pathways carry information from the heart and blood vessels mostly
derived from chemoreceptors and baroreceptors in the heart, aorta, and carotid
arteries that deliver to the nervous system information about cardiac function and
blood pressure. This information is carried lo the spinal cord via sympathetic
afferents that travel in while rami communicanles and to the brain si em through
the hypoglossal (cranial nerve IX) and vagus nerves (cranial nerve X). The nucleus
of the solitary tract is the major site of fiber termination from cardiopulmonary
and arterial baroreceptors and the carotid sinus [51,
A number "I brain regions affect the funcliuu ol these sympathetic and
parasympathetic systems. This effect is mediated either by descending fiber tracts
that synapse with brainstem and spinal cord neurons of the autonomic nervous syslcm
or by the release of chemical neurotransmitters such as epinephrine and
norepinephrine, which have profound effects on the heart and blood vessels. Within
the cerebral cortex, the insula is the region which probably most relates lo
cardiac and cardiovascular function. Changes in heart rate and blood pressure occur
when various parts of the insula are stimulated [6-9], Stimulation of limbic system
neurons in ihe frontal and temporal lobes leads to emotional changes and secretion
of various neurotransmitter substances which affect cardiovascular functions. The
dorsomedial nucleus of the thalamus is an important autonomic nervous system relay
station that also influences heart and autonomic fund ions
[9] (Fig. I show's the cerebral regions thought to be involved in autonomic
functions).
Within the brainstem there is a group of interrelated structures often called the
"central autonomic network" (CAN) which form an *'internal regulation system
through which the brain controls visceromotor, neuroendocrine, pain, and hehav
ioral responses essential for survival" f 101. Control of autonomic functions such
as heart rate, blood pressure, and respirations is closely integrated within th CAN
Th principal location f th CAN th medull (includin th is a canoon which shows the
CAN. These regions within the CAN project to a variety of cerebral regions
including the amygdala, insular cortex, and the limbic portions of the striatum,
They also project lo the spinal cord autonomic neurons and have an important
influence on the locus coeruleus and the noradrenergic system [10|. In addition lo
neural input, circulating neurotransmitter substances such as angiotensin II.
atrial naturetic peptide, vasopressin, and endothelin access neural receptors in
the midbrain and medulla. Release of chemical transmitters such as epinephrine and
norepinephrine from brain structures also can have important effects on the
circulation as all of us have experienced after severe stress nr fright.
Considering this anatomy and physiology, autonomic dysfunction would be expected in
diseases that involve a variety of different areas of the nervous system, including
(1J The cerebral cortex, especially the insula and limbic system; (2} the
hypothalamus; (3) the brainstem* especially the pons and medulla; (4) the spinal
cord; (5) the autonomic ganglia and nerves; and (6) the peripheral nerves.
BRAIN DISEASES Strokes
Patients with strokes of various types have ECG abnormal it ies, arrythmias,
abnormalities of cardiac enzymes, and pathological abnormalities in the heart at
necropsy. Sometimes the strokes in these patients are caused by embolism from the
heart. Sometimes the cardiac abnormalities are explained by coexistent coronary
artery and other cardiac conditions. However, in many of these patients the
cardiac abnormalities are caused by the stroke.
The types of strokes that have been most often associated with secondary cardiac
manifestations are subarachnoid hemorrhage, large intracerebral hemorrhages,
rapidly developing subdural hematomas, and large cerebral infarcts. Brainstem
infarcts and hemorrhages, especially those that involve the medullary and caudal
pontine tegmentum, can cause blood pressure, respiratory, and heart rale
abnormalities.
The neurological signs depend on the location and size of the stroke. Many patients
have some reduction in consciousness.
Cardiovascular Clinical Manifestations
In 1947, Byer, Ashman, and Toth described marked Q-T prolongation with large T and
U waves in the electrocardiogram (ECG) of a patient wilh intracerebral
I VI V4
Fig. 4 Abnormal T-waves sometimes associaied wilh strokes (subarachnoid hemorrhage,
cerebral hemorrhage, or cerebral thrombosis). (From Burch CE, Meyers R. Abildskov
JA. A new electrocardiographic pattern observed in cerebrovascular accident's.
Circulation
1454; 9:719. Reproduced with permission.)
often subarachnoid hemorrhages [I4J. The ECG abnormalities included deeply inverted
T waves, long Q-T intervals, and abnormal U waves. An example of an ECG from their
paper is included as Figure 4 [14]. These ECG abnormalities were often referred to
as waterfall, or "cerebral T waves." In I960. Cropp and Manning reported 30
patients with subarachnoid hemorrhage and ECG abnormalitie [ 15] Prolongatio f th
Q-T interval found i 67% 55% had fla
rhages and intracerebral hemorrhages, and less often in patients with hrain
ischemia 116-25].
ECG changes are quite common in stroke patients, but often difficult to interpret
because of the concurrence of coronary and other cardiac disease and the frequent
absence of prior tracings. In one study, 9(1 of KM) consecutive acute stroke
patients had abnormal ECGs (17]. Compared to controls, the stroke patients had a
7- to 10-fold higher frequency of ST segment depression, prolonged Q-T interval,
and atrial fibrillation, and 3.5 limes the frequency of T wave inversion [ 17j. In
another study, 138 of 150 (92%) patients with acute stroke had ECG abnormalities
[18J, The most common abnormalities also represented changes from prior tracings
which were available and included Q-T prolongation (45c/i). ischemic changes (35%h
and abnormal U waves (28%) [18J.
Rolak and Rokcy summarized the ECG changes found in stroke patients in detail [22|.
The characteristic triad includes: (1) a prolonged Q-T interval; (2) T waves that
are increased in width and amplitude, either inverted or upright; and (3) abnormal
U waves [22]. Prolonged Q-T interval is the most common finding, occurring in up to
66% of acute stroke patients in some series. Since Q-T internal prolongation is
otherwise very uncommon (seen in only 46 of every |(),f>00 10,46^] hospitalized
patients), Lhe presence of this finding should raise high suspicion of stroke or
other acute brain lesion [22.23] After Q-T interval widening, T wave inversion is
the next most common rinding in stroke patients. The T waves after a stroke are
usually increased in width and amplitude and are most often inverted although they
occasionally remain upright. Large, upright or inverted T waves usually are present
soon after stroke onset but can be delayed for as long as a week after subarachnoid
hemorrhage [241. Occasionally, within hours of hospitalization the T wave
abnormalities disappear or shift from upright to inverted or from inverted to
upright [25], The abnormal U waves seen after stroke are similar to those found in
patients with hypokalemia, and are often hidden in and contribute to the width of
the T wa\es \'22\. ST-T changes can also be found after stroke and are often
indistinguishable from those found in myocardial infarct patients. If the coronary
arteries were normal prior to the stroke, the epicardial ischemia noted in the
electrocardiogram is more likely to be limited to the T wave abnormality produced
by generalized epicardial ischemia. At times an S-T segment displacement due to
generalized epicardial injury may occur when there is prolonged damage to the
epicardium. This creates ai! S I segment sector directed toward the cardiac apev
flic endocardium ma\ not be infarcted. so abnormal initial QRS forces (Q waves) are
not produced in such patients.
comparison with prior available ECG tracings showed that the arrhythmia was new
118]. Atrial fibrillation (21/150; 14%) was the most common arrhythmia in this
scries; ventricular arrythmias occurred in 5% of patients [18], Norris and
colleagues studied ihe frequency of cardiac arrhythmias among 312 stroke patients
admitted and monitored in an intensive care unit compared to 92 patients admitted
to the same unit who were later found not to have strokes [26], The most common
arrythmias in the stroke patients were atrial and ventricular ectopic beats and
atrial fibrillation [261.
A particular pattern of changes was observed in patients with brain hemorrhages
who had severe increased intracranial pressure related to cerebral herniation.
These terminal patients developed progressive bradycardia to a point of "lMi.k.l
escape followed h\ idioventricular rhythm and ImalK cardiac arrest |2M. Among 1661
patients with first strokes in the Lausanne Stroke Registry. 24 patients had
recent onset atrial fibrillation [271. A common pattern among these patients was
development of atrial fibrillation a few hours to 3 days after siroke and then
spontaneous reversion to normal sinus rhythm, a sequence believed to favor a
cerebrogenic etiology of the atrial fibrillation by the authors of this study [27].

Two studies of cardiac rhythms in patients with subarachnoid hemorrhage showed a


rather high incidence of abnormalities [28,291- In one study, multifocal
ventricular premature beats were found in 54% of 52 patients with subarachnoid
hemorrhage [28]. Couplets were present in 40%, and low-frequency unifocal
ventricular premature beats in 33% [281. Unsustaincd ventricular tachycardia
occurred in 28%, sinus bradycardia in 23%, asystolic intervals in 27%. and atrial
fibrillation in 4% [28]. Di Pasquale ct al. noted thai arrhythmias were most often
present during the first 48 hours after subarachnoid bleeding [29]. Serious
ventricular arrythmias such as bigeminy and multifocal ventricular premature beats
were accompanied by a prolonged Q-T interval 129], Torsade de poimes was found in
4% of patients with subarachnoid hemorrhage and seemed unrelated to the clinical
neurological status of the patients [301. A review of electrocardiographic changes
in siroke patients shows that sinus arrhythmia, sinus bradycardia, and sinus
tachycardia are the most common rhythm abnormalities found after stroke 122J.
Premature ventricular beats are the next most common abnormality, occurring in
over 50% of stroke patients. Unifocal and multifocal premature ventricular beats
and ventricular tachycardia are reported [22]. Atrial fibrillation, premature
atrial beats, supraventricular tachycardia, and paroxysmal atrial tachycardia have
also been noted 1221.
Elevation of cardiac-origin enzymes may occur in stroke palients, especiall thos
with brai d subarachnoid hemorrhage Plasm l d MB chai CK in 25/230 (1 Wc) of
ischemic stroke palients that they studied [34], In stroke patients peak elevations
of cardiac isoenzymes often occur on days 3 and 4 after slroke. a pattern different
from most patients wilh myocardial infarction [31 J.
After acute myocardial infarction. CK elevations above ihe normal range arc found
during the first 8 lo 16 hours; there is then a rapid rise in serum enzyme levels
wilh a peak value usually found between 18 and 26 hours and a return to baseline
levels by 48 to 72 hours 13)]. The brain contains a rich amount of BB CK. so
palients with acute brain lesions often have an elevation in serum total CK even
when there is no myocardial injury. It is very important to measure cardiac (MB CK)
and brain (BB CK) isoenzyme levels, and to monitor these levels during the first
week after stroke, in order to attempt to identify patients that have had a
myocardial infarct.
Acute pulmonary edema, which is often sudden in onset and sometimes fatal, has been
described in patients who have subarachnoid hemorrhage and vertebrobasilar
territory ischemia and hemorrhages [35,36J. Pulmonary edema is most likely to
develop when there is a sudden onset and severe increase in intracranial pressure.
Weir studied the occurrence of pulmonary edema in patients with fatal subarachnoid
hemorrhage [371. Among the 70*7r of his fatal eases of patienis with ruptured
aneurysms who developed pulmonary edema, all had the sudden onset of coma.
Respiratory symptoms were noted within a short time period after the onset of
headache and neurologic symptoms 137]. Weir attributed the occurrence of pulmonary
edema to a sudden severe increase in intracranial pressure, which in turn caused
massive autonomic stimulation. Experimental data from studies in cats confirm this
hypothesis 138J.
Centrally mediated sympathetic nervous system discharges can cause intense
systemic vasoconstriction [35]. Sympathetic discharges can be triggered by sudden
increases in intracranial pressure which cause secondary effects in the
hypothalamus and brains,em. and by direct involvement of descending sympathetic
fibers traveling in the lateral brainstem tegmentum. Intense vasoconstriction
leads to very high resistance in the systemic circulation, which in turn provokes
sudden shifts of blood volume into the lower-resistance pulmonary circulation. The
sudden increase in volume in the pulmonary vascular bed leads to increased
pulmonary capllary pressure, pulmonary hypertension, development of pulmonary
edema, rupture of pulmonary capillaries, and lung hemorrhage 136]. The pulmonary
edema fluid has a high protein content and can develop despite normal cardiac
function and hemodynamics [38],
Cardiac Pathology
lie jus who had subendocardial hemorrhages at necropsy [391. These authors found
small petechial, sometimes continent hemorrhages in the muscle tissue of the left
ventricle [391. Since then, many investigators have described pathologic changes in
the heart in slroke palients [1.6,16.17.22,35,36,41-44]. The abnormalities of
cardiac muscle cells have usually been referred to as myocytolysis. Stria-lions
within myocardial muscle cells are lost; the cytoplasm often becomes hyalintzed,
and measurements show that some en/\me> are lost from the muscle cells [221. The
number of muscle cells decrease but the sareolemma. stroma, and nuclei usually
remain. Mononuclear cells are seen infiltrating the myocardium, and connective
tissue fibers are increased, producing fibroblastic collagenization and microscopic
scars, Lipofuchsin is found within myofibrils. Frequently there is a coagulativc
type of myocytolysis in which the cardiac muscle cells die in a hyperc on traded
state wilh early myotibrillary damage and anomalous irregular cross-band formation
[1,45]. This lype of pathological change has also been called myofibrillar
degeneration and contraction band necrosis. Cells with contraction band necrosis
lend to calcify early. These cell lesions, mononuclear infiltrates, and
microscopic scars are scatterred throughout the myocardium and are not localized to
any particular vascular distribution. Often lhe most severe myocardial lesions
develop near the terminations of intracardiac autonomic nerves | 1,22]. Petechial
hemorrhages may be found predominantly in the left ventricle, septum, anterior walk
and papillary muscles 122J.
Myofibrillar degeneration, the predominant lesion found in the heart in patients
dying of subarachnoid hemorrhage and strokes, is similar to the cardiac lesion
found in some palients who ha\ e sudden unexpected deaths ] 11. This lesion is
different from coagulation necrosis, lhe predominant cardiac muscle lesion being
found in patienls wilh myocardial infarction due to coronary artery occlusion. In
coagulation necrosis, the myocardial muscle cells die in a relaxed state without
prominent contraction bands, and the myocardial abnormalities take time to become
visible under the microscope. When a cellular infiltrate is present it is usually
polymorphonuclear, and calcification occurs quite late after the infarction. In
contrast, in myofibrillar degeneration (the lesion found in siroke palients) the
muscle cells die in a hypercouUacted stale with prominent contraction hands; the
lesions are visible early, the infiltrate is mononuclear, petechiae are common, and
the abnormal cells calcify very quickly [I].
In the brain it has recently become popular to speak of reperfusion injury.
Increased release of excitatory neurotransmitters leads to excitotoxic damage to
nerve cells 1461. The supply of nutrients does not keep up with the metabolic needs
of the hyperactive nerve cells, and they die. Calcium entry into the cells b th
final killin blow Samuel ha likened th myocardial cell injur
calcification are features common to both excitotoxic nerve cell death and
myofibrillar degeneration of myocardial myocytes.
Posited Mechanisms of Myocardial Injury in Stroke Patients
A number of different theories have been proposed to explain the clinical and
morphological changes in the heart and heart function that occur after strokes.
There are three general ways in which central nervous system lesions, especially
strokes cause secondary cardiac, cardiovascular, and respiratory changes:
1.
Direct involvement of critical structures such ax the cortex of the insula of
Reil, the hypothalamus, and brainstem nuclei that make up the central autonomic
network (CAN) lead to activation of descending autonomic fiber pathways to the
heart, blood vessels, and lungs.

2.
Mass effect with compression of the hypothalamus and/or the brainstem also leads
lo activation of autonomic pathways.

3.
The acute brain lesion and its stress effects cause activation of the
hypoihalnmic-piiuilary axis, triggering the release of catecholamines and
corticosteroids.

Electrical stimulation of the anterior pan of the brain, including the frontal
pole, premotor and motor cortex, cingulate gyri, orbital frontal gyri, insular
cortex, the anterior part of the temporal lobe, amygdala, and hippocampus, has
been shown to produce cither pressor or depressor effects or atrial and ventricular
arrytlimias |9.47.481. Some of the effect may relate to a nonspecific activation of
limbic cortex, which has secondary effects on the hypothalamus, autonomic nervous
system, and hypothalamic-pituitary endocrine axis. Stimulation of the insula seems
to have a more specific relation to cardiac and cardiovascular functions. After
showing that stimulation of the posterior portions of the rat insular cortex had
reproducible effects on heart rate and rhythm. Oppenheimer and colleagues
stimulated the insular eone\ of human epileptic patients [7-91. They found that
when they electrically stimulated areas of the left human insular cortex, they
produced bradycardia and tie pressor responses, while stimulation of the right
insular cortex elicited tachycardia and pressor effects 17J. Stimulation of the
left insula decreases protective parasympathetic effects and increases
cardiovascular s\ jupaiheiic effects on the heart rate and blood pressure. This
asymmetry of autonomic function was also shown by Yoon and colleagues, who studied
autonomic function in patients given intracarotid amobarbital as part of an
evaluation for epileps \49). The found tha th righ cerebral hemispher predomi
occlusions developed an increase in Q-T intervals and had elevated plasma
norepinephrine levels, while sham-operated and left middle cerebral artery
occlusion animals had neither of these findings. They concluded that right cerebral
hemisphere infarcts caused more sympathetic nervous sysicm perturbations than
comparable left hemisphere infarcts 150J, Other investigators, using power
spectrum analysts of heart rate variability, showed that stroke patients with
middle cerebral artery territory infarcts have a significant
sympathetic/parasympathetic imbalance [51].
Projections from the cerebral cortex of the frontal lobe, sometimes passing through
the temporal lobes and thai ami. are relayed to the hypothalamus and brainstem
nuclei which then project directly to the intermediohtteral cell columns of the
thoracic spinal cord that control sympathetic nervous system output to the heart.
Stimulation of the lateral and posterior portions of the hypothalamus causes ihe
release of large amounts of catecholamines from ihe adrenal medulla [6], The
neurotransmitter involved in most autonomic nervous system activity is
acetylcholine, hui the majority of sympathetic postganglionic nerve endings,
including those within the myocardium, secrete norepinephrine. Sympathetic
stimulation mostly increases the rate and force of the heart beat and dilates
coronary arteries while parasympathetic stimulation slows the atrial rate and force
of contractions and constricts the coronary arteries [221. We have already
discussed the asymmetry of the effects of stimulation and lesions in the two
cerebral hemispheres of man. There is also an asymmetry in the effects of the
functions of the left and right stellate ganglia which contain the efferent
sympathetic fibers lo lhe heart and craniocervical blood vessels. Stimulation of
the left stellate ganglion has a more arrhylhmogcnic effect, both ventricular and
supraventricular [471. Stimulation of the left stellate ganglion produces a
reduced ventricular refractory period, perhaps making the ventricle more liable to
ventricular arrhythmias and ventricular fibrillation 147J. A similar effect can he
obtained by cooling the right stellate ganglion, thus making the discharges from
the left dominant.
Brainstem compression arid direct involvement of the medulla oblongata can lead to
vagal discharges. These discharges in turn can lead to sinus bradycardia, cardiac
arrhythmias, and even cardiac arrest as well as elevation of systolic blood
pressure and a fall in diastolic blood pressure. This train of events is the likely
explanation of the blood pressure and pulse changes found in patients with
increased intracranial pressure and brain herniations that were discovered and
emphasized by Harvey Cushing and are usually called the Cushing response.
Considerable evidence supports a role for catecholamines in mediating the cardiac
abnormalities found in stroke patients. Intravenous infusion of norepinephrin
myocardial toxicit d myocytolysi 152,53J Patient with Patients with subarachnoid
hemorrhages who have high plasma levels of epinephrine and norepinephrine have
worse outcomes than those with normal or slightly elevated catecholamine levels
148.55]. In experimental animal studies, pretrealment with reserpine, a drug that
decreases stores of monoamines, markedly reduces or abolishes the myocardial
damage lhat follows induction nf intracranial bleeding [48.56,57]. ECG
abnormalities correlate with concentrations of catecholamines within the heart in
experimental animals [581. The most prominent cell damage occurs in the myocardial
cells located nearest to intracardiac sympathetic nerve terminals [22,43.48,591.
Cardiac damage in experimental animals with induced intracranial hemorrhages can be
prevented by prior adrenalectomy or beta-adrenergic blockade 157,60). Since
catecholamine levels in humans seldom reach the high levels needed to induce
myocytolysis in experimental animals, direct intracardiac release of
norepinephrine from nerve endings within the heart is more likely to explain the
cardiac muscle damage found in patients wrilh acute strokes ihan is systemic
elevation nf catecholamines [22|. Local catecholamines within the heart affect
electrical conduction and heart rhythm as well as myocardial cell function [22J.
Stress and corticosteroids have also been implicated in causing and amplifying
cardiac muscle damage 11.62-641. Selye first reported that cardiac lesions,
probably identical to myofibrillar degeneration, could be reliably induced in
experimental animals by pretreatment with certain corticosteroids followed by
environmental stress 162J. Elevated corticosteroid levels probably can exagerate
the effects of catecholamines on the heart but are unlikely lo alone explain the
damage [1J.
Myocardial damage can be caused by a catecholamine storm in which the blood levels
of catecholamines are elevated or when the level of catecholamines is increased in
the myocardium itself, Myocardial damage can occur in an otherwise normal heart as
the result of strokes, the intravenous injection of cocaine, and the catecholamine
storm that occurs in patients with pheochromocytomas. Not only can myocytes be
damaged directly, but excessive amounts of catecholamines can cause constriction of
the epicardial coronary arteries rather than dilatation, as occurs with smaller
amounts of catecholamines. Epinephrine usually dilates the corona 17 arteries. Its
action is complex in that the dilatation is the sum of opposing forces. Epinephrine
constricts the coronary arteries, but the increase in myocardial contraction
induced by epinephrine produces metabolites that dilate the coronary arteries lo a
greater degree than epinephrine constricts them [64af Constriction of the
epicardial coronary arteries is thought to occur when the catecholamine receptors
are overwhelmed or when segments of the coronary arteries hypersensitive with th
earl f atherosclerosis
normal. The net result of the two conditions, coronary atherosclerosis and
catecholamine storm, tnay be additive, causing extensive myocardial damage
including myocardial infarctions.
Sudden Death, Especially During Extreme Stress
Since antiquity, there are many accounts of sudden death ("dropping dead")
precipitated by frightening, very stressful emotional experiences. The Bible
eontains some vivid examples. "Scared to death" has long been a popular idiom that
testifies to the potential seriousness of emotional trauma. Walter Cannon, the
renowned Harvard physiologist, published a paper in 1942 entitled ''Voodoo death."*
in which he recounted examples from the anthropology literature of death from
fright 11,65}. Cannon posited that the cause of death was "a lasting and intense
action of the sympathico-adrenal system" [651. I11 1971. George Engel collected 160
accounts of sudden deaths attributed lo emotional duress [661. The stresses were
usually very severe losses or threats of loss, e.g., collapse or dealh of a person
very close to the individual, personal danger, loss of self-esteem, mourning.
Occasionally triumphs or cessation of danger also precipitated sudden death 1661,
All of the precipitating events involved circumstances impossible to ignore that
created responses of overwhelming excitation, resignation, or despondency 11,66 J.

Selye recognized the cardiac lesions found in stress-related deaths [62J. This
lesion is now referred to as myofibrillar degeneration, or my ocy to lysis. The
process is identical to lhat found in the hearts of patients dying of subarachnoid
hemorrhage and other acute strokes. Wc have described this cardiac palhology in
detail in the section of this chapter on strokes (pp. 307-308).
Pavlov and his followers were able lo produce ECG abnormalities and cardiac muscle
necrosis by stimulation along the efferent limb of the sympathetic nervous system
and by stimulating the aortic arch and carotid baroreceptors involved in autonomic
nervous system reflex activity [K67,68], As discussed above in the section on
stroke, sympathetic stimulation can cause the sudden release of norepinephrine from
cardiac nerve endings into ihe heart muscle, leading to cardiac myocyte necrosis
and cardiac dysfunction and arrhythmias. Stimulation of cardiac sympathetic nerves
accelerates sinoatrial depolarization, shortening the cycle length of firing of the
sinus node [48,691. Intense sympathetic stimulation can cause tachycardias [69-71].
Ventricular fibrillation can be consistently elicited in both normal and ischemic
hearts by stimulation of cardiac sympathetic nerves 172-741.
Parasympatheti activit als ha profound effec th hear d it showing thai increased
vagal discharge and tone preceded death [1,751. Slow ing of the heart rate has also
been referred to as the i1iduck-diving reflex*' since severe bradycardia ami sinus
arrest often follow the immersion of ducks into cold water. Stimulation of the
vagus nerve or application of acetylcholine to the sinoatrial node slows or
abolishes depolarization of sinus node fibers [48,69J. Decreased depolarization and
shifts of membrane threshold potentials decrease the sinoiatrial node rate,
leading to sinus bradycardia |69|. Similar changes occur at the atrioventricular
mxJe [70|. To summarize simplistieally, neurogenic bradycardia is often vagally
induced (parasympathetic) while tachycardia is usually related to sympathetic
nervous system discharge [71 ].
Sudden and intense autonomic stimulation, both sympathetic and parasympathetic^
triggered by activation of limbic cerebral cortex by emotionally charged stimuli
and mediated through the hypothalamus and brainstem nuclei and tracts, can induce
cardiac electrical changes that cause sudden stress-related death. Stress, acting
ihrongh tile hypothalamic pituitary-adrenal LIS is and through \ari ous metabolic
and immune-related mechanisms, can also have profound effects on the internal
milieu in which the autonomic nervous system and the heart and cardiovascular
system are operating [76], Some sudden deaths are also, of course, related to acute
coronary artery vasoconstriction and thrombosis. Parasympathetic activation can
promote coronary artery vasoconstriction [22]. Coronary artery thrombosis can also
be precipitated by activation of platelets and components of the coagulation
cascade induced by the increased levels of acute-phase reactants that accompany
acute stress.
Epilepsy
Seizures are a relatively common manifestation of many different conditions that
involve the central nervous system, predominantly the cerebral hemispheres of the
brain. When seizures become recurrent, the disorder is often referred to as
epilepsy. In children and young adults, epilepsy is most often idiopathic, meaning
that an etiology is not obvious after testing. Genetic factors play a large role in
causing idiopathic epilepsy. Some patients have hippocampal scarring, often
referred to as Amnion's horn sclerosis because of the consistent localization of
the scarring within certain regions of the hippocampal formations within the medial
temporal lobes of the brain. Other children with epilepsy have scars from birth-
related or intrauterine brain injuries or malformations. A minority of seizures in
young patients are caused by tumors, infections, and strokes. Most seizures that
begin in adulthood are caused by acquired brain disorders such as trauma, strokes,
infections help to localize the origin of the electrical discharge within the
brain; these focal discharges then spread to the thalamus and both cerebral
hemispheres to cause a frank convulsion. Partial seizures (focal epilepsy) are
limited lo motor (e.g., jerking or twitching of one limb), sensory (paresthesia or
visual, olfactory, vestibular, auditory experiences), emotional (e.g., fear, deja
vu, pleasure), or cognitive (e.g., feeling outside of oneself, believing one is in
another place, feeling lhat one is in a class) experiences. Jaeksonian seizures in
which twitching or jerking of muscles gradually spreads from one part of the body
to another is a form of focal epilepsy. Partial complex seizures usually involve
similar sensory, emotional, or cognitive experiences followed by some loss of
alertness or consciousness without frank generalized convulsive movements. Petit
mat attacks involve very brief repeated lapses of alertness or posture without
sensory or other experiences.
Occasionally a cardiac arrhythmia can accompany epileptic attacks lhat have focal
neurological features (partial or partial complex seizures). It is possible that,
in some patients, an arrhythmia could be the only manifestation of an epileptic
attack although this occurrence must be quite rare. One of the authors (L.R.C.)
consulted on a patient with an intermittent tachycardia that had been very
resistant to treatment with the usual cardiac antiarrhythmia drugs. This woman said
that sometimes before she developed rapid heart beating she saw a train with
several cars coming toward her from the side. When the last car on the short train,
the caboose, entered her vision her heart began to beat very rapidly. In some
attacks, she saw the train but had no tachycardia. Sometimes she had tachycardia
and did not sec the train. Most often, however, the \isiou of the train preceded
the tachycardia. She had focal epileptic discharges on her EEG. and prescription of
anticonvulsants slopped the train visions and the paroxysmal tachycardias in this
patient. A young patient described by Gilchrist had episodes of sudden loss of
consciousness that did not respond to phenytoin therapy [77]. Sick sinus syndrome
was found after an episode of loss of consciousness but ihe blackout attacks
continued despite insertion of a demand ventricular pacemaker. Combined EEG and ECG
monitoring during a seizure showed a left temporal paroxysmal discharge and an
ictal cardiac arrythmia [771. A seizure focus in the frontal or temporal lobes or
near the insular cortex could reproduce the same cardiac affects lhat have been
observed during stimulation of these brain regions in animals and humans [69].
The frequencies of cardiac and cardiovascular phenomena accompanying focal
seizures, including arrhythmias and pulse and blood pressure changes, have only
occasionally been well studied. White et al. induced generalized convulsive seizure
i paralyzed d ventilated epilepti patient b givin the pentylme ambulatory cassette
monitoring to record simultaneously the ECG and ECG during 74 spontaneous seizures
among 26 patients who had the diagnosis of temporal lobe epilepsy (partial complex
seizures) [79], In 24 (92%) patients seizures were accompanied by an increase in
heart rate: the maximum heart rate was >12t) in 67% of seizures, and >I6() in 12%.
Ictal cardiac arrhythmias occurred in 42% of patients. Most common was an irregular
series of abrupt heart rate changes toward the end of the EEG seizure discharge
[79], Sinus arrest can also occur in relation to epileptic seizures. Kiok et al.
reported the case of a 23-year-old man with no demonstrable heart disease who had
prolonged sinus arrest. lasting up to 9 seconds at the time of clinically observed
seizures [80J. The blood pressure may rise during epileptic seizures as much as 50
to 100 mm Hg above the baseline, and catecholamine levels arc increased [811.
Sudden death has been described during epileptic attacks, especially during status
epilepticus. Patients wilh epilepsy have a higher frequency of sudden death than
lhe general population [82-85]. The frequency of sudden unexplained death among
epileptics lias been esiimated at 0.05% to 0.2% [84]. Some of these deaths are due
to accidents, aspiration, and the primary central nervous system disease that
caused the epilepsy. In some patients severe repeated electrical brain discharges
could induce the autonomic and neuroendocrine changes described above under strokes
and sudden deaths.
Natelson el al. examined the hearts of seven palients with epilepsy who died
suddenly t85aj. Five of these seven hearts had foci of myocyte vacuolization, a
potentially reversible abnormality. Four of the hearts also showed chronic
myocardial damage consisting of perivascular myocardial fibrosis and regions where
myocardial libers had disappeared. Interstitial fibrosis with loss of myocardial
fibers was a common finding and was attributed to past episodes of myocytolysis
[85a], Myocytolysis and cardiac arrhythmias are probably important mechanisms of
sudden death in epileptic patients. Some epileptic patients may develop chronic
myocardial dysfunction and arrythmias caused by myocardial damage during seizures.

Parkinson's Disease and Other "Extrapyramidal" Disorders


The signs of Parkinson's disease are very well known to most practicing
physicians. The cardinal manifestationsstooped posture, small-stepped slow gait,
masklike fades, lack of arm swing, tremor, and stiffness of the arms and legs were
described by Parkinson in the early years of the I9ih century [86]. He noted thes
manifestation b observin individual h th withou
urinary bladder related to abnormalities of autonomic nervous system function fX6j.
The predominant pathology found in the brains of Parkinsonian patients is Lewy body
inclusions in the substantia nigra of the midbrain and in the locus coeruteus in
the pons 187J. These areas are major sites of dopamine synthesis in the brain. The
changes in the substantia nigra lead to degenerative changes in the striatum, where
the efferent fibers from the substantia nigra synapse. Some patients with
Parkinsonism have more extensive Lewy body deposition and degenerative changes
that lead to abnormal mental function, hallucinations, and other neurological signs
[88], Neuropathological studies of the autonomic nervous system of patients dying
with Parkinsonism also show thai Lewy bodies can involve the hypothalamus,
intermcdiolateral cell column of the spinal cord, sympathetic ganglia, and dorsal
vagal and other parasympathetic nuclei 1891Some drugs, e.g.. phenothiazines and
haloperidol. can cause limb and truncal rigidity, closely mimicking Parkinson's
disease,
A number of other neurological degenerative conditions also involve ihe nigro-
striatal dopaminergic regions of the brain, causing some features seen in
Parkinsonian patients. These conditions have sometimes been grouped together and
called Parkinson's + because they all show other important lindings and signs not
often found in patients with Parkinson's disease. The most common and important of
these Parkinson's 4- conditions are progressive supranuclear palsy, corticobasal
degeneration, and multisystem atrophy.
Progressive supranuclear palsy (PSP) is also often referred to as the
SteeleRichardson-Olzewski syndrome, after the neurologists and neuropathologists
that first described the disorder 190.91). It is probably the commonest condition
frequently misdiagnosed as Parkinson's disease. Palients with PSP have severe
difficulty with truncal balance and often fall when they lean or turn. Frequent
falls, often with fractures, remain a problem throughout the course of the disease.
Patients with PSP also develop prominent mental changes characterized by apathy,
slowness, and decreased speech and cognitive skills. The hallmark of the disease
and the sign that gave the disorder its name is the abnormality of voluntary eye
movements. Patients most often have difficulty looking up or down spontaneously
and when asked to do so, Later, they may also develop difficulty directing their
gaze and their eyes horizontally to the sides. This deficiency in conjugate
voluntary eye movements makes it difficult for them to direct their gaze at objects
that they want to see and makes it difficult to follow lines when reading, Passive
movements of the head and neck result in normal or heightened conjugate ocular
movements, indicating thai the disorder of eye motions is "supranuclear" (lhai is,
involving descending pathways lhat influence conjugate gaze) and not due to
involvement f th oculomoto nuclei thei afferent efferent fibers and jaw reflexes
are brisk and hyperactive, indicating a supranuclear pseudobulbar mechanism of the
dysarthria and dysphagia dial invariably accompany the disease. Limb and truncal
stiffness resemble that found in Parkinson's disease bul the patienls do not have
tremor. Falls, dementia. Parkinsonian rigidity, pyramidal tract abnormalities, and
abnormalities ol voluntary gaze arc the hallmarks of this progressive disorder
[92]. The brain paihology in PSP is neurofibrillary degeneration predominantly in
the neurons of the brainstem, thalamus, and basal ganglia. Loss of neurons and
gliosis are most prominent in the periaqueductal gray matter of the midbrain, the
superior col lieu I us, subthalamic nucleus, red nucleus, globus pallidus, dentate
nucleus of the cerebellum, and the pretectal and vestibular nuclei 1911. The
symptoms of PSP usually begin in midlife or older, and lhe disease insidiously
progresses over 5 to 10 years to cause very severe disability and death.
Corticobasal degeneration is a disorder which is also progressive. The
neurological abnormalities are asymmenical, with rigidity, dystonia, and apraxia
affecting the limbs on one side of the body 194.95J. The disorder in some ways
resembles hemi-Parkinson ism in some patients. Sometimes there is jerking in the
affected limbs as well as some sensory loss. Achromatic swollen neurons are often
found ai necropsy within the cerebral cortex, There are also degenerative changes
in the striatum, substantia nigra, thalamus, locus coe rule us, subthalamic
nucleus, and the red nucleus.
Multisystem atrophy (MSA) with autonomic failure was formerly called Shy-Drager
syndrome 196,971. It is another degenerative condition that often includes
symptoms and findings that mimic Parkinson's disease, in addition to limb
stiffness, dysarthria, and dysphagia, patients wilh MSA often have cerebeltarlype
limb and gait ataxia and autonomic nervous system abnormalities. Postural
hypotension and urinary and sexual dysfunction can be very early symptoms. In the
original cases described by Shy and Drager. postural hypotension was the most
conspicuous sign of the disease [96.971. The pathology in patients with MSA is
widespread and involves the substantia nigra, striatum, brainstem nuclei, and the
intermediolateral columns of the spinal cord. In some patients the disorder begins
with ataxia and Parkinsonian-type limb stiffness, and lhe pathology is similar to
that found in patients with sporadic, nonfamilial oUvoponto cerebellar atrophy
(OPCA) [98,99J. Distinctive inclusions of tubular structures are characteristically
found within oligodendroglial and neuronal nuclei |98|. In most patients wilh MSA.
dysaulonomia, including severe postural hypotension, impotence, and micturition
dysfunction, is major and the signs develop early. Hoarseness, dysarthria, and
dysphagia are also prominent.
disorder was once referred to as * "arteriosclerotic Parkinson's disease. Symptoms
do not respond well to L-dopa. A number nf other relatively rare conditions affeci
the extrapyramidal system. Striatonigral degeneration is a degenerative condition
affecting the basal ganglia and ihe substantia nigra 1102J. Progressive
Parkinsonian rigidity, often without tremor, is the cardinal sign of this
condition, which does not respond to L-dopa. Many patients with striatonigral
degeneration also have olivoponto cerebellar atrophy and qualify for the
multisystem atrophy syndrome. Hallevorden-Spatz disease invokes deposition of iron
in the basal ganglia, substantia nigra, and the red ancle us 1103,104]. Patients
have a Parkinsonian gait and trunk and limb rigidity. Response to L-dopa is also
poor. MRl scans often can show the iron deposition, thus facilitating recognition
of this rare disorder. Huntington's chorea is a neurodegenerative disorder
involving the caudate nucleus and the frontal lobes. The disorder is characterized
predominantly by sudden abnormal limb and facial movements and dementia. Rigidity
develops later except in children, in whom stiffness and rigidity may be an early
manifestation of this dominanlly inherited familial disease. Machodo Joseph's
disease is a dominantly inherited disease that affects the pons, dentate nucleus,
spinocerebellar tracts, and anterior horn cells in the spinal cord. Some patients
have prominent Parkinsonian symptoms, often with ataxia. The disease is most
prevalent in individuals of Portugese origin.
The major cardiovascular abnormality in patients with these extrapyramidal
disorders is postural hypotension. The hypotension is most often caused by
involvement of the intermediolateral column of sympathetic neurons in the spinal
cord in patients wilh MSA and in some patients with Parkinson's disease, and does
not respond to treatment with L-dopa or dopamine agonists. The highest density of
dopamine terminals ED the spinal cord is found in the inlermediolateral cell
columns 1105], Degeneration of ihese cells could follow or coexist with changes in
the substantia nigra and striatum. Many of the most effective drugs that are now
used to treat Parkinsonian symptoms and signs have hypotension as an important side
effect. L-dopa. combinations of earbidopaand L-dopa. dopamine agonists
(brorncriptine, pergolide, ropinirole. prumipexolet, and newer drugs that increase
the availability of L-dopa by inhibiting COMT(catecholamine orthomethyl
transferase), including tolcapone and entecaponc, all can cause or exacerbate
postural hypotension. The decrease in blood pressure is relatively dose dependent;
hypotension is most severe at high doses of L-dopa and dopamine agonists.
Previously hypertensive patients may gradually require less antihypertensive
medication, and in many patients antihypertensive treatment can eventually be
discontinued. Postural hypotension is worsened by hypovolemia. Some Parkinsonia
patients becaus f micturitio difficultie d altered gait which such as maximizing
fluid intake, using pressure stockings such as Jobsi hoses, and/or prescribing
pressure-raising drugs such as ephedrine or fludrocortisone (FlorineO. Postural
hypotension is not a problem in patienls with PSPor Hallev-orden-Spatz disease, who
do not take antiparkinsonian drugs, Huntington's chorea patients do not have
postural hypotension.
Other Brain Diseases
Other primary brain diseases have been less thoroughly investigated for their
effects on cardiac and cardiovascular functions. The major factors that relate to
potential cardiac and cardiovascular effects of brain lesions are their size,
location, and whether or not they cause herniation of brain contents and increase
intracranial pressure. Focal lesions, such as brain tumors, brain abscesses, focal
regions of encephalitis, and focal brain contusions or other traumatic injuries
could cause arrhythmias and other cardiovascular abnormalities if they are located
in strategic locations known to be potentially arrythmogenic during stimulation,
such as the temporal lobes or insula. Electrical stimulation of certain areas
within the brain, including the frontal pole, pre motor and motor cortex, cingulate
gyri, orbital frontal gyri, insular cortex, ihe anterior part of the temporal lobe,
amygdala, and hippocampus, has been known to produce either pressor or depressor
effects or atrial and ventricular arrythmias 16-9.47,48J. Slow-growing lesions such
as tumors are in general less likely to cause focal disturbances in function
including cardiovascular affects than sudden-onset rapidly developing conditions
such as strokes and brain injuries.
Degenerative disorders that affect the cerebrum, other than those already discussed
under Extrapyramidal Disorders, such as Alzheimer's disease. Pick's disease, motor
neuron disease I including amyotrophic lateral sclerosis [ALS]) the slow virus
prion protein, diseases Jakob-Creutzfeldt and Gerstmann-Straussler-Scheinker
disease, are not known to have important effects on either cardiac or
cardiovascular functions. However, in another prion protein disorder called fatal
familial insomnia, patients often have autonomic nervous system abnormalities
1106]. Impotence, micturition abnormalities, constipation, abnormal sweating, and
orthoststatic hypotension have been described. The major pathological changes in
patienls with fatal familial insomnia are found in the thalamus, where there is
selective degeneration of some thalamic nuclei, mostls the anterior and dorsomedial
nuclei f 106]. The dorsomedial thalamic nucleus plays a role in cardiac and
cardiovascular functions [9,106]. Chronic neurological degenerative diseases that
cause either dementia or bulbar dysfunction and dysphagia may profoundl affec
nutrition Secondar nutritional deficiencies f thiamin
hypotension may be explained by hypothalamic and brainstem lesions and/or by
peripheral neuropathy since both are commonly found in this thiamine deficiency
syndrome. The tachycardia could be pari of ihe dysaulonomia or be due to the direct
effect of thiamine deficiency on the heart, in more severe thiamine deficiency,
frank beriberi may occur.
Processes that affect the hypothalamus may affect temperature and blood pressure
control. Similarly, disorders that affect the tegmental region of the pons and
medulla oblongata within ihe brainstem can cause lability of blood pressure and
have important effects on respiration. Control of autonomic functions such as heart
rate, blood pressure, and respiration is closely integrated within the central
autonomic network [10,11]. The principal components of the CAN include: (1) the
ventrolateral medulla and the medullary reticular zone: (2) the nucleus of the
solitary.' tract (NTS) in the medulla: (3 i the parabrachial region in the pons;
(4) the periaqueductal gray in ihe midbrain; and (5) the preoptic region in ihe
hypothalamus. These regions project to a variety of brain regions including the
amygdala, insular cortex, and the limbic portions of the striatum. The
parabrachial Kailiker-Fuse region in the dorsolateral pons relays visceral sensory
input to the forebrain and has a very important role in the control of respiration
and circulation [10,11].
Reis and colleagues, in a series of experiments, showed that a number of brainstem
structures have a very important influence on cerebral blood flow and
cerebrovascular autoregul at ion and metabolism 1109.110J. Stimulation of some key
structures globally increases cerebral blood flow, affects heart rate and blood
pressure, and affects vasodilatation and aulorcgulalion globally and in certain
brain regions. The major centers wilh regulatory function in animal experiments
include: the cerebellum-fustigial nuclei: the medullaNTS. ventrolateral
reticular nuclei (RVLh and the dorsal medullary reticular formation (DMRF); ihe
ponsparabrachial nuclei, locus coeruleus: the midbraindorsal raphe nucleus: and
the thalamuscentromedian and parafascicular complex [1101.
The medulla and pons contain centers lhat have important effects on respirations.
The medulla contains both a dorsal and a ventral respiratory group; lesions below
the medulla completely interrupt breathing. The dorsal respiratory group of neurons
are located in the ventrolateral portion of the solitary tract and receive visceral
sensory a ffe rents through the glossopharyngeal I (IX) and vagal
(X) cranial nerves. The dorsal medullary respiratory center is mostly inspiratory
and drives the phrenic nerve motor neurons and the ventral respiratory group
1111,1121. The ventral respiratory group includes neurons in the nucleus ambiguus,
supplying the recurrent laryngeal nerve, and the nucleus reiroambiguus, which
extend fro th obe f ventricl IV t th first cervical t f th in the pons have been
called the pneumoiaxic center because they receive input from Lhe medullary centers
lo control respiratory patterns and depih | J 1 1.1 \2\.
Cessation of automatic respiration has long been known to follow high cervical
spinal cord injuries and bulbar poliomyelitis [113,114]. High cervical cord lesions
disconnect neurons that innervate respiratory muscles from medullary control. The
lesions in bulbar poliomyelitis that cause cessation of automatic respirations
involve the nerve cells in the lateral medulla. Several reports describe patients
with bilateral infarcts in the lateral tegmental regions of the pons and medulla
who slopped breathing during sleep 1115-1 IN |, The inability to continue to
automatically initiate respirations during sleep has often been referred to as
Ond'mes curse after the myth of a water nymph, Ondine, who, in an adaptation by
Jean Gradoux of an old German legend, cursed the knight Hans following his marital
misconduct by revoking his automatic functions, causing Hans to sleep to death
[115]. Unilateral lateral tegmental infarcts have occasionally been reported to
also cause Ondine's curse [ 117.1 IS].
Brainstem tumors, brainstem encephalitis, e.g., caused by Listeria monocytogenes
[I 19,1201, nnd strokes are the most common conditions that involve the portions of
the brainstem that includes the CAN and are involved in respiratory control. Large,
space-taking lesions in the cerebral or cerebellar hemispheres such as hemorrhages,
infarcts, tumors, abscesses, or subdural hematomas can cause secondary pressure
effects on the hypothalamus and the brainstem. The Cushing reflex of sudden
elevation of systolic blood pressure, lowering of diastolic blood pressure, and
slowing of the pulse is probably mediated through brainstem compression of
structures within the CAN 1121 J.
SPINAL CORD DISORDERS Relevant Spinal Cord Anatomy and Physiology
Lesions of the spinal cord can cause cardiac dysfunction and myocardial ischemia,
respiratory insufficiency, and various abnormalities of autonomic nervous system
functions including lability of pulse and blood pressure, and even cardiac arrest.
Descending fiber pathways from the cerebral hemispheres, thalami. and brainstem
that relate to the control of respirations and to autonomic nervous system
functions travel within the white matter tracts of the spinal cord 1122|, Motor
pathways, both corticospinal (pyramidal tract) and extrapyramidal, also descend
within the white matter tracts of the spinal cord; these libers subserve voluntary
and involuntary control of the muscles of respiration. Wiihin the ventral gray-
f th spinal d th tha innervat th respirator muscle the spinal cord are the neurons
that are the source of efferent sympathetic nervous system supply to die
sympathetic ganglia and to the heart and vascular systems. The predominant afferent
input to the spinal cord from visceral affercnts carrying information from the
heart travels in the second and third thoracic nerves (T2 and T3) [I23J, while
sympathetic nervous system effercnts arise from Tl to T5. Electrical stimulation of
the rostral five thoracic nerve roots elicits changes in pulse and blood pressure,
localized changes in cardiac muscle contractile force, and changes in the pattern
of impulse conduction f 123].
Effects of Spinal Cord Injuries at Various Levels and Sites
The effects of spinal cord damage most often have been studied clinically in
patienls with acute spinal cord traumatic injuries. After acute severe injuries, a
state of "spinal shock" often ensues. Somatic motor and sensory functions are lost
below the level of the spinal injury, causing paralysis and loss of pain,
temperature, touch, and proprioceptive sensations. There is also a loss of
sympathetic nervous system functions. Because the parasympathetic innervation of
the heart and vascular system arising from the vagus nerve in the brainstem does
not travel within the spinal cord, in patients with cervical, thoracic, and lumbar
spinal cord injuries parasympathetic influences are preserved while sympathetic
innervation is lost. The skin below the level of the injury becomes hyperemic and
warm, blood pools in the veins of the lower extremities, and there is decreased
venous return of blood to the heart. Systemic hypotension develops and may be
severe. The vagal tone firing action on the heart is unopposed by sympathetic
nervous system activity. Tonic stimulation of the vagus nerve prolongs the length
of the cardiac cycle and prolongs the refractory period of atrioventricular node
fibers. Vagal stimulation also inhibits atrial contraction and thereby attenuates
the atrial contribution to ventricular filling f 124]. Bradycardia, heart block,
and even cardiac arrest can result from die unopposed vagal tone.
Spinal cord injuries have important effects on breathing and respiratory functions.
Lesions of the most rostral portions of the cervical spinal cord interrupt
descending tracts that control the activity of the muscles of respiration. When
spinal cord lesions are near the medullary-spinal junction, as occurs in patients
wilh atlantoaxial dislocations and after hanging, palients stop breathing and all
respiratory muscles are paralyzed. When the cervical spinal cord lesion involves
the third in ihe fifth cervical segments (C3-C5), levels that include the neurons
lhat contribute to ihe phrenic nerves, the diaphragm is paralyzed as well th
thoraci intercostal musculature Diaphragmati paralysi allo th
tion. Tidal volume and inspiratory and expiratory reserve volumes are decreased and
residual volume is markedly increased fl25|. When the spinal cord lesion is below
C5, the diaphragms and accessory cervical respiratory muscles are preserved but
ibe thoracic intercostal muscles are paralyzed. Respiratory insufficiency and
hypoventilation can also develop in this circumstance II26J.
The cardiac and cardiovascular abnormalities accompanying acute spinal cord
injuries have been less well studied than the respiratory abnormalities. Lehman et
al. monitored 71 consecutive patients with spinal cord injuries using ECG and blood
pressure monitoring techniques 1127|. Most of the severe cardiac and cardiovascular
effects were limited to patients who had severe cervical spinal cord injuries:
patients with less severe cervical cord injuries and those with thoracic-lumbar
injuries less often had abnormalities and the abnormalities when present were less
severe [ 127L Hypotension was present in 68% of palients with severe cervical
spinal cord injuries bul was not present in any of the patients with less severe
cervical injuries or those with thoracolumbar lesions, Bradycardia contributed to
the hypotension. All of the patienls with severe cervical cord lesions had
persistent bradycardia (<6() bcats/min), and marked bradycardia was present in 71%
of these patients. Persistent bradycardia sometimes developed in patients with
milder cervical cord lesions (35%) and thoracolumbar lesions (13%) but was less
severe. The prevalence of persistent bradycardia peaked at day 4 after injury and
gradually declined during the next 10 days. Cardiac arrest occurred in five of the
31 patients with severe cervical cord traumatic injuries and was invariably
preceded by persistent bradycardia and hypotension requiring pressor therapy.
Repolarizaion changes in the ECG were common in all groups of patients with spinal
cord injuries [127]. Four palients wilh severe cervical cord injuries had new
atrioventricular block, including three with first-degree and one with Mobitz type
1 second-degree block. Supraventricular tachyrhythmias, most commonly atrial
fibrillation, developed in \9% of patients with severe cervical spinal cord
injuries [1271.
The cardiac abnormalities described in patients wilh spinal cord injuries are
mostly explained by the acute autonomic nervous system imbalance that follows
disruption of sympathetic nervous system activity leading lo unopposed
parsympathetic dominance. Baseline and stress-induced catecholamine levels are
low, a manifestation of i he reduced sympathetic activity 1128]. Tabic 1 lists the
evidence supporting the attribution of the cardiovascular effects of spinal
injuries to the altered parasympathetic/sympathetic nervous system balance. In
recently injured cjuadriplegic patients, parasympathetic (vagal) activity and re
Ilexes may even be enhanced over the normal situation f 129*1. For example,
tracheal suction can cause bradycardi d cardia Thi d i blocked b
TABLE 1 Evidence Favoring Unbalanced Parasympathetic tVagal) Activity as Cause ul
Acute Cardiac and Cardiovaseulaj Abnormalities in Patients wilh Acute Spinal Cord
Injuries
1.
Bradyarrhylhmias and cardiac arrest occur predominantly in cervical spinal cord
lesions and are not often found in lesions below T4. the lowest level of
sympathetic efferent out How.

2.
Low catecholamine levels are found, even after stress.

3, There is decreased augmentation of the heart rate even after high-dose


atropine due to the lack of sympathetic nervous system activity.
4. There is a lack of response of the heart rale to propanolol even after
parasympa
dietic block. 5, Low-dose sympalheticomimetic drugs can prevent development of
bradyarrhylhmias. 6, Unopposed vagal tone mimics many of the cardiac abnormalities
found in patients
wilh cervical spinal cord injuries including bradycardia, atrioventricular block,
and atrial fibrillation.

Source: Modified from Ret. 127 with permission.


system responses to visceral and other stimuli. The exaggerated response is
usually called autonomic dysreflexia [130]. The most important feature of ihe
response is sudden, often severe rise in blood pressure often accompanied by
sweating and piloerection. Table 2 lists the clinical findings found during
autonomic dysreflexic attacks. If uncontrolled, the acute hypertension can lead to
brain hemorrhage or a hypertensive encephalopathy syndrome characterized by
seizures, brain edema, cortical blindness, and papilledema. Hypertensive attacks
are most
TABLE 2 Autonomic DysreflexiaClinical Findings
1.
A 'full" feeling in the head
2.
Hot ears

3.
Throbbing headache

4.
Chest lighuiess

5.
Dyspnea

6.
Above level of spinal cord lesionpallor followed by flushing of the face and
neck and increased sweating

7.
Below level of spinal cord lesioncold digits, piloerection. contraction of
urinary bladder and large bowel, penile erection, and seminal fluid emission

8.
Hypertension, sometimes severe

often precipitated by bladder or rectal distension. Colonoscopy or other visceral


examinations or manipulations can also trigger atttacks. Bladder stimulation in
palients with autonomic dysreflexia is followed by an abrupt rise in mean arterial
pressure, an increase in heart rate, and an increase in plasma levels of
norepinephrine [131], Peripheral receptors become hypersensitive to this
neurotransmitter (denervation hypersensitivity), explaining the exaggerated
response.
Curt and colleagues systematically studied autonomic dysreflexia among 40 patients
wilh chronic (>6 months old) traumatic spinal cord injuries [1321. None of the
paraplegic patients but 13/22 (59%) of the tetraplegic palients showed signs of
autonomic dysreflexia during urodynamic testing. In 93% of the patients symptoms
and signs of autonomic dysreflexia correlated with tests of sympathetic nervous
system-mediated skin responses. Patients with complete tetraplegia had a loss of
circadian rhythinicily of their blood pressure (mediated by sympathetic control),
but these palients had preserved heart rate and rhythm control ihat was
parasympalhetically mediated [132). Ambulatory blood pressure measurements were
abnormal in 10% of patients with autonomic dysreflexia 1132f
Irritation of the sympathetic nervous system neurons in the mtermediolateral
columns of the upper thoracic spinal cord or their efferent connections can have
important effects on coronary artery blood flow as well as on the heart. One
reported patient, a 53-year-old woman, was hospitalized after a severe episode of
angina that occurred at rest [ 133]. She had no prior history of heart or vascular
disease or angina pectoris. Her LCG showed horizontal ST segment depression up to 3
mm in leads V2 through V6. A transthoracic echocardiogram showed anleroseptal
hypokinesia. Her symptoms improved after intravenous nitroglycerin and heparin.
Coronary angiography was normal 2 days later. Simultaneous with her cardiac
symptoms was the evolution of an acute, presumably demyelinative spinal cord
lesion involving mostly the T3 and T4 thoracic spinal cord segments. The thoracic
spinal cord lesion which involved the levels known to include major sympathetic
neurons and their connections likely led to coronary artery VUNOCOIIS I I iction
due to activation of the cardiac s\inpametic ne ^cs j 1 13 j.
Patients with spina! cord lesions other than due to trauma have seldom been studied
using cardiac and/or cardiovascular monitoring. Patients with syringomyelia, a
disorder characterized by a cyst in the center of the spinal cordmost often
located in the cervical and thoracic spinal cord and involving the anterior horn
and intermediolateral colums on at least one sidehave been known to develop
postural hypotension presumably related to decreased sympathetic nervous system
function [134,135]. Syringomyelia is often accompanied by clefts i th brainste
(referred syringobulbia) I stud l hypotensio
Patients with tabes dorsal is, a syphillittc disorder that involves mostly the
thoracic and lumbar spinal nerve roots and the posterior columns of the spinal
cord, may also have abnormal circulatory reflexes. Tachycardia is common in
patients with tabes dorsalis. Older neurology texts do not mention blood pressure
abnormalities as a common rinding in tabetics, although blood pressures were not
systematically analyzed. In tabetic patients, and likely other individuals who have
involvement of their thoracic nerve roots, orthostatic blood pooling could be
caused by loss of the afferent input to the haroreflex. Intermittent hypertension
could also be a problem.
Patients with intrinsic intramedullary spinal cord tumors (mostly astrocytomas and
ependymomas), intradural extramedullary spinal tumors (mostly meningiomas and
neurofibromas), and nonneoplastic spinal cord lesions likely also show effects
similar lo those observed in patients with spinal cord injuries. The major
difference between traumatic and nontraumatic spinal cord lesions is the acuteness
of onset and ihe severity of the insults. Since tumors and other nontraumatic
spinal cord lesions usually evolve slowly and are most often very incomplete in
ihe extent of spinal cord damage and loss of functions, they probably less often
cause cardiac and cardiovascular abnormalities, and the abnormalities are probably
less severe than those found in patients wilh severe spinal cord injuries. Knowing
the principles and cnrdio\ a^cular s\mpiorns and Mtms found in patients with spinal
cord trauma should alert clinicians to the possibility of cardiac and
cardiovascular problems in patients with nontraumatic spinal cord disorders. Most
important in predicting the likelihood of occurrence of cardiovascular problems
arc the location (rosirocuLidul 1c\cl. intramedullary vs. extramedullary, and the
sites within the cord of involvement of gray and white matter} and the size and
rapidity of onset of the spinal cord process. The more acule and severe the
process, the more likely are signs of cardiac and cardiovascular dysfunction.
Poliomyelitis is a very unique spinal cord infection. The prevalence of polio
during the first half of this century and the seriousness of the disease led to
extensive observations of cardiopulmonary and cardiovascular consequences of this
dreaded disease. The poliomyelitis syndrome was caused by three enteroviruses:
Coxsackie viruses A and B, echo virus, and the poliomyelitis virus. The disease was
formerly very common. As late as the mid-1950s summer epidemics occurred during
which thousands of children and young adults were paralyzed. Enders. Salk, and
Sabin contributed to the development of a vaccine lhat was highly effective in
preventing the disease. Now. poliomyelitis does not occur in the United State
except in individuals who do noi receive the vaccine, bin ihe diseas still i
countrie that d t hav effectiv vaccinatio
tract to the meninges and to the neurons of the anterior and intermediolateral
horns of die spinal cord, and to neurons in the thalamus, hypothalamus, and motor
neurons in the brain. Lumbar puncture usually shows signs of a viral meningitis.
The Hrst neurologic symptoms are usually headache and muscle aches and pains, A
paralytic stage ensues in which paralysis of various muscle groups develops over a
period of days. Muscles that were active at the time of infection were most likely
to become paralyzed. Bulbar involvement with the poliomyelitis virus leads in
respiratory paralysis, vasomotor instability, hypertension, and dysphagia I13b|.
Death can occur, usually due to respiratory complications,
Cardiovascular abnormalities were common in patients with poliomyelitis I137]
Hypertension was especially common. The virus often directly invaded
r
the heart, causing myocarditis (Fig. 5). Lesions arc found at necropsy in all parts
of the heart 11381. Myocyte damage was common and there was often widespread focal
and perivascular infiltration of polymorphonuclear leukocytes, lymphocytes, plasma
cells, and monocytes. Both myocarditis and verrucous endocarditis were found 1137J.
Hemorrhages were also found wiihin the myocardium [138]. The ECG was often
abnormal, showing a long P-R interval, a long Q-T interval, and primary T-wave
abnormalities. Pulmonary edema was common during the acute phase. If the patient
recovered, the ECG and clinical signs of myocarditis abated and chronic myocardial
dysfunction was rarely reported. Lability of blood pressure included episodes of
hypotension as well as hypertension, and some patients died in circulatory
collapse.
DYSAUTONOMIAS
Some neurological disorders primarily, anil sometimes exclusively, affect the
autonomic nervous system. These conditions are often referred to in the aggregate
as dysautonomias, although different conditions involve different portions of the
autonomic nervous system [139], Although orthostatic, posturally related
hypotension is the predominant cardiovascular problem, cardiac abnormalities also
occur. Some conditions involve the neurons of the autonomic nervous system within
the brain and/or the spinal cord, while others involve the peripheral nervous
system which carries information lo and from the viscera and the heart and blood
vessels. In this section on the dysautonomias, we will discuss the central and
peripheral nervous system conditions that have autonomic nervous system dysfunction
as the major or only feature. Conditions that affect the peripheral nerves and
cause motor, sensory, and autonomic dysfunction will be covered i th sectio
disorder f d peripheral Tabl 3

FIG. 5 Myocardial lesions in a patient with poliomyelitis. Myocarditis in


poliomyelitis; from a 5-ycar-old girl with juvenile rheumatoid arthritis {Still's
disease). (A) Left ventricle
TABLE 3 Clinical Findings in Patients wilh Dysautonomias System affected Finding
Cardiovascular orthostatic hypotension
Sudomolor anhidrosis, bent intolerance
Gastrointestinal dysphagia, constipation, fecal incontinence, abdominal distension
and pain
Genitourinary urinary frequency and urgency, urinary incontinence, impotence,
failure to ejaculate
Ophthalmic unisocoria. Homer's syndrome, tonic pupils
Respiratory stridor, inspiratory gaps, apneic episodes

Source: Modified from Ret. IJW, p. 723, with permission.


Pure Autonomic Failure
This disorder was formerly called progressive autonomic failure and idiopathic
orthostatic hypotension [139a]. Pure autonomic failure is a primary degenerative
condition that affects the peripheral autonomic nervous system. Since the
predominant clinical finding and presenting symptoms are usually related to
postural hypotension, the condition was initially called idiopathic orthostatic
hypotension. The usual age at onset of patients with pure autonomic failure (PAF)
is between ages 40 and 60 years, and the condition is more common among men than
women [ 140], The earliest presenting symptoms are sudden dropping to the ground
(syncope), dizziness, or feelings of dizziness, weakness, or visual binning after
standing or walking. Loss of sweating, impotence, urinary urgency and frequency,
and later urinary and fecal incontinence are common. The disorder usually gradually
progresses and death ensues on average 7 to 10 years after onset of symptoms f
140,1421. In some patients. Parkinsonian symptoms and findings, and in other
patients, cerebellar, pyramidal, and extrapyramidal signs develop as part nf more
widespread neural degeneration syndromes which we now classify as Parkinson's
disease with dysautonomic features or multisystem atrophy depending on the extent
of clinical abnormalities. These more widespread conditions have already been
discussed under Extrapyramidal Diseases.
Necropsy studies of patients with PAF show loss of neurons in the
intermediolateral column of the spinal cord, loss of neurons in the dorsal vagal
nuclei, and degeneration of eel Is within the sympathetic ganglia 1140,143.144].
The extent of the loss of neurons in the intermediolateral columns of the spinal
cord closely
j:T
using methyl iodobenzylguanidine (MIBG) and single-photon emission tomography
(SPECT) scanning of the heart show evidence of sympathetic denervation of the
myocardium 1147], The earliest changes are evident in the apical and inferior
walls, but later the entire myocardium shows sympathetic denervation [147J.
Positron emission tomography (PET) studies and biochemical analyses also confirm
that patients with PAF have a progressive loss of sympathetic nerve terminals |
J4S|. The loss of sympathetic innervation can produce an autonomic nervous system
imbalance with dominance of the parasympathetic in nerval inn similar to that
described in palients with cervical and thoracic spinal cord injuries. Arrythmias
and cardiac arrest could result, but extensive or detailed cardiac evaluations
have not been reported in patients with PAF.
Familial Dysautonomia (Riley-Day Syndrome)
This heredofamilial disorder is an autosomal-recessively inherited disorder that
begins in very early childhood [140 J 49-151 J. Most affected individuals are
Jewish. Difficulty swallowing and recurrent bronchopneumonia are noted during
infancy. Later developing symptoms and signs include an absence of tears, poor
motor coordination, postural hypotension, vomiting, episodic hypertension, skin
blotching, and excessive sweating 11511. Taste perception is often abnormal and
there may be loss of somatic sensations, including pain. Temperature control is
poor and many patients are quite insensitive to pain. Many children with familial
dysautonomia die early in childhood because of recurrent aspiration pneumonia. The
recurrent bronchopulmonary infections arc explained by dysphagia and recurrent
aspiration of food and gastric contents. Necropsy shows decreased numbers of
neurons in the sympathetic ganglia and in the intermediolateral column of the
spinal cord as well as a decreased number of small myelinated libers in nerve
roots. Sometimes there are also abnormalities within the reticular formation of the
brainstem. The posterior columns of the spinal cord may also be demy el inated
[152]. Testing shows very abnormal circulatory reflexes [153]. Respiratory control
is also abnormal. This familial disorder is probably best understood as a loss of
afferent autonormc nervous system input accompanied by a lack of efferent,
predominantly sympathetic nervous system output. Most patients with familial
dysautonomia do not survive until adulthood.
Holmes-Adie Syndrome
Although this condition is relatively common and is well known lo most
neurologists i i all familia generalist d othe nonneurological specialists have
dry skin, abnormal sweating, and abnormal taste perception. Syncope also occurs and
some patients have postural hypotension [156].
The most consistent I hiding and the abnormality lhat usually brings palients with
the Holmes-Adie syndrome lo medical attention is the pupillary abnormalities.
Patienls may complain of light sensitivity similar to that described by patients
who have had mydriatic drops instilled in their eyes for ophthalmoscopy or
refraction. In others the pupillary abnormality is noticed by ihe patient or by a
doctor during routine examinations. The pupils are usually asymmetric; often one or
both pupils are dilated and irregular. The pupils do not react normally to light.
Sometimes long exposure to bright light results in some delayed pupillary
constriction. The pupils react belter to accommodation than to light, a rinding
similar lo lhat found in patienls with tabes dorsalis. The pupillary response to
mecholyl is hyperactive: individuals wilh the Holmes-Ad ie syndrome react more
vigorously lo mecholyl placed in the eye than normals. Dilute pilocarpine (0.125%)
conslricls the pupil in patients with the Hohnes-Adie syndrome but has liule effect
in normal patienls. Later in life the pupils may become small rather than dilated.
Cardiovascular reflexes, cardiac autonomic nervous system functions, and sweating
responses are often abnormal when tested [157.158]. To date there has been no
generally agreed-upon pathological substrate of this syndrome. Abnormalities arc
oflen found in the ciliary ganglia which supplies autonomic innervation to the eye.
Also posited are abnormalities in the peripheral nerves, which carry both afferent
and efferent autonomic nervous system fibers. The loss of deep tendon reflexes,
especially knee jerks, is likely due to changes in the peripheral nerves.
TABLE 4 Autonomic Nervous System Tests
1.
Response of heart rale and blood pressure lo changes in posture; change from
supine to standing or using a tilt table 1167.169]

2.
Response of heart rate, blood pressure, and cardiac output to sustained isometric
contraction of a group of muscles 1167,1701

3.
Heart rale variation during respirations f 167,1711

4.
Heart rate and blood pressure responses 10 the Valsalva maneuver f 167.1721

5.
Tests of sweating after various stimuli 1167,168]

6.
Changes in blood pressure after application of negative pressure to the lower body
while supine [167]

7.
Baroreflex sensitivity |167,173]
8 Measurements of peripheral blood flow after radiant heat and after immersion in

TABLE 5 Clinical Tests ol Autonomic Function

Test
1. Noninvasive bedside tests BP response to standing or vertical lilt Heart
rate response to standing
Isometric exercise Heart rate variation wilh respiration
Valsalva ratio
Sweat tests
Axon relies
Plasma noradrenaline level
Plasma vasopressin level
2. Invasive tesls using intra-arterial catheter Valsalva maneuver
Normal response
fall in BP <30/l5 mm Hg Increase 11-29 heats/min: 30:15
ratio > 1.04' increase 15 mm Hg diastolic BP max-min heart rale >I5; expire:inspire

ratio >1.2 >L 4 depending on age sweat production, body and limbs local
piloerection, sweating rises on till from horizontal to vertical rise with induced
hypotension
Phase I rise in BP Phase 2 gradual decrease BP to
plateau; tachycardia Phase 3fall in BP Phase 4overshoot of BP. bradycardia Reflex
part tested
a tie rent and e tier net limbs afferent and efferent limbs
sympathetic efferent limb vagal afferent and efferent limbs
afferent and efferent limbs sympathetic efferent limb postganglionic sympathetic
efferent sympathetic efferent limb afferent limb
.liferent and efferent limbs
Barorellex sensitiv iiy
Pressor drug infusion
3. Test of vasomotor control Radiant heating of trunk Immerse hand in cold
walcr
Cold pressor test
Emotional stress
Inspiratory gasp

Drug instilled
4, Tests of pupillary innervation 4% cocaine 0.1% adrenaline \'/f
hydroxyamphetamine hydrobromide 2.y/f methaeholine, ().\25t/f pilocarpine
1. Slowing of heart rate with induced rise of BP
2, Steady-state repsonses lo induced rise and fall of BP
1.
Rise in BP

2.
Heart rate slowing

increase hand blood (low increase blood flow opposite hand reduce blood How
increase BP reduce hand blood flow
Normal response
pupil dilates no response pupil dilates no response
' Ratio of R-R intervals corresponding to the 30th and 15th heart heats. Modified
from Ref. J69, p. 520, with permission,
1.
Parasympathetic afferent and efferen limbs

2.
Afferent and efferent limbs

1.
Adrenergic receptors

2.
Afferent and efferent parasympatheti limbs

sympathetic efferent limb sympathetic efferent limb


sympathetic efferent limb sympathetic efferent limb sympathetic efferent limh
Reflex part tested
sy m pa luetic in ncr vat ion postganglionic sympathetic innervation postganglionic
sympathetic innervation parasympathetic innervation
Acute and Subacute Autonomic Neuropathies
Robert Young and his colleagues in 1969. and later in 1975. first described
patients who had the acute onset of severe autonomic nervous system abnormalities
without other important neurological signs ("pure pandysautonomia*'), and then
recovered from their illness 1159.1601. Patients with acute dysautonomia have the
acute or subacute onset of lethargy and fatigue, blurred vision, postural
hypotension, decreased tear formation, decreased sweating, dry skin, dry mouth,
constipation, urinary retention, impotence, and sometimes urinary and/or fecal
incontinence 1140.159-162]. Sometimes there arc accompanying motor and sensory
abnormalities, in most patients the abnormal findings recover during a period of
weeks to months, but some patients recover only partially and some do not show any
substantial recovery. The cerebrospinal fluid protein content is often elevated. In
some patients, especially children, cholinergic abnormalities predominate
1140,163.164], These palients have blurred vision, constipation, dry eyes and
mouth, and urinary retention but they do not have postural hypotension. This
predominantly cholinergic dysautonomia is often chronic and there is usually less
recovery than that found in adults with acute pandysautonomia [140.1641.
Most clinicians consider these acute and subacute autonomic neuropathies to be
immunologically mediated radiculoneuropathiesa form of Guillain-Barre syndrome
that involves predominantly autonomic fibers within the peripheral nervous system.
Some patients with the Cuillain-Barre syndrome have prominent dysautonomia. Acute
pandysautonomia has been described after infectious mononucleosis and other
infections [165], and also in patients with various malignancies [166,167].
Lymphocytic infdtrales similar to those found in patienls with Guillain-Barre are
found in autonomic and sensory ganglia and in nerve roots and peripheral nerves
[167],
Testing of Autonomic Nervous System Functions
Recognition that some neurological conditions primarily affect the autonomic
nervous system (dysautonomias) and other diseases such as Parkinson's disease and
multiple system atrophy, and some peripheral neuropathies such as diabetes mellitus
arc associated wilh autonomic nervous system dysfunction amid other signs, has led
to the development of sophisticated, objective, quantifiable tests of atonomic
nervous system functions [168-177]. Some of these tests are also designed to
determine whether the autonomic dysfunction is sympathetic or parasympathetic and
whether the abnormalities found relate to preganglionic or postganglioni lesions
Tabl 4 list f th availabl d Tabl 5 1169] 166, 167. and 168 can be consulted for
more delails and for other, less commonly
used tests. Recenllv some new treatments I or postural hypotension have become
available. If pat Jems do not respond to the use of support hose and/or increased
salt intake, they can be given flurincf. the artilicial amino acid 3.4-
dihydroxyphenyl serine (DOPS) II78.I79J or midodrine hydrochloride [180J.
DISORDERS OF NERVE ROOTS AND PERIPHERAL NERVES
We include in this section diseases whose major manifestation that potentially
causes cardiac and/or cardiovascular abnormalities is involvement of peripheral
nerves or nerve roots. It would be impossible to include all types and causes of
neuropathy in this chapter without rewriting a textbook of neurology. We have
selected disorders that are either common or are associaied with known cardiac and
cardiovascular abnormalities. Although many of the disorders have prominent
neurologic manifestations other than neuropathy, it seemed best to include them in
[his section for the purposes ol' simplicity and because .ill have peripheral
neuropathy as a very important feature. Autonomic nerve fibers are affected to some
degree in many peripheral neuropathies and some radiculopathies, although the
clinical manifestations of this involvement are often mild. Segmental
demyelination can involve myelinated autonomic nerve fibers in the vagus or
sympathetic pathways, e,g.. in Guillain-Barre syndrome and some diabetics, and
some neuropathies, e.g., amyloid and diabetes, affect small-diameter myelinated and
unmyelinated autonomic nervous system libers within afferent and efferent pc*
ripheral nerves 1181]. The clinical autonomic dysfunction ranges from slight
impairment in sweating to postural hypotension. Orthostatic postural hypotension
occurs when damage to small-diameter myelinated and unmyelinated fibers in afferent
and efferent peripheral nerves is located within baroreflex pathways and splanchnic
outflow [ 1X11. Postural hypotension is especially apt to occur when fibers in the
splanchnic vascular bed are pathologically involved, since this innervation has an
important influence on blood pressure regulation [181 ].
Disorders of Cranial Nerves or Nerve Roots
The only disorder of nerve roots lhat frequently causes cardiac and cardiovascular
dysfunction is glossopharyngeal neuralgia. This condition is similar to trigeminal
neuralgia (tic douleureux) except lhat the TX nerve {the glossopharyngeal nerve) is
involved rather than ihe V (trigeminal) nerve. Pain is usually felt in the throat,
Manipulation of the V cranial nerve, the trigeminal nerve, can cause sudden
increases in blood pressure, sometimes severe enough to cause hypertensive
intracerebral hemorrhages, The trigeminal nerves and their fibers play an
important role in the innervation and control of the cerebral blood vessels 1182J.
Alterations in blood pressure and blood How follow trigeminal nerve stimulation in
animals, and acute rises in blood pressure and tachycardia accompany trigeminal
pain and trigeminal stimulation in humans f 1831. Elevated blood pressure causing
intracerebral hemorrhages has been noted during surgical treatment of palients
with trigeminal neuralgia | 184-I86|. and dangerous elevations in blood pressure
have been noted after heating of trigeminal nerve roots 1187] and during
percutaneous surgical trigeminal rhizotomies 11S8J. Elevated blood pressure causing
intracerebral hemorrhage has also been described during dental treatments,
presumably because of stimulation of the trigeminal nerves 1183,186.1891.
Infectious and Inflammatory Neuropathies Acute Inflammatory Polyradiculoneuropathy
(Guillain-Barre) [190491]
The Guillain-Barre syndrome is predominantly a motor neuropathy that often causes
severe paralysis. The first symptom is usually weakness of the legs and amis. The
lower extremities are often involved before the upper extremities. The weakness is
most pronounced in the proximal parts of the limbs (shoulders and thighs). This
distribution, which is explained by demyelination of nerve roots and the proximal
portions of peripheral nerves, distinguishes the Guillain-Barre syndrome from most
peripheral neuropathies, which characteristically cause symptoms first in the
distal parts of the limbs. Weakness and paralysis may progress over hours and
days, sometimes causing a loss of alt limb movements. The weakness is usually
symmetrical. The respiratory muscles are often paralyzed so artificial respiration
is at limes necessary, sometimes for A prolonged period. Paresthesias and
occasionally pain are reported in the limbs, especially in the lingers, toes, and
feet, Sensory loss is usually minimal, affecting mostly vibration and position
sense. The deep tendon reflexes are invariably absent. The cranial nerves are
sometimes affected, causing bilateral facial weakness and sometimes hoarseness and
dysphagia. The cerebrospinal fluid usually but not always has a high protein
content and few or no while blood cells (so-called albuminocytologic dissociation).

Tit is illness usually develops after a respiratory or gastrointestinal infection.


Viral illnesses h thos d b th huma immunodeficienc viru onset shows a brisk
inflammatory response consisting of lymphocytic infiltrates in nerve roots and
proximal portions of the peripheral nerves followed by segmental demy el i nation
1193]. The Guillain-Barre syndrome is believed to be an autoimmune disease in
which antibodies are directed against elements of peripheral nerves and nerve
roots.
In most patients, the weakness is self-limited. Advances in intensive care and
respiratory support and excellent nursing care are responsible for the relatively
good prognosis despite even severe paralysis. The majority of patients recover
completely after paralysis, which lasts weeks to months. In some palients the
paralysis is prolonged and recovery very incomplete. In one variant of the
Guillain-Barre syndrome (usually called the Miller Fisher variant, after the
physician who first described it [194]). the weakness predominantly involves
bulbarinnervalcd muscles and is accompanied by limb incoordination and ataxia.
These patients develop ophthalmoplegia and may be unable to move the eyes at all.
The facial muscles are often very weak, and the pharynx and larynx may also be
involved, causing hoarseness and dysphagia. Deep tendon reflexes are absent and the
arms and legs often show severe incoordination. Walking may lie impossible because
of the gait ataxia.
Cardiac and Cardiovascular Manifestations. Cardiac arrhythmias are common in
patients with Guillain-Barre disease and may be related to hypoxia and/or autonomic
nervous system involvement [195]. Primary T-wave abnormalities may appear in the
electrocardiogram 11961. Bradycardia, atrioventricular hlnck, supraventricular
tachycardia, and ventricular tachycardia may he observed during the illness,
especially in patients who are treated with mechanical ventilators and who need
frequent tracheal aspiration. Tachycardia may be unresponsive to postural change
1197]. Sudden death due to arrhythmias or asystole has been described [181]. The
systemic blood pressure may fluctuate and can be elevated or abnormally low.
Postural hypotension may develop and can be severe | 197,1 L)!S j. Postural
hypotension can cause syncope and may he especially hazardous if paraly/ed
palients are left in a sitting position. The blood pressure and heart rate response
to Valsalva maneuvers may be abnormal [181]. The heart rate response to elevated
blood pressure induced by intraveous injection of phenylephrine may be abnormal
Tests of sweating are also abnormal, indicating autonomic nervous system
dysfunction 11811
Chronic Inflammatory Demyelinative Polyradiculoneuropathy [199]
The accepted name for this type of neuropathy is chronic inflammatory
deimelinative polyradiculoneuropathy (CIDP). It is one of the most common
peripheral
neuropathies now seen in neurologic practice.
The condition begins subaeuiely. The course may fluctuate with remissions and
periods of worsening, or signs may progress gradually over weeks to months or even
years. Both motor and sensory abnormalities may occur. Unlike Guillain-Barre
syndrome, wtdi which this condition is often compared (CIDP has often been
characterized as a type of "chronic Gui]]ain-Barre''% in CIDP the sensory symptoms
and signs may predominate and the findings are quite often asymmetric. The deep
tendon reflexes are usually absent or greatly diminished. The spinal fluid protein
may be high. The peripheral nerves may be thickened when felt by palpation.
Patients often improve wilh corticosteroid treatment or after being given pooled
human immunoglobulin.
Postural hypotension and other signs of autonomic neuropathy occur rarely in CIDP
[201 ], Ingalls et al. tested autonomic nervous system-mediated responses in 15
patients with CIDP; they studied the ratio of R-R intervals corresponding to the
30th and 15th heart beats, and found it abnormal in three of 14 patients, and they
found abnormal sweating responses in five patients [201 ]. Mi nor changes were
found in unmyelinated nerve fibers in sural nerve biopsy specimens [2011.
Motor Neuropathy with Conduction Block
Motor neuropathy with conduction block is another type of chronic demyelinative
neuropathy 1202,203J. The major and usually only neurological symptom is weakness
involving muscles of the limbs. The disease gets its name from the
electrophysiological lindings. Stimulation of a motor nerve below a block evokes a
compound muscle action potential, but stimulation above the block produces a
response usually <10% of that elicited below the block, Weakness develops gradually
and is accompanied by muscle cramps and fasciculations. Usually the weakness
involves individual peripheral nerves or brachial plexus trunks. The arms are
involved much more often than the legs. This condition is often confused with motor
neurone disease (amyotrophic lateral sclerosis). Intravenous immunoglobulin
therapy is often effective [204}, Cardiac and cardiovascular abnormalities have
not been described in this condition.
Diphtheritic Neuropathy
Diphtheria is caused by the organism Corynebaaerium diphtherial The organisms are
LIMKIIK spread In droplets bul may enter the bod\ by was ol penetrating wounds or
skin lesions. The disease is rarely seen now in the United Stales but still found
i f th world wher preventiv practiced
for a potent exotoxin which is extremely toxic to the nervous system and the heart.

Neurological symptoms usually begin about a week after the onset of sore throat.
The palatal muscles become paralyzed 1205j. This leads to a change in the voice,
regurgitation, and dysphagia. The cranial nerves, including the vagus, facial,
trigeminal, and hypoglossal nerves, may become involved at about the same time.
Vision may become blurred and accommodation of the pupils becomes abnormal. Later
some patients develop symptoms of a peripheral polyneuropathy 1206]. The
neuropathy is sensorimotor and involves the legs and arms. If the patient does not
die of cardiac disease or respiratory failure, the neurologic manifestations
gradually subside.
Cardiovascular findings. Gore reported that the hearts of patients dying of
diphtheria were "dilated, pale and flabby** [207]. Among 205 patients who came to
necropsy because of fatal outcome of diphtheria, 143 (70%) had myocarditis [207].
Microscopic examination showed frequent hyaline, granular, and fatty changes in the
myocytes. Lymphocytes and plasma cells appeared later. Still later there was
evidence of scar tissue and occasional calcification |2()Kj, The pathology of
diphtheritic myocarditis is shown in Figure 6, The conduction system of the heart
is very vulnerable to the toxin. Accordingly, patients may develop complete heart
block with its complications [209J. Bundle branch block has also been reported.
Most patients die when these complications are observed. Conduction abnormalities
have been described in the electrocardiogram years after the disease has abated,
and clinical heart block may recur years after the initial diphtheritic infection
1210,211].
Acquired Human Immunodeficiency Syndrome
Acquired immunodeficiency syndrome (AIDS) is caused by the human immunodeficiency
virus. The virus produces a severe depression of cell-mediated immune function. The
decrease in immunity makes individuals susceptible to many types of infections. In
the United States the disease affects mostly homosexual and bisexual males and
intravenous drug users. The virus can be transmitted by transfusions. Hemophiliacs
may become infected when they receive infected blood products, and an infected
mother may transmit the disease to her newborn baby.
The initial symptoms may be malaise, diarrhea, and weight loss. Generalized
lymphadenopathy commonly develops. The nervous system can be infecEed directly by
the HIV virus or by many of the other opportunistic organisms and neoplasms. The
patient may develop meningitis, encephalitis, dementia, neuropa

FlG. 6 Diphtheritic myocarditis found in a fatal case in a soldier serving in


Egypt, Left ventricle, hematoxylin-eosin. (A) (B) x325. (From Ref. 138. Reproduced
with permission.)
tuberculosis (several types). Primary lymphoma of the central nervous system may
occur. AIDS makes the central nervous system more vulnerable to the spirochete
responsible for syphilis. The neuropathy may resemble CIDP. Cytomegalovirus often
involves the nerve roots of the cauda equina, causing a painful neuropathy that
affects the lower extremities and causes incontinence and impotence.
Patients with AIDS formerly died within 1 to 3 years. The recent use of multiple
drug treatment has improved survival considerably and gives hope to affected
persons.
Cardiovascular Findings. Patients with AIDS commonly have myocarditis, dilated
cardiomyopathy, and pericarditis. These conditions may be caused by the AIDS virus,
opportunistic organisms, autoimmune mechanisms, and cardiotoxie drugs used by the
patients. An interesting subset of patients are those who have isolated enlargement
of the right ventricle [2)2f AIDS patients may have maranti endocarditi bu infectiv
endocarditi i i patient involved. Postural hypotension, disorders of sweating,
diarrhea, impotence, and abnormal micturition develop in some AIDS patients. In
others, although they do not report related symptoms, abnormalities are found on
tests of autonomic function. Autonomic dysfunction can be found early in patients
with HIV infection although it is more common in patients with established AIDS.
Some patients with autonomic nervous system dysfunction do not have a clinically
evident pe* ripheral polyneuropathy [214]. The mechanism of the autonomic
dysfunction in these patients is not known.
Leprosy
Leprosy is caused by the organism Mycobacterium leprae. The clinical picture is
produced when the organism invades the cutaneous nerves, subcutaneous nerves, and
nerves to the muscles 1215,216], The first sign of leprosy is usually a small,
hypopigmented macule or papule on the skin. The disease should be suspected when
the lesion has no sensation to painful stimuli. The regions of skin sensory loss
may enlarge.
The lack of sensation is produced by invasion of the nerves by the leprosy
bacillus. Most sensory loss in leprosy is due to involvement of intracutaneous
nerves [216], The loss of sensation is commonly found in the ears, back of hands,
front and side of the thighs, and feet. Sensory loss is most severe in regions of
the skin with cooler temperatures, while warm regions such as the palms and soles
arc characteristically spared |2161. Sweating is decreased in the affected areas.
When the organisms invade larger nerves, these nerves may become enlarged. When
the nerves of the arms, legs, and face are involved, large areas of sensorimotor
abnormalities are produced. When the nerves of the skin are involved the skin
becomes simultaneously painful and anesthetic and does not sweat. Trophic changes
are quite common in the digits. Chronic longstanding leprosy is sometimes
complicated by secondary amyloidosis.
Cardiovascular Findings. Autonomic fibers in the nerves to the limbs are often
affected, so insensitive areas often show a loss of sweating and the distal
extremities may appear cool and dusky. The autonomic libers that lie more deeply in
the body are much less often affected |216]. Cardiac denervation, postural
hypotension, decreased sweating, and impaired response to the cold pressor test
have all been described in patients with leprosy but are unusual 1181].
Chagas' Disease
Chagas* disease is caused by infestation with the protozoal parasite Trypanosoma
ganglia show a predilection for parasitization. Resulting degeneration of host
cells and parasites causes an acute inflammatory response which damages the ganglia
and surrounding nerve libers and nerve cells 12I7J, The autonomic nervous system
involvement characteristically causes enlargement of hollow organs (achalasia,
mcgacsophagus, megacolon, and megaureter) [217]. The peripheral nervous system is
also damaged but the cardiopathy is mostly related to destruction of the
parasympathetic cardiac ganglia [2171. Postural hypotension is common. Autonomic
function tests including the response of the blood pressure and heart rate to
tilting and the Valsalva maneuver, the sensitivity of the baroreceptor reflex, and
measurements of noradrenaline show abnormal responses [181,218].
Ctt rdiac and Cardto \ 'ast 'it I a r Findin gs, N ec ropsy st ud i e s s h o w abn
o r m a 1 ities in the conduction system of the heart as well as in the autonomic
ganglia and the myenteric plexus. The heart is usually enlarged and considerably
dilated. Focal endomyocardial fibrosis and aneurysmal dilatation are often found in
the apex of the left ventricule [2171. Microscopic examination of the heart shows a
chronic diffuse myocarditis. Focal regions of myocardial necrosis secondary to an
arleriolopathy are common, The cardiac autonomic ganglia, the intracardiac nerves,
and the cardiac conduction system, including the bundle of His and its branches,
are severely damaged [217]. Impressive parasympathetic devervation has always been
found when ganglion cell counts are performed in palients with ChagasT cardiopathy
[2191. Multifocal inflammatory lesions and demyelination are found within the
peripheral nerves of humans and experimental animals exposed to the parasite |
220|. The peripheral neuropathy and autonomic nervous system findings probably have
an autoimmune basis [181.217],
The gross cardiac enlargement and dilatation seen in patients with Chagas' disease
are mostly the consequence of a loss of autonomic nervous system heart control due
to destruction of ihe cardiac postganglionic vagal neurons. T. cruzi selectively
destroys these neurons 1221], The severe sympathetic/parasympathcttc imbalance can
lead to cardiac damage. Studies have also shown blockade ol'adrenergic receptors in
the vascular musculature and partial denervation ol the vascular walls of patients
with Chagas' disease [222], This blockade of adrenergic receptors can lead to
higher levels of norepinephrine and supersensitivity to the effects of
catecholamines on the heart. At the same time, the peripheral nervous system
adrenergic blockade can lead to postural hypotension despite the high plasma levels
of catecholamines. The cardiomypathy of Chagas* disease is likely multifactoral,
with both direct myocardial damage and dysaulonomia as important contributors [221
J.
festation. Lyme disease is considered in this section. Lyme disease is the most
common vectorborne disease m the United States, and borreliosis is also common in
Europe, The disorder is transmitted by ticks; lhe type of tick varies according to
the region of the United States or Europe where the disease is identified. Small
animals are the usual reservoir for the spirochete. Borretia organisms stimulate
the production of proteins that are highly antigenic. The spirochetes are also
aggressive and invasive, Most cases in the United States have been reported from
the northeastern states bordering on the Atlantic Ocean, from the upper midwest,
and from northern California. The disorder is also common in Europe, especially in
Germany.
Lyme disease is often divided into three clinical stages, but the clinical
manifestations vary from patient lo patient. The skin, joints, heart, and nervous
system bear the brunt of the infection [225,226]. Stage I of the illness is limited
to the skin and lymph nodes. The patient may notice a localized area of erythema on
the skin. The preceding tick bile may not have been noticed or recalled. S\slemie
influenza like symptoms may occur at the time of the erythema migrans. Regional
lymph adenopathy is common. The characteristic skin lesion may precede other
manifestations by weeks, months, and even years. Arthritis commonly develops
sometime after the skin rash.
Neurological manifestations develop during stages 2 and 3 ol the infection. The
neurological syndromes and pathogenesis of Lyme borreliosis share many similarities
with those caused by the spirochete of syphilis. Neurological syndromes vary: the
most common arc meningoencephalitis, cranial neuritis, and peripheral
radicutoneuropathy 1226-228]. The spirochete gains access to the nervous system by
first invading the meninges. Patients report headache varying from mild to very
severe. The headache is sometimes accompanied by nausea, vomiting, and photophobia.
The cerebrospinal fluid al this stage shows a lymphocytic pleocytosis. The
meningilic phase is often self-limited as it is in secondary syphyhtic infections.
In some patients, the Barrelia spirochetes spread to the brain, cranial nerves,
brain blood vessels, spinal nerve roots, and peripheral nerves.
Brain involvement is most often subtle, causing symptoms of sleepiness, fatigue,
difficulty concentrating, slight imprecision in language, and decreased memory
[228]. Cranial neuropathies are also common. Isolated involvement of the seventh
cranial nerve causing a peripheral BellVupe facial pals) is
IUOM common. Some patients have involvement of multiple cranial nerves, most often
nerves V to VTIT. Multiple acute cranial neuropathies is a frequent presentation in
Europe, where the syndrome is called Ba mi warm's syndrome, after the initial
describe [229]

FlG. 7 Electrocardiogram of a paticnl with Lyme disease. Electrocardiogram From a


28year-old woman who developed dyspnea approximately 4 weeks after the onset of
erythema migrans due to Lyme disease. The electrocardiogram shows complete heart
block. (From Olson U. Okafor EC. Clements IP. Cardiac involvement in Lyme disease:
manifestations and management. Mayo Clin Proc 1986: 61:745-749. Reproduced wilh
permission.)
lumbar disk disease with sciatica. In some patients multiple roots are involved,
causing asymmetric pain and paresthesias. In the majority of palients who have
neuropathy due to Lyme borreliosis. the major symptom is paresthesias. Peripheral
nerve involvement begins usually between 8 and 16 months after the skin rash. About
half of the palients who have neuropathy have symetrical distal extremity
nonpainful pares! hesi as (the usual pal tern of a peripheral polyneuropathy), and
the other half have asymmetric root distribution pains 1228,230,231 J. Sensory loss
is much more common than weakness. Electrical studies, electromyography, and nerve
conduction velocity studies are usually abnormal in patients with Lyme borreliosis-
related peripheral neuropathy.
Cardiac Abnormalities, The heart is involved in the early stages of infection in a
small proportion of patienls [232-2341. Lyme carditis was initially described by
Steere and colleagues |233|. Cardiac involvement is usually recognized about 3
weeks after the development of erythema marginata, There may also be coexistent
arthritis or meningitis. Histological studies of the heart show pericarditis and
myocardial infiltration of lymphocytes and plasma cells. The spirochete may also
be seen within the myocardium but usually there is no myocyte destruction.
Alteratio f atrioventricula conductio i i patient wh hav and left bundle branch
block are also described. Varying degrees of airioventricular heart block are the
commonest muni testations of carditis in Lyme disease [234], Among 52 cases
reported. 45 (87%) had airio ventricular block; 28 had either complete or high-
grade atrioventricular block and were almost always symptomatic [234J. One patient
had sinoatrial block 1234J, Atrioventricular block resolves, gradually resembling
its resolution after acute myocardial infarction. Progression from complete
atrioventricular block to high-grade then to Wenckebach second-degree block, and
finally to first-degree block with decreasingly prolonged P-R interval is a common
pattern of regression of the conduction abnormalities 1234J. Some patients require
temporary pacing, and in others implantation of permanent pacemakers is required.
Heart block regresses as the cardiac i nil animation clears.
Some patienls have chest pain that increases during both inspiration and
expiration, a symptom that is characteristic of pericarditis. A pericardial
friction nth may be present but cardiac tamponade from Lyme pericarditis has not
been reported. Signs of heart failure, such as a left ventricular gallop sound and
abnormally distended neck veins, can be found. Echocardiography may show a
decreased ejection fraction. Chronic dilated cardiomyopathy occasionally follows
the acute stage of Lyme disease myopericarditis [2351.
Metabolic Neuropathies Diabetic Neuropathies
Diabetes mellitus is probably the most common disorder that causes peripheral
neuropathies. Clinical, electrophysiological (nerve conduction studies and
electromyography) and autonomic nervous system testing of patients with
longstanding diabetes shows that nearly all have some evidence of peripheral
neuropathy. The diabetic peripheral neuropathy syndromes are heterogeneous, and
only some of the syndromes are commonly accompanied by autonomic dysfunction.
Diabetic Mono-neuropathies. Acute loss of function in the distribution of a single
peripheral or cranial nerve is explained by an infarct in the nerve. Motor weakness
involving the muscles innervated by the nerve usually exceeds sensory symptoms and
signs. The commonest cranial nerves involved are the 111, VI. and VII cranial
nerves. In the limbs, the ulnar, femoral, and peroneal nerves are most often
affected. The symptoms and signs usually last weeks to months, and recovery is
usual by 3 to 6 months. Autonomic dysfunction is not noted after a mono-neuropathy.

terized by pain in the lower portion of the trunk and lower extremities, usually
described as diffuse aching or sham pain in the thigh and lumbosacral region,
accompanied by weakness of the lower-extremity muscles. The weakness is often
asymetric and patchy, not following the distribution of any single nerve or nerve
root. The knee and ankle reflexes are diminished or lost. Sensory loss is not
prominent. The disorder often develops at the onset of diabetes or after its early
treatment and very frequently begins after a period of weight loss. Recovery
usually occurs after 6 months Diabetic amyotrophy is caused by infarction of nerve
plexi and the proximal portions of peripheral nerves [238.239 J. Autonomic nerVOUS
system abnormalities are not usually reported.
Diabetic Thoracolumbar Polyradiculopathy 1240,241}* This syndrome, although common,
is not well known to most clinicians who are not diabclologists. The major symptom
is pain in the trunk. The pain is described as burning, sharp, aching, or jabbing
[2401. The anterior chest and/or the abdomen are involved but. unlike mechanical
root disorders, the pain seldom radiates around the rib cage from the back. The
pain and dysesthesias are usually bilateral and cover at least several thoracic
nerve root dermatomes. There may be associaied weakness and atrophy of intercostal,
abdominal, an J paraspinal muscles. Fluctuations in pain and dysesthesias are
common but the disorder usually remits in 3 to 12 months. The great majority of
patients with diabetic thoracolumbar polyradiculopathy also have a diabetic
peripheral polyneuropathy. Despite the fact that thoracic nerve roots arc involved,
cardiac sludies have seldom been reported in patienls with this syndrome. The pain
can mimic angina pectoris and be misdiagnosed as indicating coronary artery
disease.
Diabetic Peripheral Polyneuropathy and Accompanying Autonomic Neuropathy [242-
252J. Symmetric involvement of the distal portions of peripheral nerves is the most
common neuropathic syndrome found in diabetics and ofien accompanies the other
syndromes already mentioned. The most distal ends of the longest peripheral nerves
are involved first, so the toes and feet are affected before the fingers. Motor,
sensory, and autonomic nerve fibers are all often involved but any one type of
involvement can predominate [242]. Sensory symptoms are most common. Numbness,
lack of feelings impaired perception of where the feet arc located, 1'walking on a
sponge/' arc terms often used by patients to describe the sensory abnormality. The
ankle reflex is invariably tost and the knee jerk is usually diminished or lost,
Significant paralysis of muscles is less common than sensory symptoms and signs,
and less common than autonomic dysfunction. At times, especially in insulin-
dependent diabetics, the neuropathy can be predominantl autonomic neuropathy
[248]. The frequency of neuropathy increases with the duration of diabetes and both
peripheral polyneuropathy and autonomic neuropathy are more common in insulin-
dependent diabetics.
Cardiac and Cardiovascular Findings. Coronary atherosclerosis is greatly increased
in diabetics and there is a specific type of cardiomyopathy associated with
diabetes. Herein we will limit the discussion to die cardiac and cardiovascular
findings that relate to the neurological abnormalities found in diabetics.
Autonomic nervous system abnormalities often accompany diabetic peripheral
polyneuropathy but are usually mild. Occasional patients develop a predominantly
autonomic neuropathy. Autonomic nervous system dysfunction includes gastroparesis.
diarrhea, resting tachycardia, orthostatic hypotension, abnormal sweating,
impotence, and incomplete emptying of the urinary bladder [243-250]. Autonomic
dysfunction is due to both axonal loss and segmental demyelination. Small fiber
damage is manifested by impaired heart rate variability caused by vagus nerve
dysfunction and by diminished peripheral sympathetic tone.which causes increased
blood flow in the limbs [2491- Testing of autonomic nervous system function in
patients with clinical 1\ evident symptomatic diabetic peripheral polyneuropathy
very often detects abnormalities even when there are no autonomic nervous system-
related symptoms. Diabetics with autonomic neuropathy have a higher than average
incidence of "silent'1 myocardial ischemia, myocardial infarction, cardiac arrest,
and sudden death [253]. Physicians who attend diabetic patients must be ever
mindful of the occurrence of painless ischemia. It is now accepted that diabetic
cardiomyopathy is a definite condition.
The prevalence of cardiovascular autonomic dysfunction in diabetics has been
estimated to be about in non-insulin-dependent diabetics and \6% in diabetics who
are insulin dependent [250.251 ]. When quantitative cardiovascular autonomic
testing is performed, the frequency of abnormalities is higher. Ewing et al.
performed heart rate variability testing using the Valsalva maneuver, deep
breathing, and standing as stimuli and showed that about 40% of the 543 diabetic
patients tested had definite, often severe abnormalities [2521. Only a small
proportion of patients with measurable autonomic dysfunction have clinically
important cardiovascular symptoms |250|.
The maintenance of systemic blood pressure on standing depends on the intaetness of
afferent impulses from baroreceptors in the carotid sinus and the aortic arch and
on efferent sympathetic outflow to the heart and blood vessels. Postural
hypotension in diabetics is mostly due to efferent sympathetic vasomotor
denervation [249], Failure to increase heart rate and cardiac output, especially
durin exercise contribut l hypotensio |2491 Insuli ha impor pathectomies.
subcutaneous or intravenous injection of insulin can cause or worsen postural
hypotension and lead to fainting. Syncope is also common after eating. Diabetics
with autonomic neuropathy are especially apt to faint during a bowel movement after
a meal.
Mortality is increased in diabetic patienls who have an autonomic neuropathy
[250], In one study, among 506 insulin-dependent diabetic patients, the 5-year
mortality was 27% in those who had cardiovascular autonomic neuropathy, compared
to 5% in those with normal autonomic function 12531- Deaths in patients with
autonomic neuropathy is mostly attributable to renal failure [250]. The nephropathy
could be simply a concurrent manifestation related to the severity of the
diabetes. Alternatively, the autonomic nervous system dysfunction could contribute
to the kidney deterioration because autonomic dysfunction can cause increased
urinary albumin excretion and increased renal blood flow. Changes in renal
hemodynamics resulting from autonomic dysfunction could contribute to renal failure
[250]. Sudden, unexpected cardiorespiratory arrest is the second most common
explanation for death in patients with diabetic autonomic neuropathy. Autonomic
dysfunction is associated with prolongation of the QT interval on the
electrocardiogram. This prolongation may increase the risk of ventricular
arrhythmia, especially in the presence of impaired vagus nerve parasympathetic
abnormalities. Respiratory abnormalities have also been described in patients with
diabetic autonomic neuropathy and could contribute to sudden death 1249].
Alcohol-Related Peripheral Neuropathy
The chronic and excessive use of alcohol leads to abnormalities in almost every
organ of the body, including the liver, pancreas, brain, peripheral and autonomic
nerves, skeletal muscles, and heart. Many alcoholics also suffer from some degree
of malnutrition. The cause of the chronic and excessive use of alcohol has been
debated for decades. There is increasing evidence that there is a genetic cause of
alcoholism. Because peripheral polyneuropathy is the most common neurologic problem
in alcoholics, alcoholism is considered in this section.
A number of different neurologic syndromes are related to the excessive use of
alcohol 1254-2581. Early signs of alcohol intoxication are altered mood, impaired
intellectual function, and limb and gait incoordination. Al blood elhanol
concentrations >21,7 mmol/L vestibular and cerebellar dysfunction predominate,
causing nystagmus, diplopia, dysarthria, and ataxia [257], Autonomic involvement
due to intoxication can cause hypotension and hypothermia 12571. Alcohol
hypoglycemia can also occur. Severe intoxication can cause stupor, then
the death mal and are usually one to four in number. They usually stop without
treatment. Ale hoi withdrawal seizures are accompanied by hypomagnesemia and
alkalosis [256.259], Standard anticonvulsants are ineffective, but treatment of the
low magnesium and alkalosis prevents or helps stop the seizures. Seizures in
alcoholics who have had brain injuries related to head injuries or have other
causes of epilepsy, may have precipitation of seizures during alcohol withdrawal;
these pa* tients should be treated with anticonvulsants.
Delirium tremens typically begins 1 to 2 days after cessation of alcohol. Patients
often stop drinking because they are ill from pneumonia or gastrointestinal
problems such as pancreatitis or peptic ulcer disease. The syndrome begins with
tremulousness. Later hallucinations, typically visual, occur. In chronic
alcoholics wilh past withdrawal symptoms the delusions can be predominantly
auditory and persecutory. Signs of autonomic hyperactivity develop including
tachycardia, sweating, hyperactivity, and increased tremulousness. Orthostatic
hypotension may occur during alcohol withdrawal, probably due to altered
sympathetic activity at times compounded by dehydration.
Wernicke-Korsakoj](syndrome consists of four main features: oculomotor
abnormalities including opthalmoplegia. vertigo, and nystagmus; short-term mentors
loss often '.villi confusion: cerebellui :.\:i ..iu ind a peripheral
polyneuropathy [260]. The memory loss is often severe. Some patients with
Korsakoff's psychosis never regain the ability to make new memories. The pathology
of Wernicke's encephalopathy involves acute neuronal and vascular changes in the
mammillary bodies and structures surrounding the cerebral aqueduct and the third
and fourth ventricles of the brain. Hemorrhages are sometimes found in these
regions due to capillary leakage. Deficiency of thiamine causes a diffuse decrease
in the metabolism of glucose in the brain [257]. Thiamine deficiency is associated
with abnormalities of cocarboxylase and transketolase, two enzymes active in the
metabolism of pyruvic acid. Abnormalities in the metabolism of sugars in relation
to thiamine deficiency are thought to be important in the pathogenesis of the
brain lesions [260], The onset of Wernicke's encephalopathy is sometimes
precipitated by intravenous administration of glucose, Some patients with
Wernicke's encephalopathy have postural hypotension [108],
Although some alcoholics show evidence of poor cognition and intellectual
deterioration, the issue of whether or not there is a specific alcohol dementia is
controversial. Wernicke's disease, head injury, and nutritional deprivation can all
cause brain lesions that affect cognition and behavior. CT scans of chronic
alcoholics often show a pattern of enlarged ventricles and dilated cerebral sulci,
changes that often reverse after abstinence and improved nutritional intake
[261,262] Th increased {\SK fluid found i alcoholic d it late
oration of Purkinje cells, predominantly in the anterior and superior regions of
the cerebellar vermis [263]. The gait ataxia v$ alcoholic cerebellar degeneration
may develop acutely and sometimes improves after nutritional supplementation. The
lower extremities and gait are involved more than the upper limbs. Speech is often
dysrhythmic. poorly modulated in volume, and scanning in character.
Marchiafava-Bignami disease is a rare disorder first described in Italian red wine
drinkers 12641. In this condition there is acute necrosis of the corpus callosum
and adjacent cerebral white matter. The clinical picture is that of a confusional
state with frontal lobe-type behavioral dysfunction and an abnormal gait. CT and
MRl scans now can show the focal abnormalities in the corpus callosum and cerebral
white matter 1258,265J.
Central pontine myelinolysis is another disorder sometimes found in alcoholics
1261 |. The white matter in the central portion of the pons is acutely damaged,
causing weakness of all limbs, with ataxia and dysarthria. This condition is often
associated with correction of hyponatremia 1267,2681.
Acute loss of vision has also been described in alcoholics. These patients have
poor central vision and scotomas involving macular vision including the area of
central vision up to and including the blind spot. This condition has sometimes
been referred to as the tobacco-alcohol amblyopia syndrome [269,2701, The syndrome
represents an acute retrobulbar optic neuropathy presumably due to nutritional
deficiency.
Myopathy is also an important and underrecognized sequela of alcohol abuse. The
injury to muscle cells probably represents a direct toxic effect of alcohol 1257 J.
Both skeletal muscle and cardiac muscle arc vulnerable to the toxic effects of
alcohol [2711- Associated electrolyte imbalances can also exacerbate or cause
muscle weakness and necrosis. Myopathy can present acutely, often in relation to a
binge of alcohol drinking, and causes muscle weakness and pain, tenderness, and
swelling in affected muscles [272j. Proximal limb muscles are most severely
involved. Levels of muscle enzymes such as creatine kinase are strikingly elevated
and there may be myoglobinuria. Chronic myopathy is also very common in alcoholics
and is characterized by proximal muscle weakness and atrophy and muscle cramps
[2731. The hip and shoulder girdle muscles are most severely involved. A peripheral
neuropathy often coexists with the neuropathy.
Peripheral neuropathy is almost ubiquitous among chronic alcoholics. Controversy
still surrounds the issue of whether the neuropathy represents a direct toxic
effect of alcohol or instead is due to accompanying nutritional deficiencies.
Neuropathy is often a minor clinical feature found on examination in patients
admitted th hospital with alcohol withdrawal syndrom Wernicke'
The most common early symptom of alcohol-related neuropathy is unpleasant
dysesthctjc feelings in the toes and feet. Burning and stabbing feelings are
described, and the feel may be extremely sensitive lo stimulation, Palients often
withdraw from sensory testing of the involved regions because of the unpleasant
character of the burning pain induced by touching and manipulating the
hypcresthetic regions. These symptoms are often referred to as the ''burning feet
syndrome." Examination when possible shows diminished appreciation of pain, touch,
and temperature in the distal portions of the lower extremities and fingers. The
sensory loss is invariably distal and roughly symetrical. and fits a so-called
glove-and-stocking distribution [274]. Ankle reflexes are invariably lost. The knee
jerks may also be reduced. Weakness occurs only when the neuropathy is severe, but
occasional patienls develop a paralyzing neuropathy with severe weakness of all
limb muscles. Gait ataxia is a frequent accompaniment and is probably due to a
combination of loss of proprioception and degeneration of the cerebellar vermis.
The neuropathy may temporarily progress even after patients stop drinking and
despite nutritional and vitamin supplementation. However, the prognosis for
recovery is good with prolonged abstinence from alcohol [275].
Cardiovascular Manifestations, The acute ingestion of alcohol may cause dilatation
of the arterioles in the skin, tachycardia, and a drop in systemic blood pressure.
Alcohol can also cause a slight decrease in cardiac ejection fraction in
individuals who have normal hearts. This change in the ejection fraction does not
cause any difficulty in palients with normal hearts but can contribute to left
ventricular dysfunction in patients with heart disease 1276].
Alcohol has the potential lo produce cardiac arrhythmias in patients wilh heart
disease and even in those wilh normal hearts. Atrial premature depolarizations and
atrial fibrillation are the usual arrhythmias related to alcohol use. The catchy
name "holiday heart" is often given to alcohol-related arrhythmias because the
situation often involves busy individuals who overindulge in alcohol during
holidays from work.
Chronic alcohol use can cause a dilated cardiomyopathy 1277], It is not always
possible to blame alcohol alone for the dilated cardiomyopathy because it is not
possible to eliminate myocarditis or other causes of cardiomyopathy in palients who
may also consume alcohol. The fact that cardiomyopathy does not develop in all or
even most heavy alcohol consumers indicates that other factors may make affected
individuals susceptible to the toxic cardiac effects of alcohol. Dilated
cardiomyopathy is common and is recognized more now than in the past. The condition
leads to chronic congestive heart failure and all of its complications
but also causes high-output cardiac failure in which the extremities are warmer
than normal. Clinical beriberi is rarely seen today, even in patients who consume
excessive alcohol and eat poorly.
Musi paiicnls with alcohol-related peripheral neuropath) dn not show juionomic
dysfunction. Some patients have orthostatic hypotension during alcohol withdrawal
[108]. Occasional alcoholic patients with a chronic peripheral poly-neuropath; ha\
e chronic postural h\ poiension due to s) mpathetic nervous swe m dysfunction
[2781. Although sympathetic autonomic nervous system involvement in the peripheral
neuropathy found in alcoholics is relatively uncommon, studies show that
abnormalities of parasympathetic function are relatively common 1279J. Vagus nerve
involvement can affect cardiac function ajtd contributes to hoarseness and
dysphagia [279,280]. Necropsy examination of patients with alcohol-related
neuropathy has shown degeneration of the vagus nerves [281 ]. Vagal abnormalities
that occur as a result of alcoholism can reverse after se\ era! months of
absiinence from alcohol [282],
Whereas small amounts of regular alcohol consumption may help prevent
atherosclerosis by altering the lipid profile, the chronic use of excess alcohol
increases the likelihood of developing hypertension [283], Heavy alcohol intake
probably increases the likelihood of strokes both ischemic and hemorrhagic
[284,285].
Uremic Neuropathy
Peripheral neuropathy develops in the great majority of patienls who have chronic
uremia. Patients wilh acute renal failure show segmental damage to the Schwann
ccll-myelin sheith of peripheral nerves, and the axis cylinders and myelin shciihs
of nerves are damaged in patients with chronic uremia [286-288]. The neuropathy is
probably caused by toxic substances thai accumulate because of the renal failure.
The symptoms of uremic polyneuropathy begin in the lower extremities long before
symptoms are noted in the arms 1286,289]. Patients descrihe burning feelings in the
toes and feet, itching of the legs, and the sensation of "something crawling on the
skin." Patients soon learn that moving the legs tends to temporarily relieve the
unpleasant sensations. Sensory symptoms and signs usually predominate over motor.
Position sense and vibration sense are lost in ihe feet and diminished al the knees
and fingers. Deep tendon reflexes are lost. If unirealed, uremic patients often
develop a bilateral foot drop. The combination of position sense loss and foot drop
creates a rather characteristic high-steppage. ataxic gait. Dialysis may stabilize
the neuropathy but usually does not lead to important improvement in symptoms or
signs. The neuropathy usually improves considerably afte l transplantation A acut
subacutet developin neuropath charac encephalopathy are common in chronic severe
uremia if palients are not dialyzed. The encephalopathy is characterized by
drowsiness, lack of interest and spontaneity, tremulousness, asterixis, and slow
intellectual functioning.
Cardiovascular Findings. Pericarditis is common in patienls with uremia who have
signs of a polyneuropathy. It is always wise to look for other causes of
pericarditis in uremic palients because nonuremic causes also occur in such
patients. Unlike the symptoms of polyneuropathy, the signs and symptoms of uremic
pericarditis are relieved by renal dialysis.
The chest pain of pericarditis is located in the precordial area and is made worse
by inspiration. The pain may be felt on top of the left shoulder: this is
attributed to involvement of the phrenic nerve, li should be emphasized, however:
all patients wilh uremic pericarditis do not have chest pain. A loud pericardial
friction rub may be heard. The rub tends lo be louder when it is due to uremia than
when it is due to other causes. Sometimes three components to the rub can be
defined. A pericardial rub is heard when the heart moves with atrial systole,
ventricular systole, and ventricular diastole. Cardiac tamponade is more likely to
occur during dialysis if the patient's blood volume becomes decreased. Then, too.
the use of heparin may produce abrupt pericardial bleeding and subsequent cardiac
tamponade.
The electrocardiographic signs of acute pericarditis due to viral infection,
collagen disease, or neoplasia are well known. The changes in the
electrocardiogram can be dividied into four stages:
1.
An S-T vector due to generalized epicardial injury develops. It is directed
toward the anatomic cardiac apex. The T-wave vector remains normally directed. The
P-R segment may be displaced.

2.
The mean S-T vector may decrease in size, and the mean T vector may lend to point
away from the anatomic cardiac apex.

3.
The mean S-T vector may continue to decrease in size until it almost vanishes and
the T wave vector becomes large.

4.
The electrocardiogram may return to normal or the T-waves may remain abnormal.

The electrocardiographic signs of acute pericarditis are illustrated in Figures 8


and 9. The electrocardiographic signs of pericarditis related to uremia are seen
less often than when the pericarditis is due to viral infections, collagen disease,
or neoplasia.
Spodick wrote the following paragraph on uremic pericarditis in his hook on the
pericardium [291], It is reproduced here with permission,
#vfr
V2
1 1 A \
""i
1

a. m m m, qn, ST.T BL

FIG, 8 Electrocardiogram in early-stage pericarditis. This electrocardiogram shows


the abnormalities of stage 1 pericarditis as most often occurs with viral
pericarditis. Note that the P-Q segment is displaced. The mean S-T vector is
directed toward the cardiac apex. The mean T vector has not as yet changed in
direction. The mean QRS vector is directed about -45 to the left and about 20
posteriorly; it is abnormal because of left anterior-superior division block that
is unrelated to the pericarditis. ([Tap] Modilied from Shabetai
R. The Pericardium. New York: Grune & Si ration, 1981:35V. Reproduced wilh
permission. [Bottom] From Hurst JW. Ventricular electrocardiography. New York:
Gower Medical
JVL

V2 V3 V4 V6 V6
1
v 1

FlG. 9 Electrocardiogram ol late-stage pericarditis. This electrocardiogram shows


the abnormalities associated with a later stage of acute pericarditis than was
illustrated in Figure 8. Note that the mean S-T segment vector is not as prominent
but that the mean T-vectof tends to point away from the cardiac apex. These
change:* are typical of those found in palients with acute viral pericarditis.
(From Hurst JW, Woodson GC Jr. Atlas of Spatial Vector Electrocardiography. New
York: Blakiston Company, 1952:199. Reproduced with permission. Hurst JW.
Ventricular electrocardiography. New York: Gowcr Medical Publishing. 1991:10.4.
Copyright, JW Hurst.)
unique in that the inflammatory cells do not penetrate the myocardium. Tliis
accounts for ihe customary absence of typical Stage I electrocardiographic (ECG)
changes which depend on subepicardial myocarditis. Indeed, when the ECG is typical
of acute pericarditis, intercurrent infection must be suspected: any local change
should suggest ischemia. Most often, ECGs are grossly unchanged during uremic
pericarditis and reflect associated abnormalities like left \ cumcuiar hypertrophy
and strain/' any coronary artery disease, and metabolic abnormalities like
hyperkalemia and hypocalcemia JFig. I Of While any of these would tend to buffer
superimposed acute J (ST) changes, these are absent unless there is an infectious
pericarditis. Fluid retention and pleural effusions, particularly left or
bilateral, may reduce LCG voltages with or without pericardial effusion.
The usual uremic pericarditis disappears with dialysis. There is, however, a form
of dialysis-pericarditis that is thought to be due to the increase in circulating
immune complexes that develop in some patienls undergoing the procedure 1291 f The
chest x-ray film may show a large cardiac silhouette due to the accumulation of
pericardial fluid. An echocardiogram may show a shaggy pericardium and

FIG. 10 111 echocardiogram recorded from a patient with uremic pericarditis. This
electrocardiogram was recorded following the appearance of a loud pericardial
friction rub in a patient with uremia; it shows no evidence of pericarditis. Left
ventricular hypertrophy
pericardial fluid. Ridit atrial and right ventricular diastolic collapse may he
observed when cardiac tamponade develops.
Amyloidosis and Amyloid Neuropathy
Amyloid is a term that was lirsl used by Virchow to describe abnormal
extracellular material resembling starch or cellulose that was Found in the tiver
of some patienls at necropsy [292]. Amyloid consists of different types of protein
plus other substances and may be found in any and all organs. Amyloid appears
homogeneous and pink with hematoxylin and eosin stains; when stained with Congo
red and viewed under polarized light, amyloid produces an apple-green
birefringence.
The classification of amyloidosis is based on the chemical characteristics of the
abnormal fibrils of protein [292-295]. Primary amyloidosis is a plasma ceil
dyscrasia related to multiple myeloma in which clonal cells in the bone marrow
produce immunoglobulins that are amyloidogenie j 2921. The amyloid fibrils in this
disorder consist of variable portions of monoclonal light chains. Some patients
have multiple myeloma; others have an increased number of plasma cells in their
bone marrow. Amyloidosis associated with multiple myeloma is commonly viewed as a
separate entity but symptoms and signs related to amyloidosis are similar in
patients with and without frank myeloma. Tumors consisting of amyloid may be
localized in various organs.
Primary amyloidosis is mostly a disease found in older men. Weakness, fatigue, and
weight loss are lhe major early symptoms. The peripheral nerves and heart arc
almost invariably affected. Amyloid may deposit in the carpal ligaments, causing a
caipal tunnel syndrome. Ankle edema, purpura, and enlargement of the tongue are
commonly fount I. Wavy papules may be found on the skin. The skin lesions bleed
when they are rubbed The liver may be enlarged and evidence of the nephrotic
syndrome may be apparent, Palients commonly have severe heart disease.
Gastrointestinal disease with malabsorption is another presentation of the
disorder. Biopsy of the skin, muscle, nerve, gums, or rectal mucosa in these
patienls usually shows amyloid deposits, Monoclonal immunoglobulins or light chains
are delected in 90% of patients with primary amyloidosis by immunofixation
electrophoresis of serum or urine |292|.
Secondary amyloidosis occurs in patients with chronic diseases such as
tuberculosis, rheumatoid arthritis, inflammatory bowel disease, osteomyelitis, and
leprosy, and in patients who are having chronic renal dialysis. This reactive form
of the disease is characterized by deposits of nonimmunogiobulin. The amyloid is
formed from several types of serum amyloid a, acute-phase proteins produced i
inflammation Secondar amyloidosi als i patient gene. The most common form is caused
by mutant transthyretin [2921- Transthyretin is a transport protein for thyroxin
atid retinol-binding protein that is synthesized in the liver and in the choroid
plexus 1292J. Amyloid may be found in the arteries, heart, liver, kidneys, skin,
gastrointestinal system, tongue, gums, rectum, peripheral nerves, autonomic nerves,
and ganglia. The anterior horn cells become abnormal and the posterior columns of
the cord degenerate.
In patients with primary amyloidosis, neuropathic symptoms usually begin in the
lower extrremities, and sensory symptoms are more prominent than motor. Altered
feeling, loss of feeling, prickling numbness, and pain are commonly reported. Both
small and large liber sensory libers are involved. Muscle weakness may develop
later. Autonomic dysfunction is often prominent and may be responsible for the
presenting complaints. Decreased sweating, postural hypotension, syncope, and
impotence are common |2951. In some patients pain and temperature sensation and
autonomic nervous system functions are selectively involved, and biopsies of nerves
show predominant loss of unmyelinated nerve fibers. Some patients present with
symptoms of carpal tunnel syndrome. Occasionally masses of amyloid involve skeletal
muscles, causing muscle weakness and atrophy. Muscle biopsy in these patients
shows deposition of amyloid material between muscle libers with compression of the
fibrils and loss of fibril detail.
In some familial forms of amyloidosis the peripheral nerves are involved early and
neuropathy is the predominant feature. Familial amyloidotic peripheral neuropathy
was first reported by Andrade, who studied a Portuguese family who developed
progressive sensory loss in their limbs [296J. The disorder is often called
Andrade's syndrome. The signs of polyneuropathy begin in the second and third
decades of life. Dealh usually occurs one to two decades later. The patient notices
numbness, paralhesias, and pain in the legs and feet. The tendon reflexes are
commonly diminished. Autonomic dysfunction leads to a loss of pupillary reflexes,
decreased sweating, and postural hypotension. Vibration sense may be diminished and
the patient may have difficulty walking. Late in the course of the disease, cranial
nerve neuropathy may become apparent. Patients may lose their sense of taste and
develop weakness of the facial muscles. Visual complaints are due to opacites in
the vitreous, and deafness may develop, Transthyretin is the protein most often
involved. Transthyretin (also often referred to as prealbumin) is a 127-amino acid
residue single-chain polypeptide [297.298J. Liver transplantation is probably
effective in halting and even reversing the disease [297,2981.
There is a subset of patients with familial amyloidosis that have the carpal tunnel
syndrome. These patients, often of Swiss descent, develop paresthesias of th
fingertip du compressio secondar amyloid deposit i th
Another subset of familial amyloidosis was originally observed in Finland. The
patients have predominately cranial neuropathy and corneal lattice dystrophy. All
organs arc involved in patients with this variani of the disease.
Cardiovascular Findings. Amyloidosis produces very serious cardiovascular
problems. Amyloid deposits occur in all parts of the heart and may occur in the
coronary arteries (Fig. 11).
Restrictive cardiomyopathy may develop in patients with cardiac amyloidosis. 1'he
leiitriele-. are *liH and resi^l filling. Tins restrictive form ol cardiomyopathy
produces a clinical picture of diastolic myocardial dysfunction similar to that
seen in patients with constrictive cardiomyopathy. The heart may not be enlarged or
may be slightly enlarged. The external jugular veins become distended and
peripheral edema develops. Orthopnea is uncommon in such patients. The right
ventricular pressure curve reveals a "SL|uare-root sign1* which is similar to the
abnormality found in patients with constrictive pericarditis.
Patients with amyloidosis of the heart may also have dilated cardiomyopathy. Such
patienls have systolic myocardial dysfunction. These patients may also have atrial
amyloidosis that limits atrial contractility. This could be referred to as atrial
cardiomyopathy. Atrial thrombi may be present even when patients are in sinus
rhythm: the unset of atrial fibrillation is associated with a high risk of
thromboembolism [292]. The heart is larger than normal and congestive heart failure
is progressive. Death commonly occurs a few months after the development of severe
heart failure.

Patients with all forms of amyloidosis have postural hypoiension due to autonomic
dysfunaion that results from amyloid deposits in autonomic nervous system fibers.
Autonomic control of cardiac function as shown by radiolabeled meta-
iodobenzylguanidine (MJBG) is often abnormal (299], Patients with familial amyloid
polyneuropathy show a high incidence of myocardial adrenergic denervation on M1BG
radionuclide scans even before they show significant wall thickening or have
abnormal technetium myocardial scanning [299J.
The physical examination may show hypotension, a lefl ventricular diastolic gallop
sound, pulsus alternans. distended external neck veins, a large V-wave in lhe
internal jugular vein, an enlarged liver, and peripheral edema.
Cardiac arrhythmias, including atrial fibrillation and serious ventricular
arrhythmias, and cardiac conduction abnormalities may be seen in the
electrocardiogram. The QRS amplitude is almost always diminished and primary T-
wave abnormalities are commonly found. Abnormal initial QRS forces (Q-waves) may be
seen. This abnormality, which suggests a myocardial infarction due to coronary
atherosclerosis, is usually due to a large area of electrically inert amyloid
deposits. The intact cardiac muscle located opposite to the inert area creates the
abnormal initial force. On rare occasions amyloid deposits in the coronary arteries
can produce myocardial ischemia and infarction. Angina pectoris can occur in
patienls wilh amyloid cardiomyopathy, as it does in other types of cardiomyopathy,
even when the coronary arteriogram is normal. The electrocardiogram of a patient
with cardiomyopathy due to amyloidosis is shown in Figure 12.
The echocardiogram shows diastolic dysfunction when there is restrictive
cardiomyopathy. Systolic function may be preserved in such cases, and left
ventricular dilatation is rare. Left atrial enlargement may he present because of
the elevated atrial-filling pressure. In a small percent of palients the chambers
are dilated and systolic dysfunction is evident. The ventricles are echogenic: that
is, they appear brighter than usual on the echocardiogram. A nuclear scan using
technetium 99m pyrophyosphale is often positive.
Although lhe diagnosis is commonly made on clinical grounds, a biopsy may be needed
in some patients. Biopsy of a skin lesion, gums, rectum, kidney, liver, bone
marrow, abdominal fat, or the right and left ventricular endocardium may be needed.

Mi
II 111
V3

FlG. 12 Amyloid cardiomyopathy. Low voltage (amplitude) of the QRS complexes is


noted. This electrocardiogram was recorded from a 69-year-old woman with
restrictive cardiomyopathy due to amyloid disease. Amyloid cardiomyopathy commonly
produces low amplitude of the QRS complexes, and the abnormally directed initial
0.04-second QRS vector may suggest a dead zone simulating myocardial infarction due
to atherosclerotic coronary heart disease, (From Hurst JW. Cardiovascular
Diagnosis: The Initial K\animation. St. Louis: Mosby. 199.V3O0-30I. Reproduced
with permission.)
to neurologic dysfunction. This condition is inherited as an autosomal-dominant
trait. There is an increase in production and urinary excretion of porphobilinogen
related to a deficiency in the enzyme porphobilinogen deaminase: this inborn error
of metabolism can be present in a latent form for long periods of time. Patients
have attacks that most often include neurologic abnormalities, abdominal pain, and
autonomic nervous system dysfunction.
Patients with intermittent porphyria arc commonly women who have otherwise
unexplained episodes of abdominal pain, severe constipation, and peripheral
neuropathy. Attacks can be precipitated by starvation, infection, and certain
drugs. Virtually all drugs that induce the hepatic microsomal cytochrome P450
system have the potential to precipitate attacks of ATP [3001. A history of
barbituson-Schwartz test is a useful screening test for the presence of
porphobilinogenin the urine. Definitive diagnosis of A1P depends on showing a
decrease in porphobilinogen deaminase levels in red blood cells.
The most common features of attacks are related to autonomic nervous system
dysfunction. In patients dying of A IP. acute demy el i nation is found in the
vagus nerve and chromatolysis is found in the dorsal nucleus of the vagus in the
medulla oblongata; the hypothalamus and the sympathetic chain are also involved
[301-3041. Ahdominal pain, often severe, is a central feature of attacks. The
abdominal pain is probably caused by the autonomic neuropathy which results in an
imbalance in the innervation of the gastrointestinal tract with resultant areas of
spasm and dilatation. The abdominal pain is usually accompanied by constipation,
and vomiting may occur. A small number of palients have diarrhea [301,304], Other
manifestations of autonomic dysfunction such as labile hypertension, postural
hypotension, tachycardia, sweating, and urinary retention are often \\MW\(\ during
attacks 1301.302]. Hyponatremia is common and may relate to the hypothalamic
pathology [300.305].
Abdominal pain is the first symptom of an attack in about 85% of patients [3011.
Abdominal pain almost always precedes the development of neuropathy. Mental
symptoms including confusion and psychosis may also precede the neuropathy [306],
Some patients have severe hypertension, and may de\ elop edema in the posterior
portions of the cerebral hemispheres associated with transient cortical blindnessa
posterior leukoencephalopathy syndrome [307]. Convulsive seizures may also occur
[308].
The neuropathy in a full, severe attack of AIP usually develops within 2 to 3 days
of the onset of abdominal pain and neuropsychiatries symptoms [300], Back or limb
pain may precede paralysis. Motor weakness is often severe and outweighs sensory
abnormalities. The disease closely resembles Guillain-Barre syndrome. The weakness
may be asymmetric and often begins in the upper limbs or in muscles innervated by
the cranial nerves. Swallowing difficulty, facial weak ness. and weakness of the
tongue are common. Proximal limb muscles are affected along with distal muscles,
Unpleasant migratory paresthesias are sometimes reported by palients. Progression
to maximal weakness Usually occurs within a few days, but the disorder can progress
over weeks 13(H)J.
Patients with other hereditary porphyrin disorders (hereditary coproporphyria,
variegate porphyria, and hereditary tyrosinemia) can also develop attacks wilh
neuropathy but usually less severe than in AIP [300].
Cardiovascular Findings. AIP and the other porphyrias have not been
d direc effect th heart Th autonomi dys

Lipoprotein Deficiency Disorders


Ahetaliproproteinemia (Bassen-Kornsweig disease 1309J). This disorder is
transmitted as an autosomal-recessive trait. The serum cholesterol, triglycerides,
fatty acids, and triglycerides are low. and all plasma lipoproteins containing
apolipoprotein B are absent |310f Macular degeneration and retinitis pigmentosa are
common, as \>. aeatithocytosis of the red blood cells. Malabsorption occurs because
of an abnormality in the intestinal epithelium. Steatorrhea in infancy and slowness
of growth are characteristic lean ires of this disease. Children are usually small
and show slow psychomotor development. The brain abnormalities are probably related
to nutritional factors. The neuromuscular manifestations are the most disabling
feature of the disorder. Large sensory neurons in the dorsal root ganglia and their
central pathways are most heavily involved.
The tendon reflexes often disappear in early childhood, and vibratory and position
sense may be absent in the lower extremities. Cerebellar abnormalities including
gait, trunk, and extremity ataxia develop later 13i 1J, Temperature and pain
sensation may be lost and BabinskTs sign may be present. Eye movements are also
often abnormal [311 \. Kyphoscoliosis and pes cavus foot deformity may develop
secondary to the extensive neuropathy. The kyphoscoliosis, foot deformity, can
lead to an erroneus diagnosis of Friedreich's ataxia, which shares many clinical
features with abetalipoproteinemia.
Cardiovascular Manifestations. Cardiac enlargemenl and heart failure are serious
and late manifestations in patients wilh abetalipoproteinemia, Malabsorption, fat-
soluble vitamin deficiencies, and the lipoprotein disorders may play a role in the
development of cardiovascular disease. The autonomic nervous system is usually not
involved [31l|.
Tangier Disease. Tangier disease is inherited as an autosomal recessive condition.
The patients have low serum cholesterol, low serum high-density lipoprotein,
elevated triglycerides, absent or low high-density lipoprotein, and decreased
phospholipids [310,311]. Cholesterol esters accumulate in the tonsils, spleen,
liver, thymus, intestinal mucosa, peripheral nerves, and cornea. The presence of
enlarged, yellow-orange cholesterol-laden tonsils is the most conspicuous
diagnostic feature of patients with Tangier disease. Splenomegaly is common. The
condition is caused by the increased catabolism of the lipids rather than a
decrease in production. The disorder was named after Tangier Island, Virginia, home
of the first two reported patients [3121.
Peripheral neuropathy is common in palients with Tangier disease; ii is develop in
attacks. The sensory loss for pain and temperature may he generalized. In some
palients there is a dissociated sensory loss: that is. pain and temperature sense
are lost but touch sensation is preserved in the same regions 1310.311|. The
muscles of the extremities and hands are weak, and with the passage of time become
atrophied. The tendon reflexes arc diminished.
Cardiovascular Findings. Even though the serum level of high-density lipoprotein is
absent or low, patients with Tangier disease do not develop an increase in
incidence of coronary atherosclerosis [313,314], The disease is discussed here to
emphasize an exception to the rule that a low level of high-density lipoprotein is
associated with an increase in coronary atherosclerosis.
Phytanic Acid Storage Disease (Refsum Disease)
Refsum disease is caused by an inborn error of lipid metabolism and is inherited as
an auto so ma I-recessive trait. Patients with this disease cannot metabolize the
ingested phytanic acid. Accordingly, phytanic acid, a tetramethylated 16-carbon
fatty acid, accumulates in the blood because it cannot be oxidized. Dairy products
of all kinds, ruminant fats, and ruminant meats are the major dietary source of
phytanic acid f315,316]. Most patienls have the diagnostic tetrad of retinitis
pigmentosa, peripheral polyneuropathy, cerebellar signs, and increased
cerebrospinal Huid protein content [3161.
The symptoms of this disorder begin in youth and include chronic polyneuropathy,
night-blindness associated with retinitis pigmentosa, deafness, cerebellar ataxia,
cataracts, abnormalities of the pupils, restricted visual fields, night blindness,
and ichlhyotie skin changes. The physical examination shows loss of sensation in
the distal parts of the extremities and absent tendon reflexes. Muscle weakness
and atrophy are prominent in the distal parts of the tower limbs. Foot drop is
common. Vibration and position sense are lost in the toes and feet. Nerves are
sometimes enlarged and contain onion bulb-type overgrowth of connective tissue
elements including Schwann cells [3I7J. The hypertrophied nerves may be palpably
enlarged, especially the ulnar nerve in the ulnar groove and the peroneal nerve, as
it lies near the fibular head.
The cerebrospinal Huid protein content is increased often markedly. Normally,
there is <0.3 mg/dL of phytanic acid in the blood; the level of the substance is
increased in patients with Refsum disease.
Cardiovascular Findings. Most palients with Refsum disease have cardiac
abnormalities [316]. Gordon and Hudson described the pathological changes in the
heart in 1959 [318]. The electrocardiogram of the patient reported by Gordo d
Hudso showed primar T-wav abnormalit d abnormal ST

FlG. 13 Abnormalities ol the phrenic nerve. Left ventricle and atrium due to
Refsuni's disease. (A) Dissection to show the nodular thickenings ol* the left
phrenic nerve (left arrow) and vagus nerve (right arrow) in a man of 51 years with
Refsum's disease. The central arrow indicates the ligamentum arteriosum. (B) View
of left ventricle and atrium to show the concentric hypertrophy of the ventricle.
(From Ret. 1.>X. Copyright. REB Hudson, 1965. Reproduced with permission.)
the heart. Many of the myocytes are difficult to identify and the surviving
myocytes become hypertrophied. Areas of endocardial fibrosis can be detected. The
atrial myocardium shows a loss of its normal structure. The cardiac pathology of
Refsum disease is shown in Figures 13 and 14. The phrenic and vagus nerves may show
nodular thickening at necropsy, and the autonomic nerves may be larger ihan normal.
The sinus node and bundle of His are also often larger than normal.
Fabry Disease
Fabry disease is a glycol ipid storage disease that is transmitted as a sex-1 inked
recessive genetic mutation carried on the X chromosome. Only the mother needs to be
a carrier to have an affected son. The enzymatic defect is a deficiency of the
enzyme that clca\ cs the terminal molecule of galactose from ceramidetrihexoside
(the lysosomal hydrolase alpf.a-galactosida.se} 1320.3211. As a result of this
deficiency, ceramide trihexoside accumulates in the tissues, especially in the kid
liver spleen heart adventiti f blood vessel f th skin brum

F ig. 14 Abnormalities of the atrium and ventricles in RefsuirTs disease. tA) and
(B) Right atrial myocardium showing marked loss of structure. Transverse striations
are still visible in B, but the fibers appear to be in a state of dissolution (A.
X75: B. X565). iC\ Right ventricular myocardium showing similar degenerative change
(X75). (D) Left ventricle showing endocardial fibroelastosis and marked vacuolation
of the subendocardial myocardium (X75). <E) Left ventricle showing replacement
fibrosis and hypertrophy of
legs [3201. There is often a reddish -purple maculopapular skin rash concentrated
near the umbilicus and in the scrotal, inguinal, and gluteal regions.
Telangiectases may be prominent under the nail beds and in the oral mucosa and
conjunctiva,
The most important cause of disability and death is kidney disease that is caused
by the gradual accumulation of glycolipid in the renal glomeruli and tubules.
Strokes, hypertension, and premature myocardial infarcts arc also common. Some
patients have decreased sweating, corneal opacities, and peripheral edema. The
peripheral edema may appear before any signs of kidney disease or hypertension and
may represent lymphedema 1320,32If The major manifestation of the peripheral
neuropathy is painful paresthesias.
Cardiac and Cardiovascular Findings. Lipid infiltration of the myocardium leads lo
a hypertrophic cardiomyopathy. There is also deposition of glycolipid in the
cardiac conduction system. Occasional patients who arc shown lo have very low
plasma levels of alpha-galactosidase activity have only heart disease manifested
mainly by left ventricular hypertrophy [321a]. These patients have no other
manifestations of Fabry disease Myocardial biopsies in these patients show
lysosomal inclusions in the sarcoplasma of cardiac myocytes |321a]. Mitral valve
prolapse is found in more than half of patients studied by echocardiography
1321,322]. The ECG often shows a shortened PR interval, and ventricular
irritability is also common [323]. Arrhythmias and heart block may develop,
requiring placement of pacemakers [321]. Premature myocardial infarctions occur
because of the vascular disease and because of enhanced plaiclcl aggregation L324J.
The myocardial and rhythm abnormalities predispose lo ihe formation of mural
thrombi in the heart, which can be the cause of brain embolism 1321 J.
Strokes are also very common in palients with Fabry disease [322a]. Strokes occur
in relatively young patients and are predominantly ischemic. The strokes are often
caused by small penetrating artery occlusive disease. The media of penetrating
arteries is thickened by the deposition of glycolipid. Some patients have had
dolichoectatic changes in intracranial arteries, especially involving the
intracranial vertebral and basilar arteries [322a]. Deposition of glycolipid in
endothelial, perithelia!, and smooth muscle cells of large arteries probably leads
to dilatation and tortuosity of these vessels. Blood flow in dilated ectatic
arteries is often inefficient, leading to thrombus formation and poor perfusion of
branches of the dolichoectatic arteries.
Other Hereditary and Familial Neuropathies
Familial neuropathic disorders are quite common. Experienced neurologists have
opined ofte thai th importan singl i patient with undiagnosed experts in the field
cannot keep pace with the complicated classification system and nomenclature- Dis.
Peter Dyck and Anita Harding have been leaders in this complex field. These
disorders are now customarily described as "hereditary and sensory neuropathies'*
(HMSNk and as of 1993 there were at least HMSN IHMSN Xll [325J.
The first reported hereditary neuropathy and the best-known and most common
disorder was described during the late 19th century and named after two very well
known French neurologistsJean Martin Charcot and Pierre Marie and an English
neurologist named Tooth. This condition is usually called peroneal muscular atrophy
or Charcot-Marie-Tooth (CMT) disease. The disorder is now known to be somewhat
heterogeneous and is composed of both a neuronal and a peripheral form. The
conditions arc inherited as an autosomal-dominant trail, but in some families the
disorder is inherited as an autosomal-reccssive trait. Historically, early
observers sometimes linked the disease lo Friedreich's ataxia because of somewhat
similar clinical and pathological findings. Eater, students of the disease
established thai Charcot-Marie-Tooth syndrome is predominantly a neuropathy and
distinguishable clinically and pathologically from the disease described by
Freidreich, which was a form of spinocerebellar degeneration. One variety of
disease begins in late childhood and another variety begins later in life. The
disease is characterized by atrophy of the muscles of the feet and legs. The
muscles of the hands may become involved as time passes. Deformity of the feet and
hands is characteristic of the disease; the feet develop an equinovarus deformity
and the hands become el aw I ike. Sensation is diminished and paresthesias may be
noted. The tendon reflexes arc diminished. Walking eventually becomes difficult or
impossible. Some patients have a very mild form of the disorder characterized by
slight alroph\ of peroneal innervated muscles. The condition has been divided into
several types depending on the results of nerve conduction velocity studies [325J.
Cardiovascular Findings. Most patients with the Charcol-Marie-Tooth forms of
hereditary motor and sensory neuropathies do not have autonomic nervous system
involvement. In one study, the authors found no abnormalities of cardiovascular
reflexes in patienls with this disorder when compared to controls 1328]. Occasional
patients have been reported to have paroxysmal atrial flutter [329]. cardiac
conduction abnormalities 13301. and congestive heart failure due to cardiomyopathy
|33l |. However, cardiomyopathy and arrhythmias are rare in patienls with this
neurologic abnormality, and it may not be possible lo exclude an unrelated cause.
Neuropathy begins in childhood or earlier. The first symptoms are paresthesias and
pain in the feet, and then weakness of the forearms and lower legs develops.
The feet and hands begin lo appear clawlike. Sensation of the amis and legs may be
decreased and tendon reflexes become diminished. The peroneal, ulnar, median,
radial, and other superficial nerves may become sufficiently large to be felt by
the examiner. The nerves, however, are not tender to the touch. The spinal cord
ma \ become compressed because the spinal roots of lhe nerves become larger than
normal. The enlargement is due, as in other diseases in which demyelination of the
nerves occurs, to the repair of demyeimated segments of nerves with connective
tissue and collagen. Cardiovascular abnormalities have not been reported in
patients with this form of hereditary neuropathy.
DISEASES OF MUSCLE AND THE NEUROMUSCULAR JUNCTION
Many of the conditions that affect skeletal muscle fibers also involve cardiac
muscle.
Muscle Dystrophies Duchenne Muscular Dystrophy
"Dystrophinopathy" is now the term often used to describe allelic disorders ranging
from Duchenne muscular dystrophy to palients who have only an elevation of serum
creatine kinase (333,3341. Duchenne dystrophy is the second most common hereditary
disease of muscle, hehind only myotonic dystrophy in frequency. Until recently
Duchenne dystrophy was thought to be due to a mutation of the responsible gene. Now
it is known that 20% of cases may be familial and are inherited as an X-linked
autosomal-dominant or -recessive trait. Males have the disease and females are
carriers. The gene that is responsible for the production of dystrophin is located
on the short arm of the X chromosome situated at the \p21 locus 13351. Simply
staled, dystrophin is needed for the normal development of muscle cells. This type
of dystrophinopathy, which ocelli's in one of 4000 male births, may be associated
with abnormalities of neurons, skeletal muscle, cardiac muscle, and smooth muscle
[336J. Some patients with Duchenne dystrophy show mild tortus of menial
retardation.
Although the condition is present at birth, it is usually not recognized until the
male child is about 2 years old. Cowers" sign is useful in making the diagno

FIG. 15 Duchenne's muscular dystrophy showing pseudohypertrophy of the calves. . \


mm Silverman Ml , Hura . lns|ieciion of lhe patient. In: Hui si Jw , I ogue RB,
eds. The Heart. 2ndcd. New York: McGraw-Hill, Inc. 1970:152, Reproduced with
permission.)
be present. The diaphragm may be involved and this makes coughing difficult. The
limbs are usually initially loose and llaeeid. but later fibrosis and contractures
develop. The last years of life are spent in a wheelchair, and terminally affected
palients become bedridden. Patients with Duchenne dystrophy usually die in late
adolescence or their earl. J' v nost often due to pulmonary infections,
respiratory failure, and cardiac decompensation. The serum level of creatine
kinase (CK) is markedly elevated in patients with Duchenne muscular dystrophy. The
enzyme is elevated at birth before other signs of the disease are evident. The
muscle cells obtained by skeletal muscle biopsy contain very little if any
dystrophin. If any is found, it has normal molecular weight.
Cardiovascular Findings, Duchenn muscula dystroph i commonl

FlG. 16 Cardiomyopathy due to Duchenne dystrophy. Cartoon of the left side of the
heart illustrating the distribution of fibrous scarring. The scarring was focal and
limited to the posterolateral free wall of the left ventricle. No scarring wax
observed in the diaphragmatic or inferior free wall or in lhe ventricular septum,
but the papillary muscle was involved. (From Ref 337. Reproduced with permission of
Dr. Joseph Perloff and the publisher.)
fibrosis may be found throughout the heart, it is located predominantly in the
posterior-basilar and posterior-lateral portion of the left ventricle [337]. The
posterior-lateral papillary muscle to the mitral valve may be involved. Many of
the clinical manifestations of the disease are produced by the unique location of
the fibrosis found in the heart J337]. Palients may complain of dyspnea on effort
due
hear failur d palpitation Th physical examinatio i distinctive Th ches Accordingly,
there may be a slight anterior lift of the chest wall, and the pulmonary valve
closure sound may be louder than usual. A systolic murmur may be heard at the
cardiac apex; it is due to mitral regurgitation caused by the fibrosis of the
posterior-lateral papillary muscle of the mitral valve. Chest x-rays may show
cardiac enlargement but the cardiac silhouette is often distorted because of the
chest wait deformity and elevated diaphragm.
The electrocardiogram is usually abnormal and serves as an excellent screening
test. Perloff et ah list the following electrocardiographic abnormalities that are
found in patients with Duchenne muscular dystrophy 1337 f There may be a left
atrial abnormality due to a conduction abnormality in the left atrium. The P-R
interval may be prolonged. Apparently, this abnormality is more likely to occur
late in the course of the disease because early in the course of the disease the P-
R interval may actually be shorter than average 1338], This appears to be due to
accelerated conduction in the atrioventricular node. The QRS duration may be normal
but the initial portion of the QRS complexes may be abnormal [337J. The initial
0,02 second of the QRS complex, when represented as a vector, is directed slightly
to the right and anteriorly and is much larger than normal (Fig, 17). This produces
large, narrow Q-waves in leads I. V4, V5. and V6. and a large R-wave in leads VI
and V2. Such an abnormality could be misdiagnosed as being due to a true posterior
myocardial infarction. However, the abnormal Q-waves and R-waves are not usually as
long in duration as they are when there is a myocardial infarction. The cause of
this abnormality in Perloff "s patients was posterobasal fibrosis of the left
ventricle 1337J. There may. of course, be other causes not yet clearly proven.
Other cardiac conduction defects may occur: right ventricular conduction delay,
right hundle branch block, left anterior-superior division block, left posterior-
inferior di vision block, left bundle branch block, and a combination of left
anterior-superior division block and right bundle branch block. These
abnormalities are not specific for Duchenne muscular dystrophy because they are
seen in cardiomyopathy of other causes 1338],
When a male has the skeletal muscle abnormalities and the electrocardiographic
abnormalities described above, he undoubtedly has Duchenne muscular dystrophy. It
is important to recognize that female carriers with such an electrocardiogram who
have evidence of cardiomyopathy may have the disease even when the skeletal
muscular abnormalities are slight or inapparent.
The echocardiogram shows wall motion abnormalities, a decreased ejection fraction,
and a dilated left ventricle, and echogenic areas may be seen in the posterior-
basilar part of the left ventricle. Regional perfusion defects may be found th
thalliu Th mechanis fo h abnormalitie i known

FIG. 17 Electrocardiographic abnormalities due 10 the cardiomyopathy of DticheniK


dystrophy. Electrocardiogram obtained from a 17-year-old patient with Duchenne's
muscular dystrophy. Note the initial 0.02- to 0.03-second vector is directed to
the right and anteriorly, producing large, narrow Q waves in leads VI, V4. and V6
and tall R-waves in leads VI and V2. This is produced by fibrosis of the
posterolateral wall of the left ventricle. (From Ref 337. Reproduced with
permission of Dr. Joseph Perloff and the publisher.)
Patients wilh Duchenne muscular dystrophy may have cardiac arrhythmias [3381.
Persistent sinus tachycardia or episodes of sinus tachycardia without apparent
cause may occur. This may be due to dysfunction of the autonomic nervous system,
Patients may have atrial ectopic depolarizations, atrial or junctional tachycardia,
atrial Jlutler, or atrial fibrillation, ventricular ectopic depolarizations, d
episode f ventricula tachycardia Thes rhyth disturbance
years of age. Severe congestive heart failure may develop late in the course of the
disease 1339 J. Reports ate now appearing that indicate that the cardiomyopathy
may occur before there are obvious signs of abnormalities of the skeletal muscle
[340J, Pulmonary emboli may occur, as they do in other patients who arc bedridden.
Cerebral emboli and emboli to the extremities and other organs may occur, as they
do in other patients who have dilated cardiomyopathy and atrial fibrillation.
Verapamil may produce respiratory arrest [341 ], and drugs used in eardiovascular
medicine, such as procainamide and phenytoin, may aggravate the skeletal muscle
weakness. Halothane, suxamethonium isofluron, and succiny.choline, given for
anesthesia, have been reported to produce cardiac arrest [342J.
Facioscapulohumeral Muscular Dystrophy
Facioscapulohumeral dystrophy (Landouzy-Dejerine dystrophy) is usually inherited
as an autosomal-dominant. It is the third most common hereditary disease of muscle,
superseded in frequency only by Duchenne dystrophy and myotonic dystrophy. The
abnormal gene is located on chromosome 4 [343]. Virtually all patients wilh
facioscapulohumeral dystrophy have deletions of variable size on the distal portion
of chromosome 4q35 [344], The patient, who is usually an older child or adolescent,
commonly notices difficulty in raising the arms above the head 13331. The scapulae
project prominently; this is referred to as "winging"1 of the scapulae. The
zygomaticus muscles, obieularis oculi, and orbicularis oris muscles become weak and
atrophic. The patient has difficulty closing the eyes or using the lips to whistle.
The trapezius and pectoral muscles are usually involved. The upper muscles of the
arms become smaller than the muscles of the lower arms. As time passes the
stemocleoidmastoid and back muscles may become involved. The muscles of the pelvis
may eventually become involved. Finally, the pretibial muscles may become atrophic
and fool drop may develop. The condition may progress, but for unexplained reasons
may cease progressing. The disease may be so mild that it is unnoticed by the
patient. Mental functions are normal. The only common nonmuscular manifestations of
the condition are high-frequency hearing loss and tortuosity of retinal vessels
(344], The level of serum CK is slightly elevated above normal. Although many
patients do not recognize that they have the condition and the great majority of
patients live a normal life span, on rare occasions the disease may occur in
infants, in whom it may progress to an early dealh.
know pathogenesi Cardia conductio abnormalitie als de
Cardiac and Cardiovascular Findings (345 J. Labile hypertension of tin
all varieties of bundle branch block, and complete heart block. The cardiac rhythm
disturbances are similar to, but more benign than, those seen in patients with the
Emery-Drcifuss syndrome. In fact, a few patients with the Emery-Dreifuss syndrome
were erroneously initially reported to have facioscapulohumeral dystrophy.
Becker's Muscular Dystrophy
Becker's muscular dystrophy occurs less often than Duchenne"s muscular dystrophy
and can be viewed as a milder form of Duchenne dystrophy [346J. It is an X-linked
recessive condition that is carried by females and transmitted lo one-half of lhe
male offspring. An even milder form of the condition may be seen in females [346].
The condition is due to a mutation of the same gene that causes Duchenne muscular
dystrophy. The Duchenne and Becker types of dystrophy can be separated by analyzing
the material obtained by skeletal muscle biopsy [347f. There is very little or no
dystrophin found in the skeletal muscle of patients with Duchenne muscular
dystrophy. If any is found, it has a normal molecular weight. The biopsy of
skeletal muscle from a patient with Becker*s muscular dystrophy reveals dystrophin
with an abnormal molecular weight.
The condition is characterized by weakness and pseudohypertrophy of the same
muscles thai are affected in Duchenne muscular dystrophy. However, the condition is
much milder lhan Duchenne muscular dystrophy. The patient may not detect any
difficulty until early adulthood, and death may not occur until after midlife.
Serum creatine kinase levels are commonly 25 to 200 times normal.
Cardiac and Cardiovascular Findings. Cardiac abnormalities may occur early in life
and do not correlate with the extent of skeletal muscle dystrophy 1348]. Dilated
cardiomyopathy due to fibrosis commonly occurs in both ventricles |3491. This leads
lo severe congestive heart failure [350]. Ventricular dysrhythmia may cause death.
Conduction defects identified in the electrocardiogram include right or left
bundle branch block, left bundle branch block with left anterior superior division
block, right bundle branch block with left anterior-superior hlock, and complete
heart block 1341,352]. These conduction defects are not specific for Becker
cardiomyopathy because they also occur in patients with other types of dilated
cardiomyopathy. The diagnosis of cardiomyopathy related lo Keeker's muscular
dystrophy can be made by showing abnormal immunohistochemical staining for
dystrophin in endomyocardial biopsy specimens of patients with cardiomyopathy
[352a].
Emery-Dreifuss Muscular Dystrophy Syndrome
in ihe upper arms and pectoral girdle. The abnormality may he delected in
childhood or later. Weakness may then develop in the muscles of the pelvic girdle
and lower extremities. The muscles are not "hypertrophic." Contractures of the
flexor muscles of the elbows. Achilles* tendons, and posterior muscles of the neck
may occur. The serum level of CK is moderately elevated. Several variants of the
disease occur. These are clinically similar to the Emery-Dreifuss syndrome but are
genetically different
Cardiac and Cardiovascular Findings (.156-35HJ. Myocardial fibrosis is commonly
observed in patients with this condition. The most remarkable cardiac abnormality
that may be found in the Emery-Dreifuss syndrome is that of atrial paralysis.
Patients may also have sinus bradycardia, atrial fibrillation or flutter, slow
junctional rhythm (Fig, 18), partial atrioventricular block, and complete heart
block. In addition, the electrocardiogram may show conduction defects such as left
anterior-superior division block and left bundle branch block. Sudden death may
occur in these patients because of complete heart block and other arrhythmias.
Myocardial fibrosis may be seen in the heart on myocardial biopsy, but heart
failure is not usually a major problem. Patients die of cardiac arrhythmias. As
occurs with the Duchenne and Becker types of muscular dystrophy, female carriers of
Emery-Dreifuss syndrome may have the cardiac rhylhm abnormalities without obvious
muscular dystrophy. Sudden death is also a threat to such patients.

Oculopharyngeal Dystrophy
Oculopharyngeal dystrophy is inherited as an autosomal-dominant trait |359|, This
dystrophy involves the muscles that lift the eyelids. The other external muscles
of the eyes may he affected to a minor degree. Accompanying the gradually
progressive ptosis are difficulty swallowing and a change in the voice. The
muscles of the pharynx and upper part of the esophagus may become weak. The
condition begins in adulthood and, as times passes, the proximal muscles of the
extremities may become weak. The level of serum creatine kinase is usually normal,
and cardiac and cardiovascular abnormalities have not been described in this
disorder.
Limb Girdle Muscular Dystrophies
There arc a variety of conditions that are currently designated as belonging to the
limb girdle muscular dystrophy syndromes [333,360]. They are inherited and the
recessive form of the condition is the most common. Some of the patients have an X-
linked inheritance. As time passes, the genetics of these conditions will
undoubtedly be clarified further. The condition may be noted in childhood or early
adulthood. The muscles around the hips or shoulders become weak and atropine. The
muscle weakness often is not progressive or only slowly worsens. The serum level of
CK may be normal or moderately elevated.
Cardiac and Cardiovascular Findings [361,362J. The limb-girdle group of muscular
dystrophies is so diverse that specific cardiac abnormalities cannot be assigned to
them. Cardiac conduction defects have been described in patients diagnosed as
having limb-girdle syndromes. Right and left bundle branch block, left anterior-
superior division block, and left posterior-inferior division block have been
reported.
Myotonic Dystrophy
This disorder is the most common adult form of muscle dystrophy and it is very
distinct from all of the other conditions that are called dystrophic. The abnormal
gene is located on chromosome I9gl3.3 1363]. At this site there is an unstable
trinucleotide sequence (cytosine, thymine, guanidine; CTG) that is larger in those
affected with the disorder than in unaffected control individuals 1363]. Myotonic
dystrophy is one of the so-called trinucleotide repeat disorders. Inheritance is
autosomal dominant wilh variahle penetrance.
The condition is seen in adults and is known as Sleinert disease. The musreport
that they have difficulty letting goof objects that diey have grasped. Myotonia is
recognized when ihe relaxation phase following muscle contraction is delayed. This
may be elicited by percussion of the proximal muscles of ihe limbs and of the
tongue. A firm handshake by the patient may be sustained because of the failure of
the muscles of the hand to relax. Gentle movement of the muscles, however, does not
evoke the prolonged contraction. Later in the course of the disease, the muscles of
the hands and forearms become weak and atrophic 1364,3651. A characteristic facial
expression is created when the masseter muscles become atrophic, producing a
thinness to the lower portion of the face. At the same time, the neck may become
smaller because of (he atrophy of the sternocleidomastoid muscles. The voice
begins to have a nasal tone because of the atrophy of the laryngeal and pharyngeal
muscles. Myotonic dystrophy is often accompanied by several additional
abnormalities, including weak uterine muscle, dilated esophagus, megacaton, weak
diaphragm, cataracts, frontal baldness, testicular atrophy with its associated
sequalae. ovarian deficiency, and low levels of intelligence. Diabetes mellilus i>
also often present. The serum level of creatine kinase may be normal or slightly
elevated. Low intelligence and cognitive and behavioral abnormalities and seizures
are common in patients with myotonic dystrophy, and anatomical, brain imaging, and
magnetic resonance spectrosopy studies have shown a very high frequency of brain
abnormalities in patients with myotonic dystrophy [366.367]. Patients with the
highest number of CTG repeats have the most severe brain abnormalities 1366].
The abnormalities of children of mothers with myotonic dystrophy deserve special
comment. The newborn has facial paralysis. There is no myotonia. The eyelids droop
and ihe mouth has a characteristic appearance. The infants often die a respirator)
death Ivcai!*..- <i weak intercostal muscles ami a v\euk dia phragm. Those who
survive to an older age are very often mentally retarded. Myotonia becomes evident
and the clinical course is then similar to that for the adult form of the disease.
The reasons for the different clinical manifestations in the newborn are not clear-
Cardiac and Cardiovascular Findings. The cardiac conduction system is involved more
than the functional myocytes 1368-370]. There may be fibrosis, fatty infiltration,
and atrophy of the conduction system of the heart. The electrocardiogram may
reveal partial or complete atrioventricular block, right bundle branch block, left
anterior-superior division block, left bundle branch block, or right bundle branch
block plus left anterior-superior division block. All types of atrial and
ventricular arrhythmias may occur. The patient may die of complete hear block
ventricula arrhythmia Dilated cardiomyopath du myocardial served in the
electrocardiogram of the children of mothers who have myotonic dystrophy.
Congenital and Metabolic Myopathies Nemaline Myopathy
This is inherited as an autosomal-dominant or -recessive trail. Areas of minute
rodlike structures can be seen in the striated muscles of these patients. Children
with this disease have weakness of the muscles of the extremities and trunk, and
the muscles are small 1371,372]. In most children muscle weakness is diffuse,
symetric. and nonprogressive. The facies of the children are distinctive; the face
is narrow and there is a high arched palate reminiscent of the abnormality seen in
patients with Marfan syndrome. Tendon reflexes are diminished or absent. Older
patients sometimes develop scapuloperoneal weakness and foot drop f373J. Patients
may die of pneumonia.
Cardiac and Cardiovascular Findings. There are few data regarding (he cardiac
involvement in patients with nemaline myopathy. The same rodlike structures may be
seen in the cardiac myocytes and conduction tissue that are seen in striated
muscle. Meier e( al. reported that cardiomyopathy may be seen in patients with
nemaline myopathy; in fact, in one report they emphasized that cardiomyopathy may
be the presenting problem [374.37?J.
Centronuclear Myopathies
These are a group of hereditofamilial diseases having in common the central
placement of cell nuclei of skeletal muscles [372]. The disease usually becomes
apparent al a youni: age. sometimes with hypotonia and respiratory distress noted
in the neonatal period. Children look frail and the skeletal muscles are diffusely
weak and atrophic. Tendon reflexes are absent. Some patients have seizures, menial
retardation, or psychosis. Ptosis of the eyelids is common.
Cardiovascular Findings. This disease is rare among the myopathies, and few facts
are available regarding the cardiovascular system. The few data available suggest
that dilated cardiomyopathy due to myocardial fibrosis and cardiac arrhythmias may
occur [376,377].
Central Core Myopathy
This is another type of congenital myopathy characterized by the presence in the
central portion of each muscle liber of a dense, amorphous condensation of myoiral
core disease has been localized to chromosome I9q 13.1, where it is lightly linked
to the ryanodine receptor genea mutation also linked lo malignani hyperthermia
1378). There is an unusual predominance of type 1 muscle fibers in this disorder
1372,378J. Electrocardiograms are described as normal, and cardiomyopathy has not
been common in patienls wilh this disorder.
Desmin Storage Myopathies
In this disorder abundant electron-dense material identified biochemically as
desmin accumulates under the sareolemma and between myofibrils. The disorder is
familial and both skeletal and cardiac muscle are involved. The onset can be during
childhood or middle life, The muscle weakness is usually diffuse and symmetrical:
proximal and distal limb muscles and muscles of the neck, trunk, and pharynx may be
involved [372,379,380], Some patienls present with a nonobstructive hypertrophic
cardiomyopathy as the most important clinical feature (381-383).
Glycogen Storage Disease (Acid Maltase Deficiency)
The synthesis and degradation of glycogen are controlled by different enzymes. The
first such disorder described was Von Gierke's disease, a hepatic form of glycogen
storage disease which was found to be caused by a deficiency of glucose-6-
phosphatase. To date, seven different enzymes have been identified. This has
created seven different syndromes that are classified as glycogenoses I through
VII. The names of the syndromes are Von Gierke, Pompe, UlingsworthCori-Farber,
Anderson. McArdle, Hen*, and Tauri. Each of these syndromes is inherited as an
aulosomal-rccessive trail. The McArdle and Tauri syndromes may, on rare occasions,
be inherited as an autosomal-dominant trait.
An increased amount of glycogen is stored in the skeletal muscles, liver, and heart
of patienls with type II glycogen storage disease (Pompe's disease). This disorder
has been called cardiomegalic glycogenosis to capture the prominent feature of
cardiac involvement. There is a deficiency of alpha-1,4-glucosidase (acid maltase)
in such patients 1384,385], The abnormal gene has been located in the distal
portion of the long arm of human chromosome 17 (I7q23). The heart is much less
often involved in the other glycogen storage diseases, but cardiomyopathy may occur
rarely in patients wilh lypc 111, IV. and VI glycogen storage disease (3861,
Pompe's disease (type II glycogen storage disease), in which the heart is always
invoked, can be subdivided into infantile, childhood, and adult syndromes. The
heart, skeletal muscles, and liver may be affected in the infant with 11 glycoge
diseas (Fig 19) Th skeletal muscle k d
tal muscles. The large calves may suggest Duchenne muscular dystrophy, and patients
may develop respiratory difficulty and death.
The adult form of the disease is characterized by an increasing degree of skeletal
myopathy, including the diaphragm, and respiratory difficulty. In adults, lhe
disorder can mimic polymyositis or limb girdle dystrophy. Skeletal muscle biopsy is
diagnostic in that the enzyme, acid maltase, is absent and there is a great
increase in tbe amount of glycogen. In addition, the location of the glycogen
particles in the lysosomes is abnormal Acid maltase is not identified in liver
biopsy or in lymphocytes.
Cardiac caul Cardiovascular Findings. The amount of glycogen located in the cardiac
myocytes is greatly increased in the infantile type of Pompe's disease. The heart
becomes hypertrophic and may become greatly enlarged (see Figure 19a and 19b), The
heart has many of the features of hypertrophic cardiomyopathy [386.387]. There may
be abnormal murmurs due to subaortic obstruction as well as mitral regurgitation
[387 f
The electrocardiogram is striking in thai the QRS voltage is so large it often goes
off the paper used lo record it. The \-ray film of the chest may reveal a large
heart. The findings on the echocardiogram as well as those found on angiography
resemble the abnormalities found in obstructive hypertrophic cardiomyopathy. Heart
failure and rhythm disturbances occur. These may lead to death, which invariably
occurs within a year or two.
McArdle's Disease and Tauri Disease
McArdle's disease (glycogenosis type V) is inherited as an autosomal-recessive
trail [388,389]. It may rarely be inherited as an autosomal-dominanl trait. There
is a defect in myophosphorylase. It is this defect that prevents the conversion of
glucogen to glucose 6-phosphate that causes McArdle's disease. The gene for muscle
phosphorylase has been localized to chromosome 11 1389]. Phosphofructokinase
deficiency prevents the conversion of glucose-6-phosphate to glucose-I-phosphate.
This abnormality produces Tauri disease (glycogenosis type VII). which is
clinically similar to McArdle's disease.
The patient, who is most often a boy under age 15. complains of pain, stiffness,
and weakness of the muscles of the extremities during exercise. The muscles
contract during vigorous exercise, and the pain may last for hours after the
exercise is discontinued. The symptoms do not occur when the patient is resting.
During mild exercise the patient may feel fatigue and weakness, but these symptoms
subside even if the mild exercise is continued. This is possible

(C)
FlG. 19 Glycogen storage disease. Pompe's disease of the heart (type M glocogen
storage disease). The b-month-old patient died of progressive heart failure. (A)
The heart is shown in situ. Note how large it is compared to the chest. (B)
Transverse section of the heart showing a great increase in the thickness of the
ventricles. (C), Microscopic section showing the laceworfc appearance of the
myocardium. I Illustration courtesy of Dr. Carlos
R. Abraniowsky, M.D. Emory University School of Medicine. Atlanta. GA.)
binuria produced by the muscles during the time they are painful. The muscles of
patients who have this condition do not produce lactic acid. This fact is the basis
of the most commonly used diagnostic test. A blood pressure cuff is placed on the
arm. The pressure in the cuff is elevated until it is higher than the systolic
blood pressure. The patient then exercises the hand until the palm of the hand is
white. A blood simple K obtained from ihe ailticubical vein and ana ; ! I.n lactic
acid. There is no rise in the level of lactic acid in patients with McArdle's or
Tauri disease, as occurs normally. Some affected patients have a very mild form of
McArdle's disease and have neither muscle cramps or myoglobinuria bu merel tirednes
d lack f stamina Abou one-third f patient with diseases. Analysis of the tissue
reveals the absence of phosphorylase in McArdle disease and the absence of
phosphofruetokinase in Tauri disease.
Cardiac and Cardiovascular Findings. The cardiac abnormalities are commonly limited
to first-degree atrioventricular block (a long P-R interval), large QRS voltage,
and sinus tachycardia soon after beginning exercise [390]. An inordinate increase
in respiratory rate and depth may also be apparent. Electrocardiographic
abnormalities may resemble those found in olhcr glycogen storage diseases. The
amplitude of the QRS complex may be greatly increased [3901.
Carnitine Deficiency Myopathies and Systemic Disorders
About 159t of carnitine (bela-hydroxy-gaiunia-N-lriinelhylamino-bulyrate) comes
from dietary sources, especially red meats and dairy products, and the rest is
synthesized in the liver and kidneys from methionine and lysine [391.392J. After
being formed, carnitine enters the bloodstream and is used to assist in the
oxidation of lalt\ acids located in the mitochondria it" muscle ceilv The primaiy
carnitine deficiency syndromes are inherited as autosomal-recessive traits. Engel
and associates were the first to describe muscle carnitine deficiency associated
wilh a progressive lipid storage myopathy [393,394]. This condition is character
ized by weakness of the proximal limb muscles as well as the muscles of the trunk.
The condition can appear at any age. Muscle biopsy reveals an excess in fal and a
decrease in muscle carnitine. Levels of carnitine are variable in plasma and are
normal in the liver and heart.
Karpati and associates described a second syndrome, characterized by systemic
carnitine deficiency associated with hepatic encephalopathy and myopathy [395J.
This syndrome consisted of weakness of the proximal muscles plus episodes of
vomiting, stupor, and coma. Metabolic crises in these patients with systemic
carnitine deficiency were associated with hepatomegaly, hyperammonemia,
hypoglycemia, and elevation of liver enzymes in the blood 1392],
A third syndrome of carnitine deficiency, first described by Tripp et al., was
characterized by systemic carnitine deficiency associated with a progressive
cardiomyopathy [396].
A fourth syndrome occurs when there deficiency of carnitine palmitoyltransferase.
This deficiency leads to an infantile form of the condition, characterized by
attacks of hepatic failure with nonketotic hypoglycemia and coma.
There is another, later-onset disorder that begins in the second decade of lif late
d i characterized b attack f muscl pai ofte with tiers of mitochondrial metabolism
that cause an accumulation of nonmeiaholizable organic acids in tissues and
fluids: defects of the mitochondrial respiratory chain; renal Fanconi syndrome; and
treatment with some drugs, for example, valproate and pivampicillin. that increase
excretion of carnitine [3U 2|.
Cardiac and Cardiovascular Findings. Cardiomyopathy is often associated with
hypoglycemic attacks and systemic carnitine deficiency [392,397J. Progressive
dilatative cardiomyopathy can develop and progress to death 1398]. Endocardial
fibroelastosis may also be observed [396], Patients with carnitine deficiency
syndromes may develop congestive heart failure and die. Some students of
cardiomyopathy suggest that the level of carnitine should be measured in children
with cardiomyopathy because carnitine supplementation in the diet may be helpful
[399]. The clinical response to carnitine dietary supplementation (2 to 6 g oral 1-
carnitine each day) can be dramatic in some patients, Heart function and muscle
strength improve and patients slop having episodes of hypoglycemia [392].
Mitochondrial EncephaJomyopathies
The abnormalities in mitochondrial diseases derive from deficiencies in the
energy-producing systems of many organs [400,4011, The syndromes are diverse but
have in common expression in skeletal muscle. Even when myopathy is not evident
clinically, muscle biopsy specimens usually indicate the presence of a
mitochondrial disorder 1400J. The hallmark of mitochondrial myopathy is the so-
called ragged-red muscle fiber, which contains large collections of mitochondria
immediately beneath the plasma Lemma and between myofibrils. These fibers are
readily visible as red-staining granular deposits when Gomori trichome stains are
used [400.402].
The mildest form of mitochondrial myopathy may cause only slight proximal muscle
weakness most notable in the arms associated with exercise intolerance. At the
other end of the spectrum of mitochondrial myopathies is an infantile form
characterized by a fatal myopathy in which muscle weakness and lactic acidosis are
found shortly after birth and prove fatal during the first year of life [401 J.
Other conditions now known lo be due to abnormalities of mitochondrial function
include: progressive external opihalmoplegia; Kearns-Sayre syndrome; subacute
necrotizing eneephalomyelopahty (Leigh disease); MEL AS syndrome (mitochondrial
myopathy, encephalopathy, lactic acidosis, and stroke like episodes) [403-406];
MERRF (myoclonic epilepsy with ragged-red fiber myopaunderlie the different
clinical conditions. Undoubtedly, us advances in molecular biology and genetics
occur, other neurological disorders will be identified as being related to various
diverse abnormalities of mitochondrial energy production.
Space limitations prevent full discussion of each of the known mitochondrial
disorders, so only brief descriptions arc included herein. Patients with
progressive external ophthalmoplegia develop progressive ptosis and weakness of
their extrocular muscles usually without diplopia [400-4021. Some patients also
have limb weakness. A closely related disorder is the Kearns-Sayre syndrome, which
consists of retinitis pigmentosa with visual loss beginning before age 20, ataxia,
heart block, short stature, and increased cerebrospinal fluid protein content
1400,401,406[. Some patients also have sensorineural deafness seizures, and
pyramidal tract signs.
Leigh's subacute necrotizing encephalomyelopathy |407| is a clinically diverse
disorder characterized mainly by its distictive neuropathology. The brain shows
bilaterally sy mnietyrical regions of spongy necrosis with myelin degeneration,
vascular proliferation, and gliosis in the spinal cord, medulla, pons, midbrain,
thalami, and bilateral basal ganglia. The lesions in many ways resemble those found
in Wernicke's encephalopathy. Lesions in these areas are characteristically seen
on MRl imaging 1408.409], Failure to thrive in infants, myoclonic jerks, seizures,
respiratory difficulties, ataxia, dysarthria, gaze abnormalities, and abnormal limb
movements have all been reported. This is a serious, often fatal disorder of
infancy and childhood.
The MLLAS syndrome is relatively common and distinctive 1403-406]. Seizures and
migrainclikc headaches arc common symptoms. Patients develop attacks characterized
by focal neurological signs, especially visual loss accompanied by lactic
acidosis. Brain imaging usually shows focal lesions in the posterior portions of
ihe brain in the parietal and occipital lobes [404.405.408]. The lesions resemble
brain infarcts. In most cases there is some resolution of the imaging
abnormalities. The brain lesions are probably caused by energy failure within the
brain regions, producing regions of ischemia and edema. There are no occlusions
within the supplying blood vessels, so these lesions are not true brain infarcts.
Loss of intellectual and visual functions often develops over years.
Leber's hereditary optic neuropathy 1410-412J is becoming increasingly more
commonly recognized since genetic testing of patients with visual loss has become
more available. Vision is usually lost between ages 18 and 25. but the visual loss
can also develop in the 30- and 40-year-old age group. Men are predominantly but
not exclusively affected. The visual loss is usually gradual over weeks to months
but can evolve rapidly, mimicking optic neuritis. Usually both
involved together bu visual los begi i d the late chondrial DNA. Occasional
patients also have other abnormalities, inchiding ataxia, dystonia, peripheral
neuropathy, and cardiac conducdon abnormalities.
Patients with MERRF {myoclonus, epilepsy, and ragged red libers) [413 415J usually
first develop myoclonic jerking in childhood or early adulthood. Seizures also
develop. A gradually worsening ataxia is common. Myopathy is usually mild or
inapparent. Lactate levels are increased in the serum and cerebrospinal fluid. The
most common genetic defect (807r of MERRF patients) is a point mutation of the
mitochondrial genome at locus 8344 which codes for a transfer RNA 1401,415). MR!
may show some cerebral and cerebellar atrophy [408].
The NARP syndrome of sensory neuropathy, ataxia, and retinitis pigmentosa is
apparently due to a single mitochondrial gene mutationthe substitution of one
amino acid in the mitochondrial DNA at position 8993 |4()l |. Patients with this
syndrome may have developmental delays, seizures, and proximal muscle weakness in
addition to the other findings.
The MNGJF syndrome is characterized by intestinal malabsorption, progressive
external opthalmoplegia, generalized muscle wasting and weakness, and peripheral
neuropathy [400.416], CT may show hypointensity of the cerebral white matter. The
disorder is probably due to a partial deficiency of cytochrome c oxidase (COX)
activity,
Atper's disease (progressive cerebral poliodystrophy) is a disorder of infancy and
early childhood characterized by seizures, failure to thrive, and developmental
delays [417,418]. The disorder is progressive and usually fatal. There is spongy
atrophy of the cerebral cortex and the basal ganglia and thalamus. Liver
abnormalities also occur. Cortical thinning, delayed myelination, and diminished
while matter are shown by MRI scans [408]. Patienls wilh Atper's syndrome have
deficiencies of cytochrome c oxidase, pyruvate coearboxylase. and mytochondrial
electron transport chain complex I activity [408,419].
Menkes disease (trichopoliodystrophy. or kinky-hairdisease) is an X-tinked
recessive condition in which mitochondrial dysfunction is due to impaired
intestinal absorption of copper [4201. Low copper levels lead to cytochrome
oxidase deficiency. The hair is very abnormal and is coarse, stiff, and easily
broken. Hypotonia, hypothermia, seizures, and failure to thrive are common. Ragged
red fibers may be seen on muscle biopsy [421], and electron microscopic studies of
the brain can show abnormal mitochondria. MRI studies of the brain show rapidly
developing cerebral atrophy [408],
Cardiac and Cardiovascular Findings. The heart and cardiovascular sys

biopsy specimens often show eharactei istic mimchondrial abnormalities [422]. In


the Kearns-Sayre syndrome, dilated cardiomyopathy, heart failure, and
abnormalities of the cardiac conduction system haw been reported 1422,423J.
Although there is an increase in atrioventricular nodal transmission of electrical
impulses, there is a marked delay in the transmission of electrical impulses in the
lower part of the His bundle, the right and left bundles, and the branches of the
left bundle. Therefore, complete heart block, left anterior-superior division
block, and right bundle branch block plus left anterior-superior division block may
develop 14231, In one study of 66 patients with mitochondrial myopathies. 11 had
ECG abnormalities usually without overt clinical evidence of myocardial dysfunction
[424J. These abnormalities included nonspecific T-wave and ST segment
abnormalities and various conduction defects such as preexcitation syndrome,
first-degree heart block, right bundle branch block, and complete heart block
14241. Two patients had permanent pacemakers [424]. Cardiac failure has also been
described in a young man with a mitochondrial myopathy who developed cardiac
failure at ages 12 and 16 associated with lactic acidosis [425], Patients with the
MEL AS syndrome may develop a hypertrophic cardiomyopathy [426]. Some mitochondrial
mutations have been associated with the Wolff-Parkinson-White syndrome 14261,
Cardiac ischemia can occur, as it does in the brain, without occlusive disease of
the coronary arteries as a manifestation of energy failure [426J. Undoubtedly,
further investigations in Ihe future will show more cardiac involvement in patients
with mitochondrial disorders. Advances in molecular genetics almost daily reveal
new conditions and new information about the disorders already described and
recognized.
Channelopathies
Ion channels, especially sodium and chloride channels, are vital to the function of
muscle and nerve cells. These proteins are associated with cell membranes and are
essential for muscle action potentials and muscle contraction, Mutations have now
been found in sodium ion channels in patients with hyperkalemic periodic paralysis
and paramyotonia congenita, leading to the hypothesis that the periodic paralyses
and some other muscle diseases characterized by myotonia are likely explained by
abnormalities of ion channels, so these disorders have been referred to as
"channelopathies" |427-429J.
Hypokalemic Periodic Paralysis
Familial hypokalemic periodic paralysis i> inherited as an autosomal-dominant trai
bu i i les ofte d clinicall i female leadin mal predomi is during die teens and
20s. Attacks are must common during the third and fourth decades of life, and there
may he spontaneous improvement later m life [427].
Attacks of weakness are precipitated by factors that lower scrum potassium, such as
heavy carhoh>dralc iniakc and exercise followed by sleep or rest, hpincphrine.
norepinephrine, and corticosteroids can also precipitate attacks. Attacks often
occur in the morning after awakening. The attacks usually begin with a sensation of
heaviness and aching in the legs and back. Paralysis is most severe in the proximal
limb muscles hut can spread to the distal muscles also. Respiratory muscles are
usually not severely compromised. Attacks may be so severe that palients cannot
rise from bed or lift their head from the pillow. At the height of an attack,
muscles are electrically and mechanically incxcitable, reflexes are lost, and the
muscles feel swollen and firm. During attacks there is usually, but not always, a
fall in the serum potassium level. The serum potassium level may fall as low as 1.5
mEq/L during an attack, but weakness is usually noted at much higher potassium
levels. Attacks vary in frequency and severity. They usually last hours to a day
and may stop abruptly, with strength returning to normal. In some patients there is
some residual weakness after an attack which occasionally persists. Attacks can be
treated with oral potassium. Acetazolamide is often prophylactically helpful in
preventing attacks.
An attack can be triggered by the administration of glucose and insulin, but
students of the disease point out that the administration of these substances as a
provocation is dangerous and should be utilized only by those who are very familiar
with such problems. Periodic paralysis can also be associated with thyrotoxicosis,
especially in Asians. Low potassium levels can also induce weakness in individuals
who do not have the familial form of hypokalemic periodic paralysis. Diuretics,
diarrhea from villous adenomas, a fid heavy licorice intake can induce hypokalemia
with muscle weakness.
Cardiac and Cardiovascular Findings, The signs of hypokalemia are evident in the
electrocardiogram. The Q-T interval appears to be prolonged (Fig. 20), The apparent
prolongation of the Q-T interval is due for the most part to the union of a large
U-wave with the tail end of the T-wave. This abnormality may prove to be an
1'interrupted T-wave" because in many instances an abnormal U-wave is actually due
to a split T-wave, Atrial and ventricular arrhythmias may develop during an
episode. The electrocardiogram is used to monitor the administration of potassium
to patients with hypokalemic periodic paralysis.
Arrhythmias and electrocardiographic abnormalities other than those related to
hypokalemia are not usually found in patients with this disorder. How

FIG. 20 This elect roe aril iogram was recorded from a 33-year-old male with
hypokalemic periodic paralysis. There was total paralysis of his arms and legs at
the lime of admission. His serum potassium at the time this electrocardiogram was
recorded was 1.9 mEq/L. The electrocardiogram shows a prominent wave that was
considered to be a lar^c U wave, lie nave a history of previous episodes, including
one in which respiratory function was markedly diminished. Episodes were sometimes
precipitated by a large, highcarbohyurate meal, such as the ingestion of pizza
dough. (Traeiny courtesy of Dr. David Propp, Einors University. Reproduced wilh
permission.)
malitics of the sodium channel gene thai underlies hypokalemic periodic paralysis.
In past years, before genetic analysis of palients with the periodic paralyses
became available, some of the cases reported as arrhythmias associated with
hypokalemic paralysis probably had Andersen's syndrome.
Potassium-Sensitive Periodic Paralysis (Hyperkalemic Periodic Paralysis)
This disorder has been linked to a mutation in the alpha subunit of the sodium ion
channel as an autosomal-dominant trait. The gene for this subunit is located on the
long arm of chromosome 17 [428430J. It is interesting to note that a small
increase in serum potassium as well as a decrease in serum potassium may provoke
periodic paralysis in some patients. Actually these rare patienls should be
referred to as being exquisitely sensitive to Ihe level of serum potassium because
periodic paralysis can occur when the serum potassium is within the normal
elevated lowe tha normal mic periodic paralysis. The affected muscles may be
painful during an attack. Other provocative factors include exposure to cold,
anesthesia, sleep, and ingestion of fruit juices,
Patients with hypokalemic periodic paralysis also often have myotonia that can be
demonstrated in the muscles of the face, tongue, eyelids, and hands. One bedside
test for the myotonia is to place a small towel soaked in ice water over the
patient's eyes for several minutes. Eyelid myotonia is then demonstrated by asking
the patient to sustain upward gaze for a few seconds and then look down. The
eyelids remain up. baring the sclera above the iris in patients with eyelid
myotonia 14271.
Very high levels of serum potassium can also precipitate weakness in patients
without the familial form of the disease. High levels are most often found in
patients wilh renal failure and in patients who lake both potassium supplements and
potassium-retaining diuretics.
Cardiac and Cardiovascular Findings. The electrocardiogram may reveal a long Q-T
interval. The prolongation may be due lo prolongation of the T-waves and
prolongation of the QRS complexes because the S-T segment duration is usually
normal. The T-waves are "tent shaped." This appearance is created by the steep and
equal slant of the ascending and descending limbs of the T-wave. All types of QRS
conduction abnormalities can occur wilh hyperkalemia. P-waves may not be seen in
the electrocardiogram, and serious atrial and ventricular arrhythmias may occur.
Arrhythmias are not an intrinsic part of the syndrome. Previously reported cases of
arrhythmias in patients with hypokalemic periodic paralysis likely had Andersen's
syndrome.
Andersen's Syndrome
Since the availability of genetic analysis of patients with the periodic paralyses,
clinicians have identified a syndrome that is distinct and unique from the
hypokalemic and hyperkalemic syndromes discussed above. The syndrome has been
named after its initial description by Andersen [4311. A triad of findings
distinguish this entity; episndic muscle weakness; distinctive facial features,
often associated with abnormal lingers and toes; and prolonged QT interval on the
electrocardiogram, associated with frequent arrythmias [432J. Genetic studies show
that these patients do not have abnormalities of the sodium channel and do not have
the chromosomal abnormalities found in lhe palients wilh hyperkalemic paralysis.
The syndrome is also distinct from the other congenital long QT syndromes (Jervell
and Lauge-Nielsen. and Romano-Ward syndromes), which will be dis
d late [432] sium in one attack and either low or normal potassium in other attacks
[432]. Dysmorphic facial appearances and limb abnormalities are a consistent part
of the syndrome but vary among families. Low-set ears, broad nose, and small jaw
arc common characteristies of the facies. Some patients have short lingers, and
clinodactyly of lingers and syndactyly of toes arc common but vary among families.
Hepatomegaly and cirrhosis may be detected early in infancy.
Cardiac and Cardiovascular Findings. A long QT interval is an integral part of the
syndrome. Some patients have only this abnormality, but most patients have
arrhythmias. Some of the patients wilh a long QT interval and syndactyly do not
have periodic attacks of weakness [433,434], The commonest serious arrhythmia is
ventricular tachycardia. Cardiac arrest has also been described. Premature
ventricular contractions and bidirectional tachycardias also occur [4321.
Paramyotonia Congenita
This rare, autosomal-dominant disorder is associated with a slightly different
mutation in the gene for the sodium channel alpha subunit [427]. In this condition
muscle stiffness is provoked by cold. Paramyotonia is similar to myotonia in that
muscles do not relax following voluntary contraction. However, in paramyotonia
repetitive use of the muscles causes an increased delay in relaxation. This can be
shown clinically by asking the patient to repeatedly shut the eyelids. After
repeated attempts, patients wilh paramyotonia can no longer open the eyelids. The
facial, tongue, and forearm muscles are mostly involved. Exposure to cold provokes
muscle weakness, which may take lime to recover even when the temperature warms.
Electromyography of resting muscles at room temperature shows myotonia on
percussion of the muscle or movement of the recording needle. As the muscle is
cooled, low-amplitude fibrillation develops but disappears wilh further cooling
[427J. Cardiac and cardiovascular lindings have not been mentioned in this
disorder.
Myotonia Congenita
This myopathy was lirsl described by Thomsen in his own family and has often been
referred to as Thomsen*s disease. The disorder has been associated with an
abnormality in the gene for the chloride channel, which is on the long arm of
chromosome 7 [429], Muscle stiffness is the predominant problem in patients wilh
Thomsen1 s disease. After resting, muscles are stiff and may appear weak because
muscles that are myotonic can run be used with lull power. With repetitive use,
muscles relax and regain power. Most typically, gait appears stiff when patient
firs aris fro chai hu with continued walkin th muscle loose in patienls with
Thomsen's disease though cardiac muscle function has not been extensively studied.
Inflammatory Myopathies
Polymyositis and dermatomyositis are now known to be conditions that share an
autoimmune pathogenesis. They are each associated with an inflammatory process
that is characterized by the heavy infiltration of lymphocytes. The two disorders
are. however, quite different in their basic mechanisms. Dermatomyositis is mostly
a disease of blood vessels, which are attacked by humoral mechanisms; in the
inflammatory infiltrate around blood vessels there is a higher proportion of B
cells and CD4 (helper) cells than CDS (cytotoxic) cells [427]. In polynvyo-Miiv the
inllammatory reaction is related mostly lo muscle libers which may become necrotic.
In this condition there is a high proportion of CDS celts among the T-cells found
among the necrotic muscle fibers during the early phase of the disease [427]. In
polymyositis the disorder is most often limited to muscle while dermatomyositis
involves the skin, muscles, and often other organs. Each condition is sometimes
accompanied by findings that suggest the presence of other collagen vascular
diseases.
Polymyositis [427,435]
Females are more commonly affected than males. In most instances the disease
develops gradually and progresses over a number of months and years, but it may
begin abruptly and progress rapidly. The major symptom is muscle weakness. Muscles
of the shoulder, girdle, thighs, and legs are often involved. Weakness is noted by
the patient when he or she has trouble climbing stairs or performing other simple
physical tasks. Pain in the muscles is sometimes noted but may be absent or minor.
Sometimes the muscles are lender to palpation and may have a slightly nodular,
grainy feeling. The patient may complain of difficulty swallowing; the muscles of
the pharynx and upper part of the esophagus are involved in such cases. Usually ihe
eye muscles and other bulbar innervated muscles are not affected. The deep tendon
reflexes are usually reduced or absent in patienls with severe weakness. The serum
creatine kinase concentrations are usually elevated, sometimes to several thousand
mU/mL. Diagnosis is usually established by muscle biopsy which demonstrates
necrotic muscle fibers and an inflammatory response. Cardiac involvement is
frequent.
Dermatomyositis [427,435]
iash on the cheeks and elsewhere often blanches on compression. Small hemorrhages
and erythema are often found in the nail beds and over the knuckles. On rare
occasions calcification of the subcutaneous tissue may develop. The muscle weakness
may be widespread but varies in severity. Other organs are often involved.
Raynaud's phenomenon is common, and gastric and esophageal emptying are often
delayed. Cardiac involvement is relatively frequent. The creatine kinase level is
raised. Biopsy show*. peri\a^cukir inlihrate^ and involvement ol the connective
tissue within muscles.
Neoplasms are found in more than the expected frequency in adult patients with
dermatomyositis 1436). This interesting association must always be on the
clinician's mind, The neoplasm may be apparent before or after the skin and muscle
disease. The association of the skin and muscle disease is more often seen in older
patient, those beyond the sixth decade of life. Il U propci u* scai C'I for
commonly occurring neoplasms in the lung, gastrointestinal tract breast, ovary, and
lymphoid tissue.
Polymyositis or dermatomyositis may be associated with progressive systemic
sclerosis, lupus erythematosis. polyarteritis nodosa, rheumatoid arthritis, and
rheumatic fever. When more than one syndrome is present, the term "overlap
syndrome" or 'mixed connective tissue disorder" is often used.
Cardiac and Cardiovascular Findings in Patients with Polymyositis/Dermatomyositis
Cardiac lesions commonly occur in patients with primary idiopathic polymyositis
[4371. Cardiac myocytes are destroyed, but the inflammatory response is minimal.
The electrocardiogram may show conduction defects [4381 and abnormalities
suggesting myocardial infarcts, which may be due to myocardial fibrosis or actual
infarction, and repolarization abnormalities. In one series one-third of the
patients with polymyositis had ECG abnormalities. The most frequent abnormalities
were left anterior superior division block and right bundle branch block |438f The
myocardial damage may be so severe lhat heart failure, including pulmonary edema,
may occur. Pericarditis, including cardiac tamponade, has been reported
[439], When other collagen disease is associated with the skin and muscle disease,
other cardiac abnormalities may occur. For example, the patient with systemic
sclerosis may have progressive pulmonary arteriolar disease and pulmonary In
pertension, Reynaud's phenomenon, pericarditis, and cardiomyopathy due to cardiac
myocyte damage. The patient with lupus erythematosus may have pericarditis,
myocardial disease, aortic valve regurgitation, and mitral valve disease.
recessive or autosomal-dominant trail, it usually occurs sporadically. Inclusion
body myositis occurs more often in men than women. The patient is usually a middle-
aged individual who develops weakness of the lower extremities [440442J. The hips
are most often involved, but I he shoulders and forearms are also affected. In some
patients distal muscles are involved more than proximal muscles, an unusual pattern
for a myopathy. Especially common are finger flexor and wrist extensor weakness
[443f The muscles are not painful. The knee jerk reflex is markedly diminished.
Facial weakness and dysphagia sometimes occur.
The serum creatine phosphate level may be very high (>12 times normal), but in some
patients the levels are normal or only slightly elevated 1442J. Skeletal muscle
biopsy is needed to separate the condition from polymyositis. Rimmed vacuoles and
abnormal intracellular accumulation of proteins are seen in the muscle fibers, as
well as mononuclear cell in lilt rales [443]. Cardiac abnormalities have not been
prominent, but most patienls have not had thorough cardiac evaluations.
TRICHINOSIS
Trichinosis mav develop alter eating pork that is not thoroughly cooked. It is
caused by the pork tapeworm Trichinella spiralis. Larvae are produced when gastric
juice acts on the ingested cysts and the worms develop in the small bowel. The
fertilized female enters the intestinal mucosa and produces larvae. The larvae
enter the lymphatic system and bloodstream. The larvae invade all tissue but prefer
to reside in the skeletal and heart muscle, where they become encysted.
The patient may have gastroenteritis beginning 1 or 2 days after eating undercooked
pork. Other symptoms may begin I week to several weeks later. The patient may
develop fever, headache, edema of the eyelids, and painful, tender muscles.
Symptoms are related to the invasion of the larvae in the tongue; extraocular
muscles; muscles of the neck and back: and other muscles including the diaphragm
[444]. Occasional patients develop hemiplegia, aphasia, delirium, stiff neck, or
coma [445). Bilateral facial paralysis has been reported [4461. The eosinophil
count ma> be markedly increased and the spinal lluid may reveal lymphocytosis. The
skin test may become positive and a skeletal muscle biopsy may reveal the larvae,
Later, the patient may develop seizures and encephalitis. These conditions are
thought to be caused by larvae in the cap diaries of the brain or from emboli from
the heart.
disease believe that the eosinophils themselves are responsible tor the myocardial
damage [447].
The patient may develop signs of severe heart failure several weeks after eating
the undercooked pork. Arrhythmia may also occur, as may sudden death. Primary T-
wave abnormalities and conduction defects arc seen in the electrocardiogram. Mild
cases recover completely but palients may die of myocarditis, puohnonary embolism,
or encephalitis.
Endocrine Myopathies Hyperthyroidism and Thyrotoxic Myopathy
Hyperthyroidism is most often caused by an overproduction ol" thyroid hormone from
the thyroid gland. There are other causes of the disease but they are rare. There
may be a primary increase in thyroid-stimulating hormone (TSH). thyroiditis,
excessive intake of thyroid hormone, increase in the function of a thyroid adenoma,
and certain other tumors [44H|. T3 and T4 levels are increased in the blood, and
the serum level of thyroid stimulation hormone (TSH) is most often decreased.
The patient with thyrotoxicosis often has a palpable thyroid gland, a bruit audible
over the thyroid gland, tremor of the outstretched hands, lid lag, hyperactive
tendon reflexes, exophthalmos (Fig. 21 h weight Joss, an excellent appetite,
frequent bowel movements, heat intolerance, tachycardia, leg edema, and muscle
weakness. The weakness is often noted when patients have difficulty climbing stairs
due to weakness of the quadricep muscles. The muscles of the pelvic girdle and
thighs are most severely involved and become weak and atrophic. The muscles around
the shoulders may also appear atrophic and the scapulae may become prominent. The
serum levels of creatine kinase and other muscle enzymes are usually normal.
Palients wilh proptosis and cxophthalamus often show weakness of extraocular
muscles, mostly related to the mechanical disadvantage caused by the proptosis.
Adduction, abduction, and up gaze are the most severely affected eye movements.
Periodic paralysis due to acute hypokalemia may occur in patients with
thyrotoxicosis. The attacks of weakness resemble the attacks attributed to
hypokalemic periodic paralysis. The attacks are reversed by the administration of
potassium, Prophylactic use of prop a nolo 1 may prevent attacks. Attacks
disappear when the hyperthyroidism is controlled [449], The exact mechanism for
this complication is not known. Myasthenia gravis wilh its unique type of myopathy
occurs more commonly in patients with hyperthyroidism than in the general
population.

Fig. 21 Exophthalamus due to thyrotoxicosis. ThyToin\ico.sis may occur at any age.


This photograph shows t\pieal exophthalmos in a young hoy. Thyrotoxicosis in the
elderly may not be so obvious. Atrial fibrillation is frequently due to
thyrotoxicosis. Thyrotoxicosis may precipitate or aggravate heart failure and
angina pectoris. (From Logue RB. Hurst JW. General inspection of the patienl with
cardiovascular disease. In: Hurst JW. Logue RB. eds. The Heart. 1st ed. New York:
McGraw-Hill. Inc., 1966:60. Reproduced with permission.)
rale associated with atrial fibrillation in euthyroid patients at rest is commonly
about 140 beats per minute. Heart failure develops in occasional patients with
severe thyrotoxicosis whose heart is otherwise normal, but as a rule,
thyrotoxicosis contributes to the development of heart failure by placing an added
burden on an already diseased heart.

(A) (B)
FIG. 22 Facies of a patient wilh myxedema before and a tier treatment. lA) Patient
in near-eoma shows typical facies. (B) Some months after thyroid therapy.
Pericardial effusion is common in myxedema and is the major cause of the large
cardiac silhouette seen on die x-ray. (From Logue RB, Hurst JW. General inspection
of the patient wilh eardiovasculai dise.i^e. In: Nursi JW. i.omie Kll.alv flic
Ik'ati. I si ed. New York: MeCraw-! hi , Inc.. 1%6:6I. Reproduced with permission.)

thetie defects, iodine deficiency, panhypopituitarism, and deficiency of thyroid-


stimulating hormone |44S|. The serum level of tin mid hormones low ami ihe level of
TSH is increased. Hyperiipideffiia is common in patients with hypothyroidism.
The clinical abnormalities associated with myxedema include slow speech, slow
movements, a husky voice, a large tongue, dry and thickened skin, loss of ihe
lateral aspect of the eyebrows, and slow contraction and relaxation of the muscles
produced by tapping the tendon reflexes <Fig. 22). The speed of muscle contraction
is thought to be related to the quantity of myosin ATPase available. Th f thi i
increased i hyperthyroidis d decreased
aching and muscle stiffness, and the muscles may appear larger than normal. The
serum level of creatine kinase may be markedly increased.
Peripheral neuropathy and evidence of spinal cord dysfunction can also be prominent
in patients with myxedema. Position sense and vibration sense are reduced in the
lower extremities, and the gait may become quite ataxic. The carpal tunnel syndrome
is more common in patients with hypothyroidism than in euthyroid patients. Mental
functions are occasionally severely reduced in patients with frank myxedema. These
patients are extremely slow and inert and apathetic. They often show poor judgment
and poor memory.
Cardiac and Cardiovascular Findings. Patients with myxedema may develop an excess
of pericardial fluid but cardiac tamponade does not occur. Bradycardia is commonly
present and myocardial dysfunction is rare. Congestive heart failure is rare and
when present should lead the physician to look for other cardiac disease. The
electrocardiogram is highly suggestive of hypothyroidism when there are bradycardia
and low amplitude of the P-waves and QRS complexes, a long Q-T interval, and
primary T-wave changes. The low voltage may be due to pericardial effusion, a
marked increase in skin resistance, or myocardial damage [450],
Hyperparathyroidism and Hypercalcemia
Hypercalcemia is usually defined as a serum calcium level >10.6 mg/dL. The most
common cause for an elevation of serum calcium is hyperparathyroidism. The next
most common cause is malignancy. Other causes arc acute renal failure with
rhabdomyolysis. thyrotoxicosis, vitamin D intoxication, milk alkali syndrome,
carcinomatosis, sarcoidosis, multiple myeloma, vitamin A intoxication. Addison
disease, and thiazide and lithium medication [451.452]. Determination of the blood
level of parathyroid hormone is very helpful; a high serum calcium accompanied by a
low blood level of parathyroid hormone rules out hyperparathyroidism. A high serum
level of calcium accompanied by a high blood level of parathyroid hormone is almost
diagnostic of hyperparathyroidism.
Common symptoms of hypercalcemia include fatigue, generalized weakness,
constipation, polyuria, and depression. Peptic ulcer, renal stones, renal colic,
and kidney failure may also develop. Dysphagia, constipation, and muscle weakness
are caused by hypercalcemia-related hypotonia of smooth and skeletal muscles.
Tongue tremor, hoarseness, and dysphagia are sometimes noted [453]. Hyperactive
deep tendon reflexes, paresthesias and sensory loss in the pattern of a peripheral
polyneuropathy, and unsteadiness of gait are other signs found in patient with
hyperparathyroidis [453] Whe th calciu level exceed when the serum phosphate
returns toward normal [449], Removal of bone cysts may help increase serum
phosphate levels and improve the myopathy [449f. Strokes and intracranial vessel
vasoconstriction occasionally develop in patients wilh hypercalcemia [450,4511,
Cardiac and Cardiovascular Findings. Hypercalcemia due to hyperparathyroidism
causes the Q-T interval to shorten. The electrocardiographic signs of hypercalcemia
ma\ resemble ihose due to digitalisa short Q-T interval and S-T and T-wave
abnormalities. The S-T segment displacement may be so marked in some patients that
myocardial infarction is suspected. The J-point in the electrocardiogram may be
displaced in patients with hypercalcemia; such a J-wave may be somewhat similar to
an Osborn wave [456].
There is anlecdotal evidence indicating lhat serious digitalis intoxication occurs
when digitalis is given to a patient wilh hypercalcemia due lo any cause: life-
threatening cardiac arrhythmias may occur. The anecdotal evidence is so powerful
and the cardiac complications are so serious that no clinical trials have been
conducted to study the problem.
Hypoparathyroidism and Hypocalcemia
Hypocalcemia is usually defined as a serum calcium level <8.5 mg/dL. Hypocalcemia
may he caused h\ hypoparathjoitlism which may be idiopathic, postsurgical, or due
to acute renal failure, vitamin D deficiency, or hypomagnesemia; it also might
occur in some patients with acute pancreatitis [4501. Parathyroid hormone may be
deficient or it may fail in its direct action on certain body tissues. The mosl
common symptoms are muscle cramps, carpopedal spasm, and tingling or the lips,
hands, and feel. Decreased intellectual function choreic movements, seizures,
psychosis, and dementia may occur.
The palient may have carpopedal spasm and a positive Chvostek's sign (tapping the
facial nerve). Trousseau's sign (adduction of the thumb followed by flexion of the
wrist and metacarpophalangeal joints) may be i[licked by inflating a blood pressure
cuff on the patient's arm above systolic pressure for 3 minutes.
Cardiac and Cardiovascular Findings. The QT interval in the electrocardiogram is
commonly prolonged in palients with hypocalcemia due to hypoparathyroidism. It is
ihe ST segmeni that is prolonged ralher lhan the QRS complex or T-wave. Atrial
fibrillation and ventricular arrhythmias, including torsades de pointes, may occur
in patients with hypocalcemia |457J. Cardiomyopathy and heart failure have been
reported in patients with hypocalcemia [458-4601.
Cushing's Syndrome and Myopathy

FIG. 23 Cushing's syndrome. Note the absence of typical "moon facies." Tlie striae
on lhe lateral aspects of the upper portion of the abdomen suggest the diagnosis.
(From Logue RB, Hurst JW. General inspection of lhe patient with cardiovascular
disease. In: Hurst JW, Logue RB, eds. The Heart, 1st ed. New York: McGraw-Hill,
Inc., 1966:59. Reproduced with permission.)
by cortisone-producing tumors of the adrenal gland, the ectopic production of
adrenocorticotropic hormone or corticopropiu-releasing hormone, or the
administration of glucocorticoids or adrenocorticotropic hormone. Patients with
Cushing's disease have hypertension, central obesity, diabetes mellitus. mental
depression, loss of hair on the head, an increase in facial and body hair in
women, red-purple striae, easy bruising, weakness of proximal muscles, and
osteoporosis (Fig. 23). Enlargement of the pituitary gland may cause bitemporal
visual-tield defects and headache.
high
and pituitary glands. A Cortisol suppression test may be indicated. When high doses
of dexamethasone suppress the level of eonixol in the blood, it suggests the
presence of a primary pituitary disease.
Cardiac and Cardiovascular Findings. About 80% of patients wilh Casking's disease
have arterial hypertension. The P-R interval in the electrocardiogram may be
shorter than average [461 J. The serum potassium may be lower than normal, and this
may be reflected as T-wave abnormalities in the electrocardiogram. The
electrocardiogram and chest x-ray film may show left ventricular hypertrophy. Left
ventricular hypertrophy and asymmetric septal hypertrophy are probably more
prominent in patients with Cushing's syndrome than in patients with comparable
hypertension who do not have excess adrenocortical hormone levels |46t[. Camay et
al. reported the association of myxoma of the heart in patients with Cushing's
syndrome. The patients also have subcutaneous myxomas and pigmented areas of the
skin [462).
Adrenal Insufficiency (Addison's Disease)
Adrenal insufficiency is caused by a decrease in function of the adrenal cortex or
failure of the pituitary gland to secrete an adequate amount of adrenal
corticoirophic hormone (ACTH). Primary adrenocortical insufficiency (Addison's
disease) is an autoimmune disease. Other causes of primary adrenocortical
insufficiency include involvement of the adrenal glands wilh tuberculous,
metastatic lesions: fungi: hemorrhage: surgical removal: aculc sepsis; heparin
therapy; neoplastic disease; AIDS; and drugs such as mitotane and warfarin.
Adrcnoleukodystrophy is a type of familial primary adrenal insufficiency in which
there is demyelination of the brain, spinal cord, and peripheral nerves (see pp.
419-422).
The causes of secondary adrenal insufficiency include pituitary tumors, pituitary
gland infarction, and surgical removal ol" the pituitary gland. The chronic-use of
glucocorticoid medication may cause suppression of the function of the pituitary
gland and its secretion of ACTH. Other rare causes include hypoaldosteronism
associated with diabetes and renal disease [4631 and congenital absence of ACTH.
Palients with primary adrenal insufficiency report weakness, weight loss, fatigue,
nausea, and vomiting. Encephalopathy may be responsible for coma in such patients.
There is an increase in ihe skin pigmentation. The same symptoms develop in
palients with secondary adrenal insufficiency but because of the suppression of
ACTH, the skin is nothyperpigmented. Patients with secondary adrenal insufficiency
due to pituitary tumor also have the neurologic and endocrine abnormalitie produced
b th Th proximal muscle f th d legs
The scrum sodium may be lower than normal and the serum potassium level may he
elevated abo\c normal |4M.4fo|. The diagjuMs of primary adrenal insufficiency can
be made by identifying an elevation of the serum level of ACTH and a decrease in
the serum level of Cortisol plus a poor adrenocortical response to the injection of
corticotropin. The diagnosis of secondary adrenal insufficiency can be made when
the serum levels of ACTH and Cortisol are low and there is no response to ACTH
secretagogs, such as insulin-induced hypoglycemia and corticotropin-releasing
hormone.
Cardiac and Cardiovascular Findings (4661. The heart is smaller than usual in
patients with chronic adrenal insufficiency. Patients with Addison's disease have
systemic arterial hypotension. The systemic blood pressure usually decreases lo
even lower levels when the patient stands. The P-R interval and QT interval in the
electrocardiogram may be longer than normal. Low amplitude of ihe QRS complexes and
T-waves are common, and primary T-wave abnormalities may occur. The
electrocardiogram rarely shows T-waves that are characteristic of hyperkalemia.
Heart failure rarely occurs in patients with Addison's disease |466],
Acromegaly
Acromegaly is caused by an increase in the production of growth hormone by a
pituitary adenoma 1467|. The most common symptoms are headache, poor vision, muscle
weakness, symptoms of hypertrophic arthritis, and overgrowth of bones including the
mandible, hands, and feet. The facial features gradually change from almost
handsome lo coarse (Fig. 24). The tongue becomes large as do the parotid glands.
There may be signs of kyphoscoliosis and spinal stenosis, and galactorrhea may be
troublesome. The liver, kidneys, and heart are often larger than normal. There is
an increase in likelihood lhat patients with acromegaly will develop colon polyps
and cancer of the colon 1468].
Diabetes meilitus may be present because of insulin resistance, and renal stones
occur more often than in the general population. The serum calcium and prolactin
may be elevated. The level of growth hormone in the blood should be measured I to 2
hours aftei the oral ingestion of I no g glucose. Acromegaly is likely to be
present when the growth hormone level is >10 pg/L. The insulinlike growth factor-
somatomedin C is also increased in patients with acromegaly.
Common neurological manifestations include headache, spinal cord compression due
to overgrowth of vertebral bones, proximal muscle weakness, and ihe carpal tunnel
syndrome.

FlG. 24 Acromegaly. Nolc the coarse features, protruding forehead and mandible, and
spadelike hands associated with hypertension. (From Silverman ME, Hurst JW.
Inspection of the patient. In: Hurst JW, ed, I he Heart, 3rd ed New York: McGraw-
Hill, 1974:154. Reproduced with permission.)
even when the blood pressure is normal. The excess of growth hormone affects the
myocytes of the entire heart, and cardiac failure may ensue |469|. Patients wilh
acromegaly often have left ventricular hypertrophy, increased left ventricular
mass, and abnormal left ventricular diastolic function [469]. Palients with
acromegaly develop coronary atherosclerosis more often than normal subjects.
Disorders That Affect the Neuromuscular Junction and Neuromuscular Transmission
Myasthenia Gravis
Myasthenia gravis is caused by an acquired immunological abnormality. Antibodies
are developed against acetylcholine receptors at the motor end plate [470,471].
There is a decrease in the number of acetylcholine receptors at the neuromuscular
junctions in patients with myasthenia gravis [472], The skeletal muscles become
weak with usage but their strength is restored quickly by resting. The condition is
associated with thymoma in 10^ of patients and with thyrotoxicosis in y/r of
patients [4701. About 75% of patients with myasthenia gravis have thymi
abnormalities these 85% hav thymi hyperplasi d 15% hav alone [4701. This fact is
used to support the contention that myasthenia gravis is an autoimmune disease.
I he disease can begin al an> age but most often symptoms begin between the ages of
20 and 30 years in women and at 60 lo 70 years in men. The extraocular muscles and
the muscles of the face, jaws, throat, and neck are the first to be involved.
Weakness remains localized to the eyelids and eye muscles in about \5% of patients
[4721. As time passes, the other muscles of the body become affected. This causes
the patient to be unable to "lift" their eyelids, speak as usual, or swallow.
Double vision is a very common symptom. The muscles that are used most often are
generally the most often involved. When the facial and bulbar muscles are involved,
a characteristic flattened smile (*'snarl") develops and patienls develop a "mushy"
or nasal speech and have difficulty chewing and swallowing [472J, The voice may
become softer and more dysarthric as patienls continue lo speak or count. Chewing
and swallowing may become more difficult toward the end of a large meal. The
respiratory muscles are often weak. The muscles of the shoulder girdle, hips, and
spine may he in vol veil.
The condition may remain localized to the extraocular muscles and the bulbar
muscles. The spread of weakness to other muscles usually occurs within I to 3
years. Remissions and relapses characterize the disease. Death occurs due to
respiratory complications including aspiration pneumonia and pulmonary
hypertension.
The diagnosis can often be established by the clinical findings. The eyelids arc
usually drooped, especially if the patient is asked to continuously look at the
examiner's finger which is held slightly above ihe patient's gaze. The orbicularis
oculi are weak and so the patient has some weakness of eye closure. (The pupils are
normal.) The facial muscles and neck flexors are also weak. Intravenous
administration of edrophonium often quickly but lemporarily improves muscle
strength. Electromyography usually documents a deeremental response to repetitive
nerve stimulation. Single-fiber electromyography is the most sensitive test for
disorders of the neuromuscular junction [4711, This test shows an increased
"jitter" in almost all palients with myasthenia gravis. Jitter refers to the
variability in relationships of two motor units to each other. Anticholinesterase
receptor antibodies are usually elevated,
A number of drugs can cause defective neuromuscular transmission and increase
muscle weakness in palients with established myasthenia gravis |473], These include
antibiotics (aminoglycosides and some tetracyclines, polymyxins), d-penici 11 amine
used to treat Wilson's disease, quinidine, procainamide, trimethaphan, propanolol,
oxprenolol. practolol, phenytoin, and lithium carbonate 14731.
whom the myasthenia is associated with thymomas, have abnormalities in the
myocardium. Pathological specimens may reveal myofibrillar necrosis, inflammatory
changes, hemorrhage, and lymphocytic infiltration [475J. The electrocardiogram may
show conduction abnormalities. Myocardial abnormalities definitely occur but
controversy centers around their cause. Gibson points out thai these lesions may
not be due to myasthenia because many patients have other conditions that may
produce myocardial lesions including coronary atherosclerosis, electrolyte
abnormalities, and iatrogenic causes [4741. However, Gibson does not deny the
possibility that some of the lesions may be directly associated with myasthenia.
Pulmonary hypertension may develop as part of cor pulmonale in patients with
myasthenia gravis 1476J. Hypoventilation, poor diaphragmatic function, and
aspiration conspire to produce lung disease and cor pulmonale.
Although the heart disease thai is found in a myasthenic patient may not be
directly related to myasthenia gravis, the disease should be discussed here because
drugs used to treat cardiac disease and infections can worsen myasthenic weakness.
Cardiac drugs such as quinidine and procainamide are anticholinergic. Accordingly,
these drugs may unmask myasthenia gravis or aggravate the signs of the disease when
it is known to be present. Chapter 3 contains information on drugs used to treat
cardiac patients that have been known to exacerbate myasthenia.
Lambert-Eaton Syndrome
The Lambert-Ealon myasthenic syndrome (LEMS) is commonly related to neoplasia. The
most common associated neoplasm is small-cell carcinoma of the lung, but the
condition has been observed in palients with carcinoma of the prostate, breasi.
stomach, rectum, sarcoma, and lymphoma. The cancer may be known before or
discovered only years after the symptoms of LEMS begin [471], Although the
condition may occur before there are signs of neoplasia, it may also occur in Lhe
complete absence of neoplastic disease. The disease is now thought to be related to
an immune-mediated process directed against the voltage-gated calcium channels of
muscle [477,478f Antibodies to the voltage-gated calcium channel are found in the
serum of about 15c/r of patients with LEMS and small-cell lung cancers. Patient
with LEMS who do nol have cancer more often have antibodies than palients with
small-cell lung cancer. Some of the chemical markers of an autoimmune disease are
commonly present.
Men are more commonly affected than women. Unlike myasthenia gravis, ii is the
muscles of lhe lower extremities, pelvic girdle, trunk, and shoulder girdle tha
affected Weaknes f th proximal muscle especiall i th lowe
Autonomic dysfunction also occurs [4791. The dysautonomia is mostly cholinergic
[479]. Patients often report paresthesias, dry mouth, and impotence. Postural
hypotension can also occur. Abnormally reacting pupils, constipation, and bladder
dysfunction are occasionally reported 1479]. Tendon reflexes may be diminished.
Muscle strength may be increased after the first few contractions. Patients often
say that they feel stronger after warming up.
The diagnosis is usually made by electromyography. Low-frequency repetitive
stimulation produces a dcervinental response in amplitude and ihe area Of compound
muscle action potential while high-frequency repetitive stimulation causes an
incremental response [4801. The response to neostigmine and pyridostigmine is not
consistent. Should d-tubocmarine be injected during anesthesia, it may produce
severe muscle weakness and precipitate respiratory paralysis. A muscle biopsy may
show an increase in postsynaptic folds in which there are large "clefts.'"
Succinylcholine, beta-adrenergic blockers, and some antiarrhythmics such as
quinidine and procainamide may worsen muscle weakness in patients with LKMS.
Cardiac and Cardiovascular Findings. There is little literature concerning cardiac
abnormalities in patients with LEMS. Postural hypotension may be present. The
presence of cholinergic dysautonomia predicts that there might be abnormalities of
autonomic control of the heart, but such abnormalities have not be systematically
sought among patients with LEMS.
Botulism
Botulism is a potentially very serious, usually foodborne illness characterized by
neuroparalytic abnormalities. Foodborne botulism results from eating food
containing neurotoxin produced by Clostridium botidinum. The disease may also
result from toxin produced by the bacterium in vivo in infected wounds [481] or by
colonization of the gastrointestinal tract |482]. The great majority of cases arc
food related. Food that is preserved at home is more likely to cause the disease
than food purchased at the grocery store. There are different toxins which are
usually designated as types A to F. Botulism toxins prevent the release of
acetylcholine from cholinergic nerve terminal at the neuromuscular junctions of
skeletal muscle and at peripheral synapses of autonomic nerves [483]. Spontaneous
release of acetylcholine and release afier nerve stimulation are both affected in
patients with botulism 14831.
Constipation, anorexia, nausea, and vomiting develop in some palients a day or two
after eating contaminated food. Symptoms usually begin between 24 nent [484,4851.
Dry mouth, blurred vision, constipation, urinary retention, and postural
hypotension may occur. The pupils often do not react normally to light and mas be
dilated. The condition may simulate myasthenia gravis except that the pupils are
reactive in the latter disease. The patient may have dysphagia, hoarseness,
dysarthria, and weakness of the muscles of the trunk, limbs, and neck. After bulbar
abnormalities persist, palients may develop progressive descending weakness or
paralysis. Respiration may become increasingly difficult. The tendon reflexes
become hypoactive or absent. The condition may be mistaken as Guiltian-Baire
syndrome, bul muscle pain and paresthesias do not occur in patients with botulism.
Sensation is retained in botulism. The spinal fluid reveals no abnormalities.
The diagnosis of botulism is confirmed by detection of toxin in the scrum or stool
or in food ingested before the illness began. Electromyography can also lie very
helpful There is a decrease in the amplitude of the muscle action potential [483J.
Maximal exercise or tetanic stimulation of nerves leads to an abnormal facilitation
of the muscle action potential [483]. Most palients died prior to the development
of intensive care units and antitoxin. Now. with such treatment available, the
majority of the patients survive, but it remains a very serious disease.
Cardiac and Cardiovascular Findings. Cholinergic autonomic dysfunction is often
present. The most common manifestation is postural orthostatic hypotension.
Botulinus toxin has a direct toxic effect on the heart when given to experimental
animals |-&S<ij. Abnormal T-waves and incomplete right bundle branch block have
been observed in patients with botulism |-lNo|. I hese changes can be related to
hypokalemia bul have also been noted in palients with normal electrolytes. Sudden
unexpected death from cardiac arrest or ventricular fibrillation have also been
described in patients with botulism [4861.
SELECTED GENETIC AND HEREDOFAMILIAL SYSTEM DISEASES THAT HAVE CARDIAC AND/OR
CARDIOVASCULAR ABNORMALITIES
Friedreich's Ataxia
Friedreich's ataxia is the most common type of ataxia inherited as an autosomal
recessive and accounts for at least 50% of hereditary aiaxiaxas in most large
American and European series [487[. The disease is caused by a gene mutation tha th
pericenlromeri lon f chromosom 9 [487] Th mutatio

Fig. 25 Kyphoscoliosis secondary to Friedreich's ataxia. This young boy developed


marked cardiac enlargement of the type seen in Friedreich's ataxia before
kyphoscoliosis developed. (From Hurst JW. Logue RB. eds. The Heart; Arteries and
Veins, 1st ed. New York: McGraw-Hill. Inc., I%6:69. Reproduced with permission.)
frequency of cardiomyopathy and the severity of the clinical neurological findings
[488]. Necropsy examination of patients with Friedreich's ataxia shows that the
myelinated fibers of the posterior columns and the corticospinal and
spinocerebellar tracts of the spinal cord are greatly diminished and are
incompletely replaced with gliosis [489]. The large cells in the dorsal root
ganglia are often lost 1487J,
The age of onset of symptoms is most often between 8 and 15 years bul can vary from
18 months to 25 years [487]. The first sign of the disease is ataxia. Neurologic
signs gradually progress and include dysarthria, limb and gait ataxia, areflexia,
pyramidal tract distribution weakness in the lower limbs, exiensor plantar
reflexes, and loss of joint position sense and vibration sense in the feet. About
50% f palient hav distal wasting especiall i th limb |487| Unfortu

FlG. 26 Electrocardiographic abnormalities in a patient with Friedreich's ataxia.


This electrocardiogram, illustrating an example of pseudoinfarction, was recorded
from a 31year-old man with Friedreich's ataxia. An atrial ectopic rhythm is
present; the atrial rate is about 210 depolarizations per minute. (From Hurst JW.
Ventricular Electrocardiography. New York: Gower Medical Publishing, 1991:11.33.
Copyright, JW Hurst. Reproduced with permission.)
deformity of the feet may be noted before or after the neurologic abnonnalities are
detected.
The abnormality of gait has been characterized as both cerebellar and tabetic in
type. Patients may spread their legs apart in an effort to stand but will fall if
the eyes are closed. Tendon reflexes disappear but the ability to think and reason
remains intact. There is a loss of proprioception in the arms and legs. Nystagmus
and deafness are occasionally found. At the end of life patients are totally
bedridden. On average, patients become unable to walk about 15 years after the
onset of symptoms |4S7|. Age at death is variable but now averages in the mid-30s.
Occasional patients survive into the sixth or seventh decade.
Cardiac and Cardiovascular Findings. The heart is diseased in most patients with
Friedreich's ataxia, However, the severity of the heart disease does not parallel
the severity of the neurologic abnormalities f490]. As a rule, the neurologic
abnormalities appear long before symptoms of heart disease are apparent.
Electrocardiographic (Fig. 26) and echocardiographic abnormalities are ded i almos
all patients Th abnormalitie d physical examination

FIG. 27 Myocardial abnormalities in Friedreich's ataxia. Area of myocardium showing


replacement fibrosis. Hematoxylin-eosin (x80). (From Ref. 13S. Copyright. REB
Hudson.
I%5. Reproduced wilh permission.)
Two types of cardiomyopathy are found in patients wilh Friedreich's ataxia [491 J,
Hypertrophic cardiomyopathy can be identified by echocardiography. Asymmetric
septal hypertrophy and left ventricular tract obstruction may or may not he
apparent. Cardiac myocyte disarray is not usually present and ventricular
arrhythmias do not usually occur [4921, These findings differ markedly from those
found in isolated hypertrophic cardiomyopathy, which is also genetically
predestined [491 ]. Cardiac function may be maintained, which is also unlike
isolated hypertrophic cardiomyopathy 14921. In one study hypertrophic
cardiomyopathy, most commonly concentric, was thought to be spcciltc for
Friedreich's ataxia and was found in all patients studied by echocardiography
[493].
Dilated cardiomyopathy may also occur in patients wilh Friedreich's ataxia [491 J,
The functioning myocytes degenerate, as do the components of ihe conduction
system. These cells are replaced wilh connective tissue and macrophages markedly
diminished. Whereas this type of cardiomyopathy is less common in patients with
Friedreich's ataxia, it is far more serious than the hypertrophic cardiomyopathy
that is commonly found. The electrocardiogram is usually abnormal [494,495]. Atrial
flutter and fibrillation may occur, and ventricular dysrhythmias may lead to death.
The electrocardiogram may reveal conduction system abnormalities in which the
terminal portion of the QRS complex is abnormally directed. Any type of conduction
abnormality can occur, including uncomplicated and complicated right and left
bundle branch block. The initial portion of the QRS complex can also become
abnormal. Such an abnormality can be caused by a localized area of fibrosis. The
vector representing the abnormal electrical force will be directed away from the
inert area of myocardium. Such an abnormality is caused by the intact cardiac
muscle that is located in the region of the myocardium that is opposite to the
localized area of disease. Such an abnormal Q-wave may lead the clinician to
misdiagnose the patient as having a myocardial infarction (see Fig. 26). Patients
often die of severe congestive heart failure, cardiac arrhythmia, or pulmonary
dysfunction.
Ataxia Telangiectasia
Ataxia telangiectasia is often referred to as the Louis-Bar syndrome, after Madame
Louis-Bar. who described the first cases. The condition is an autosomal-recessively
inherited disorder in which the gene locus maps to chromosome 1 tq 1487J. The
initial descriptions were those of an early-life ataxic syndrome in children who
were usually mentally retarded. It is now recognized that this disorder is a
multisystem disease that includes variable immunodeliciency of both the cellular
and humoral immune systems [4961. Patients have a markedly increased frequency of
developing various neoplasms.
Motor development is usually delayed, and ataxia is usually noted when the children
first begin walking. Growth and sexual development are delayed and most patients
have mild mental retardation [4871. The patients have difficulty moving their eyes
conjugately at will. The face is described as having an impassive appearance, and
drooling and a slow slurred voice are common findings. Motor abnormalities include
dystonic postures, choreic movements, and limb and gait ataxia. Telangiectases are
found on the skin and conjunctiva [487]. Necropsy shows a severe loss of Purkinje
cells in the cerebellum, and degeneration of the posterior columns in the spinal
cord.
Palients are quite sensitive to ionized radiation and some drugs [4961. Recurrent
infections are a major clinical feature of the disease. Bronchiectasis and pulmonar
infection d du th immunodeficiency
Cardiac and Cardiovascular Findings. Cor pulmonale can develop in relation to lhe
chronic bronchopulmonary infections. Cardiac neoplasms have not been described.
Cardiac and cardiovascular abnormalities have not been reported in palients wilh
ataxia telangiectasia, but these have not been sought or studied systematically .
Neurofibromatosis
The term neurolibromatous is now applied to two genetically different disorders.
Neurofibromatosis 1 (NF-I) (von Recklinghausen's disease) is inherited as an
autosomal-dominant trait and is the most common genetically transmitted disorder
affecting lhe nervous system 1497J. The gene locus for NF-1 is chromosomal region
17ql 1.2 [4971,
NF-I is characterized by eafe-au-tail spots on lhe skin, neurofibromas,
schwannomas, and optic nerve tumors 1497,4981, The cafe-au-latt skin spots are
noted after infancy and gradually increase in number during the lirst decade of
life. Axillary and inguinal freckles, usually about 2 to 3 mm in diameter, are also
important markers of the disease. Neurofibromas of the peripheral nerves are
detected as pedunculated subcutaneous nodules (Fig, 28). Vascular nevi and an
excess of hair in the sacral area may be present. Lisch nodules arc pigmented
hamartomas of the iris that are characteristic of NF-I. All adult patients with NF-
I have these nodules by age 65, and half have them by age 29 |497|. Neurofibromas
may also involve the central nervous system, and meningiomas, schwannomas, and
gliomas,, as well as other brain tumors, may occur. Patienls with NF-I may have
decreased hearing but do not develop acoustic nerve tumors |4981. Optic nerve
tumors are the most common of the intracranial tumors. Neurofibromas may also
involve the viscera and autonomic ganglia, Pheochromocytomas develop in about \%
of palients with NF-l. Neurofibromas secrete norepinephrine, which must be kept in
mind when searching for a pheoehromocytoma in such patients |494.i|.
Ganglioneuromas, carotid glomus tumors, Wilms" tumors, leukemia, and
rhabdomyosarcomas are more common in patients with NF-I than in the general
population. Gastrointestinal neurofibromas are especially common and occur most
often in the jejunum and stomach but may be mulliple 15(H)J. Mental retardation,
congenital absence of ihe greater wing of the sphenoid bone, and pseudoarthrosis of
the tibia and radius are other features of NF-L Nerve growth factor activity is
increased in patients with NF-I [501], and the genetic disorder is linked to the
nerve growth factor receptor on the distal long arm of chromosome 17 [498].

FIG. 28 Neurofibromatosis in a patient without pheochromoeytonia. These lesions,


which probably arise from the neurilemma of peripheral nerves, are subcutaneous,
freely mobile, and may be tender. They seldom interfere with nerve function.
Rarely, a sarcomatous degeneration occurs. (Courtesy of the late Dr. A. Domonkos,
From Manger WM. Clifford RW Jr. Pheoehromoeytoma. New York: Springer-Verlag. 1977.
Reproduced with permission.)
The main signature of this disorder is the presence of bilateral acoustic nerve
tumors. Other central nervous system neurofibromas and other tumors, especially
meningiomas and ependymomas, are also very common and most patients with NF-2 have
multiple tumors. Cafe-au-lait spots and subcutaneous neurofibromas also occur but
are not as numerous as in NF-I [497].
Cardiac and Cardiovascular Findings. Pheochromocytomas may be present in patients
with neurofibromatosis. The finding of labile hypertension in patien with
pheoehromoeytom th existenc f f catechol

FIG. 29 ECG in a paiieni wilh myocardial infarction due- to pheochroinucytoina.


This paiicni did not have neurofibromatosis. This electrocardiogram was recorded
from a 23ycar-old woman with pheoehromocyloma who had episodes of hypertension.
She developed pulmonary edema and a systolic blood pressure of 320 mm Hg and a
diastolic blood pressure of 140 mm Hg. The serum creatine pho^phokinasc rose to
6(K) with lO^f MB band. This patient undoubtedly had myocardial damage and
infarction due to severe caiecholenemia. (Electrocardiogram courtesy of Dallas
Hall. M.D., Emory University School of Medicine. Atlanta. GA. From Hurst JW.
Cardiovascular Diagnosis: The Initial Examination. St Louis: Mosby-Year Book, Inc.,
1993:388-389. Reproduced with permission.)
sion [497]. The patient with pheochromocytoma may have episodes of headache,
sweating, palpitations, anxiety, tremulousness, chest pain, nausea, vomiting, and
weakness- A patient with pheochromocytoma may have a myocardial infarction. Whereas
the usual amount o! catecholamines may dilate the coronary arteries, an excess
amount ol catecholamines, as occurs with a catecholamine storm, ma\ overwhelm the
receptors in the coronary arteries and cause them to constrict. Figure 29 shows an
ECG from a patient with myocardial infarction related to a pheochromocytoma. Some
patients may have a stroke due to brain hemorrhage, and sudden death has occurred.

416 Chapter 7
lhat the patient has received no monoamine oxidase inhibitors or other drug
containing sympathomimetic amines prior to the test. The sudden withdrawal of
clonidine can also produce a false-posiiive test. Urine tests for catecholamine are
not as reliable as blood tests.
When the plasma test is positive a magnetic resonance image (MRl) of th pelvis
(including the bladder), abdomen, thorax, and neck should be obtained i order to
locate the site of the tumor. Scintigraphy usinq 1311 M1BG is also use to identify
the location of the pheoehromoeytoma. The localization of the pheo ehromoeytoma is
extremely important in patients with von Recklinghausen's dis ease because the
neurofibromas themselves produce elevated levels of catechol amines 1497,499].
Premature vascular occlusive disease also occurs in NF-L which may pres ent in
childhood as a stroke 1503Vascular disease can affect the aorta and th iliac,
mesenteric, renal, and cervicocranial cerebral arteries. The cause of th vascular
occlusive disease is not known, but proliferation of Schwann cells withi arterial
walls can be followed by fibrosis and other changes 1497]. The interna carotid
artery may be narrowed bodi extracranial^ and intracranially. A moya moya pattern
of occlusions of the bilateral intracranial carotid arteries also occur in patients
with NF-I,
Tuberous Sclerosis
This disease, which has also been called Bournevilte disease and epiloia, is cause
by an abnormality in a gene located on chromosome 9 [504J. The condition i
inherited as an autosomal-dominant trait or it may be due to the mutation of gene.
This causes abnormalities in the cells lhat originale in the ectoderm an mesoderm,
which leads to ihe production of tumorlike hamartomas and growth
in the nervous system, heart, skin, and other organs, Tumors are most commo in the
central nervous system, retina, skin, kidneys, and heart 1497],
The newborn infant may appear normal although the condition lias bee diagnosed at
birth. The first sign of the disease is often a seizure. Mental retarda tion may
become evident as the child grows. Adenoma sebaceum usually develo in later
childhood (Fig. 30), The seizures themselves may be characteristic of th disease.
In the first year or two the seizures take the form of so-called salaam spasms
during which ihere is flexion myoclonus and the liLG shows high-voltag spikes and
slow waves [504]. Later, grand ma I seizures and partial complex sei zures may
occur. About half of children with tuberous sclerosis are mentall retarded [497].
Age at seizure onset does correlate with mental subnormality. Al children who have
severe, frequent seizures during the first year of life will hav
mental retardatio [497] Th diagnosti triad include adenom seba

1st ed. New York: McGraw-Hill. I%f\ Plate 4A. Reproduced with permission.)
develop a cauliflowerlike appearance. They are prominent over the cheeks,
nasolabial folds, chin, and bridge of the nose. However, all of these conditions
may not be present at the same time, Hypomelanotic macules, nonpigmentation of
scalp hair, and subungual and periungual ftbromas are common in relation to the
nails of the toes and fingers and are important clues to the presence of tuberous
sclerosis. About 20% of patients with tuberous sclerosis have green patches on the
skin of the back. These lesions are raised and have a cobblestone appearance like
the skin of an orange or shark skin 1497J. The finding of phakomas of the retina or
a fibroma of the gums also aids in the diagnosis.
Neuroimaging scans often show subependymal nodular calcifications which are
pathognomonic for tuberous sclerosis. Large hamartomas and giant cell tumors may
obstruct the foramen of Monro or the thud ventricle, leading to hydrocephalus and
increased intracranial pressure. The cortex usually at necropsy to migrate normally
during early life. Gliomas also often develop in patients with tuberous sclerosis.
Renal cysts and angiomyolipomas are often found in the kidneys. Renal
angiomyolipomas are found in nearly 50% of patients with tuberous sclerosis who are
studied using renal ultrasound. CT scans, or both 1497,5051.
Cardiac and Cardiovascular Findings. Webb and colleagues reported that 80% of
patients with rhabdomyomas of the heart have tuberous sclerosis and that 60% of
patients, under 18 years of age with tuberous sclerosis have rhabdomyomas [506].
The tumors of the myocardium may or may not obstruct or obliterate the ventricular
cavity. The larger tumors may cause death within a few hours of birth. The cardiac
abnormalities of a 36-week-old infant are shown in Figure 31. The myocardial tumors
are not encapsulated and are considered by many pathologists to be hamartomas.
Biopsy of the lesions is often possible and the cells are characteristic of
rhabdomyoma. The lesions most often involve the left ventricle and the
interventricular septum. Large obstructing lesions and those that interfere wilh
cardiac function have a poor prognosis 1506]. Cardiac failure and arrhythmias can
develop in patients wilh rhabdomyomas. Some patients with inberous sclerosis have
fibromuscular dysplasia of the renal arteries and may develop hypertension [497].
Renal failure due to severe hypertension is rare.
Von Hippel-Lindau Disease
The condition known as von Hippel-Lindau syndrome is inherited as an autosomal-
dominant disorder. The tumor suppressor gene on chromosome 3 is involved in this
syndrome. Positional cloning has localized the gene responsible to chromosome
3p25-26 [497.5071- The most common features are retinal and cerebellar hemangiomas
and hemangioblastomas. Other cysts, angiomas, and tumors are also common. These
include: renal cysts and carcinomas; pheochromocytomas; hepatic cysts, adenomas,
and hemangiomas; pancreatic cysts, hemangiomas, hemangioblastomas, and carcinomas;
epidydimal cysts, adenomas, and hemagiomas; adrenal cysts and adenomas; lung cysts
and adenomas; and bone cysts [497,508[. Within the central nervous system,
hemangioblastomas are most often located in the cerebellum, spinal cord (especially
al the craniocervical junction and the conus medullaris). and brainstem 1509], The
hemangioblastomas are composed of vascular elements that may organize into
channels or caverns. They do not contain nerve cells but do contain a great deal of
reticulin and swollen, lipidlilled endothelial cells [510].
Careful examination of the retina almost invariably shows retinal hemangi
lesions A firs thes hemagioma fla d resembl l

(C)
FlG. 31 Rhabdomyoma of the heart. The patient was a 36-month-old female who died as
the result of congenital rhabdomyoma of the heart. (A) X-ray him of the chest
showing enormous cardiac enlargement. (B) Heart shown at autopsy. (C) Microscopic
section of rhabdomyoma. The infant had seizures and a cardiac mass was noted on the
echocardiogram. There was evidence of heart failure. The rhabdomyoma involved the
septum as well as the left and right ventricles. The outflow tracts of the left and
right ventricles were obstructed and there was possible compression of the AV node
and main bundle branches. i Illustration courtesy ol Carlos }] Ahr .mnm sky, M D..
Egleslon Hospital for Children. Emory University. Atlanta, GA.)
the retinal hemangiomas. Exudate and gliosis can obscure the lesions, which often
grow slowly. Hypernephroma are found in 45*fr to 707r of affected patients and are
the cause of death in over one-fourth of patients 1497,511].
Cardiac and Cardiovascular Findings. Pheochromocytomas develop in 1% to 20% of
patients with von Hippel-Lindau disease, and can be bilateral and malignan |51 If
Hypertensio i thes patients eithe i relatio
Adrenoleukodystrophy
Adrenoleukodystrophy and adrenomyeloneuropalhy are X-linked recessive disorders
characterized by demyelination within the central and peripheral nervous systems
and adrenal insufficiency. Men arc almost exclusively affected, but 10% to 15% of
women who arc heterozygous for adrenoleukodystrophy will develop neurological
signs. In ihis condition [512] the defective gene maps to Xq28. the terminal
segment of the long arm of the X chromosome, and codes for a peroxisomal membrane
protein |513|. Adrenal cortical cells and Schwann cells of palients with these
disorders contain lamellar cytoplasmic inclusions that consist of cholesterol
esterified with abnormally long-chain saturated fatty acids |514]. Saturated very
long chain fatly acids accumulate in body fluids and tissues because of defective
peroxisomal oxidation of these very long chain fatty acids [512,514].
Often the first symptoms of patients who have adrenoleukodystrophy are neurologic.
The onset is often during early childhood or adolescence. Hemianopia and other
visual-field defects are due to demyelination in the posterior portions of the
cerebral hemispheres. Motor signs and loss of interest and intellectual functions
may occur and are secondary to more widespread cerebral demyelination. MRl usually
shows widespread bilateral white matter demyelination, most severe in the
parietooccipital regions and often asymmetric [515], The childhood-onset form is
the most severe and can be fatal during the first decade of life.
Symptoms in patients with adrcnomyeloncuropalhy usually develop during adolescence.
A progressive spastic paralysis occurs usually wilh abnormal urinary and sexual
function Klectrophysiological studies usually show slowing of motor and sensory
nerve velocities. MRl in ihese patients shows hyperintensity within the
corticospinal tracts and spinal cord atrophy 1515], Women who are heterozygous for
X-linked adrenoleukodystrophy often develop a spastic paraparesis that begins in
their 20s or 30s [514].
Clinical and biochemical evidence of adrenal cortical insufficiency develops in
most patienls with these syndromes. Hypogonadism is also common. Dietary
restriction of very long chain fatty acids may lower the plasma levels of these
substances but does noi reverse the neruological abnormalities.
Cardiac and Cardiovascular Findings. Patients with adrenal insufficiency have the
same cardiovascular abnormalities seen in other patienls with Addison's disease. No
other specific cardiac or cardiovascular abnormalities have been related lo
adrenoleukodystrophy or adrenomyeloneuropathy.

422 Chapter 7
liver or kidneys of patients with Zellweger's syndrome [516,517]. Peroxisome are
round, cytoplasmic organelles that are found abundantly in all eukaryoli cells.
These structures play an important role in fatly acid and phytanic aci metabolism.
Infants with Zellweger's syndrome are hypotonic and underactiv at birth. Seizures
arc common. Deep tendon reflexes are absent. Ocular and retina abnormalities are
common. Biochemical tests usually show adrenal insufficiency Most infants die
within the first year of life.
Cardiac and Cardiovascular Findings. Cardiac defects are very common The most
frequent defects are ventricular septal defects and abnormalities of th aortic
valve region [512].
Hereditary Hemorrhagic Telangiectasia (Osler-Weber-Rendu Syndrome)
This disorder is transmitted as an auiosomal-dominani trait. Genetic linkage have
been shown to chromosome 9q33-q34 in some families and to chromosom 12q in others
[518]. The gene for this disorder at chromosome 9q3 has bee shown to lie endoglin*
which encodes an integral membrane protein most abun dant on endothelial cells |
51K|. Angiomas and telangiectasias are found in th skin, nasal membranes, pharynx,
urinary bladder, and the gastrointestinal tract The vascular lesions range from
pinhead to 3 mm in size. Nosebleeds, hematuria and gastrointestinal bleeding are
all common. Angiomas and arteriovenous mal formations are also found in the brain
and spinal cord of these patients [518,5191 About 33% of patients have brain or
spinal cord arteriovenous or venous malfor
mations 1518,519], The brain malformations cause intracerebral or subarachnoi
hemorrhages or seizures. Patients with spinal malformations may develop a para
paresis. Angiomas in the liver can be accompanied by shunting of blood aroun the
liver and develpment of a portosystemic encephalopathy.
About 15% of patients with hereditary hemorrhagic telangiectasia have pul monary
arteriovenous malformations, and about 40% to 60% of patients wit pulmonary
arteriovenous fistulas have hereditary hemorrhagic telangiectasi 1520-522J. The
right-to-left shunting of blood often causes polycythemia. Brai abscesses arc
common in children and young adults who have pulmonary arterio venous fistulas.
Transient ischemic attacks and ischemic strokes can result from paradoxical
embolism through the pulmonary shunts: air embolism has a I so bee postulated
[523].
Cardiac and Cardiovascular Findings. Pulmonary arteriovenous tistula d ofte
associated with polycythemia Th lun fistula ofte and heart. These factors can
exacerbate coronary and cerebrovascular disease Severe anemia can develop in
patients, with severe recurrent epistaxis and/or gastrointestinal bleeding when
transfusions are not given. Transfusions can lead to an iron overload and clinical
features of hemaehromatosis.
Mental Retardation and Congenital Heart Disease Down Syndrome
Down syndrome is present in about 1 in every 600 to 700 births and accounts for
about 10% of cases of mental retardation [ 524526J. The majority of patients with
Down syndrome have a trisomy of chromosome 21 but some have a translocation. The
children are mentally retarded, intelligence quotients (IQs) range from 20 to 70
(mean. 40 lo 50) but most children aquire some speech by the age of 5. Epicanthic
folds, slant eyes, and Brushlield's spots on the iris are common physical features
(Fig. 32). The palms of the hands commonly have a single crease rather lhan the
several which are normally present. The young infant has a characteristic cry, and
the tongue protrudes more than usual. Adults with Down

FIG. 32 I ace of a patient with Down syndrome. BrushfiekTs spots in the iris and
epicanthai folds are apparent. Atrial septal defect and endocardial cushion
defects may be present
syndrome often become progressive!) demented after age 40, and their brains show
prominent Alzheimer's disease changes al necropsy. They develop Alzheimer's
changes 10 to 20 years before individuals in the general population, and men
develop Alzheimer's changes earlier than women with Down syndrome 1527,5281. There
is an increased frequency of myelocytic and lymphocytic leukemia among patients
with Down syndrome.
Cardiac and Cardiovascular Findings. Fifty percent of patients with Down syndrome
have congenital heart disease, and 50% of those with congenital heart disease have
an endocardial cushion defect [529], The patient may have an ostium primum atrial
defect or a complete atrioventricular canal. Some patients have only a secundum
atrial septal defect.
The patient with an ostium primum atrial septal defect may have a targe heart,
There is commonly a prominent anterior movement of the chest, and the pulsation of
the pulmonary artery may be felt. There is a loud systolic murmur at the ape \
because of a cleft mitral valve, and the murmuj of tricuspid reguieitalion may be
heard. There is fixed splitting of the second heart sound, and the pulmonary valve
closure sound may be louder than normal.
Chest x-rays show a large heart, large left and right atria, a large pulmonary
artery, and right and left ventricular enlargement. Electrocardiograms almost al
ways show right bundle branch block (or right ventricular conduction delay) plus
left anterior-superior division block, Heart failure is common and atrial
fibrillation is likely to occur. The cardiac examination of a patient with a
complete atrioventricular canal reveals many of lhe same features described for an
ostium primum defect. There is, in effect, an atrial septal defect plus a
ventricular septal defect in such patients. The heart functions as a two-chambered
structure with the connecting atria above and the connecting ventricles below. This
severe defect leads to heart failure, and respiratory infections are common.
Embolic strokes also develop as a result of the congenital heart lesions.

Other Trisomies
The trisomy of chromosome M' syndrome is the second most common multiple congenital
malformation syndrome 15301. This condition is found in about three births in every
thousand [530]. There is a strong female preponderance; three out of every four
affected infants are girls. Affected babies are usually small at birth and are
quite feeble. Infants often require resuscitation at birth and may later have
apneic periods. Half of affected infants die during the first week, and many of the
early survivers die within the first year |530.53l | About 5'* to 10'f surviv
severel mentall retarded adult [5311

FIG. 33 Hand of a patient with trisomy IS syndrome. Typical posturing of (he hands
occurs in these patients. A variety of cardiac abnormalities has been reported with
this syndrome. (From Logue RB. Hurst JW. General inspection of the patient with
cardiovascular disease. In: Hurst JW. Logue RB, eds. The Heart. 1st ed. New York:
McGraw-Hill, Inc., I96f>:58. Reproduced with permission.)
relroflexed thumbs and short dorsiflexed big toes), inguinal and umbilical hernias,
and small pelvis [524.530.532]. Some patients have partial trisomies of either the
short or long arm of chromosome 18; these patients have partial syndromes.
Decreased muscle tone, seizures, and severe mental retardation are common features.

Cardiac and Cardiovascular Findings. Congenital heart lesions are an integral part
of the clinical findings. The most frequently found defects are ventricular septal
defects, atrial septal defects, patent ductus arteriosus, and pulmonary valve
stenosis [529,530],
middle nf the face, the brum, hand, visceral organs, and heart 1533,5341. The
craniofacial anomalies are characteristic and include microcephaly, sloping
forehead, agenesis of the o I factory apparatus, cleft lip and/or cleft palate,
large capillary angiomas of the brow and occipital region, and small and abnormal
eyes and ears [533J. They also often have Polydactyly. Urogenital defects are also
common. Most patients are severely mentally retarded. The brains of these patients
are often severely malformed f5351. These patients rarely survive beyond the
neonatal period because of their extensive malformations. Partial trisomy 13 cases
are also well known.
Cardiac and Cardiovascular Findings. Patients may have dextrocardia, ventricular
septal defects, double-outlet right ventricle, patent ductus arteriosus, or atrial
septal defects [529].
Congenital Rubella (Gregg-Swan) Syndrome
Gregg was the first to relate congenital malformations to rubella infection
acquired in utero [5361. The congenital rubella syndrome occurs in >80% of infants
when the rubella infection with rash occurs during the first 3 months of gestation
[537,5381. The brains of patients with congenital rubella show a chronic
leptomeningitis and multiple focal regions of infarction and gliosis |537J,
Deafness, cataracts, chorioretinitis, mental retardation, and congenital heart
disease are the commonest findings. The newborn most often has the triad of eighth-
nerve deafness, mental retardation, and cataracts (Fig. 34).
Cardiac and Cardiovascular Findings, Patients wilh the congenital rubella syndrome
have been reported to have patent ductus arteriosus, pulmonary valve stenosis, and
coarctation of a pulmonary artery [5291.
Noonan Syndrome
This syndrome has often been referred to as the Turner-like syndrome because the
morphological features closely resemble those found in girls who have Turner's
syndrome [530]. Both hoys and girls arc affected. Noonan syndrome can be
transmilted as an autosomal-dominant condition or be sporadic in occurrence.
Affected individuals arc short and have distinlive facial appearances with
hypertelorism, epicanthal folds, low-set ears, and a webbed neck. Myopia,
keraloconus. and strabismus are common [53(1]- Some also have cafe-au-lait spots
and lentigines. The gene for this disorder has been mapped to chromosome 12q22
1539). Patients may be mentally retarded but the degree of retardation is usually
not severe [540],

FIG. 34 Face of a patieni wilh Gregg-Swan, or congenital rubella syndrome, Note


cataracts. Patent ductus arteriosus wilh or without pulmonary stenosis is common
in these patients. Coarctation of ihe pulmonary artery may occur, (From Loguc RB,
Hurst JW. General inspection of the patient with cardiovascular disease. In: Hurst
JW. Logue RB. eds. The Heart, 1st ed. New York: McGraw-Hill. Inc.. 1966:57.
Reproduced with permission.)
Williams Syndrome
This syndrome is due to a microdeletion in the region that encodes elastin on
chromosome 7ql L23 [512,5301. Patients may have mild microcephaly and may be mildly
mentally retarded but are usually talkalive and friendly. They have difficulty with
visual-spatial functions and hypersensitivity to sound. Periods of autistic
behavior are described. Some palients have hyperactive reflexes and slight
spasticity in the legs. Some patients during adulthood develop hypertension,
progressive joint disease, hypercalcemia, and recurrent urinary trad infections
[5301.
Cornelia de Lange Syndrome
Patients with this syndrome have a characteristic physiognomy. They have bushy
confluent eyebrows, downward-si anting eyes, small mandibles, low-sei ears,
hirsutism, growth retardation, and a peculiar '"chicken wing" appearing arm with a
single, thumblikc digit [541,5421. They are often severely mentally retarded and
have hearing loss and speech delay. Most cases have had sporadic occurrence but
there may also be autosomal-dominant inheritance [5301.
Cardiac and Cardiovascular Findings. Associated congenital cardiac lesions are
very' common and include ventricular and atrial septal defects, patent ductus
artcriosis, pulmonic stenosis, anaomalous venous return, and an atrioventricular
canal.
Rubenstein-Taybi's Syndrome
This syndrome is characterized by postnatal onset of growth deficiency with short
stature, memai retardation, speech difficulties, and a stiff, unsteady gait [5301,
Rubenstein and Taybi. who described the syndrome in l%3, emphasized the association
of facial dysmorphic features and broad thumbs and toes with mental retardation |
543|. The maxilla ts hypoplastic with a narrow palate; the nose is prominent and
often beaked, and the palpebral Jissures often slant downward [5301. Most cases are
of sporadic occurrence. The gene locus for this condition is at chromosome I6pl3.3,
a region that encodes the human cAMP-regulated, enhancer-binding protein [530,544J.

Cardiac and Cardiovascular Findings. About 25% of patients with the Rubinstein-
Taybi syndrome have ventricular septal defects, atrial septal defects, or patent
ductus arteriosus,
Velocardiofacial Syndrome
This syndrome was lirst described by Shprintzeii and colleagues and is sometimes
also called the Shprintzen syndrome 1545,546J. The major features of this syndrome
are: mental retardation; learning disabilities; cleft palate; conductive hearing
loss; prominent, square-shaped nose: retruded small mandible: and slender and
hypotonic limbs with hyperextendable hands and lingers [530]. The condition is
inherited as an autosomal-dominant disorder. Affected individuals have an
interstitial deletion of chromosome 22ql 1.21-ql 1.23 [530],
Cardiac and Cardiovascular Findings. Cardia defect integral
DiGeorge Sequence Abnormalities
This developmental disorder was first described by DiGeorge and includes defects
of development of lhe thymus, parathyroid glands, and the great vessels, Affeclcd
individuals sometimes have lateral displacement of the inner canthi of lhe eyes,
short palpebral fissures, small jaw. and ear anomalies. The children are usually
mildly menially retarded The thymus and parathyroid glands may be absent or
hypoplastic. Hypocalcemia with seizures may occur in young infants and provide a
clue to the presence of this syndrome. Most individuals are a result of a paitiaJ
monosomy of the proximal long arm of chromosome 22 due to a mierodeletion of 22ql
1.2 [530,548,549]. The velocardiofacial syndrome and the DiGeorge sequence may
represent different clinical manifestations of the same genetic defect [530J.
Cardiac and Cardiovascular Findings, The aortic arch is often malformed. The arch
may be right-sided or lhe aorta may be iuterupted 1530,550f Truncus arteriosis,
ventricular septal defects, and tetralogy of Fallot also occur 1530,550].
Syndromes Associated with Prematurely Accelerated Aging
There are two well-recognized bul rare syndromes in which aging processes are
accelerated. Progeria, alsn called the Hulchinson-Gilford syndrome after the
physicians who reported the initial cases [551.5521. is a condition evident at or
soon after birth. In patients who have Werner's syndrome, accelerated aging usually
begins when affected individuals reach their third decade [553].
Progeria
Infants with progeria are noted ai birth to have abnormal, scerodermalike skin,
especially over the abdomen 1530,554,555], By the time they reach their first
birthday, decreased weight gain and retarded growth are apparent. The craniofacial
features are quite characteristic and allow instant recognition of the disorder by
physicians who arc familiar with the syndrome and have seen other patienls with
progeria. The face seems relatively small for the head; hair is lost early and
alopecia persists throughout life. The mandible is small and the teeth are crowded.
The face has a triangular appearance because of the absence of subcutaneous fat
1554]. Eyelashes and eyebrows are often absent. The voice is unusual and has high
squeak sound Th muscle atrophi d poorl developed d sub
are sporadic but there are reports of occurrence in siblings and in consanguineous
offspring, suggesting an autosomal-recessive inheritance.
Accelerated aging begins during the first years of life, Degenerative arthritis and
osteoporosis develop. The average age of death among 13 patients was 14.2 years
(range. 7 to 27) [530J. By the teens, prugcric patienls look like very sick,
feeble, and aged.
Cardiac and Cardiovascular Findings. Hypertension, coronary atherosclerosis with
angina pectoris, and myocardial infarction are quite common. Cardiomegaly and
congestive heart failure often develop in the early teens. Occlusive
cerebrovascular disease is also quite common. One of the authors (L.R.C,) has cared
for a patient who had multiple brain infarcts related to extensive extracranial
vascular occlusive disease that developed before age 6.
Werner's Syndrome
In 1904, Otto Werner in his doctoral thesis described the findings in four siblings
who had premature aging [553,557]. Little has been added since this original
description of the findings. Werner's original palients were short and had a senile
appearance. Their hair slaned to become gray during their 20s. They had cataracts
that appeared during the third decade of life, and had atrophic, hyperkeratotic,
ulcerated skin, mostly over ihe hands and feel, and their skeletal limb muscles
showed marked atrophy 1553.557]. With time, physicians have learned ihatdiabetes,
hypogonadism, and retinitis pigmentosa are additional associated features.
Cataracts are described as posterior cortical and subcapsular and are always hi
lateral [553], Liver dysfunction, hyperuricemia, and hyperlipidemia are usually
present. Some patients have subnormal intelligence. Seizures and hyperreflexia are
also common.
The facies are UMLIIS> quite characteristic. Affected individuals look 20 to 30
years older than their actual age. The face is thin and the sharp angle of the
bridge of the nose gives it a beaked appearance. Most patients have a high-pitched
voice due to a variety of different vocal cord abnormalities. The muscles of the
extremities usually show severe atrophy. Electromyographic studies show a
myopathic pattern of abnormality,
Patients wilh Werner's syndrome have a sinking predilection for developing
noncarcinomatous tumors. Meningiomas and neural sheath sarcomas are found within
lhe central nervous system. Aye at death averages about 4S (range. 30 to 63) [553
j. Death is often from malignancies, diabetic coma, or liver failure [553J.
coronary and craniocervical arteries {553,5581. Myocardial infarcts are common.
Often there is heavy calcification of ihe mitral and/or aortic valves |55X].
Homocystinuria and Homocysteinemia
Severe hyperhomocysleincmia and homocystinuria is a genetic disorder first
described in children and known to be associated wilh premature strokes, mental
retardation, and a Marfan-1 ike syndrome. In more recent years, ti has become clear
that lesser degrees of hyperhomocysteinemia are associated with premature
atherosclerosis.
Classic homocystinuria is caused by a hereditary deficiency of the enzyme
cystathione-beta-synthase; this enzyme is necessary tor the conversion of
methionine-derived homocysteine to cystalhione. In humans,, about 15 to 20 mmol of
homocysteine is formed each day by demcthylalion of the amino acid methionine
{559]. Homocysteine is then metabolized by one of two pathways, either rente
lbylation or transulfuration (5601, In the remethylation process, homocysteine is
remeihyluted to methionine in a reaction catalyzed b\ methionine synihase [561 J.
Vitamin B,: is an essential eofactor for methionine synthase. N^-methyl-
tetrahydrofolate is the methyl donor in this reaction, and N\ NJ'-methy]ene-
tetrahydrofolate reductase functions as the catalyst in this remethylation
reaction 1560], Homocysteine can also be transuUnrated. In this process
homocysteine condenses with serine to form cystathione, a reaction that is
catalyzed by the vitamin Independent enzyme cystathione beta-synthase [560,561 J.
Cystathione is then hydro! yzed lo cysteine which in turn can be incorporated into
glutathione or further metabolized to sulfate and excreted in the urine [560.562J.
Cystathione-bcla-synthase deficiency is the most common genetic cause of severe
hyperhomocysteinemia. The homozygous form of this disorder is called congenital
homocystinuria and is associated with plasma homocystine concentrations of up to
400 [imol/L during the fasting state 1560J, This clinical disorder is rare (five in
1 million births). Affected individuals have tens ectopias, skeletal deformities, a
Marfan-]ike habitus, and severe premature atherosclerosis. Typically a clinical
thromboembolic event would occur before age 30 in these individuals: this would
typically be a stroke rather than a myocardial infarct 15631. A homozygous
deficiency of N5, Nm-methylene-tetrahydrofolate reductase, the enzyme involved in
the B independent remethylation of homocysteine can also cause severe
hyperhomocysteinemia, Patients with this metabolic defect have an even worse
prognosis than those wilh cystathione-beta-synthase deficiency 15601.
Milder forms of hyperhomocysteinemia occur in heierozygotes with these enzyme
deficiencies. Deficiencies in ihe cofactors, folate, vitamin B i:. and
vitahyperthyroidism; breast, pancreatic, and ovarian cancers; lymphatic leukemia;
treatment with methotrexate, theophylline, and phenytoin; and pernicious anemia
(560]. Cigarette smoking has also been associated with elevated homocysteine levels
presumably because of interference with the synthesis of pyridoxal phosphate
[564J.
Elevated levels of homocysteine have now been unequivocably related to strokes,
premature atherosclerosis, myocardial infarction, and venous thromboembolism
1560,565,566], Evidence from more than 20 case-controlled studies that included
over 200O individuals has validated the relationship between elevated homocysteine
levels and accelerated atherosclerosis [560]. Experimental evidence shows that
increased homocysteine level injures the vascular endothelium and that this injury
leads lo platelet activation and the formation of thrombi [567,568]. Homocysteine
also stimulates vascular smooth muscle cells m proliferate [569].
( ardiac and Cardiovascular Findings. Increased homocysteine levels are associated
with an increase in occlusive atherosclerotic disease [560,570.573]. This leads to
an increased frequency of myocardial infarction, increased frequency of carotid
artery disease [5711, and increased severity of coronary artery occlusive disease
[560,572.573].
Neurocutaneous Diseases and the Heart Lentigenosis-Deafness-Cardiomyopathy Syndrome

Leniigenosis is a neurocutaneous disease that is inherited as an aulosomal-


dominanl trail with variable expression 1574]. Sporadic cases due lo mutation of
lhe gene also occur, Pol an i and Moynahan postulated that the condition is due to
a defeel of the neuroectoderm [575]. The patient has multiple lenligenes (Eig. 35),
deafness, hypertelorism, short stature, psychomotor retardation, poor muscle de
velopment, and genital abnormalities. Biopsy of the skin lesions reveals an
increase in pigment in the dermis.
Cardiac at id Co n iio \ 'as< 'H la r Fh i din gs. 11 y pe rt i o p 11 i c card i
omy o pat h y t s commonly found in patients with lentigenosis 1576.577f The
cardiac abnormalities include a pulsus bislcriens which can be noted by palpating
lhe pulsation of the carotid artery and hearing a systolic murmur along the left
sternal border. The murmur is intensified by the Valsalva maneuver [5781. These
abnormalities are caused by dynamic subaortic valve stenosis. The murmur of
subpulmonic valve slenosis may also he heard. An atrial gallop sound is commonly
audible. Mitral valv regurgitatio develop ventricular hypertrophy, a persistent
abnormal ST vector due to persistent epicardial injury, a persistent T-wave vector
due to epicardial ischemia, and, al limes, a deeply inverted T-wave due to a vector
directed away from the epicardium of the cardiac apex. The initial electrical
forces of the QRS complex may be directed may develop late in the course of ihe
disease if lhe patient does not succumb earlier to the arrhythmias mentioned above.

Long QTDeafness Syndromes


The Jervell and Lange-Ntelsen's syndrome consists of a prolonged QT interval and
congenital deafness 1579J. In childhood the children are diagnosed as having
bilateral high-tone deafness, and they develop fainting spells, often precipitated
by exertion, rage, or fear. Such individuals are subject lo sudden death. The
Romano-Word syndrome consists of a long QT interval and sudden death, but
patients are noi deaf [580,581 J. They also often have exerlionally related
syncope.
The Jervell and Lange-Nielsen's syndrome is an inherited autosomal-recessive
condition. The Romano-Ward syndrome is inherited as an autosomal-dominant
condition. Three or more genetic markers have been identified in patients with the
long QT sudden death syndrome 1582]. Some investigators believe that they have a
decrease in right cardiac sympathetic activity and an increase in left cardiac
sympathetic activity.
Palients with the Jervell, and Lange-Nielsen's syndrome are deaf and are more
likely to be female. The palients may have syncope due to ventricular tachycardia.
Syncopal attacks may be misdiagnosed as epilepsy.
Cardiac and Cardiovascular Findings. The electrocardiogram reveals a long QT
interval (Figs. 36,37). The syncope and sudden death in these patienls is usually
due to ventricular arrhythmia which may be ventricular tachycardia or ventricular
fibrillation. Torsades de pointes is common [5831, Patients with this syndrome may
develop a lethal arrhythmia as the result of a sudden sympathetic discharge, such
as may come from fright, anger, and startle. The serious arrhythmia may also occur
with physical exercise or upon awakening.

FlG. 37 This electrocardiogram was recorded from a 22-year-old male wilh the
JeivellLange-Nielsen syndrome. Noie ihe long Q-T imerval and large T waves. In
addition, the mean T vector is directed at -90 in the frontal plane and aboui 70c
anteriorly, while ihe mean QRS vecior is directed at about 4-110" in the frontal
plane and about posteriorly. Note the difference in the T wave shown in this
tracing compared to the T wave shown in Figure 36. (Electrocardiogram courtesy of
Arthur J. Moss, MD.. University of Rochester Medical Center Rochester. NY.)
Prolongation of the QT interval is a common finding among neonates who subsequently
have Ihe sudden infant death syndrome (SIDS). This linding could be explained by a
variant of the Romano-Ward or Jervell and Lange-Nielsen syndromes in these infants
1584.5851.
REFERENCES
1.
Samuels M. ' Vo. u!r; >' death re\isiieJ: Uu1 inod^M! tenons ol nemocurdiolog)
Neurologist 1997: 3:293-304.

2.
Levy MN, Warner MR. Parasympathetic effects on cardiac function. In: Armour J A,
Ardell JL, eds. Neurocardiology, New York: Oxford University Press. 1994: 53-76.

3.
Appenrctkr O, The Autonomic Nervous System 2d cd, Amsterdam: North-Hoi land
Publishing Company. 1976,
4.
Randall WC, McNally L. Caliguiri L, Rohse WG. Functional analyses of the cardiac
augmenlor and eardioaceelerator pathways in the dog. Am J Physiol 1957; 91:213

217.

5.
Barnes KL, Ferrario CM, Role of ihe central nervous system in cardiovascular
regulation. In: Furlan A. ed. The Heart and Siroke. London: Springer-Verlag, 1987:
155-169.

6.
Ali AS. Levine SR. Heart and brain relationships. In: Brain Ischemia. Basic Con

8.
Oppenheimer SM, Wilson JX, Guiraudon C. Cechctto DF. Insular cortex stimulalion
produces ledial cardiac arrythmias: a mechanism of sudden death. Brain Res 1991:
550:115-121.

9.
Oppeuheimer SM. Hopkins DA. Suprabulbar neural regulation of the heart. In: Armour
JA. Ardell JL, eds. Neurocardiology. New York: Oxford Press. 1994:309

341.

10.
Benarroch MIL The central auionomic network: functional organization,
dysfunction, and perspective. Mayo Clin Proc 1993; 68:988-100L

11.
Loewy AD. Central autonomic pathways. In: Loewy AD, Spycr KM, eds. Central
Regulation of Autonomic Functions. New York: Oxford University Press. 1990: 88-103.

12.
Byer E. Ashman R. Toth LA. Electrocardiogram wilh large upright T waves and long
Q-T intervals. Am Heart J 1947; 33:796-806.

13.
Lcvine HD. Non - spec i lie ity o F the dec iroc ard i og ra n i as s oc i ate d w
i th c oron aiy heart disease. Am J Med 1953; 15:344-354.

14.
Burch GE. Myers R, Abildskov JA. A new electrocardiographic pattern observed in
cerebrovascular accidents. Circulation 1954: 9:719-723.

15.
Cropp GJ. Manning GW. Electrocardiographic changes simulating myocardial ischemia
and infarction associated with spontaneous intracranial hemorrhage. Circulation
I960: 22:25-38.

16.
Lavy S, Stern S. Herishianu Y, et al. Electrocardiographic changes in ischemic
stroke. J Neurol Sei 1968: 7:409-415.

17.
Dimant J. Grob D. Electrocardiographic changes and myocardial damage in palients
with acute cerebrovascular accidents. Stroke 1977: 8:448-455.
18.
Goldstein DS, The electrocardiogram in stroke: relationship to pathophysiological
type and comparison wilh prior tracings. Slroke 1979; 10:253-258.

19.
Samuels MA. Electrocardiographic manifestations of neurologic disease. Sem Neurol
1984; 4:453-459.

20.
Oppenheimer SM, Cechetto DF, Haehinski VC. Cercbrogenic cardiac arrythmias.
Cerebral electrocardiographic influences and their role in sudden death. Arch
Neurol 1990: 47:513-519.

21.
Brouwers PJ. Wijdieks EF. Hasan D. et al. Serial electrocardiographic recording in
aneurysmal subarachnoid hemorrhage. Slroke 1989; 20:1162-1167.

22.
Rolak LA. Rokey R. Electrocardiographic features. In: Rolak LA, Rokey R. eds.
Coronary and Cerebral Vascular Disease. A Practical Guide. Mount Kisco. NY; Future
1990:139-197.

23.
Hansson L, Larsson O. The incidence of ECG abnormalities in acute cerebrovascular
accidents. Acta Med Scand 1974; 195:45-47,

24.
Hunt I). McRae C, Zapf P. Electrocardiographic and serum enzyme changes in
subarachnoid hemorrhage, Am Heart J 1969: 77:479-488.

25.
Kreus KE. Kemila SJ. Takala JK Hlectrocardiographie changes in cerebral vascular
accidents. Acta Med Scand 1969: 185:327-334.

28.
Stobcr T. Anstatt T\ Sen S. Schimrigk K, Jagcr H. Cardiac arrhythmias in
subarachnoid hemorrhage. Acta Neuroehir (Wien) 1988: 93:37-44.

29.
Di Pasquale G, Pine Hi G. Andreoli A. Manini G, Grazi P. Togneyyi F. Holter
detection of cardiac arrhythmias in intracranial subarachnoid hemorrhage. Am J
Cardiol 1987: 59:596-600.

30.
Di Pasquale G. Pinelli G, Andreoli A, Manini GL. Grazi P. Tognetti F. Torsade de
pointes and ventricular flutter-fibrillation following spontaneous cerehral
subarachnoid hemorrhage, hit J Cardiol 1988; 18:163-172.

31.
Puleo P. Cardiac enzyme assessment. In: Rolak LA. Rokey R, eds. Coronary and
Cerebral Vascular Disease, A Practical Guide. Mount Kisco, NY: Futura, 1990: 199-
216.

32.
Fabinyi G. Hunt D- McKinley L. Myocardial creatine kinase isoenzyme in serum after
subarachnoid hemorrhage. J Neurol Neurosurg Psychiatry 1977: 40:818
820.

33.
Neil-Dwyer G, Cruikshank J. SUratlon C. Beta blockers, plasma total creatine
kinase and creatine kinase myocardial isoenzyme, and the prognosis of subarachnoid
hemorrhage. Surg Neurol 1986: 25:163-168.

34.
Norris JW, Hachinski VC. Myers MG, et al. Serum cardiac enzymes in siroke. Stroke
1979: 10:548-553.

35.
Norris JW. Hachinski V. Cardiac dysfunction following stroke. In: Furlan A. ed.
The Heart and Stroke. London: Springer-Verlag. 1987:171-183.

36.
Caplan LR. The heart: concluding comments. In: Brain Ischemia, Basic Concepts and
Clinical Relevance. London: Springer-Verlag, 1995:329 334.

37.
Weir BK. Pulmonary edema following fatal aneurysmal rupture. J Neurosurg 1978;
49:502-507.

38.
Hoff JT. Nishimura M, Experimental neurogenic pulmonary edema in cats. J
Neurosurg 1978; 18:383-389.

39.
Theodore J, Robin ED. Pathogenesis of neurogenic pulmonary edema. Lancet 1975:
2:749-751.

40.
Koskello P. Punsar S, Sipila W, Subendocardial hemorrhages and electrocardio
graphic changes in intracranial bleeding. Br Med J 1964: 1:1479-1480.

41.
Duivn DR. Becker AE. Focal myocytolysis mimicking the electrocardiographic pattern
of transmural anteroseptal myocardial infarction. Chest 1976: 69:506-511.

42.
Connor RCR. Heart damage, associated wilh intracranial lesions. Br Med J 1968;
3:29-31.

43.
Greenhoot JH, Reichenbach DD. Cardiac injurs and subarachnoid hemorrhage. J
Neurosurg 1969: 30:521 -531.

44.
Kolin A, Norris JW. Myocardial damage from acute cerebral lesions. Siroke 1984:
15:990-993.

45.
Baroldi G. Different morphological types of myocardial cell death in man. In:
Fleckstein A. Rona G. eds. Recent Advances in Studies in Cardiac Structure and
Metabolism. Pathophysiology and Morphology of Myocardial Cell Alteration, Vol.

attacks? In: Furlan A, cd. The Heart and Stroke. London: Springer-Verlag, 1987:
185-216. 4$. Talman WT. Cardiovascular regulation and lesions of the central
nervous system. Ann Neurol 1985: 18:1-12.
49. Yoon R-W. Morillo CA, Ceehetto DF, Haehinski V. Cerebral hemispheric
lateralization in cardiac autonomic control. Arch Neurol 1997; 54:741-744.
50. Haeliiuski VC. Oppenheimer SM. Wilson JX, Guiraudon CT Ceehetto DI".
Asymineiiv of wmpatheLie eonsequences of experimental stroke Arch Neurol 1992:49:
697-702.
51.
Giubtlei F. Strano S, Lino S. et al. Autonomic nervous system activity during
sleep in middle cerebral artery infarction. Cerebrovasc Dis 1998; 8:118-123.

52.
Sehenk EA, Moss AJ. Cardiovascular affects of sustained norepinephrine infusions.

II. Morphology. Circ Res 1966; 605-615.

53.
Szakaes JE- Mehlinan B. Pa I ho logical changes induced by norepinephrine. Am J
Cardiol I960: 5:619-627.

54.
Myers MG. Norris JW, Haehinski VC. Sole MJ. Plasma norepinephrine in stroke.
Stroke 1981: 12:200-204.

55.
Benedict CR. Loach AB. Sympathetic nervous system activity in palients with
subarachnoid hemorrhage. Stroke 1978: 9:237-244.

56.
McNair JL. Clower BR. San ford RA. Effect of reserpine pretreatmenl on myocardial
damage associated with simulated intracranial hemorrhage in mice. Eur ,1 Pharmacol
1970; 9:1-6.

57.
Hawkins WE, Clower BR. Myocardial damage after head trauma and simulated
intracranial hemorrhage in mice: the role of the auionomic nervous system.
Cardiovasc Res 1971; 5:524-529.

58.
Offcrhaus I, Van Gool J. Electrocardiographic changes and tissue catecholamines
in experimental subarachnoid hemorrhage. Cardiovasc Res 1969: 3:433

440.

59.
Jacob WA, Van Bogaert A. DeGroot-Lasseel MHA. Myocardial ullrastructural and
hemodynamic reactions during experimental subarachnoid hemorrhage. J Moll Cell
Cardiol 1972; 4:287-298.

60.
Hunt D. Gore 1. Myocardial lesions following experimental intracranial
hemorrhage: prevention with propanolol. Am Heart J 1972; 83:232-236.

61.
Natelson BH. Ncurocardiology. Arch Neurol 1985; 42:178-184.

62.
Sclye H. The Chemical Prevention of Cardiac Necrosis. New York: Ronald Press,
1958.
63.
Pine DS. Tierney L Jr. A stressful interaction. N Engl J Med 1996: 334:1530 1534.

64.
Cebelin M. Hirsch CS. Human stress cardiomyopathy. Hum Pathol 1980; 11:123

132.
64a. Weiner N. Atropine, scopolamine, and related antimuscarinic drugs. In:
Gilman AG. Goodman LS, Gilman A, eds. Goodman and Oilman's The Pharmacologic
67. Pavlov I. The Complete Collection of Works. Vol. I. Moscow: ANSSR, 1951:419

457.
68.
Zavodskaya IS, Moreua EV, Novikova NA. Neurogenic Mean Lesions. Oxford: Pergamon
Press. 1980.

69.
West TC. Falk G, Cervoni P. Drug alteration of transmembrane potentials in atrial
pacemaker cells. J Pharmacol Exp Ther 1956; 117:245-252.

70.
Kralios IV Milkn CK. Sympathetic neural effects on regional atrial recovers
properties and cardiac rhythm. Am J Physiol 1981: 240:H590-H596.

71.
Scher AM. Ohm WW, Bum gamer K et al. Sympathetic and para sym pathetic control of
heart rale in the dog. baboon, and man. Fed Proc 1972: 31:1219-1225.

72.
Lown B. Sudden cardiac death: the major challenge confronting contemporary
cardiology. Am J Cardiol 1979; 43:313-328.

73.
Schwartz PJ. Slome HL, Brown AM. Effects of unilateral stellate ganglion blockade
on the arrhythmia associated with coronary occlusion. Am Heart J 1976; 92:588-599.

74.
Vernei RL. Thompson P. Lown B. Ventricular vulnerability during sympathetic
stimulation: role of heart rate and blood pressure. Cardiovasc Res 1974: 8:602-
610.

75.
Richtcr CP. On the phenomenon of sudden death in animals and man. Psychosom Med
1957: 19:191-198.

76.
McEwen BS. Protecting and damaging effects of stress mediators. N Eng J Med 1998;
338:171-179.

77.
Gilchrist JM. Arrhythmogenie seizures: diagnosis by simultaneous EEG/ECG
recording. Neurology 1985; 35:1503-1506.

78.
White PT. Grant P. Mosier J. Gray A. Changes in cerebral dynamics associated with
seizures. Neurology 1961: 11:354-361.
79.
Blumhardt LD. Smith PE. Owen L. Electrocardiographic accompaniments of temporal
lobe seizures. Lancet 1986: 1:1051-1056.

80.
Kiok MC. Terrence CF, Fromm GH, Lavine S. Sinus arrest in epilepsy. Neurology
1986; 36:115-116.

81.
Johnson RH. Lambie DG, Spalding JMK. Autonomic nervous system, in: Joym RJ. ed.
Clinical Neurology, Philadelphia: Lippincott. 1993(Chap. 57): 1-94.

82.
Jay GW. Lcitsma JE. Sudden death in epilepsy. Acta Neurol Scand 1981: 63(suppl):
1-66.

83.
Lathers CM. Schraedcr PR. Epilepsy and Sudden Death. New York: Marcel Dekker,
1990.

84.
Nashef L. Garner S. Sander WAS, Fish DR. Shorvon SD. Circumstances of death in
sudden dealh in epilepsy: interviews of bereaved relatives. J Neurol Neurosurg
Psychiatry 1998; 64:349-352.

85.
Leetsma JE. Kalelkar MB. Teas SS. Jay GW, Hughes JR. Sudden unexpected death
associated with seizures, analysis of 6f> cases. Epilepsia 1984; 25:84-88.

85a, Natelson BH. Suarez R. Terrence CF. Turizo R. Patients with epilepsy who die
suddenly have cardiac disease. Arch Neurol 1998: 55:857-860.
86. Parkinson J. An f.ssay on the Shaking Palsy. London: Whiuingham and Rowland.

88.
Burkhardt CR. Filley CM, Klcinsehmidt-Demastcrs BK, ct al. Diffuse Lewy body
disease and progressive dementia. Neurology 1988: 38:1520-1528.

89.
Wakabayashi K. Takahashi H. Neuropathology of autonomic nervous system in
Parkinson's disease. Eur Neurol 1997; 38(suppl 2):2-7.

90.
Steele JC, Richardson JC, Olszewski J. Progressive supranuclear palsy. Arch
Neurol 1964: 10:333-359.

91.
Steele .IC. Progrcsshe Miprmuiclear paJs_\. Brain 1972: 95:693-704.

92.
Litvan I, Agid Y, Calne D. et al. Clinical research criteria for the diagnosis of
progressive supranuclear palsy (Steele-Richardson-Ols/ewski syndrome): report of
the NINDS-SPSP international workshop. Neurology 1996; 47:1-8.

93.
Daniel SE, de Bruin VMS. Lees AJ. The clinical and pathulogical spectrum of
Steele-Richardson-Olszewski syndrome (progressive supranuclear palsy): a
reappraisal. Brain 1995: 118:759-770.
94.
Riley DE. Lang AE. Lewis A. et al Cortical-basal ganglionic degeneration.
Neurology 1990: 40:1203-1212.

95.
Rinne JO. Lee MS, Thompson PD. Marsden CD. Curticobasal degeneration. A clinical
study of 36 cases. Brain 1994: 117:1183-1196.

96.
Shy GM. Dragcr GA. Neurological syndrome associated with orthostatic hypotension.
Arch Neurol 1960; 2:511-527.

97.
Schwarz GA. The orthostatic hypotension syndrome of Shy-Drager. Arch Neurol 1967:
16:123-139.

98.
Gilman S. Quinn NP. The relationship of multiple system atrophy lo sporadic
olivopontocerebellar atrophy and other forms of idiopathic late-onset cerebellar
atrophy. Neurology 1996;46:1197-1199.

99.
Penney JB. Multiple systems atrophy and nonfamilial olivopontocerebellar atrophy
are the same disease. Ann Neurol 1995; 37:553-554.

100.
Caplan LR. Schoene W. Clinical features of subcortical arteriosclerotic
encephalopathy (Binswonger disease). Neurology 1978; 28: 1206-1215.

101.
Caplan LR. Binswanger disease revisited. Neurology 1995: 45:626-633.

102.
Adams RD, van Bogaert L. Vander Eecken H. Striatonigral degeneration, J
Neuropathol Exp Neurol 1964; 23:584-608.

103.
Vakili S, Drew AL, von Schuching S, Becker D, Zeman W. Haltevorden-Spatz syndrome.
Arch Neurol 1977; 34:729-738.

104.
Dooling EC, Schoene WC, Richardson EP Jr. Hallevorden-Spatz syndrome. Arch Neurol
1974: 30:70-83.

105.
Lindvall O, Bjorklund A. Skagerberg G. Dopamine-containing neurons in the spinal
cord: anatomy and some functional aspects. Ann Neurol 1983; 14:255-260.

106.
Lugaresi E, Medori R. Monuigna P, et al. Fatal familial insomnia and dysautonomia
with selective degeneration of thalamic nuclei. N Engl J Med I 48b; 315:997-1003.

107.
Gravellese MA, Victor M. Circulatory studies in Wernicke's encephalopathy. Circ
Res 1957; 15; 836-844.

108.
Birchficld Rl. Postural hypotension in Wernicke's disease. Am J Med 1964; 36:
! 10. Rcis DJ. Golanov FA7. Central neuiogenie regulation of regional blood flow
(rCBF)
and relationship to neuroprotection. In: Caplan LR. ed. Brain Ischemia: Basic Con
cepts and Clinical Relevance. London: Springer-Verlug. 1994: 273-288.
111. Vingerhuels F, Bogousslavsky J. Caplan LR. Respiratory dysfunction. In:
Bogous
slavsky J, Caplan LR. eds. Stroke Syndromes. London: Cambridge University
Press. 1995: 223-231.
1 12. Berger AJ, Mitchell RA, Severiitghaus JW. Regulation of respiration. N Engl
J
Med 1977: 297:138-143.
113. Plum F, Swan son AG. Abnormalities in central regulation of respiration in
acute
and convalescent poliomyelitis. Arch Neurol Psychiatry 1958: 80:267-285.
114. Browji JR. Baker AB. Poliomyelitis: 1. Bulbar poliomyelitis: a
neurophysiologica!
interpretation of the clinieo-pathological findings. J Nerv Mem Dis 1949; 109:54
78.
115 Caplan LR. Posterior Circulation Vascular Disease. Boston: Blackwcll Science,

1996
116. Devereaux M W. Keane JR. Davis RL. Automatic respiratory failure associated
with
infarction of the medulla. Arch Neurol 1973: 29:46-52.
117. Levin BE, Margolis G. Acute failure of automatic respirations secondary to a
unilat
eral brainstem infarct. Ann Neurol 1977; 1:583-586.
118. Bogousslavsky J. Khurana R. Deruaz J P. et al. Respiratory failure and
unilateral
caudal brainstem infarction. Ann Neurol 1990: 28:668-673.
119. Brown RI1. Sobel RA. Case records of the Massachusetts General Hospital. N
Engl
J Med 1989; 321:739-750.
120. Frayner J. Gates P. Listeria rhombencephalilis. Clin Exp Neurol 1987: 24:175

179.
121. Cushing H. Concerning a definite regulatory mechanism of the vaso-motor
centre
which controls blood pressure during cerebral compression. Bull Johns Hopkins
Hosp 1901; 12:290-292.
122. Fox JL. Localization of the respiratory motor pathway in the upper cervical
spinal
cord following percutaneous cordotomy. Neurology 1969; 19:1115-1118.
123. Randall WC, McNally L, Caliguiri L. Rohse WG. Functional analysis of
theeardio
augmcntor and cardio-accellerator pathways in the dog. Am J Physiol 1957: 191:
213-217.
124. Levy MN. Warner MR. Parasympathetic effects on cardiac function. In: Armour
J A, Ardcll JL, eds. Neurncardiolngy. New York: Oxford University Press. 1994:
53-76.
125. Rodts GE, Haid RW. Intensive care management of spinal cord injury. In:
Narayan
RK. Wilberger JE, Povli shock JT. eds. Neurotrauma. New York: McGTaw-Hill,
1995:1201-1212.
126. Bergofsky EH. Mechanism for respiratory insufficiency after cervical cord
injury.
Ann Intern Med 1964; 61:435-446.
127. Lehman KG, Lane JG. Piepmeier J, Batsford WP. Cardiovascular abnormalities
442 Chapter 7
129. Maihias CI. Bradycardia and cardiac arrest during tracheal suctionmechanisms

in tetraplegic patienls. Eur J Intens Care Med 1976: 2:147-156,


130. Maihias CJ, Frankel 11L. Autonomic disturbances in spinal cord lesions. In:
Bannister R,
Matliias CJ, eds. Autonomic Failure, a Textbook, of Clinical Disorders of the
Autonomic
Nervous System. Oxford: Oxford University Press, 1992 (Chap. 43):839-88L
131. Maihias CJ, Christensen NJ, Frankel HL, Spalding JMK. Enhanced pressor re
sponse lo noradrenaline in patients with cervical spinal cord transection. Brain
1976: 99:757-770.
132. Curt A, Nitsehe B., Rodic B, Schurch B. Diet/ V. Assessment of sutonomic dys

reflexia in patients with spinal cord injury. J Neurol Neurosurg Psychiatry 1997;
62:473-477.
133. Lalouschek W, Mailer C. Gamper G. Wcissel M, Turetseheli K. Myocardial ische

mia wilh normal coronary arteries associated with Ihoracic myelitis. N Engl J Med
1997; 337:1920.
134. Aminoff MJ. Wilcox CS. Autonomic dysfunclion in syringomyelia. Postgrad Med
J 1972:48:113-115.
135. Nogues MA. Newman PK. Male VJ. Foster JB. Cardiovascular reflexes in syringo

myelia. Brain 1982; 105:835-849.


136. Adams RD. Victor M. Ropper AH. Principles of Neurology. 6th Ed. New York:
McGraw-Hill. 1997:764-767.
137. Weinstein L. Shelovok A. Cardiovascular manifestations of acute
poliomyelitis. N
Engl J Med 1951: 244:281-285.
138. Hudson REB. Cardiovascular Pathology. Vol. 1. London: Edward Arnold, 1965:
735. 787-790.
139. Maihias CJ. Autonomic disorders and their recognition. N Engl J Med 1997:
336:
721-724.
139a. Schalz IJ, Bannister R. Freeman RL, el al. Consensus statement. The
definition of
orthostatic hypotension, pure autonomic failure, and multiple system atrophy. J
Auton Nerv Syst 1996: 58:123-124.
140. McLeod JG. Tuck RR. Disorders of the autonomic nervous system. Part 1. Patho

physiology and clinieal features. Ann Neurol 1987; 21:419-430.


141. Thomas JE, Schirger A. Idiopathic orthostatic hypotension. Arch Neurol 1970;
22:
289-293.
142. Bannisier R. Clinical features of progressive autonomic failure. In.
Bannister R,
ed. Autonomic Failure. Oxford: Oxford University Press, 1483:67-73.
143. Terrao Y, Takeda K, Sakula M. et al. Pure progressive autonomic failure: a
clinico
pathological study. Eur Neurol 1993: 33:404 4 15.
144. Oppenheimer DR. Lateral horn cells in progressive autonomic failure. J Neurol
Sci
1980: 46:393-404.
145. Sever PS. Plasma noradrenaline in autonomic failure. In: Bannister R. ed.
Auto
nomic Failure. Oxford: Oxford University Press, 1983:155-173.
146. Goldstein DS, Polinsky RJ. Garty M. et al. Patterns of plasma levels of
catechols

148. Goldstein DS. Holmes C Cannon RO III, Eiscnhofer G, Kopin 1J. Sympathetic
cardioneuropathy in dysautonomias. Nietzsche English 331 19lh century. N Engl
J Med 1997; 336:696-702.
149. Riley CM, Day RL, Greeley DM, Lang ford WS. Central autonomic dysfunction
with defective lacriination. 1. Report ol 5 cases. Pediatrics 1949; 3:468-478,
150. Riley CM. Familial dysautonomia. Adv Pediatr 1957; 9:157-190.
151. Daneis J. Smith AA. Current concepts. Familial dysautonomia. N Engl J Med
1966:
274:207-209.
152. Fogelson MM. Rurke LB, Kaye R. Spinal cord changes in familial dysautonomia.

Arch Neurol 1967; 17:103-108.


153. Mason DT. Kopin 1J, Braunwald E. Abnormalities in reflex control of the
circula
tion in familial dysautonomia. Am J Med 1966: 41:898-909.
154. Adie WJ Tonic pupiN and absent tendon rellexes: a benign disorder sui
generis:
iti complete and incomplete forms. Brain 1932; 55:98-113.
155. Holmes G. Partial iridoplegia associated with symptoms of other diseases of
the
nervous system. Trans Ophthal Soc UK 1931: 51:209-224.
156. Johnson RH, McLellan DL. Love DR. Orthostatic hypotension and the Holmes-
Adie syndrome: a study of two patients with afferent baroreceptor block. J Neurol
Neurosurg Psychiatry 1971; 34:562-570.
157. Lucy DD. Van Mien MW. Thompson HS. Holmes-Adie syndrome wilh segmental
hypohydrosis. Neurology 1967: 17:763-770.
158. Berkowitz JS. Zweifach. PH. Evidence for cardiac autonomic dysfunction in pa*

tients wilh tonic pupils. Neurology 1970; 20:1096-1102.


159. Young RR, Asbury AK, Adams RD. Corbeit JL. Pure pandysautonomia with recov
ery. Trans Am Neurol Assoc 1969; 94:355-357.
160. Young RR, Asbury AK. Adams RD. Corbett JL. Pure pandysautonomia with recov
ery. Description and discussion of diagnostic criteria. Brain 1975: 98:613-635.
161. Low PA. Dyck PJ, Lambert EH, et al. Acute pandysautonomic neuropathy. Ann
Neurol 1983; 13:412-417.
162. Appenzeller O. Kornfeld M. Acute pandysautonomia. Clinical and morphological

study. Arch Neurol 1973: 29:334-349.


163. Harik SI. Ghandour MH, Farali FS. Afifi AK. Postganglionic cholinergic
dysauto
nomia. Ann Neurol 1977; 1:393-396.
164. Hopkins IJ. Shield LK. Harris M. Subacute cholinergic dysautonomia in
childhood.
Clin Exp Neurol 1980: 17:147-151.
165. Yahr MD, Frontera AT. Acute auionomic neuropaths. Arch Neurol 1975: 32:132
133.
166. Lieshoul JJV. Wieling W, Montfrans GV. el al. Acute dysautonomia associated
with Hodgkin's disease. J Neurol Neurosurg Psychiatry 1986; 49:830-832.
167. Stoll G, Thomas C, Reiners K. Schober R. Hartung H-P. Encephalo-myelo-radi
culo-ganglionitis presenting as pandysautonomia. Neurology 1991; 41:723-726.
168. Low PA. Non-invasive evaluation of autonomic function. Neurol Chron 1992;

44 4 Chapter 7
Mathias CL eds. Autonomic Failure: A Textbook of Clinical Disorders of the Auto
nomic Nervous System. 3d ed. Oxford: Oxford University Press. 1992:334-358.
171. Low PA. Quantitation of autonomic function. In: Dyck PJ. Thomas PK, eds.
Periph
eral Neuropathy. 3d ed. Philadelphia: WB Saunders 1993:729-745.
172. Lind AR, Taylor SH, Humphreys PW. et al. The circulatory effects of sustained

voluntary muscle contraction. Clin Sci 1964; 27:229-244.


173. Sundqvist G, Aimer L-O, Lilja B. Respiratory influences on heart rate in
diabetes
mcllitus. Br Med J 1979; 1:924-925.
174. Levin AB. A simple test of cardiac function based upon the heart rate change
during
the Valsalva maneuver. Am J Cardiol 1966: 18:90-99.
175. Kirchheim HR. Systemic arterial baroreccptor reflexes. Physiol Rev 1976:
56:100
176.
176. Leporc FE. Diagnostic pharmacology of the pupil. Clin Neuropharmaeol 1985; 8:

23-37.
177. Ponsford JR, Bannister R. Paul EA. Meihacholine pupillary responses in third
nerve
palsy and Adie's syndrome. Brain 1983: 106:503-511.
J 78. Freeman R. Young J. Landsberg L. Lipsitz L. The treatment of postprandial
hypo
tension in autonomic failure with 3.4-DL-threodihydroxyphenylserine. Neurology
1996; 47:1414-1420.
179. Kaufman H. Could treatment with DOPS do for autonomic failure what DOPA did
for Parkinson's disease. Neurology 1996: 47:1370-1371,
180. McTavish D, Goa KL. Midodrine. A review of its pharmacological properties and

therapeutic use in orthostatic hypotension and secondary hypotensive disorders.


Drugs 1989; 38:757-777.
181. McLeod JG. Autonomic dysfunction in peripheral nerve disease. In: Bannister
R.
Mathias CJ eds. Autonomic Failure. A Textbook of Clinical Disorders of the Auto
nomic Nervous System. 3d ed Oxford: Oxford University Press. 1992:659-681.
182. Moskowitz MA. The neurobiology of vascular head pain. Ann Neurol 1984; 16:
157-168.
183. Barbas N. Caplan LR, Baquis. G. et al. Dental chair intracerebral hemorrhage.
Neu
rology 1987; 37:511-512.
184. Haines SJ, Maroon JC, Janetta PJ. Supratentorial intracerebral hemorrhage
follow
ing posterior fossa surgery. J Neurosurg 1978: 49:881-886,
185. Waga S. Shimosaka S. Sakakura M. Intracerebral hemorrhage remote from the
site
of the initial neurosurgical procedure. Neurosurgery 1983: 13:662-665.
186. Caplan LR. Hypertensive intracerebral hemorrhage. In: Kase CS. Caplan LR,
eds.
Intracerebral Hemorrhage, Boston: Butterworth-Heinemann. 1994:99-116.
187. Sweet WH, Poletti CE. Roberts JT. Dangerous rises in blood pressure upon
heating
of trigeminal rootlets: increased bleeding times in patients with trigeminal
neural
gia. Neurosurgery 1985; 17:843-844.
188. Kehler CH. Brodsky JB. Samuels SL. et al. Blood pressure during percutaneous

rhizotomy for trigeminal neuralgia. Neurosurgery 1982: 10:200-202.

)9I, Ropper AH. Wijdieks EFM. Truax BT. Guillain-Barre Syndrome. Philadelphia: PA

Davis. 1991.
192. McDonagh AJG. Dawson J. Guillain-Barre syndrome alter myocardial infarction.

Br Med J 1987: 294:613-614.


193. Asbury AK, Arnuson BG. Adams RD. The inllammalory lesion in idiopathic poly
neuritis. Medieine 1969; 48:173-215.
194. Fisher CM. An unusual variant of acute idiopathic polyneuritis (syndrome of
oph
thalmoplegia, ataxia, and arcflexia). N Engl J Med 1956; 255:57-65.
195 Greenland f\ driers RC. Arrhythmic complications in the Guillain-Barre syn
drome. Arch Intent Med 1980: 140:1053-1055.
196. PalFerman TG, Wright I, Doyle DV. Amiel S. Electrocardiographic abnormalities

and autonomic dysfunction in Gullain-Barre syndrome. Br Med J 1982; 284:1231


1232.
197. Tuck RR, McLeod JG. Autonomic dysfunction in Guillain-Barre syndrome. J Neu
rol Neurosurg Psychiatry 1982: 44:983-990.
198. Fagius J. Wallin G. Microneurographic evidence of excessive sympathetic
outflow
in the Guillain-Barre syndrome. Brain 1983: 106:589-600.
199. Dyck PJ. Lais AC. Ohta M. Bastron J A. Okazaki H, Groover R. Chronic
inflamma
tory polyradiculoneuropathy. Mayo Clin Proc 1975; 50:621-640.
200. Austin JH. Recurrent polyneuropathies and their corticosteroid treatment.
With
five-year observations of a placebo-controlled case treated with corticotrophin,
cor
tisone, and prednisone. Brain 1958; 81:157-192.
201. Ingall TJ. McLeod JG. Tamura N, Autonomic function and unmyelinated fibers in

chronic inflammatory dcmyelinating polyradiculoneuropathy. Muscle Nerve 1990:


13:70-76.
202. Lewis RA. Summer AJ, Brown MJ. ct al. Multifocal demyelinative neuropathy
wilh persistent conduction block. Neurology 1982; 32:958-964.
203. Kornberg AJ. Pestronk A. Chronic motor neuropathies. In: Serratrice G. Munsat

T. eds. Pathogenesis and Therapy of Amyotrophic Lateral Sclerosis. Advances in


Neurology. Philadelphia: Lippincott-Raven. 1995:113-119.
204. Azulay J-P, Ribet P. Pouget J, et al. Long term follow up of multifocal motor

neuropathy with conduction block under ireatment. J Neurol Neurosurg Psychiatry


1997; 62:391-394.
205. Fisher CM, Adams RD. Diphtheritic polyneuritis: a pathological study. J
Ncuro
pathol Exp Neurol 1956: 15:243-268.
206. McDonald Wl. Kocen RS. Diphtheritic neuropathy. In: Dyck PJ, Thomas PK^ eds.

Peripheral Neuropathy. 3d ed. Philadelphia: WB Saunders. 1993:1412-1423.


207. Gore I. Myocardial changes in fatal diphtheria. A summary of observations in
221
cases. Am J Med Sci 1948: 215:257-266.
208. Hudson REB. Diptheria in Cardiovascular Pathology. Vol. I. London: Edward Ar

nold. 1965:805-806.
209. Leys DO. Heart block following diphtheria. Br Heart J 1945: 7:57-58.

212.
McNulty CM. Aids and the heart. In: Hursi JW. ed. New types of Cardiovascular
Diseases. New York; Igaku-Shoin, 1994:46-62.
213.
Freeman R, Roberts MS. Friedman LS. Broadbridgc C. Autonomic function and human
immunodeficiency virus infection. Neurology 1991); 40:575-580.

214.
Cohen JA. Laudenslager M. Auionomic nervous system invobement in patients with
human immunodeliciency virus infection. Neurology 1989; 39:1111 -1112.

215.
Adams RD, Victor M. eds. Principles of Neurology. 5th ed. New York: McGraw-Hill.
1993:1145-1146.

216.
Sahin TD. Swift TR, Jaeobson RR. Leprosy. In: Dyek PJ. Thomas PK, Griffin JW. et
al.. eds. Peripheral Neuropathy. Philadelphia: WB Saunders. 1993:1354 1379.

217.
Connor DH, Manz HJ. Parasitic infections of the peripheral nervous system. In:
Dyck PJ. Thomas PK. Grill in JW. et al.. eds. Peripheral Neuropathy. Philadelphia,
WB Saunders. 1993:1380-1383.

218.
Iosa D. Dequatlro V. Lee D. et al. Pathogenesis of cardiac neuromyopathy in
Chagas* disease :md (he role of the autonomic nervous system. J Auton Nerv Syst
1990; 30:583-588.

219.
Olivcira JSM, Preta R. A natural human model of intrinsic heart nervous system
degeneration: Chagas' cardiopathy. Am Heart J 1985: 110:1092-1098.

220.
Said G, Joskowicz M. Barreira AA, Eisea H. Neuropathy associated with
experimental Chagas' disease. Ann Neurol 1985: 18:676-683.

221.
Davila DF, Rossell RO. Donis .111. Cardiac parasympathetic abnormalities: cause or
consequence of Chagas" heart disease. Parasitol Today 1989; 5:327-329.

222.
Io$a D. Deiruattro V, Lee DD. et al. Pathogenesis of cardiac neuro-myopathy in
Chagas1 disease and lhe role of die autonomic nervous system, J Auton Nerv Syst
1990; 30:583-588.

223.
Burgdorler W. Barbour AG. Hayes SF. et al. Lyme diseasea tick-borne
spirochetosis? Science 1982: 216:1317-1319,

224.
Steere AC. Grodzicke RL. Kornblatt AN. ct al. The spirochetal etiology of Lyme
disease. N Engl J Med 1983: 308:733-740.

225.
Steerc AC, Schoen RT, Taylor E. The clinical evolution of Lyme arthritis. Ann
Intern Med 1987: 107:725-731.

226.
Pachner AR, Steere AC. The triad of neurologic manifestations of Lyme disease:
meningitis, cranial neuritis, and radiculoneuritis. Neurology 1985; 35:47-53.
227.
Pachner AR, Duray P. Steere AC. Central nervous system manifestations of Lyme
disease. Arch Neurol 1989; 46:790-795.

228.
Logigian EL. Kaplan R, Steere AC. Chronic neurologic manifestations of Lyme
disease. N Engl J Med 1990; 323:1438-1444.

229.
Bannw arth A. /ur klinik und pathogeneseder "chronischen lymphocytaren
meningitis," Arch Psychiatr Nervenkr 1944: 117:161-185.

230.
Halperin JJ. Little BW. Coyle PK, Dattvvyler RJ. Lyme disease: cause of a
treatable peripheral neuropathy. Neurology 1987: 37:1700-1706.

233. Stccrc AC. Batsford WP, Weinberg M. ct al. l.\ me carditis: cardiac
abnormaliiies
of Lyme disease. Ann Intern Med 1980; 93:8-16.
234. McAlisier HF, Klementowicz PT. Andrews C. et al. Lyme carditis: an important

cause of reversible heart block. Ann Intern Med 1989; 110:339-345.


235. Nagi KS. Joshi R, Thakur RK. Cardiac manifestations of Lyme disease; a
review.
Can J Cardiol 1996; 12:503-506.
236. Garland H. Diabetic amyotrophy. Br Med J 1955; 2:1287-1290.
237. Locke S. Lawrence DG, Lcgg MA. Diabetic amyotrophy. Am J Med 1963; 34:
775-785.
238. Chokroverty S, Reyes MG, Rubino FA, Timaki II. The syndrome of diabetic
amyot
rophy. Ann Neurol 1977: 2:181-194.
239. Raff MC. Sandal an p V, Asbury AK. Ischemic mononcuropathy multiplex associ
ated with diabetes mellitus. Arch Neurol 1968: 18:487-499.
240. Basiron JA. Thomas JE. Diabetic polyradiculopathy. Mayo Clin Proc 1981: 56:
725-732.
241. Kikta DG, Breuer AC. Wilbourn AJ. Thoracic root pain in diabetes: the
spectrum
of clinical and electrographic lindings. Ann Neurol 1982: 11:80-85.
242. Brown MJ. Asbury AK. Diabetic neuropathy, Ann Neurol 1984: 15:2-12.
243. Clarke BF. Ewing DJ. Campbell IW. Diabetic autonomic neuropathy. Diabetologia

1979; 17:195-212.
244. Faemian I, Glaeer L. Cclemer D. et al. Autonomic nervous system and diabetes:

histological and histochemical study of the autonomic nerve fibers of the urinary
bladder in diabetic palients. Diabetes 1973: 22:225-237.
245. Low PA, Walsh JC. Huang CY McLcod JG. The sympathetic nervous system
in diabetic neuropathy: a clinical and pathological study. Brain 1975; 98:341
356.
246. Page MM. Watkins PJ. Cardiorespiratory arrest and diabetic autonomic
neuropalhy.
Lancet 1978: 1:14-16.
247. Hilsied J. Pathophysiology in diabetic autonomic neuropathy: cardiovascular,
hor
monal, and metabolic studies. Diabetes 1982: 31:730-737.
248. O'Brien IAD. Corral 1 RJM. Epidemiology of diabetes and ils complications. N

Engl J Med 1988; 318:1619-1620.


249. Edmonds ME. Watkins PJ. Clinical presentation of diabetic autonomic failure.
In:
Bannister R. Mathias CJ, eds. Autonomic Failure. A Textbook of Clinical Disorders
of the Autonomic Nervous System. 3d ed. Oxford: Oxford Med. Publ., 1992:698
720.
250. Neil HAW. Epidemiology of diabetic autonomic neuropathy. In: Bannister R. Ma

thias CJ, eds. Autonomic Failure. A Textbook of Clinical Disorders of the Auto
nomic Nervous System. 3d ed. Oxford: Oxford Med. Publ. 1992:682-697.
251. Bilious RW, Diabetic autonomic neuropathy. Br Med J 1990: 301:565-566.
252. Ewing DJ. Martyn CN, Young RJ. Clarke BF. The value of cardiovascular auto
nomic function tests: 10 years experience in diabetes. Diabetes Care 1985: 8:491

448 Chapter 7
Medicine for the Practising Physician. 4th ed. Stamford. CT: Apple ton & Lange,
1996:1975-1980.
255. Victor M. Adams RD, The effect of alcohol on the nervous system. Res Publ
Assoc
Res Nerv Menl Dis 1953; 32:526-573.
256. Adams RD, Victor M, Ropper A. Principles of Neurology. 6th ed. New York:
McGraw-Hill. 1997:1166-1185.
257. Charness ME, Simon RP, Green berg DA. Ethanol and the nervous system. N Engl

J Med 1989; 321:442-454.


258. Chadless ME. Neurologic complications of alcoholism In: Samuels MA. Eeske S,

eds. Office Practice of Neurology. New York: Churchill-Livingstone. 1996:1047


1055.
259. Wolfe SM, Victor M. The relationship or Hypomagnesemia and alkalosis to
alcohol
withdrawal symptoms. Ann NY Acad Sci 1969; 162:973-998.
260. Victor M, Adams RD. Collins GH. The Wernicke-Korsakoff Syndrome. Philadel
phia: FA Davis. 1971.
26L Carlcn PL, Wortzman G. Holgate RC. Wilkinson DA. Rankin JC. Reversible cere
bral atrophy in recently abstinent alcoholics measured by computed tomography
scans. Science 1978: 200:1076-1078.
262. Carlen PL, Wilkinson DA. WorUman G. Holgate R. Partially reversible cerebral

atrophy and functional improvement in recently abstinent alcoholics. Can J Neurol


Sci 1984: 11:441 446.
263. Victor M. Adams RD, Mancall EL. A restricted form of cerebellar degeneration

occurring in alcoholic patients. Arch Neurol 1959: 1:579-688.


264. Marchiafava E, Bignami A. Sopra un'aherazionc del corpo calloso osservaba in

sogetti alcooliste. Riv Patol Nerv Menl 1903: 8:544-549.


265. Kawamura M. Shiota J. Yagashita T. Hirayama K. Marchiafava-Bignami disease:
computed tomographic scan and magnetic resonance imaging. Ann Neurol 1985;
18:103-104.
266. Adams RD. Victor M. Mancall EL. Central pontine myelinolysis: a hitherto
node-
scribed disease occurring in alcoholic and malnourished patients. Arch Neurol Psy
chiatry 1959; 81:154-172.
267. Norenberg MD, Leslie KO, Robertson AS. Association between rise in serum so
dium and central pontine myelinolysis. Ann Neurol 1982; 11:128-135.
268. Laureno R. Central pontine myelinolysis following rapid correction of hypona

tremia. Ann Neurol 1983; 13:232-242,


269. Carroll FD. The etiology and treatment of tobacco alcohol amblyopia. Amer .1
Oph
thalmol 1944; 27:713-725, 847-863.
270. Victor M. Tobacco-alcohol amblyopia. A critique of current concepts of this
disor
der, with special reference to the role of nutritional deficiency and its
causation.
Arch Ophthalmol 1963: 70:313-318.
271. Rubin E. Alcohol myopathy in heart and skeletal muscle. N Engl .1 Med 1979;
301:
28-33.

274. Behse S, Buchtal F. Alcoholic neuropathy: clinical, electrophysiological, and


bi
opsy findings. Ann Neurol 1977: 2:95-110.
275. Hillbom M. Wennberg A. Prognosis of alcoholic peripheral neuropathy. J Neurol

Neurosurg Psychiatry 1984; 47:699-703.


276. Segel LD Klausner SC. Gnadl JTH. Amsterdam EA. Alcohol and the heart. Med
Clin North Am 1984; 68:147-161.
277. Piano MR, Scliwertz DW. Alcoholic heart disease: a review. Heart Lung 1994;
23:
3-17.
278. Eisenhofer GE, Whiteside EA, Johnson RH. Plasma catecholamine responses to
change of posture in alcoholics during withdrawal and after continued abstinence
from alcohol. Clin Sci 1985; 68:71-78.
279. Novak DJ, Victor M. The vagus and sympathetic nerves in alcohol neuropathy.
Arch Neurol 1974: 30:273-284.
280. Duncan G. Johnson RH, Lambie DG. et al. Evidence of vagal neuropathy in
chronic
alcoholics. Lancet 1980; 2:1053-1057.
28L Johnson RJH, Lambie DG. Autonomic function and dysfunction. In: Asbury A.
McKann GM. McDonald W[. eds. Diseases of ihe Nervous System. Clinical Neuro
biology. Philadelphia: WB Saunders. 1986:665-678.
282. Tan ETH John son RH. Lambie DG.etal. Alcoholic vagal neuropathy: recovery
follow
ing prolonged abstinence. J Neurol Neurosurg Psychiatry 1984:47:1335-1337.
283. Saunders JB. Alcohol: an important cause of hypertension. Br Med J 1987: 294:

1045.
284. Gill JS. Shipley MJ. Tsementzis SA, et al. Alcohol consumption: a risk factor
for
hemorrhagic and nonhemorrhagic stroke. Am J Med 1991; 90:489-497.
285. Gorelick PB. Alcohol and stroke. Siroke 1987: 18:268-271.
286. Asbury A+ Victor M. Adams RD. Uremic polyneuropathy. Arch Neurol 1963: K:
413-428.
287. Dayan AD. Gardner-Thorpe C. Down PH, Gleadle RL Peripheral neuropathy in
uremia. Neurology 1970; 20:649-658.
288. Dyck PJ. Johnson WJ. Lambert EH. O'Brien PC. Segmental demyelination second
ary to axonal degeneration in uremic neuropathy. Mayo Clin Proc 1971: 46:4(X)
430.
289. Tyler HR. Neurologic disorders in renal failure. Am J Med 1968; 44:734-748.
290. Ropper AH. Accelerated neuropathy of renal failure. Arch Neurol 1993; 50:536

539.
291. Spodick DH. The Pericardium: A Comprehensive Textbook. New York: Marcel
Dekker. 1997:293-296.
292. Fa Ik RH. Cumen/o RL. Skinner M. The systemic amyloidosis. N Engl J Med 1997:

337:898-909.
293. WHO-IU1S Nomenclature Sub-Committee. Nomenclature of amyloid and amy
loidosis. Bull World Health Organ 1993: 71:105-112.
294. Kyle RA. Genz MA. Primary systemic amyloidosis: clinical and laboratory
fealurcs

296.
Andrade C A peculiar form of peripheral neuropathy: atypical generalized
amyloidosis witli special involvement of the peripheral nerves. Brain 1952:
75:408.

297.
Coelho T. Familial amyloid polyneuropathy: new developments in genetics and
treatment. Curr Opin Neurol 1996: 9:355-359.

298.
Bergethon PR. Sabin TD. Lewis D, el al. Improvement in lhe polyneuropathy
associated wilh familial amyloid polyneuropathy after liver transplantation.
Neurology 1996: 47:944-951

299.
Ando Y, Obayashi K, Tanaka Y, et al. A new and sensitive lool for autonomic
dysfunction: analysis by radiolabeled meta-iodohenzylguanidine (MIBGj in patients
with familial amyloidolic polyneuropathy (PAL). Int J Exp Clin Invest 1995; 2:183-
187.

300.
Windebank A J, Bankovsky H. Porphyric Neuropathy. In: Dyck PJ. Thomas PK, Griffin
JW. el al.. eds. Peripheral Neuropathy. Vol. 2. Philadelphia: WB Saunders.
1993:1161-1168.

301.
Tsehudy DF. Valsamis M, Magnussen CR. Acute intermittent porphyria: clinical and
selected research aspects. Ann Intern Med 1975; 83:851-864.

302.
Kushner JP. The porphyrias. In: Hursl JW, ed. Medicine for the Practicing
Physician. 4ih ed. Stamford, CT: Appleton & Lange. 1996:917-923.

303.
Per loth MG. Tsehudy DP. Marver HS. ct al. Acute intermittent porphyria: new
morphologic and biochemical findings. Am J Med 1966: 41:149-162,

304.
Gibson JB. Goldberg A. The neuropathy of acute porphyria. J Pathol Baeteriol 1965;
71:495-509.

305.
Suarez Jl, Cohen ML, Larkin J. el al. Acute intermittent porphyria:
clinicopathological correlation. Report of a case and review of Lhe literature.
Neurology 1997; 48: 1678-1683.

306.
Bonkovsky HL. Sehady W. Neurologic manifestations of acute porphyria. Semin Liv
Dis 1982: 2:108-124.

307.
Kupferschmidi H. Bont A, Schnorf H. et al. Transient cortical blindness and
bioccipiial brain lesions in two patienls with acute intermittent porphyria. Ann
Intern Med 1995; 123:598-600,
308.
Magnussen CR. Dohcrtv JM. Hess RA. Tsehudy DP. Grand mat seizures and acute
intermittent porphyria. Neurology 1975: 25:1121-1125,

309.
Bassen FA, Komzweig AL. Malformation of the erythrocytes in a case of atypical
retinitis pigmentosa. Blood 1950; 5:381-387.

310.
Yao JK, Herbert PN, Lipoprotein deficiency and neuromuscular manifestations. In:
Dyck PJ, Thomas PK, Griffin JW. ct al., eds. Peripheral Neuropalhy. Vol, 2,
Philadelphia: WB Saunders, 1993:1179-1193.

311.
Adams RD, Victor M. Ropper A. Principles of Neurology. 6th ed. New York: McGraw-
Hill, 1997:1347-1348.

312.
Fredrickson DS. Altrocchi PH. Avioli LV. Goodman DS. Goodman HC. Tangier
diseasecombined clinical staff conference at the National Institute of Health, Ann
Intern Med 1961; 55:1016-1031.

314. Sehaefer EJ. Zeeh LA. Schwartz DE. Brewer HB Jr. Coronary heart disease
preva
lence and other clinical features in familial high-density lipoprotein deficiency
(Tangier disease*. Ann Intern Med 1980; 93:261-266.
315. Refsum S. Hercdopalhia atactica polyneuritiformis: phytanic acid storage
disease
(Refsum disease). In: Vinken PJ. Bruyn GW, eds. Vol 21. Handbook of Clinical
Neurology. System Disorders and Atrophies. Amsterdam: North-Holland, 1975:
181-229.
316. Skjeldal OH, Stokke O. Refsum S. Phytanic acid storage disease. In: Dyck PJ,

Thomas PK. Griffin JW, et al., eds. Peripheral Neuropathy. Vol. 2. Philadelphia:
WE Saunders, 1993:1149-1160.
317. Cammcrmeyer J. Neuru pathological changes in hereditary neuropathies:
manifest a
tion of the syndrome hercdopalhia atactica polyneuritiformis in the presence of
interstitial hypertrophic polyneuropathy. J Neuropathol Exp Neurol 1956: 15:340
36L
318. Gordon N, Hudson REB. Rcfsum's syndromeheredopathia atactica polyneuriti
formis. Brain 1959; 82:41-55.
319. Hudson REB. Cardiovascular Pathology. Vol. I. London: Edward Arnold. 1965:
736-737.
320. Brady RO. Fabry disease. In: Dyck PJ. Thomas PK. Griffin JW. et al., eds.
Periph
eral Neuropathy. Vol 2. Philadelphia: WB Saunders. 1993:1169-1178.
321. Kolodny EH. Fabry disease. In: Bogousslavsky J. Caplan LR. eds. Stroke Syn
dromes. New York: Cambridge University Press, 1995:453-459.
321a. Nakao S. Takenaka T, Maeda M, et ah An atypical variant of Fabry's disease
in
men with left ventricular hypertrophy. N Engl J Med 1995; 333:288-293.
322. Goldman ME. Cantor R. Schwartz MF. Baker M. Desnick RJ. Echocardiography
abnormalities and disease severity in Fabry's disease. J Am Coll Cardiol 1986; 7:
I 157-116L
322a, Mitsias P. Levine SR. Cerebrovascular complications of Fabry's disease, Ann
Neu
rol 1996: 40:8-17.
323. Efthimiou J. Mclelland J, Bctteridge DJ, Short PR intervals and
tachyarrhythmias
in Fabry's disease. Postgrad Med J 1986: 62:285-287.
324. Sakuraba H. Igarashi T, Shibata T. Suzuki Y. Effect of vitamin E and
ticlopidine
on platelet aggregation in Fabry's disease. Clin Genet 1987; 31:349-354.
325. Dyck PJ, Chance P, Lebo R. Carney JA. Hereditary motor and sensory neuropa
thies. In: Dyck PJ. Thomas PK, Griffin JW, ct ah. eds. Peripheral Neuropathy. Vol.

2. Philadelphia: WB Saunders, 1993:1094-1136.


326. Dyck PJ. Dyck .IB, C'luilk CH The 10 P's: a mnemonic helpful in
characterization
and differential diagnosis of peripheral neuropathy. Neurology 1992; 42:14-18.
327. Dyck PJ. Dyck JB. Grant I A, healey RD. Ten steps in characterizing and
diagnosing
patients with peripheral neuropathy. Neurology 1996; 47:10-17,
328. Ingall TJ. McLeod JG, Autonomic function in hereditary motor and sensory
neurop
athy (Charcot-Maric-Tooth disease). Muscle Nerve 1991: 14:1080-1083.

331.
Martin-Du Pan RC. Juge C. Perrenoud J J. Cardiomyopalhie congestive et
augmentation du p\ ruvate dans un ease de maladie du Chareot-Marie-Tooth. Sehweiz
Med Woehensehr 1984: 114:625-629.

332.
Adams RD, Victor M. Ropper AH. Principles of Neurology. 6lh ed. New York: McGraw-
Hill. 1997:1345.

333.
Banker BQ. The congenital muscular dystrophies. In: Engel AG. Franzini-Armsirong,
eds. Myology. 2d ed. New York: McGraw-Hill. 1994:1275-1289.

334.
Beggs AH. Dystraphinopathy, the expanding phenotype: dystrophin abnormalities in
X-linked dilated cardiomyopathy. (Editorial.) Circulation 1997; 95:2344 2347.

335.
Politano L, Nigra V. Nigro G. Pctrelta VR, Passamano L_ Pap pare]]a S, Di Somma S,
Conii LI. Development of cardiomyopathy in female carriers of Duchenne and Becker
muscular dystrophies. JAMA 1975: 275:1335-1338.

336.
Emery AEH. Duchenne Mucular Dystrophy. 2d ed. Oxford: Oxford University Press,
1993.

337.
Perloff JK, Roberts. WC, de Leon A. O'Doherty D. The distinctive
electrocardiogram of Duchenne's progressive muscular dystrophy. Am J Med 1967;
42:179

188.

338.
Perloff JK. Cardiac rhythm and conduction in Duchenne's muscular dystrophy. A
prospective study of 20 patients. J Am Coll Cardiol 1984; 3:1263-1268.

339.
Nigro G. Comi LI. Politano L, Bain RJ. The incidence and evolution of
cardiomyopathy in Duchenne muscular dystrophy. Int J Cardiol 1990; 2b:27] 277.

340.
Angelini C. Pan in M. Pegoraro E, Freda MP. Cadaldini M. Martinello F. Clinical-
molecular correlation in 104 mild X-linked muscular dystrophy palients:
characterization of subclinical phenotypes. Neuromuscul Disord 1994: 4:349-358.

341.
Zalman F. Perloff JK, Durant NN, Campion DS. Acute respiratory failure following
intravenous verapamil in Duchenne's muscular dystrophy. Am Heart J 1983; 105: 510-
51L

342.
Chalkiadis GA, Branch KG. Cardiac arrest after isofluraneanaesthesia in a patient
with Duchenne's muscular dystrophy. Anaesthesia 1990; 45:22-25.

343.
Wijmenga C. Sandkuijl LA, Moerer P, et al. Genetic linkage map of
facioscapulohumeral muscular dystrophy and five polymorphic loci on chromosome
4q35-qter. Am J Hum Genet 1992; 51:411-415.

344.
Tawil R. Figlcwicz DA, Griggs RC. Weiffenbach, B, FSH Consortium.
Facioscapulohumeral dystrophy; a distinct regional myopathy with a novel molecular
pathogenesis. Ann Neurol 1998; 43:279-282.

345.
Stevenson WG, Perloff JK, Weiss JN. Anderson TL. Facioscapulohumeral muscular
dystrophy: evidence for selective, genetic electrophysiologic cardiac involvement.
J Am Coll Cardiol 1990; 15:292-299.

346.
Politano I.. Nigra V, Nigro G. Petrena VR, Passamano L. Papparella S, Di Somma

S. Comi LI. Development of cardiomyopathy in female carriers of Duchenne and Becker


muscular dystrophies. JAMA 1975; 275:1335-1338.

347.
Hoffman EP, Kunkel LM. Dystrophin abnormalities in Duchcnne/Becker muscular

349. dc Visser M, dc Voogt WG, la Riviere GV. The hean in Becker muscular dystro
phy, Facioscapulohumeral dystrophy, and Bethlem myopathy. Muscle Nerve 1992:
15:591-596.
350. Yazawa M, Ikeda S, Owa M. et al. A family of Becker's progressive muscular
dystrophy with severe cardiomyopathy. Eur Neurol 1987; 27:13-19.
351. Levin RN. Narahara KA. Right-axis deviation and anterior wall thallium-201
defect
in Becker's muscular dystrophy. AIM I Cardiol 1985; 56:203-207.
352. Melaeini P, Fanin M. Danicti GA, et al. Cardiac involvement in Becker
muscular
dystrophy. J Am Coll Cardiol 1993; 22:1927-1934.
352a. Junes HR. tie la Monte SM. Case records of the Massachusetts General
Hospital
case 22-1998. N Engl J Med 1998; 339:182-190.
353. Emery AEH. Dreifuss FE. Unusual type of benign X-linked muscular dystrophy.
J Neurol Neurosurg Psychiatry 1966; 29:338-342.
354. Hopkins LC, Jackson JA, Elias LJ. Emery-Drcifuss humeroperoneaJ muscular dys
trophy: an X-linked myopathy with unusual contractures and bradycardia. Ann
Neurol 1981: 10:230-237.
355. Small K. Iber J. Warren ST. Emerin deletion reveals a common x-ehromosome
inversion mediated by inverted repeats. (Letter.) Nature Genet 1997: 16:96-99.
356. Wooliscroft J. Tuna N. Permanent atria! standstill: the clinical spectrum. Am
J
Cardiol 1982:49:2037-2041.
357. Dickey RP, Ziter FA. Smith RA. Emery-Drcifuss muscular dystrophy. J Pediatr
J9S4; 104:555-559.
358. Emery AEH. X-linked muscular dystrophy with early contractures and
cardiomyop
athy (Emery-Dreifuss type). Clin Genet 1987; 32:360-367.
359. Adams RD, Victor M. Ropper AH. Principles of Neurology. 6th ed. New York:
McGraw-Hill. 1997:1423.
360. Adams RD, Victor M. Ropper AH. Principles of Neurology. 6th ed. New York:
McGraw-Hill. 1997:1421-1422.
361. Stubgen J-P. Limb girdle muscular dystrophy: a non-invasive cardiac
evaluation.
Cardiology 1993; 83:324-330,
362. Hoshio A. Kotake H, Saitoh M, et al. Cardiac involvement in a patient with
limh
girdle muscular dystrophy. Hean Lung 1987: 16:439-441.
363. Mahadevan M. Tsilftdis C. Sahourin L, et al. Myotonic dystrophy mutation: an

unstable CTG repeat in the 3' untranslated region of the gene. Science 1992: 255:
1253-1255.
364. Harper PS. Myotonic Dystrophy. 2d ed. Philadelphia: WB Saunders, 1989.
365. Adams RD. Victor M. Ropper AH. Principles of Neurology. 6th ed. New York:
McGraw-Hill, 1997:1423-1425.
366. Chang L, Ernst I Osborn D. et al Proton spectroscopy in myotonic dystrophy.
Correlation with CTG repeats. Arch Neurol 1998; 55:305-311.
367. AshizawaT. Myotonic dystrophy as a brain disorder. Arch Neurol 1998:55:291-
292.
368. Bharati S. Bump FT. Bauernfcind R. Lev M. Dystrophia myotonia: correlative

454 Chapter 7
370. Nguyen HR Wolfe JT III. Holmes DR Jr. Edwards WD. Pathology of the cardiac
conduction system in myotonic dystrophy: a study of 12 cases. J Am Coll Cardiol
1988: 11:662-671.
371. Adams RD. Victor M, Ropper AH. Principles of Neurology. 6lh ed. New York:
McGraw-Hill. 1997:1453.
372. Fardeau M, Tome FMS. Congenital myopathies. In: Engel AG, Franzini-Arm
strong, eds. Myology- 2d ed. Vol. 2. New York: McGraw-Hill, 1994:1487-1532.
373. Kinoshita M, Saioyoshi E. Type I liber atrophy and ncmaline bodies. Arch
Neurol
1974: 31:423-425.
374. Meier C. Gertseh M, Zimmerman A. Voellmy W, Geissbuhler W. Nemaiine myop
athy presenting as cardiomyopathy. N Engl J Med 1983: 308:1536-1537.
375. Meier C, Voellmy W, Gertseh M. et al. Ncmaline myopathy appearing in adults
as cardiomyopathy: a elinicopalhologic study. Arch Neurol 1984; 41:443-445.
376. Shahq SA, Sande MA, Carruthers RR. Killip T Milhorat AT. Skeletal muscle in
idiopathic cardiomyopathy, J Neurol Sci 1972: 15:303-320.
377. Verhiest W. Brucher JM. Goddeeris P. Lauweryns J. De Geest H. Familial
centronuclear myopathy associated with cardiomyopathy. Br Heart J 1976: 38:504
509.
378. Adams RD, Victor M. Ropper AH. Principles of Neurology. 6th ed. New York:
McGraw-Hill. 1997:1452-1453.
379. Fardeau M. Godct-Guillain J. Tome FMS. et al. Unc nouvcllc affection
musculaire
lamiliale: definie par 1'accumulation intra-sarcoplasmique d'un materiel granulo
filamentaire dense en microscopic clectronique. Rev Neurol 1978; 134:411-425.
380. Edstrom L, Thomell LE. Eriksson A. A new type of hereditary distal myopathy
with characteristic sarcoplasmic bodies and intermediate (skeleton) filaments. J
Neurol Sci J980; 47:171-190.
381. Sabatelli M, Bertini E. Ricei E. et al. Peripheral neuropathy with giant
axons and
cardiomyopathy associated with desmin type intermediate lilaments in skeletal
muscle. J Neurol Sci 1992: 109:1-10.
382. Takatsu T, Kawai C, Tsutsumi J. Inoue K, A case of idiopathic myocardiopathy

with deposits of a peculiar substance in the myocardium. Diagnosis by endomyocar


dial biopsy. Am Heart J 1968; 76:93-104.
383. Porte A, Stocckel ME. Sacrez A. Batzensclagcr A. Unusual familial
cardiomyopa
thy with storage of intermediate filaments in the cardiac muscle cells. Virchows
Arch 1980; 386:43-58.
384. Bordiuk JM, Legato MJ. Lovelace RE, Blumenthal S. Pompe's disea.se: electron

myographic, electron microscopic and cardiovascular aspects. Arch Neurol 1970;


23:113-119.
385. Engel AG. Hirschhorn R. Acid maltase deficiency. In: Engel AG, Franzini-Arm
strong, eds. Myology. 2d ed. Vol. 2. New York, McGraw-Hill. 1994:1533-1553.
386. Labrune |\ Huguei P. Odievre M. Cardiomyopathy in glycogen-storage disease
type II: clinical and echographic study of 18 patients. Pediatr Cardiol 1991: 12:

388. Adams RD. Victor M, Ropper AH. Principles of Neurology. 6th ed. New York:
McGraw-Hill. 1997:1433- 1436.
389. DiMauro S. Tsujino S. Nonlysosomal glycogenoses. In: Engel AG, Franzini-Arm
strong. eds. Myology. 2d ed. Vol. 2. New York: McGraw-Hill. 1994:1554-1576.
390. Ralinov G. Baker WP, Swaiman KF. McArdle's syndrome witli previously unre
ported electrocardiographic and serum enzyme abnormalities. Ann Intern Med
1965; 62:328-335.
391. Adams RD, Victor Mt Ropper AH. Principles of Neurology. 6th ed. New York:
McGraw-Hill. 1997:1437- 1439.
392. Di Don a to S. Disorders of lipid metabolism affecting skeletal muscle:
carnitine
deficiency syndromes, defects in the calabolic pathway, and Chanarin disease. In:
Engel AG, Franzini-Armstrong, eds. Myology. 2d ed. Vol. 2. New York: McGraw-
Hill. 1994:1587-1609.
393. Engel AE. Angelini C. Carnitine deficiency of human skeletal muscle wilh
associ
ated lipid storage myopathy: a new syndrome. Science 1973: 179.899-902.
394. Engel AG. Banker BQ. Eiben RM. Carnitine deficiency: clinical morphological
and biochemical observations in a fatal case. J Neurol Neurosurg Psychiatry 1977:
40:313-322.
395. Karpati G. Carpenter S. Engel AG, et al. The syndrome of systemic carnitine
defi
ciency: clinical, morphological, biochemical, and pathophysiological features. Neu

rology 1975: 25:16-24.


396. Tripp ME. Katcher ML, Peters HA, el al. Systemic carnitine deficiency
presenting
as familial endocardial fibroelastosis: a treatable cardiomyopathy. N Engl .1 Med
1981; 305:385-390.
397. Bakker HD. Scholte HR. Luyt-Houwen IE. el al. Neonatal cardiomyopathy and
lactic acidosis responsive to thiamine. J Inherit Metab Dis 1991: 14:75-79.
398. Bautista J, Rafel E, Martinez A, et al. Familial hypertrophic cardiomyopathy
and
muscle carnitine deficiency. Muscle Nerve 1990; 13:192-194.
399. Bratton SL, Garden AL. Bohan TP, French JW. Clarke WR. A child with valproic

acid-associated carnitine deficiency and carnitine-responsive cardiac dysfunction.

J Child Neurol IW2: 7:413 416.


400. Morgan-Hughes JA. Mitochondrial diseases. In: Engel AG. Franzini-Armstrong.
eds. Myology. 2d ed. Vol. 2. New York: McGraw-Hill. 1994:1610-1660.
401. Adams RD, Victor M. Ropper AH. Principles of Neurology. 6th ed. New York:
McGraw-Hill. 1997:982-987.
402. Olson W. Engel WK. Walsh GO, Einaugler R. Oculocraniosomalic neuromuscular
disease with "ragged-red4' libers: histoehemieal and ultrastruetural changes in
limb
muscles in a group of patienls with idiopathic progressive external ophthal
moplegia. Arch Neurol 1972; 26:193-211.
403. Goto Y. Horai S. Matsuoka T. et al. Mitochondrial myopathy, encephalopathy,
lactic acidosis, and stroke-like episodes (MELAS): a correlative study of the
clinical
features and mitochondrial DNA mutation. Neurology 1992: 42:545-550.

45 6 Chapter 7
lations wilh MRl. xcnon/CT, and MR spectroscopy. Neurology 1996: 46:223
227.
406. Lowes M. Chronic progressive external ophthalmoplegia, pigmentary retinopathy

and heart block (Kearns-Sayre syndrome). Acta Ophthalmol 1975; 53:610-619.


407. Leigh D. Subacute necrotizing encephalumyelopathy in an infant. J Neurol
Neuro
surg Psychiatry 1951; 14:216-221.
40S. Barko\ich Al. Good WV, Koch T. Berg BO. Mitochondrial disorders: analysis of

their clinical and imaging characteristics. AJNR 1993; 14:1119-1137.


409. Medina L, Chi TL, DeVivo DC. Hi la I SK. MR findings in patients with
subacute
necrotizing encephalomyelopathy (Leigh syndrome). AJNR 1990; 11:379-384,
410. Adams J, Blackwood W, Wilson J. Further clinical and pathological
observations
on Leber's oplic atrophy. Brain 1966; 89:15-26.
411. Newman N. Wallace D. Mitochondria and Leber's hereditary optic neuropath).
Am J Ophthalmol 1990; 109:726-730.
412. Newman N. Loll M. Wallace D. The cl in teal characteristics of pedigrees of
Leber's
hereditary optic neuropathy with the 11778 mutation. Am J Ophthalmol 1991: 111:
750-762.
413. DiMauro S. Bonilla E, Lombes A. et al. Mitochondrial eneephalomyopathies.
Neu
rol Clin 1990: 8:483-506.
414. Rowland L. Blake D, Hirano M. et al. Clinical syndromes associated with
ragged
red fibers. Rev Neurol 1991: 147:467-473.
415. Shoffncr J, Loit M, Wallace D. MERRF: a model disease for understanding the
principles of mitochondrial genetics. Rev Neurol 1991: 147:431-435.
416. Bardosi A, Creutzfeldt W. DiMauro S. cl al. Myo-. neuro-, gastrointestinal
encepha
lopathie (MNGIE syndrome) due to partial deficiency of cytochrome c oxidase.
Acta Neuropathol 1987; 74:248-258.
417. Alpers B. Progressive cerebral degeneration in infancy. J Nerv Ment Dis 1960;
130:442-448.
418. Harding BN. Progressive neuronal degeneration of childhood with liver disease

{Alpers-Huttenlocher syndrome): a personal review, J Child Neurol 1990; 5:273


287.
419. Tulinius MH. Holme E. Kristiansson B. et aL Mitochondrial
enceph;j1omyopathies
in childhood. 1. Biochemical and morphological investigations. J Pediatr 1991: 119:

242-250.
420. Menkes J. Alter M, Sleigleder G. Weakley D. Sung J. A ses-linked recessive
disor
der with retardation of growth, peculiar hair and focal cerebral and cerebellar de

generation. Pediatrics 1962: 29:764-779.


42L Morgello S, Peterson HD. K;ihn LJ, Laufer H. Menkes kinky hair disease with
'ragged red libers.' Dev Med Child Neurol 1988: 30:812-816.
422. Channer KS, Channer JL, Campbell MJ. Rees JR. Cardiomyopathy in the Keames-
Sayre syndrome. Br Heart J 1988; 59:486-490.
423. Clark DS, Mycrhcrg RJ, Morales RR. et al. Heart block and Kearncs-Sayre syn

diomyopathy. lactic acidosis, and response to prednisone and Uiiaminc. Aust NZ


J Med 1980; 10:660-664
426. Sato W, Tanaka M, Sugiyama S. et al. Cardiomyopathy and angiopathy in
palients
with mitochondrial myopathy, encephalopathy, lactic acidosis, and stroke-like epi
sodes. Am Heart J 1994; 128:733-741.
427. Brooke MH, Cwik VE. Disorders of skeletal muscle. In: Bradley WG. Daroff RB.

feniehel GM. Marsden CD. eds. Neurology in Clinical Practice. Vol. 2. The Neuro
logical Disorders. 2d ed. Boston: Butterworth-Heinemann, 1996:21X13-2047.
428. Piaeck U, Gouw L, Kwiecinskj H, et al. Sodium channel mutations in paramyo
tonia congenita and hyperkalemic periodic paralysis. Ann Neurol 1993; 33:300
307
429. Ptacek LJ, Johnson KJ. Griggs RC. Mechanisms of disease: genetics and
physiol
ogy of the myotonic muscle disorders. N Engl J Med 1993: 328:482-489.
430. Fontaine B. Khurana TS, Hoffman EP, et al Hyperkalemic periodic paralysis and

the adult muscle sodium channel alpha-subunit gene. Science 1990: 250:1000
1002.
431. Andersen ED. Krasilnikoff PA, Overvad H. Intermittent muscular weakness,
extra
systoles, and multiple developmental anomalies: a new syndrome? Acta Pediatr
Scand 1971; 60:559-564.
432. Sansone V, Griggs RC, Meola G, el al. Andersen's syndrome: a distinct
periodic
paralysis. Ann Neurol 1997: 42:305-312.
433. Marks ML. Trippel DL, Keating M. Long QT syndrome associated with syndactyly

in females. Am J Cardiol 1995: 76:744-745.


434. Marks ML, Wriisler SL. Clericu/.io C, Keating M. A new form of long QT syn
drome associated with syndactyly. J Ain Coll Cardiol 1995: 25:59-64.
435. Banker BQ. Engel AG. The polymyositis and dermatomyositis syndromes. In: En
gel AG. Banker BQ, eds. Myology. New York: McGraw-Hill, 1986:1385-1422.
436. Sigurgeirsson B. Lindelof B, Edhag O, Allander E. Risk of cancer in patients
with
dermatomyositis or polymyositis. A population-based study. N Engl J Med 1992:
326:363-367.
437. Denbow CE. Lie JJ, Robert TL, Tancredi RG. Bunch JW. Cardiac involvement in
polymyositis: a clinicopathologic study of 20 autopsied patients. Arthritis Rheum
1979; 27:1088-1092.
438. Stern R, Godbold JH. Chess Q, Kagcn L. ECG abnormalities in polymyositis.
Arch
Intern Med 1984; 144:2185-2189.
439. Yale SH, Adlakha A, Stanton MS. Dermatomyositis with pericardial tamponade
and polymyositis with pericardial effusion. Am Heart J 1993; 126:997-999.
440. Lotz BP. Engel AG, Nishino H, Sievens JC. Litchy WJ. Inclusion body myositis:

observations in 40 patients. Brain 1989; 112:727-747.


441. Dalakas MC. Poly myositis, dermatomyosiiis, and inclusion-body myositis. N
Engl
J Med 1991; 325:1487-1498,
442. Griggs RC. Askanas V. DiMauro S. Inclusion body myositis and myopathies. Ann

458 Chapter 7
444. Adams RD, Victor M, Ropper AH. Principles of Neurology. 6th ed. New York:
McGraw-Hill. 1997:634-635.
445. Fouresiie V. Douce ron H, Brugieres P. et al. Ncurotrichinosis. A
cerebrovascular
disease associated with myocardial injury and hypereosinophilia. Brain 1993: 116:
603-616.
446. Lopez-Loza no J J. Garcia Merino J A, Liano H. Bilateral facial paralysis
secondary
to trichinosis. Acta Neurol Scand 1988; 78:194-197.
447. Ursell PC. Habib A, Babe hick Ot et al. Myocarditis caused by Trit.hineila
spiralis,
Arch Pathol Lab Med 1984; 108:4-5.
448. Wartofsky L. Diseases of the diyroid. In: Isselbachcr KJ, Braunwald E. Wilson
JD,
ci al. cuV 1 Ian Piinciples of Intej JL.LI Medicine. I3lhed.New York: MeGrau
Hill. 1994:1941-1946.
449. Adams RD, Victor M. Ropper AH. The endocrine myopathies. In: Principles of
Neurology. 6th ed. New York: McGraw-Hill, 1997:1440-1443.
450. Zonszein J, Fein FS, Sonnenblick EH. The heart and endocrine disease. In:
Schlanl
RC, Alexander RC, eds. Hursts The Heart. 8th ed New York: McGraw-Hill, 1994:
1908-1911.
451. Potts JT Jr. Diseases of the parathyroid gland and other hyper- and
hypocalcemie
disorders. In: Fauci AS, Braunwald E. Isselbachcr KJ. Wilson JD, Martin JB,
Kasper DL. Hauscr SL, eds. Harrison's Principles of Internal Medicine. 13th ed.
New York: McGraw-Hill. 1998:2227-2247.
452. Bilezikian JP. Management of acute hypercalcemia. N Engl J Med 1992; 326:
1196-1203.
453. Patten BM. Bilezikian J P. Malletle LE et al. Neuromuscular disease in
primary
hyperparathyroidism. Ann Intern Med 1974: 80:182-193.
454. Goreliek PB. Caplan LR. Calcium, hypercalcemia, and stroke. Curr Concepts
Cerebrovasc Dis (Stroke) 1985; 20:13-17.
455. Yarnell PR. Caplan LR. Basilar artery narrowing and hyperparathyroidism,
Illustra
tive case. Stroke 1986; 17:1022-1024.
456. Lind L, Ljunghall S. Serum calcium and the ECG in patients with primary
hyper
parathyroidism. J Elcctrocardiol 1994; 27:99-103.
457. Lavis VR. Mueller SD, Willerson JT. Endocrine disorders and the heart. In:
Wilier-
son JT. Cohn JN, eds. Cardiovascular Medicine. New York: Churchill Livingstone,
1995:1617-1618.
458. Giles TD, held BJ. Rives KL. The cardiomyopathy of h\ poparathyroidiMii.
Another
reversible form of heart muscle disease. Chest 1981; 79:225-228.
459. Rimailho A. Bouchard P. Schaison G. Richard C, Auzepy P. Improvement of hypo

calcemia- cardiomyopathy by correction of serum calcium level. Am Hean J 1985;


109:611-613.
460. Levine SN. Rheams CN. Hypocalcemie heart failure. Am J Med 1985; 78:1033
1035.
461. Sugihara N. Shimizu M. Kita Y. ct al. Cardiac characteristics and
postoperative

tional significance of aldosterone deficiency in hyperkaliemic patients wilh


chronic
renal insufficiency. Kidney Int 1980: 17:89-101.
464. Williams Gil. Dlahv RG. Diseases of Uie adrenal cortex. In: Isselbaeher KJ,
Braun-
if
wald E. Wilson JD. Martin JB, Fauci AS. Kasper DL. eds. Harrison's Principles
of Internal Medicine. New York: McGraw-Hill. 1994:1970-1973.
465. Sehteingarl DE. Adrenal failure. In: Hurst JW, ed. Medicine for the
Practicing Phy
sician. Stamford. CT: Appleton & Lange, 1996:570-574.
466. Knowlton Al. Baer L. Cardiac failure in Addison's disease. Am J Med 1983; 74:

829-836.
467. Daniels GH, Martin JB. Neuroendocrine regulation and diseases of the anterior

pituitary and hypothalamus. In: Isselbaeher KJ, Braunwald E, Wilson ID. et al..
eds. Harrison's Principles of Internal Medicine. 13th ed. New York: McGraw-Hill,
1994:1899-1904.
468. Ezzal S. Melmed S. Clinical review 18: arc patients with acromegaly at
increased
risk for neoplasia? J Clin Endocrinol Metab 1991; 72:245-249.
469. Rodrigues EA. Caruana MP. Lahiri A, et al. Subclinical cardiac dysfunction in

acromegaly: evidence for a specific disease of heart muscle. Br Heart J 1989: 62:
185-194.
470. Adams RD, Victor M. Ropper AH. Principles of Neurology. 6th ed. New York:
McGraw-Hill. 1997:1459-1475.
471. Sanders DB, Howard JF. Disorders of Neuromuscular transmission. In: Bradley
WrG. Daroff RB, Fenichel GM. Marsden CD, eds. Neurology in Clinical Practice.
Vol. 2. The Neurological Disorders. 2ded. Boston: Butterworth-Heinemann, 1996:
1983-2001.
472. Drachmaii DB, Myasthenia gravis. N Engl J Med 1994: 330:1797-1810.
473. Argov Z. Mastaglia FL. Disorders of neuromuscular transmission caused by
drugs.
N Engl J Med 1979: 301:409-413.
474. Gibson TC, The heart in myasthenia gravis. Am Heart J 1975; 90(3):389-396.
475. Rottino A, Poppili R. Rao J. Myocardial lesions in myasthenia gravis. Review
and
report of a case. Arch Pathol 1942; 34:557-561.
476. Naeye RL. Alveolar hypoventilation and cor pulmonale secondary to damage to
the respiratory center. Am J Cardiol 1961; 8:416-419.
477. Leys K. Lang B, Johnston I, Newsome-Davis J. Calcium channel autoantibodies
in the Lambert-Eaton myasthenic syndrome. Ann Neurol 1991; 29:307-314.
478. Lennnn VA, Kryzcr T. Griesmann GE. et al. Calcium-channel antibodies in the
Lambert-Eaton syndrome and other paraneoplastic syndromes. N Engl J Med 1995:
332:1467-1474.
479. Rubinstein AE, Horowitz SH, Bender AN. Cholinergic dysautonomia and Eaton-
Lambert syndrome. Neurology 1979: 29:720-723.
480. Weinberg I). Cros D. Case records of the Massachusetts General Hospital. Case

32-1994. N Hngl J Med 1994; 331:528-535.


481 Merso MH Dowel I VR Epidemiologic clinical d lahorator aspect f d

46 0 Chapter 7
483. Gutmann L, Pratt L. Pathophysiologic aspects of human botulism. Arch Neurol
1976: 33:175-179.
484. Adams RD. Victor M. Ropper AH. Principles of Neurology. 6th ed. New York:
McGraw-Hill. 1997:1208-1209.
485. JenzerG. Mu men thaler M, Ludin HP, Robert F. Autonomic dysfunction in
botulism
B: a clinical report. Neurology 1975; 25:150-153.
486. Koenig MG, Druiz DJ, Mushlin A. Schaffner WT Rogers DF. Type B botulism in
man. Am J Med 1967: 42:208-219.
487. Harding AE. Cerebellar and spinocerebellar disorders. In: Bradley WG. DaroTf
RB,
Fcniehel GM, Marsden CD. eds. Neurology in Clinical Practice. 2d ed. Vol. 2.
Boston: Buttcrworth-Heinemann. 1996:1773-1792.
488. Durr A. Cossee M. Agid Y. el al. Clinical and genetic abnormalities in
palients
with Friedreich's ataxia. N Engl J Med 1996; 335:1169-1175.
489. Adams RD, Victor M. Ropper AH. Principles of Neurology. 6lh ed. New York:
McGraw-Hill. 1997:1081-1084.
490. James TN. Cobbs BW, Coghlan HC. NcCoy WC. Fisch C Coronary disease, cardi
oneuropathy, and conduction system abnormalities in the cardiomyopathy of
Friedreich's ataxia. Br Heart J 1987; 57:446-457.
491. Gottdiener JS, Hawlcy RJ, Maron BJ. Bertorini TF, Engle WK, Characteristics
of
the cardiac hypertrophy in Friedreich's ataxia. Am Heart J 1982: 103:525-531.
492. Giunta A. Maione S, Biagini R, et al. Noninvasive assessment of systolic and
dia
stolic function in 50 patients with Friedreich's ataxia. Cardiology 1988: 75:321
327.
493. Morvan D, Komajda M, Do an LD, et al. Cardiomyopathy in Friedreich's ataxia:

a Doppler-echoeardiographic study. Eur Heart J 1992; 13:1393-1398.


494. Alboliras ET, Shub C. Gomez MR, ct al. Spectrum of cardiac involvement in
Friedreich's ataxia: clinical, electrocardiographic and echocardiographic observa
tions. Am J Cardiol 1986; 58:518-524.
495. Harding AE. Herver RL. The heart disease of Freidreieh's ataxia: a clinical
and
electrocardiographic study of 115 patients, with an analysis of
electrocardiographic
changes in 30 cases. Q J Med 1983; 28:489-502.
496. Waklmann TA. Misiti J. Nelson DL. Kraemer KH. NIH conference. Ataxia telangi

ectasia: a multisystem hereditary disease with immunodeficiency, impaired organ


maturation, x-ray hypersensitivity, and a high incidence of neoplasia. Ann Intern
Med 1983; 99:367-379.
497. Gomez MR. Neurocutaneous diseases. In: Bradley WG. Daroff RB, Fenichel GM,
Marsden CD, eds. Neurology in Clinical Practice. 2d ed. Vol. 2. Boston: Butter
worth-Heinemann, 1996:1561-1581.
498. Mulvihill JJ, Parry DM. Sherman JL, Pikus A. Kaiser-Kupfer Ml, Eldridge R,
NIH
conference. Neuroribmmaioxis I i Recklinghausen disease) and neurofibromatosis
2 (bilateral acoustic neurofibromatosis). An update. Ann Intern Med 1990: 113:
39-52.

501. Fabricant RN. Todaro GJ. Increased serum levels of nerve growth factor in von

Recklinghausen's disease. Arch Neurol 1981; 38:401-405.


502. Weneleeki VV\ Rouleau GA. Superneau D, et al. Neurofibromatosis 2: clinical
and
DNA linkage studies of a large kindred. N Engl J Med 1988; 319:278-283.
503. Hilal SK, Solomon GE. Gold AP, Carter S. Primary cerebral arterial occlusive

disease in children. II. Neurocutaneous syndromes. Radiology 1971; 99:87-94.


504. Adams RD, Victor M. Ropper AH. Principles of Neurology, nth ed. New York:
McGraw-Hill, 1997:1011-1014.
505. Still we II TJ, Gome/ MR. Kelalis PP. Renal lesions in tuherous sclerosis. J
Urol
1987; 138:477-481.
506. Webb DW, Thomas RD. Osborne J P. Cardiac rhabdomyomas and their association
with tuberous sclerosis. Arch Dis Child 1993 : 68:367-370.
507. Lalif F, Kalman T. Gnarra J. ct al. IdentiJicalton of the von Hippel-Landau
disease
tumor suppressor gene. Science 1993; 260:1317-1320.
508. Lamiell JM. Salazar FG. Hsia YE. Von Hippel-Lindau disease affecting 43 mem
bers of a single kindred Medicine 1989; 68:1-29.
509. Filling-Kalz MR. Choyke PL. Oldlield E. etal. Central nervous system
involvement
in von Hippel-Lindau disease. Neurology 1991; 41:41-46.
510. Melmon KL. Rosen SW, Lindaifs disease. Review of the literature and study of

a large kindred Am J Med 1964: 36:595-616.


511. Maher ER. Kaelin WG Jr. von Hippel-Lindau disease. Medicine 1997; 76:381
391.
512. Lyon G. Adams RD. Kolodny EH. Neurology of Hereditary Metabolic Diseases
of Children. New York: McGraw-Hill. 1996.
513. Mosser J. Douar AM. Sande CO. et al. Putative X-linked adrenoleukodyslrophy
gene shares unexpected homology with ABC transporters. Nature 1993: 361:726
730.
514. Moser H. Moser A. Singh I. O'Neill BP. Adtenoleukodystrophy: survey of 303
eases: biochemistry, diagnosis, and therapy. Ann Neurol 1984: 16:628-641.
515. Kumar AJ. Kohler W, Kruse B. et al. MR findings in adult-onset
adrenoleukodys
trophy. AJNR 1995; 16:1227-1237.
516. Goldiischer S. Moore CL. Johnson AB, et al. Peroxisomal and mitochondrial de

fects in the cercbro-hcpato-renal syndrome. Science 1973:182:62-64.


517. Kelley Rl. The eerebro-hepato-renal syndrome of Zellweger: morphologic and
met
abolic aspects. Am J Med Genet 1983: 503-517.
518. Guttmacher AE. Marchuk DA, While Rl. Hereditary hemorrhagic telangiectasia.
N Engl J Med 1995: 333:918-924.
519. Fullbright RK, Chaloupka JC. Putman CM, et al. MR of hemorrhagic
telangiectasia:
prevalence and spectrum of cerebrovascular malformations. AJNR 1998: 19:477
484.
520. Adams HP. Subbiah B, Bosch El\ Neurologic aspects of hereditary hemorrhagic
telangiectasia. Arch Neurol 1977; 34:101-104.
46 2 Chapter 7
523. Roman G. Fisher M. Perl D, Poser C. Neurological manifestations of hereditary

hemorrhagic telangiectasia (Rendu-Osler-Weber disease): report of 2 eases and re


view of the literature. Ann Neurol 1978; 4:130-144,
524. Menkes J. Textbook of Child Neurology. 5lh ed. Baltimore: Williams & Wilkins,

1995.
525. Wang CH. Genetic diseases of the central nervous system: chromosomal
diseases.
Trisomy 21 (Down syndrome). In: Rowland LP, ed. Merritt's Textbook of Neurol
ogy. 9th ed. Baltimore: Williams & Wilkins, 1995:535-536.
526. Adams RD, Victor VI, Ropper All. Principles of Neurology. 6lh ed. New York:
McGraw-Hill. 1997:1008-1009.
527. Lai F, Williams RS A prospeeth c stud> of Alzheimer disease in Eknvn
syndrome.
Arch Neurol 1989: 46:849-853.
528. Schupf N. Kapell D. Nightingale B, et al. Earlier onset of Alzheimer s
disease in
men with Down syndrome. Neurology 1998; 50:991-995.
529. Nugent EW. Plauth WH. Edwards JE. Williams WH. The pathology, pathophysiol
ogy, recognition, and treatment of congenital heart disease, In: Schlant RC,
Alexan
der RW. eds. Hurst's The Heart. 8th ed. New York: McGraw-Hill. 1994:1761
1854.
530. Jones KL. Smith's Recognizable Patterns of Human Malformation. 5th ed. Phila

delphia: WB Saunders, 1997.


531. Baty BJ. Blackburn BL, Carey JC. Natural history of trisomy 18 and trisomy
13.
I. Growth, physical assessment, medical histories, survival, and recurrence risk.
Am J Med Genet 1995: 49:175-188.
532. Bergin A, McManus SP. Clarke TA, Moloney M. Trisomy 18: a nine year review.
Irish J Med Sci 1988: 157:5-7.
533. Patau K, Therman E, Smith DW, Inhorn SL. Wagner HP. Multiple congenital
anomaly caused by an extra chromosome. Lancet 1960; 1:790-793.
534. Lemieux BG. Wright FS, Swaiman KF. Genetic and congenital structural defects

of the brain and spinal cord. In: Swaiman KF. Wright FS. eds. The Practise of
Pediatric Neurology. SL Louis: CV Mosby, 1982:344-471.
535. Inagaki M. Ando Y, Mito T, et al. Comparison of brain imaging and
neuropathology
in cases of trisomy 18 and 13. Neuroradiology 1987; 29:474-479.
536. Gregg N. Congenital cataract following German measles in the mother. Trans
Oph
thalmol Soc Aust 1941; 3:35-46.
537. Weil ML, Levin M. Infections of the nervous system. In: Menkes J, ed.
Textbook
of Child Neurology. 5th ed. Baltimore: Williams & Wilkins, 1995:379-509.
538. Miller E, Craddock-Watson JE. Pollock TM. Consequences of confirmed maternal

rubella at successive stages of pregnancy. Lancet 1982: 2:781-784.


539. Allanson JE. Noonan syndrome. J Med Genet 1987; 24:9-13.
540. Money J. Kalus ME Jr. Noonan's syndrome: IQ and specific disabilities. Am .1
Dis
Child 1979; 133:846-850.
541. O'Rourke RA. Silverman ME, Schlant RC. General examination of the patient.
In:
543. Rubinstein JH, Taybi H. Broad rnumbs and toes and facial abnormalities: a
possible
mental retardation syndrome. Am J Dis Child 1963; 105:588-608.
544. Breuning MIL Dauwerse HG, Fugazza G. el al. Rubinstein Taybi syndrome caused

by submieroseopic deletions within 16pl3.3. Am J Hum Genet 1993: 52:249-254.


545. Shprinlzen RJ, Goldberg RB, Lewis ML, et al. A new syndrome involving cleft
palate, cardiac anomalies. t\ pical furies, and learning disabilities, velo-eardio-
facial
syndrome. Cleft Palate J 1978: 15:56-62.
546. Shprintzcn RJ, Goldberg RB, Young D, Wo I ford L. The velo-cardio-facial syn

drome. A clinical and genetic analysis. Pediatrics 1981: 67:167-172.


547. Young D. Shprinlzen RJ, Goldberg RB. Cardiac malformations in die velo-
cardio
facial syndrome. Am J Cardiol 1980: 46:643-648.
548. Kelley RL Zaekai EH, Emanuel BS, et al. The association of the DiGeorge
anomal
ad wilh partial monosomy of chromosome 22. J Pcdiatr 1982: 101:197-200.
549. Greeuberg F. Crowder WE, Paschal I V. et al. Familial DiGeorge syndrome and
associated panial monosomy of chromosome 22. Hum Genet 1984: 65:317
319.
550. Freedom RM. Rosen FS. Nadas AS. Congenital cardiovascular disease and anoma
lies of lhe third and fourth pharyngeal pouch. Circulation 1972: 46:165-172.
551. Hutchinson J. Congenital absence of hair and mammary glands with atrophic
condi
tions of the skin and its appendages in u boy whose mother had been almost wholly
bald from alopecia areata from the age of six. Med Chir Trans 1886: 69:473-477.
552. Gilford H. Progeria: a form of senilism. Practitioner 1904; 73:188-217.
553. Hcrrero FA. Neurological manifestations of hcrcditable connective lissue
disorders.
In: Vinken PJ. Bruyn GW, Klawans HL. eds. Neurological Manifestations* of Sys
temic Diseases, Part 11. Handbook of Clinical Neurology. Vol. 39. Amsterdam:
North-Holland. 1980:379-418.
554. Feingold M. Progeria (Hutchinson-Gilford syndrome). In: Vinken PJ. Bruyn GW,

Klawans HL. eds. Neurogenetic Directory, Part 11. Handbook of Clinical Neurol
ogy. Vol. 43. Amsterdam: North-Holland. 1980:465-466.
555. Brown WT. Progeria Adv Exp Med Biol 1985: 190:239-244.
556. DeBusk FL. The Hutchinson-Gilford progeria syndrome. J Pediatr 1972; 80:697

724.
557. Werner O. Uber Katarakt in Verbindung mil Sklerodermis. Thesis. Kiel,
Germany:
Kiel, Schmidt, und Klaunig. 1904.
558. Tokunaga M, Mori S. Sato K. Nakamura K. Wakamatsu E. Postmortem study of
a case of Werners syndrome. J Am Geriat-Soc 1976; 24:407-411.
559. Mudd SH. Vascular disease and homocysteine metabolism. In: Smilh U, Eriksson

S, Lingarde F. eds. Genetic Susceptibility to Environmental FactorsA Challenge


for Public Intervention. Stockholm: Almqvist & Wiksell. 1988:1 1-24.
560. Welch GN. Loscalzo J. Homocysteine and atherothrombosis. N Engl J Med 1998:
338:1042-1050.
561. Ueland PM. Refsum H. Stabler SP. Mahnou MR. Andersson A. Allen KM. Total

464 Chapter 7
563. Mudd SH, Skovby F, Levy HL. el al. The natural history of homocystinuria due

lo eystalliione-beta-synthase deficiency. Am J Hum Genet 1985; 37:1-31.


564. Vermaak WJ. Ubbink JB. Barnard HC. Poigeiter CM. van Jaarsveld H. Groenwald
AJ. Vitamin Bf, nutrition status and cigarette smoking. Am J Clin Nulr 1990: 51:
1058-1061.
565. Clarke R. Daly L, Robinson K. el al. Hyperhomocysteinemia: an independent
risk
factor for vascular disease. N Engl J Med 1991; 324:1149-1155.
566. Evcrs S, Koch H-G, Grotcmcyer K-H. et al. Features, symptoms, and
neurophysio
logical findings in stroke associated with hyperhomocysteinemia. Arch Neurol
1997; 54:1276-1282.
567. Harkei LA. Slichter SJ, Scott CR. Homocystinemia: vascular injury and
arterial
thrombosis. N Engl J Med 1974: 291:537-543.
568. Harker LA. Ross R, Slichter SJ. Scott CR. Homocystine-induced
arteriosclerosis:
the role of endodielial cell injury and platelet response in its genesis. J Clin
Invest
1976: 58:731-741.
569. Tsai J-C. Perrella MA. Yoshizumi M. et ah Promotion of vascular smooth muscle

cell growth by homocysteine: a link to atherosclerosis. Proc Natl Acad Sci USA
1994; 91:6369-6373.
570. Stampfer MJ . Malinow MR. Willett WC ct al. A prospective study of plasma ho

mocysteine and risk of myocardial infarction in US physicians. JAMA 1992:268:


877-88L
571. Selhub J, Jacques PF. Bostom AG, el al. Association between plasma
homocysteine
concentrations and cxiracranial carotid-artery stenosis. N Engl J Med 1995: 332:
286-291.
572. Nygard O. Nordrehaug JE, Refsum HM. et al, Plasma homocysteine lev els and
mor
tality in patients with coronary artery disease. N Engl J Med 1997: 337:230-236.
573. Boushey CJ, Beresford SA. Omenn GS. Motulsky AG. A quantitative assessment
of plasma homocysteine as a risk factor for vascular diasease: probable benefits of

increasing folic acid intakes, JAMA 1995; 274:1049-1057.


574. Hagler DJ. Lentiginosis-deafness-cardiopathy syndrome. In: Gomez MR. ed. Neu

rocutaneous Disease. A Practical Approach. Boston: Bunerworths. 1987:80-84.


575. Polani PE. Moynahan EJ. Progressive cardiomyopathy lentiginosis. Q J Med
1972;
41:205-239,
576. Moynahan EJ, Polani P. Progressive Profuse lentiginosis, progressive
cardiomyop
athy, short stature with delayed puberty, mental retardation or psychic
infantilism,
and other development anomalies: a new familial syndrome. In: Jadassohn W,
Schirren CG. eds. 13ih Congressus Internationalis Dermaiologiae. Vol. 2. Berlin:
Springer-Verlag, 1968:1543.
577. Gorlin RJ. Anderson RC. Blaw M. Multiple lentigenes syndrome: complex com
prising multiple lentigenes. electrocardiographic conduction abnormalities, ocular

hypertelorism, pulmonary stenosis, abnormalities of genitalia, retardation of


growth, sensorineural deafness, and autosomal dominant hereditary pattern. Am J

Patients with Nervous System Diseases


579.
Jcrvcll A, Lange-Nielsen F. Congenital deaf mutism, functional heart disease with
prolongation of the QT interval, and sudden death. Am Heart J 1947; 54:59-68.

580.
Fraser GR, Frog gait P. Murphy T. Genetic aspects of the eardioaudiiory syndrome
of Jervell and Lange-Nielsen (congenital deafness and electrocardiographic
abnormalities). Am Hum Genet 1964; 28:133-156.

581.
Romano C, Genune G, Pongiglione R. Arilhmie cardiache rare dell'eta pediatriea.
Clin Pediatr 1963; 45:656-683.

582.
Ward OC. A new familial cardiac syndrome in children. J Irish Med Assoc 1964:
54:103-106.

583.
Schwartz PJ, Bonazzi O. Local i E, Napoiitano C. Sal a S. Pathogenesis and therapy
of ihe idiopathic long QT syndrome, In: Hashiba K, Moss A J, Schwartz PJ. eds. QT
Prolongation and Ventricular Arrhythmias. Ann NY Acad Sci 1992; 644:112

141.

584.
Schwartz PJ. Slramba-Badiale M. Scganti A, el al. Prolongation of the QT interval
and the sudden infant dealh syndrome. N Engl J Med 1998: 338:1709-1714.

585.
Towbin J A, Friedman RA, Prolongation of the QT interval and the sudden infant
death syndrome. N Engl J Med 1998: 338:1760-1761,

Index

Abciximab (ReoPro), 212 Ahctalipoproieincmiu. 362-363 Abulia, 195, 197-198 AC A.


See Anterior cerebral artery ACC/AHA (American College of
Cardiology/American Heart Association). 293-295 Acceptable minor embolism (ACME).
130 ACE inhibitors, 208 Acetazolamide, 204, 246 Acetylcholine, 310 Acid maltase
deficiency, 380-381.
383/-384/ ACME (acceptable minor embolism), 130 Acoustic neuromas
neurofibromatosis, bilateral. 413-414 Acquired human immunodeficiency syn
drome (AIDS), 339-340 Acromegaly. 402-403. 403/ ACTH (adrenal corticotrophic hor
mone), 4(X>. 402 Action myoclonus. 17 Acute intermittent porphyria (AIP),
361-362 Acute serotonin syndrome. 216 Adamkiewicz, artery of. 17-18 Addison's
disease, 401-402 Adrenal corticotrophic hormone
(ACTH), 400, 402 Adrenalectomy, 310- 31 1 Adrenal insufficiency. 401 402
Adrenoleukodystrophy, 401. 419, 421
422 Adrenomyeloneuropathy, 419. 421-422 AFASAK (Copenhagen Atrial Fibrilla
tion Aspirin Anticoagulation
Study), 81/ Age: intracranial hemorrhage risk and. 2b7 thrombolytic-rclated
intracranial hem
orrhage and. 27 3 Agitation, drugs causing, 2l8f AIDS (acquired human immunodefi
ciency syndrome). 339-340
467
AIP (acute intermittent porphyria). 361 362 Air embolism. 147-148
Albuminoeylologic dissociation. 336 Alcohol: cognitive function and. 218/
intoxication, signs of, 347-348 withdrawal. 217/, 218/ withdrawal seizures. 348
Alcoholic cerebeHai degeneration, 349 Alcohol related peripheral neuropathy. 347-
351 Alertness, in encephalopathy. 188-189 Alper's disease, 387 Alpha-adrenergic
blockers, 208 Alpha-l,4-glucosidase deficiency. 380 Alpha-2 plasmin inhibitor,
cardiogenic embolism and, 143-144 Alpha sympathetic nerve fibers, 301 -302
Alprazolam. 214. 215 American College of Cardiology/American Heart Association
(ACC/ AHA). 293-295 Amikacin. 214 Amiloride. 204 Aminoglycoside antibiotics, 214
Amiodarone: prophylactic, for post-CABG slroke, 241-242 side effects of. 206-207.
218/ Amitriptyline, 216 Amlodipine. 210 Amnion's horn sclerosis, 313 Amnesia. 16-17
AM PA receptor, 29 A mphetamines. 218/ Ampicillin, 213 Amyloid angiopathy,
ihrombolyticrelated intracranial hemorrhage and, 273 Amyloid beta protein
precursor, 273 Amyloid cardiomyopathy, echocardio
f Amyloidosis] classification of, 356 definition of, 356 familial, 357 neuropathic
symptoms. 357-358 primary. 356 secondary, 356-357 Amyotrophic lateral sclerosis,
338 Analgesics, 214-215 Ancrod. 155 Andersen's syndrome, 390, 391-392 Andrade's
syndrome, 357 Anesthetic agents, for hypoxic-ischemic encephalopathy. 28 Aneurysms:
arterial, thrombus formation and. 127 atrial septal. 119-120, 121 Charcot-Bouchard,
rupture of. 271 272 left ventricular. 112 mycotic, angiography of, 98-99
syphilitic. 124, 126 Angina pectoris, 36 Angiography, cerebral: brain embolism, 37.
67-68 extracranial and intracranial arteries, 138-140 mycotic aneurysms, 98-99
sequential, 67 Angiotensin converting enzyme inhibitors, 208 Anoxic
encephalopathy. 261 Anterior cerebral artery (ACA): anatomy. 44, 44/, 46/ 131/
emboli, 48, 48/ 55/ 63-64 Anterograde amnesia, 16 Antiarrhythmic drugs, 205-207
Antibiotics. 213-214 Anticholinergics, 218/ Anticoagulants {see also specific
unficoagulants):
for aortic atheromatous disease, 126
[Anticoagulants] for dilated cardiomyopathy, 114 for embolism prevention, with
cardiac
tumors, 115 -116 for henioiThagic infarction, 41-42 for mechanical valve
endocarditis,
102-103 for myocardial infarction, 111-112,
1 I If neurological side effects of, 212-213 for prosthetic heart valves, 95-96,
971 for rheumatic mitral valve disease.
86, 87/
stroke recurrence and, 120 Anticonvulsants, 218f Antidepressants, 215-216
Antiedemic agents. 153 Antihistamines. 218/ Antihypertensive drugs. 207-210 Anti-
Parkinsonian drugs, postural hypo
tension and, 318 Antiphospholipid antibody (APIA) syndrome, 105, 106-107, 107/
Antiplatelet agents: neurological side effects of, 211-212 siroke recurrence and,
120
Antipsychotic drugs. 218/ Antithrombin [IK cardiogenic embolism and. 143-144
Antithrombotic agents, with thrombolysis, 269 270 Aorta:
atheromas u. r Atheromas, aortic)
atherosclerosis diagnosis of, 234-240 management, during CABG. 240 stroke risk
during CAB< i and.
238-241, 239/ embolism from. 51. 123-127 imaging, 137 thickness, brain infarction
and, 126
Aortic arch disease:
469
Aortic valve, vegetations, in infective endocarditis, 99-100. 101/
Aortic valve disease: brain embolism and. 87-90 causes. 89-90 regurgitation. 89-90
surgery for, 89, 262-263
Aphasia, 64
APIA syndrome (antiphospholipid antibody syndrome). 105, 106107/
Arrhythmias: alcohol-related peripheral neuropathy
and, 350 in amyloidosis. 359 atrial fibrillation (see Atrial fibrilla
tion) bradycardia, 306. 312, 323 in Duchenne muscular dystrophy.
372-373 emboli from. 77, 83-84 with epileptic attack, 314 in Guillain-Barre
syndrome, 336
337
in sick sinus syndrome, 83-84
in stroke. 305-306
tachycardia, 312, 314, 325

Arterial dissections, 133 Arterial liliration, for CABG, 227. 247 Arterial lesions,
distribution of, 130
133, 131/, 132/ Arterial stenosis (.sec Stenosis) Arteriography. 154-155
Arteriosclerosis:
atherosclerosis (see Atherosclerosis) intra-arterial embolism and. 127
Arteriovenous malformations, thrombolytic-related intracranial hemorrhage and,
273
Arteritis. 200-201 ASCIP (Asymptomatic Cardiac Ischemia Pilot study). 292-293
Aspirin: wilh ami coagulant. 95 wilh thrombolysis. 269-270
Asterixis, in encephalopathy, 192 Asymptomatic Cardiac Ischemia Pilot
study (ASCIP), 292-293 Ataxia telangiectasia, 412-413 Atenolol:
neurological side effects of, 209-210 preventive effects in silent myocardial
infarction. 292 Atenolol Silent Ischemia Study (ASIST). 291-292
Atheromas, aortic: in descending aorta. 239 sirokcVperipheral embolism and. 124
125 treatment of. 126-127 Atherosclerosis: aortic, 124, 126 (see also Atheromas,
aortic) diagnosis of. 239-240 management, during CABG. 240 slroke risk during CABG
and.
238-241, 239/ coronary artery, cardiac arrest and, 1 distribution. 130-133, 131/
132/ in Parkinson's disease, 317 plaque in (see Plaque, atherosclerotic) systemic
nature of. 287
Atorvastatin, 211 Atria (see Atrium) Atrial fibrillation:
anticoagulation for. 80, Sir, 82
brain embolism risk, 74, 77 in elderly, 79-80 incidence of, 36, 37/ preventive
measures, 82-83 randomized trials and, 80. 81/, 82 spontaneous echo contrast and.
79 transesophageal echocardiogram as
sessment of. 78-79 f Atrial fibrillation]
stroke development and, 305-306 after CABG, 241-242. 249 prevention for, 78 risk
factors for. 78
subarachnoid hemorrhage and. 306 with valvular disease, 78-79 without valvular
disease. 78
Atrial Fibrillation Aspirin Anticoagulation Study (AFASAK4. 8If Atrial septal
aneurysms. 119-120, 121 Alrium:
appendage
abnormal function. 79
ihrombi, 78-79

dysfunction, thrombi development and. 84


enlargement
TEE, 79
valve incompetence and. 85

left, thrombus in, 275


lesions, 77
stunning. 83, 275

Atropine. 298
Atypical verrucous endocarditis. 103.

104/ Autonomic dysreflexia. 324-325, 324/ Autonomic nervous system:


dysfunction (see Neuropathies, autonomic) tests of. 331 /-333f. 334 Azithromycin,
214
BAATF (Boston Area Anticoagulation
Trial for Atrial Fibrillation). 81/ Bacterial endocarditis. 36, 199 Bunnwarm's
syndrome, 343 Barbiturates:
for hypoxic-ischemic encephalopathy, 28 porphyria and, 361
Basilar artery: anatomy. 56/ embolism, "spectacular shrinking
deficit" and. 55-59 stenosis, 246 (hromboemboli, intravenous thrombol
ysis for, 155 Basse n-Koms we ig disease. 362 363 BB CK (see Creatine kinase,
brain-type
isoenzyme) Becker's museulaj' dystrophy, 375 Benazepril, 208 Benzodiazepines. 214
Beta- adr e ti erg ie b 1 oeke rs:
neurological side effects of, 209-210 prophylactic, for post-CABG siroke.
241. 242 Beta sympathetic nerve fibers. 301
302 Beta-t hrombog lobul i n, 92 Bihemispheral coma:
clinical features of. 9-10, 11/
prolonged. 21 Bi leaflet-til ting disk prostheses, 94 Binswanger's disease. 317
Bioprosthelic valves (see Heart valves,
prosthetic) Bisoprolol, 292 Bleeding:
from anticoagulant usage, 212-213 intracranial (see Intracranial hemorrhage) Blood
clots, ischemic tissue damage and, 35-36 Blood gas analysis, for congestive heart
failure, 201 Blood pressure: control, thrombolytic-related intracran
ial hemorrhage, 274 during epileptic seizure. 314-315 hypothalamus and. 319-320
trigeminal nerve and. 335
Body weight, intracranial hemorrhage risk and, 270 Bone fractures, fat embolism
and. 145 146
Border zone: anatomic relations. 7 infarction
distribution of. 13, 14/ 15-16. 15/ stroke during CABG and, 233.
233/ Borrelia burgdorferi. 342 Boston Area Anticoagulation Trial for
Atrial Fibrillation (BAATF). 81 r Botulism. 406-408 Bourneville disease (tuberous
sclerosisi.
415,417^418.417/ Boyle's law. 148 Brachial plexopathy. after CABG, 244 Bradycardia:

brain hemorrhage and. 306 neurogenic. 312 persistent, with spinal cord injury, 323
Bradycardia-tachycardia syndrome [see Sick sinus syndrome) Brain (see also specific
bruin structures):
atrophy. 198 blood flow. 187 CABG impact on, 227-232, 228/ damage
paihoph)siology/pathology of, 5-7, 71, 8/-9/ in stroke (see Stroke)
edema
etiology. 196
ischemic, treatment of, 153
reduction of, 27
treatment, 153

electrical stimulation of. 309, 319 embolism [see Fmbolism. brain) function
equilibralion/restoration of, 195
j Brain] herniation. 310 imaging {see also specific imaging
techniques)
cardiac arrest prognosis and, 22-23
Tat embolism, 146 infarction (see Infarction, brain) ischemic (see Ischemia, brain)
in Lyme disease. 343 metabolism, decreasing, 28-29 nutritional substrates, 187
posterior circulation, 56/ regions, between arterial territories, 7
Brainstem: coma, clinical features of, 9 compression. 310 encephalitis, 321
persistent dysfunction. 21 reflex testing, 19 tumors, 321
Breathing, spinal cord injuries and, 322 Bronchopulmonary lavage, for fat embolism
diagnosis. 147 Bronchopulmonary problems, wilh con
gestive heart failure, 201 BrushfiekTs spots. 423, 424/ Bulbar poliomyelitis, 320
Bupropion. 216, 218/ Buspirone. 215 Buthetanide. 204
CABG (see Coronary artery bypass graft) CAFA (Canadian Atrial Fibrillation An
ticoagulation Study), 80 Caffeine. 217/, 218/ Calcium:
blood/serum levels. 25 in reperfusion injury, 6-7 Calcium channel blockers: for
hypoxic-ischemic encephalopathy. 28

Index
Canadian Atrial Fibrillation Anticoagulation Study (CAFA). 80
Cancer: encephalopathy and, 200 hypercoagulability and, 107. 109 nonbacterial
thrombotic endocarditis
and. 107. 109 Captopril, 208, 218/ Carbon dioxide narcosis. 195 Carbonic anhydrase
inhibitors, 204 Carcinoid tumors, noninfective valve le
sions in, 109
Cardiac arrest: edology of, 1 hypoxic-ischemic insult {sec Hyp
oxic-ischemic encephalopathy) in-hospital. 2. 4/, 19 medical complications, 19 out-
of-hospital, 21
biochemical measurements in. 25 26 incidence of. 2. 3/ prognosis biochemical
measurements and.
25-27 brain imaging and. 22-23 electrophysiologic brain studies
and, 23-25. 24/ survival after, 19 Cardiac arrhythmias (see Arrhythmias) Cardiac
assist devices, neurologic com
plications from, 263-265 Cardiac decompensation, 196 Cardiac septal lesions, brain
embolism
and. 116-121 Cardiac tamponade, 352 Cardiogenic syncope, 198 Cardiomyopathy:
alcohol-related, 350-351
amyloid. 359. 360/-36I/
atrial. 359

[Cai diomyopalln : dilated. 113, 114,411-412 in Duchenne muscular dystrophy.


370-371, 371/ hypertrophic [see Hypertrophic cardiomyopathy J Cardiopulmonary
resuscitation (CPR), 2,5
Cardiovascular system [see also specific cardiovascular system components):
in amyloidosis. 358-359, 360/-361/,
361
in poliomyelitis. 326, 327/, 328
in spinal cord injury. 322-323

Cardioversion: anticoagulation for. 276-277 neurological complications. 275-279.


276/
stroke risk, 275-276
TEE-guided, 276-279

Carnitine deficiency myopathies. 383 385 Carotid artery: disease endarterectomy


for [see Carotid
endarterectomy 1 myocardial infarction and, 289 stroke risk during CABG and,
235-238. 237/
emboli, 43-44
occlusion, 236

Carotid artery stenosis: in CABG asymptomatic, management of, 236-237, 246 stroke
risk and. 236
symptomatic, management of. 237-238. 238/ with coronary artery disease, 287.
288-290 ACC/AHA guidelines for, 293
Carotid endarterectomy: for asymptomatic carotid stenosis,
236 before CABG. 246 with medical therapy. 287-288 prognosis for, 290 simultaneous
with CABG, 235, 246
CASS (Coronary Artery Surgery Stud\ i. 1 12, 291 Catechol amines cardiac abnormal
ides in stroke and,
310-311 in neurofibromatosis, 415 storm, myocardial damage and, 311
CBF (see Cerebral blood flow) CCA (see Common cerebral artery) Cefaclor. 213-214
Cefixime. 213-214 Ccfuroxime. 213-214 Cell death. 6 Central autonomic network
(CAN),
300/; 302-303. 320 Central core myopathy, 379 Central nervous system (see also
Brain:
Spinal cord): complications, from coronary angiography. 260 lesions, secondary
cardiorespiratory
changes, 309 Central neurofibromatosis, 413-414 Central pontine myelinolysis, 349
Centronuclear myopathies. 379 Cephalexin. 213-214 Cephalosporin antibiotics. 213-
214 Cerebral blood flow (CBF):
brainstem and, 320
during CABG, 229-230 Cerebral cortex necrosis, 12-13 Cerebral hemisphere:
anatomy, 299/ infarcts, right vs. left. 309 Cerebral T waves. 303
[Cerebrospinal fluid]
lactate levels, 25
pressure. 196
retention, abulia and. 197 Cerebrovascular autoregulation/metabolism, brainstem
and. 320
Cerebrum:
degenerative disorders of, 319
embolism, from mitral valvuloplasty.
262
hypoxic-ischemic insult. 6
ischemia during CABG, prevention
of. 248-249 Cervical carotid at hero sclerosis, stress
test abnormalities, 289 Cervicocranial arteries, 131/ Chagas' disease, 341-342
Channelopaihies:
hyperkalemic periodic paralysis, 388.
390-391
hypokalemic periodic paralysis, 388
390. 389/ Charcot-Bouchard aneurysm rupture. 271-272 Charcot-xMarie-Tooth disease
(CMT).
368 Chest x-ray, of fat embolism. 146 Chloramphenicol. 213 Chlorazepate, 214
Chlordiazepoxide. 214 Chlorothiazide, 204 Chlorthalidone. 204 Cholesterol embolism,
124, 126 Cholcstipol, 211 Cholestyramine, 211 Chronic inflammatory demyelinative
poly rad i c u I one u ro pa t h y (CID P).
337 Chvostek's sign. 400 Cimetidine. 217. 218; Cinnarizine. 210 t inoxacin. 2 13
Index
CK-BB tcreatine kinase brain-type isoenzyme), 25-26, 307 CK-MB (creatine kinase MB
Isoen/\ me), 25
Clarithromycin, 214
Clindamycin. 214
Clofihraie, 210-211
Clonazepam, 214
Clonidine. 207
Closed-chest cardiac massage, 2 Clostridium botulinum. 407
Cloxacillin. 213
Coagulation: cardiac-source embolism and. 77 cascade, 128 increased \ see
Hypercoaguable stales) manipulation (sec Anticoagulants) studies, thrombolytic-
related intracran
ial hemorrhage and, 274
Cocaine: catecholamine storm and, 311 side effects. 218/
Cognition abnormalities: after CABG, 242-244 drug-induced. 2l8r
Collagen disorders. 201
Collateral blood How: brain embolism and, 39 development of, 53
Coma: after CABG, 245 bihemispheral clinical features of, 9-10, 11/ prolonged, 21
brainstem. 9 depth, 20, 21
Common carotid artery (CCA):
anatomy. 131/
atherosclerotic lesions, 131-132
Computed tomography (CT): angiography, 37. 137 aortic valve disease, 88 [Computed
tomography]
brain infarcts. 129-130. 130/
ACA, 55/
hemorrhagic. 41
MCA, 45. 52/ 54/
multiple. 106-107. 107/

cardiac arrest prognosis and. 22-23 encephalopathy, 202 hydrocephalic, ahulie


syndrome, 196
198. 198 Concentration, encephalopathy and, 191-192 Conduction block, motor
neuropathy with, 337-338
Congenital heart disease, mental retardation and. 423-429, 424/, 425/. 427/
Congenital rubella syndrome, 426, 427/
Congestive heart failure: abulia and. 197 brain dysfunction in. 196
cognitivc/intellectuiil functioning. 198-199 metabolic abnormalities in, 195 wilh
neurological lindings, 196
Consciousness: determinants, 9 loss of
in brain embolism. 62
in encephalopathy. 188-189 Convulsive attacks, 313 Copenhagen Atrial Fibrillation
Aspirin
Anticoagulation Study
(AFASAK). 81; Cornelia de Lange syndrome. 428 Cornstarch emboli, 151 Coronary
angiography:
lor asymptomatic CAD wilh carotid stenosis. 293 for cervical carotid or
intracranial stenosis, 289 embolization during
Coronal\ artery bypass graft (CABG): carotid stenosis in asymptomatic, management
of. 236-237 stroke risk and, 236 symptomatic, management of. 237-238, 238/ cerebral
hemodynamics during, 228
229. 228/ cognitive abnormalities after. 242-243 embolization during
pharmacotherapy for. 248-249 prevention of. 247-249 sources of, 227-228
historical background. 226-227 hypothermia during, neuroprotective
effect of, 231-232 impact on brain, 227-232. 228/ ischemic stroke during, 232-
235,233/ neurological complications
postoperative, 244-245
prevention of, 245-249 PaCO: during. 231 pathophysiology, 227-232, 228/
preoperative evaluation. 246 stroke risk after, atrial fibrillation and.
241-242 stroke risk during aortic atherosclerosis and. 238
241. 239/ carotid artery disease and. 235
238. 237/ previous strokes and. 234-235 "tepid," 247 Coronary artery disease (CAD):
asymptomatic
with carotid stenosis {see Carotid artery stenosis, with coronary artery disease)
frequency related to cause, 288 289 noninvasive screening for. 293
[Coronary artery disease] carotid stenosis and. 287 occlusion, cardiac arrest arid.
26 Coronary Artery Surgery Study (CASS).
112. 291 Coronary artery thrombosis, 111. 313 Coronary blood flow (CBF), 246
Coronary dilating drugs. 210 Coronary thrombosis. 36 Corticobasal degeneration. 317
Corticosteroids: for brain edema. 27 cardiac muscle damage and. 311 Corynebactetium
diphtJuriae, 338 Coumadin: prophylactic. 157 with TEE, for cardioversion. 276 278
CPR (cardiopulmonary resuscitation).
Cranial nerve/nerve root disorders, 335 Creatine kinase (CK): after myocardial
infarction. 306-307 brain-type isoenzyme. 25-26. 307 in Duchenne muscular
dystrophy. 369-370 in facioscapulohumeral muscular dystrophy. 374 MB isoenzyme.
25, 306-307 in myopathy, 349 Creatine phosphate, in inclusion body myositis, 394
Crochctage, 119 Cryptogenic stroke. 116, 120, 125, 289 CT (see Computed tomography)
Cushing reflex. 321 Cushing response, 310 Cushing's syndrome, 400-401, 401/
Cystathione-beta-synthase deficiency, 431-432 Cytotoxic edema, 153
Dementia, alcohol-related. 348 349 Depression, after CABG. 242-243 Dermatomyositis,
392-394 Desipramine. 216 Desmin storage myopathies, 379-380 Diabetes mellitus:
acromegaly and, 403 amyotrophy, 345 mononeuropathv multiplex, 345 neuropathies,
344-347 Diaphragmatic paralysis, 322 Diazepam. 214-215 Diazoxide, 209 DIC (see
Disseminated intravascular co* agulation) Dichlorphcnamide, 204 DiGeorge sequence
abnormalities. 429 Digitalis. 203-204.218/ Digoxin prophylaxis, for post-CABG
stroke, 241, 242 Dilated cardiomyopathy. 113, 114. 411 412 Diltiazem, 210, 292
Diphtheritic neuropathy, 338, 339/ Dipyridamole: prophylaxis, with prosthetic heart
valves, 95 side effects of, 211-212, 217/ Direct-current cardioversion (DC
cardioversion): anticoagulants for, 276 stroke risk, 275-276
III: guided. 276-278 Dirilhromycin, 214 Disopyramide. 206 Disseminated
intravascular coagulation (DIC): wilh fat embolism. 146 in nontoximetabolic
encephalopathies, 200 Distal fields t vee Border /one) Diuretics, 204
Doppler ultrasound: color-flow, lor stenosis quantitation.
138. 142/ C-W, 138 Doppler ultrasound, brain embolism. 38 Dorsal medullary
respiratory center, 320 Down syndrome, 423^424, 424/ Doxazosin, neurological side
effects of, 208 Doxepin. 21ft Drugs {see also specific drugs), neurological side
effects of, 203-217. 2l7r, 218/ Dry edema. 153 Duchenne muscular dystrophy:
cardiovascular findings. 370-374, 371/ 373/ diagnosis of, 369-370. 370/ elio logy
of. 369 Duck-diving reflex, 312 Duplex scanning, 138 Dysautonomias: autonomic
function tests for, 331, 332f-333/, 334 cholinergic (see Neuropathies, autonomic)
clinical findings in. 328; definition of, 328 familial, 329-330 Holmes-Adie
syndrome. 330-331 pure autonomic failure, 328-329 Dystonic rigid state, clinical
feamres, 12-13 Dystrophin, 369 Dystrophinopathy, 369
EAFT (European Atrial Fibrillation Trial), 80, 81 f Eastern Cooperative Acute
Stroke Study (ECASS), 154 EC A (external carotid artery). 131-132 ECG (see
Electrocardiogram) Echocardiogram: amyloid cardiomyopathy. 359. 360/
477
ECST (European Carotid Surgery Trial), 129 ECVA (extracranial vertebral artery),
atherosclerotic lesions in, 133 EEG. See Electroencephalography Ehlers-Danlos
syndrome. 91 Electrocardiogram (ECG): Addison's disease, 402 Andersen's syndrome.
391-392 asymptomatic CAD detection, 288 botulism. 407-408 catechol amines and. 310
Cushing's syndrome, 400 Duchenne muscular dystrophy. 372, 373/ Emery-Dreifuss
muscular dystrophy.
374. 375-376. 376/" exercise, forcoronan artciy disease. 294 Friedreich's ataxia.
409. 410/; 412 glycogen storage disease. 381, 383 hypercalcemia, from
hyperparathyroidism, 399 hyperkalemic periodic paralysis, 391 hypocalcemia, from
hypoparathyroidism, 400 hypokalemic periodic paralysis, 389
390. 389/ Ie n i igenos i s -deafness-cardiomy opa t hy syndrome, 433-434 myxedema,
398 patent foramen ovale. 119 pericarditis, 352. 353/-355./. 355-356 during
seizure, 314 in stroke, 303-305, 304/ sudden cardiac death and. 312
Electroencephalography (EEG): cardiac arrest prognosis and. 23-24. 14t in
encephalopathy, 201-202 persistent vegetative state. 12 during seizure, 314
Electrophysiologic brain studies, cardiac arrest prognosis and. 23
|Embolism, brain] aortic valve disease and, 87-90 arterial source. 127-133. 129/,
130/. 131/, 132/ artery-to-artery. 128 baeierial endocarditis and. 89 blood flow
and. 68-69. 71 / 72/ cardiac myxomas and, 114-116 cardiac septal lesions and, 116
121 cardiogenic. 36, 50-51, 77-78 atrial fibrillation and. 78-80, 81/, 82-83
hematologic factors in, 143-144 infarct topography, 50. 57/ infective endocarditis
and, 96-100. 97/. 101/. 102-103, 102/ mitral annulus calcification and. 92-94
prosthetic cardiac valves, 94-96 rheumatic mitral valve disease and, 85-87. 87/
cholesterol, 125 clinical course activity at onset. 59-60 from anterior circulation
occlusion, 63-64 decreased consciousness, 62 early, 53-59. 58/ headache, 60-61, 61/
in middle cerehral artery, 63-64 neurologic symptoms, 62-63 from posterior
circulation occlusion, 64-65 seizures, 61-62 systemic embolism and, 60 transient
ischemic attacks, 59 coronary artery disease and, III113, 111/ in Duchenne
muscular dystrophy, 373-374 evaluation
|Embolism, brain] imaging, 37-38, 54. 65-66 MRA, 134, 136-137 TEE. 134. 135/ 136/
TTE. 134 ultrasound. 137 vascular imaging, 67-69, 69/-72/ 72 fat, 145-147 fibrous
valve thickening and. 103
107. 104/; 107/ 108/ 109-111 hemorrhagic infarction from. 39. 40/ 41-42 historical
background, 35-36 incidence of. 36. 37/ location/size of, 42-46, 42/-55/ 48 53
mitral valve prolapse and. 90-92 monitoring of, 72-76, 74/ 75/ movement. 53-54
before brain damage development. 54-55 lodging and. 38-39 myocardial infarction
and, 111-113, 111/ myocardiopathies and, 113-114 non thrombotic, 144-148 foreign
body-related, 149, 149/151/ 151 tumor-related, 148-149 paradoxical, 116-121
prognostic indicators. 153 prophylaxis, 134, 156-157 risk, during transeptal left
heart catheterization. 259 sources. 36, 76-77, 76/ aorta, 123-127 arterial, 127-
133, 129/, 130/. 131/ 132/ during CABG. 227-229, 228/ during coronary angiography.
259 260
[Embolism, brain] potential donor, evaluation of, 133-134. 135/, 136-139. 136/
139/-144/ 143-144
* 'spectacular shrinking deficit." 55-59 slroke and, 36-37 treat menu 151-152
acute, 152-156. 152/ chronic prophylactic, 156-157 Embolism, systemic. 60, 112
Emery-Drcifuss muscular dystrophy syndrome. 374, 375-376. 376/ Enalapril. 208
Encephalitis, 200 Encephalopathy: after CABG. 243-244 after coronary angiography.
260 anoxic, 261 cardiac, without apparent oilier causes, 196-199 in cardiac
patients, causes of, 192 clinical features of. 187-188 definition of. 186-187
hepatic, 187. 188/. 195 hypoxic-ischemic tsee Hypoxic-ischemic encephalopathy)
with infective endocarditis. 99 laboratory diagnosis, 201-202 metabolic, 187
nontoxinietabolie, 199-201 presence, recognition of, 187-189, 188/, 189/, 190/ 191-
192 toxic, 187 toximetabolic, differential diagnosis of, l92-t96, 193/ Wernicke's,
319, 348-349 Endarterectomy, 156 Endocarditis: atypical verrucous. 103. 104/
infective (see Infective endocarditis) nonbacterial thrombotic endocarditis (NBTE).
105. 107, 109
| Endocrine myopathies! hypercalcemia. 399 h> perparaihyroidism, 399
hyperthyroidism, 395-397, 396/ hypocalcemia, 399-400 hypoparathyroidism. 399-400
hypothyroidism, 397-398, 398/ myxedema, 397-398, 398/ thyrotoxic myopathy, 395 397.
396/ Enolase, neuron-specific, 25-26 Enoxacin, 213 Enteroviruses, poliomyelitis
and, 326 Ephedrine. 318 Epiaortie ultrasound, lor CABG. 247-248 Epilepsy:
cardiovascular phenomena wilh. 314 315 idiopalhie. 313 seizure lypes in, 313-314
Epiloia (tuberous sclerosis). 415, 417
418. 417/ Epinephrine. 310, 31 I Erythityl ictranitrate. 210 Erythrocytes, CABG
impact on. 227 Erythromycin, 213, 214 Esmolol. 209-210 Eihacrynic acid, 204
European Atrial Fibrillation Trial (EAFT), 80 European Carotid Surgery Trial
(ECST). 124 Evoked potentials, cardiac arrest prognosis and, 24-25 Excitotoxins:
cell death of ischemic neurons and. 28-29 in reperfusion injury, 6-7 Exit block. 83
External carotid artery (ECA). 131-132 External hydrocephalus, 198 Extracranial
arteries isee also specific arteries):
Extrapyramidal disorders. 315-318 Eye movements; after cardiac arrest. 22
voluntary, in progressive supranuclear pals), 31 (>
Fabry disease, 365, 367 Facioscapulohumeral muscular dystrophy, 374 Familial
amyloidolic peripheral neuropathy, 357 Familial dysautonomia, 329-330 Familial
neuropathic disorders. 367 368 Famotidine, 217 Fatal familial insomnia, 319 Fat
embolism syndrome: clinical manifestations, 146 mortality rate. 147 pathogenesis
biochemical theory. 145 mechanical theory, 145 treatment of. 147 Fentanyl. 214
Fibrates. 210-21 1 Fibrinogen, serum, 157, 227 Fibromuscular dysplasia (FMD). 127
Fibrous valve thickening, brain embolism and, 103-107, 104/, 107/, 108/, 109-11 I
Flccainide, 206, 217/ Fludrocortisone (Horinef), 318 Fluid-attenuated inversion
recovery MRl (FLAIR), 37. 65. 138 Flunarizine. 210 Fluoxetine. 216 Fluvoxamine.
21ft FMD (fibromuscular dysplasia). 127 Foreign hotly embolism, 149. 149/isiy: i5i
Framingham study. 92-93 Free fatty acids. 145
Furosemide. 204 Gastrointestinal drugs. 217 GCS (Glasgow Coma Scale). 22
Gemlibrozil, 210-211, 217/ Genetic disorders (see specific genetic disorders)
Gentamicin, 213. 214 Glasgow Coma Scale (GCS). 22 Glossopharyngeal neuralgia. 335
Glucose, blood, ischemic brain and, 27 Glutamate. ft-7. 28-29 Glutamale
antagonists, 249 Glycogen storage diseases: McArdle's disease, 380. 381, 383 Pompe
s disease. 380-381. 381/-382/ Tauri disease, 380, 381. 383 GMJ ganglioside, 249
Cowers* sign, 369 Grand mal seizures, 313 Gregg-Swan syndrome. 426. 427/ Guanahenz,
207 Guanadrel, 208 Guanethidine, 208. 217/ Guillain-Barre syndrome: cardiovascular
manifestations. 336 337 etiology of, 336 Miller Fisher variant, 336 symptoms of.
335-336 GUSTO-l trial, 267. 269-271
Hallevorden-Spatz disease, 317-318. 318 Haloperidol, 215 I lan ,\\\\ Stroke
Registry (HSR i: embolism anterior circulation ischemia and, 43 passage,
angiographic of, 53-54 stroke and, 36-37 seizures and, 61 in situ thrombosis vs.
embolism in, 58/ systemic embolism. 60
Hearing loss, after CABG. 245 1 lean: arrest (iw Cardiac arrest) conduction defects
in Becker's muscular dystrophy. 375 in Duchenne muscular dystrophy. 372, 373/ in
facioscapulohumeral muscular dystrophy, 374 congenital disease, mental retardation
and. 423-429, 424/ 425/. 427/ congestive failure (see Congestive heart failure) in
Lyme disease, 343-344. 344// neurocutaneous diseases and. 432
435. 433/-435/ in Pompe's disease, 380-381. 381 / 382/ HeartMate 1000 device. 264-
265 Heart transplantation. 199 Heart valves: disease with atrial fibrillation. 78-
79 brain embolism and. 37 cardioembohc stroke and. 84-85 emboli from. 77
spontaneous echo contrast and. 79 outlet obstruction. 84 prosthetic brain embolism
and, 94-96 endocarditis, 10(1 stenotic, 84 thickening, brain ischemia and, I 10
111 vegetations, 99-100. 101/. 103. 104/ Hemicranieetomy, 153 Hemodilution, 27
Heparin: for acute thromboembolism. 155-156 for chronic prophylaxis. 157
neurological side effects of, 212-213 with thrombolysis, intracranial hemor
Hereditary motor and sensory neuropathy (HMSN). 367-368 Hereditary hemorrhagic
telangiectasia, 422-423 Heteditofamilial system disorders (see specific
herediiofamitiat system disorders)
ilexamethonium. 298 High-intensity transient signals (IMTSi, 38 Hippocampus,
hypoxic-ischemic insuk. 6 Hirudin. 270 Histamine H: antagonists, 213, 217 HIT-ILL
270 HITS (high-intensity transient signals). 38 "Holiday heart," 350 Holmcs-Adic
syndrome. 330-331 Homocysteinemia, 431 -432 Homocystinuria. 431 432 Huntington's
chorea. 318 Hydralazine. 209. 217;. 2IS; Hydrocephalic, abulic syndrome. 196 198
Hydrochlorothiazide. 204 Hydroxymethylglutary! coenzyme A-reductase inhibitors. 211
Hypercalcemia, 399 Hypercoagulable states: conditions associated with, I 17
myocardial infarction and. 111 nontoximetabolic encephalopathies and, 199-200
Hyperdense middle cerebral artery sign, 66 Hyperkalemia, from potassium-sparing
diuretics, 204 Hyperkalemic periodic paralysis. 388 Hyperoxygenation. 27
Hyperparathyroidism. 399
I lypertension: during CABG. 230-231 induced 27-28 intracranial hemorrhage risk
and,
267 Hyperthyroidism. 395-397. 396/" Hypertroph ie card iomyopiithy:
Fabry disease and, 367 Friedreich's ataxia. 409, 411 in lcn ti gcnos i s -dca fnes
s-eard iom yopa
thy syndrome. 432
stroke rate in, 89 Hyperventilation. 27 Hyperviscosity syndrome. 200 Hypocalcemia,
399-400 Hypokalemic periodic paralysis. 388
390. 389/ Hypoparathyroidism, 399-400 Hypoperfusion:
brain damage and. 6 during CABG. 229-231. 234 Hypotension, in spinal cord injury.
322-323
Hypothalamus: disorders of, 319-320 stimulation, 3 10
Hypothermia: for hypoxic-ischemic encephalopathy. 28 neuroprotective effect during
CABG.
231-232 Hypothyroidism, 397-398, 398/ Hypoventilation, 194 Hypoxia, 6, 196 (see
also Hypoxic-isch
emic encephalopathy) Hypoxic-ischemic encephalopathy:
clinical abnormalities in
action myoclonus, 17
amnesia, 16-17
bihemispheral coma. 9-10.

11/ border zone infarction. 13, 14/ fHypoxic-ischemieencephalopalhy]


spinal paraplegia, 17-18
definition of, 6
EEG classification, 23-24, 24/
injury patterns in, 7, It. 8/-9/
pathology of, 6

prognosis, clinical examination and,


18-22, 18/
treatment, 27-29
ICA. See Internal carotid artery ICVA (see Intracranial vertebral
artery) Idiopathic dilated cardiopathy. 113 Idiopathic hypertrophic subaortic
steno
sis liHSS). 89 Imipramine. 216 inclusion body myositis. 394-395 Infarction, brain:
arterial supply, absence of lesion in,
67 from cardiac-origin emboli. 52 distribution, 52. 58/ extent, treaUnenl risk and.
154 hemorrhagic, from brain embolism,
39. 40/ 41-42 ischemic, hemorrhagic transformation of. 273 ischemic stroke during
CABG and, 233-234, 233/
multiple
cortical/subcortical. 51
lacunar, 317

silent, 66, 129


size, in seizure patients, 62

Infective endocarditis: infecting organisms. 100. 102 neurologic complications, 97


brain hemorrhage. 98-99 brain ischemia, 97-98 encephalopathy, 99 meningitis, 99
Inflammatory myopathies, 392-394 Insulin, cardiovascular effects of, 347
Intellectual functioning, in encephalopa
thy. 189
Internal carotid artery (ICA): anatomy. 131/' emboli, 38. 43-44. 44/ stenosis, 74
75, 128, 129 thrombosis in, 155
Internal hydrocephalus. 198 Inua-aortic balloon pump, neurologic complications
from, 263
Intracerebral hemorrhage: with infective endocarditis, 98-99 from thrombolytic
therapy for MI.
265-266 ' Intracranial arteries (see also specific in fminimal arteries)
anatomy. 56/ angiography. 138 -140 atherosclerosis, stress test abnormali
ties, 289
imaging, 137-138
TCD, 138

ultrasonography. 68. 69/ 70/ occlusion, sudden, 67 stenosis (see also Carotid
artery ste
nosis) stress lest abnormalities. 289 stroke risk during CABG. 246
superficial branches, blockage of, 67 symptomatic, rilling defect in. 67
69, 69/-72/ 72 Intracranial dissections. 133 Intracranial hemorrhage:
after CABG. 245 from anticoagulant usage. 212-213 bradycardia and, 306 with
infective endocarditis, 98-99 thrombolytic-re lated
CT scan. 272/
[ Intracranial hemorrhagel prognosis for. 274 radiological features of. 270 271
risk factors for, 266-270 signs/symptoms of, 273-274 treatment of, 274-275
Intracranial pressure, increased. 27, 310
Intracranial vertebral artery ilCVAi: anatomy, 56/ 69, 73/ atherosclerotic lesions
in, 133 embolism in, 48-49
Ion exchange resins, neurological side effects of, 21 1
Ischemia, brain: blood (low increase for, 27-28 heart valve thickening and. 110-111
infarction from (see Infarction, brain) from infective endocarditis, 97-98 mitral
valve prolapse and, 91-92
Isosorbide di nit rate. 210 Isosorbide mononitrate, 210
Jaeksonian seizures. 313 Jervell and Lange-Nielsen syndrome. 434-435, 434/ 435/
Jiiter. 405
K u i n ate - a I p ha -a m i no- 3 - hy droxy-5methyl-r-isoazole proprionate
(AMPA) receptor. 29
Kanamycin, 214 Kcarns-Sayre syndrome, 385. 387 Kidney dysfunction, with cardiac
decom
pensation, 194 Kinky-hair disease, 387 Korsakoff's psychosis. 348 Korsakoff s
syndrome. 191 Kyphoscoliosis, in Friedreich's ataxia,
408, 409/
Labetalol. 209-210 Lactate/pyruvate ratio. 25
Language screening. 189. 189/ Lausanne Stroke Registry: atriaJ fibrillation and,
80. 306 infarct topography. 50. 57/ potential cardiac sources of embolism. 122-
123, 123/ seizures and. 62 systemic embolism, 60 Lazaroids, for hypoxic-ischemic
encephalopathy. 28 L-dopa. 218/. 318 Leber's hereditary optic neuropathy. 386 Left
ventricular assist devices, neurologic complications. 264 265 Left ventricular
ejection fraction. 113 Leigh's subacute necrotizing cncephalomyelopathy. 385-386
Lentigenosis-deafncss-cardiomyopathy svndrome. 432 434. 433/ Leprosy, 340-341
Leukocytes, CABG impact on, 227 Leukoencephalopathy, 12, 13 Levofloxacin.
neurological side effects of, 213 Lewy body inclusions, 315-316 Libman-Sacks
lesions, 104-105, 104/* Lidocaine: for hypoxic-ischemic encephalopathy, 28
neurologic side effects of, 205-206, 218/ Lidoflazine: for hypoxic-ischemic
encephalopathy, 28 neuroloiric side effects of, 210 Limb girdle muscular
dystrophies. 377 Limb movement, spontaneous, after cardiac arrest. 20
Lipomas, 115 Lipoprotein deficiency disorders. 362 364 Lipuria, in fat embolism,
146-147 Li sell nodules. 413, 414/ Listeria monocytogenes, 321 Lithium. 216. 218/
Liver congestion, in congestive heart failure, 194 Liver encephalopathy (see
Hepatic encephalopathy) Lorn ofloxacin, neurological side effects of. 213 Long QT-
deafness syndromes, 434-435, 434/ 435/ Long QT syndromes. 391 Loop diuretics, 204
Lorazepam, 214, 215 Losartan, 208 Louis-Bar syndrome. 412-413 Lovostatin, 211
Lower-extremity ischemia, from inlraaortic balloon pump, 263 Lumbal1 puncture: in
abulic patients, 198 for encephalopathy, 202 Lungs, fat embolism in. 145 Lupus
erythematosis. endocarditic lesions in, 104-106 Lyme borreliosis. 342-344, 344/
Lymphomatoid granulomatosis. 201
Maastricht Stroke Registry, seizures and, 62 MAC (see Mitral annulus
calcification) McArdle's disease (glycogenosis type V). 380, 381, 383 Machado-
Joseph's disease. 318 Macro!ide antibiotics. 2t4 Magnetic resonance angiography
(MRA):
Magnetic resonance imaging (MRIi: brain embolism, 37, 65-66 cardiac arrest
prognosis and. 22-23 encephalopathy, 202 FLAIR, 37. 65, 138 hemorrhagic infarction,
41 infarction, 51 / 52/ 154
"Man-in-the-barrel" syndrome, 16 Maprotiline, 216 Marc hiafava-Bign ami disease,
349 Marfans syndrome, 89-90. 91 Matudinal embolus, 60 MCA (sec Middle cerebral
artery) Mean arterial pressure (MAP), during
CABG, 230-231 Mecamylamine. 208 Mechanical heart wthes (see Heart
valves, prosthetic) Medulla, respiration and. 320 Medullary reticular zone, 320
MELAS syndrome, 386, 388 Membrane oxygenators, lor CABG.
227. 247 Memory testing, 191 Meningitis, wilh infective endocarditis,
99 Menkes disease, 387 Mental retardation, congenital heart dis
ease and, 423-429. 424/, 425/.
427/ Meperidine. 214 MERRF syndrome, 386 Metabolic encephalopathy. 187 Meta-
iodobenzylguanidine (MIBG), 359 Methazolamide. 204 Methvlccllulosc emboli. 151
Methylclothiazide. 204 N-Methyl-d-aspartate (NMDA) receptor,
29 Methyldopa, 207. 218/ Metoclopramide. 217 Mctoprolol. 209-210
MIBG (meta-iodobenzj lguanidine), 359
Michael Reese Stroke Registry: anterior circulation embolism in, 43 mitral annulus
calcification in, 92
93 in situ thrombosis is. embolism in, 58/
systemic embolism in, 60 Microembolization. during CABG, 234 Middle cerebral artery
(MCA):
anatomy, 131/
atherosclerotic lesions in. 132
embolism, 155

from calcific aortic valves. 88 clinical course of. 63-64 experimental. 44


infarction from. 39, 41. 42/. 44
46, 44/-46/ monitoring of, 73-74 "spectacular shrinking deficit"
and, 55-59
hyperdense sign, 66
infarction, 67

hemorrhagic, 39, 41. 42/, 52. 52/ patterns of. 45, 47/-54/ stroke during CABG and.
233.
233/
ultrasonography of. 69 Misoprostol, 217 Mitochondrial cnccphalomyopathies,
385-388
Milral annulus calcification (MAC): brain embolism and. 92-94 with idiopathic
hypertrophic subaortic
stenosis, 89 stroke with atrial fibrillation and. 79 Milral valve:
prolapse. 119
brain embolism and. 90-92
Fabrv disease and, 367

rheumatic disease. 36. 85-87. 87/


M lira I valvuloplasty: embolism and. 86 neurological complications, 261-262 Mixed
connective tissue disorder, 394 MK-801, 29 MNCIE syndrome, 387 Mononeuropathies,
diabetic, 344-345 Moricizinc, 207 Motor abnormalities, fat embolism and, 146 Motor
neuropathy, widi conduction block. 337-338 Mouth-to-mouth respiratory
resuscitation, 2 MRA (sec Magnetic resonance angiography) MR! (sec Magnetic
resonance imaging) Mucinous adenocarcinomas, 200 Multisystem atrophy (MSA), 317
Muscular dystrophies: Becker's, 375 Duchenne, 369-374. 370/, 371/ 373/ Emery-
Drcifuss, 374, 375-376, 376/' facioscapulohumeral, 374 limb girdle, 377 myotonic.
377-378 oculopharyngeal, 376-377 Myasthenia gravis, 397, 404-405 Mycobacterium
leprae, 340 Mycotic aneurysms, angiography of. 98-99 Myelopathy, from intra-aortic
balloon pump, 263 Myocardial infarction (MI): brain embolism and, 36, 37. 11I 113,
111/ wilh CAD history. 290-291 exercise-induced, 289 hypercoaguable and. 111
premature, Fabry disease and. 367 silent diabetes with autonomic neuropa
Myocardial injury: catecholamine storm and. 311 ischemic, provocative tests for,
287 in stroke, mechanisms of, 308-31J Myocardiopalhies, brain embolism and. 113-114
Myoclonic jerks: aflei cardiac ai rest. 20 2 I clinical features, 10-1 I Myoclonic
seizures, 11 Myoclonic status epileptic us. El. 21 Myoclonus: action. 17 definition
of, 10-11 Myocytolysis, 307-308, 315 Myofibrillar degeneration, in stroke. 308
Myopathies: alcohol-related, 349 congenital/metabolic, 378-381. 382/ 383-385, 383/
endocrine isee Endocrine myopathies) Myotonia congenita, 392 Myotonic dystrophy,
377-378 Myxedema, 397-398. 398/ Myxomas, brain embolisms and. 114-116
Nadolol. 209-210 Nalidixic acid, 213 Narcotics, 218/ NARP syndrome, 386-387 NASCET
(North American Symptomatic Carotid Endarterectomy Trial), 129-130, 129/, 130/,
238 National Institute of Neurological Diseases and Stroke (NINDS), 153 NBTE
(nonbacterial thrombotic endocarditis), 105, 107, 109 N em aline myopathy. 378-379
Neomycin, 214 Nervous system (see also Central nervous system):
anatomy/physiology. 298-303. 299,/
[Nervous system 1 of brain embolism. 62-63, 186 of hypotension/hypoperfusion. 186
of Lyme disease. 342
parasympathetic cardiovascular effects of spinal eord injury and. 323-324. 323/
innervation of, 298-299, 322 sympathetic, anatomy/physiology of, 299-303, 301/
Neurocutaneous diseases, heart and,
432-435, 433/-435/ Neurofibromatosis. 115.413-415. 414/ Neuroleptic malignant
syndrome. 215 Neurological signs, of fal embolism.
146 Neuromuscular blocking drugs. 21/3, 216-217 Neuromuscular junction disorders.
404 408 Neuromuscular transmission disorders. 4O4^t08
Neuropathies: amyloid, 357-358 autonomic
alcohol related peripheral neuropathy and, 35 I with diabetic peripheral
polyneurop
athy, 345-346
with porphyria, 361-362
tests for, 331 /-33 3/
infectious/inflammatory. 335-344, 339/ 344/
metabolic alcohol-related, 347-351 diabetic, 344-347 uremic, 351-352, 353/-355/.
355
356
peripheral
alcohol-related, 347-351
definition of. 346
hydralazine and, 209

Neuroprotective agents. 28-29. 152


153. 152/ (see also specific neuroprotective agents)
Nicardipine, 210
Nicotinic acid. 211. 217/
Nicotinic receptor blocking agents,

298 Nifedipine, 210, 292 Nimodipinc:


for hy p o x ie - i sc h e mic c nee phai opathy. 28 neurological side effects of,
210 NINDS (National Institute of Neurologi
cal Diseases and Stroke), 153 Nitrofurantoin. 213 Nitroglycerin. 210. 217/
Nizatidine, 217 NMDA receptor, 29 Nonbacterial thrombotic endocarditis
(NBTE). 105. 107. 109 Noonan syndrome, 426-427 No-re flow phenomenon, 6
Norepinephrine, siroke and. 310 Norfloxacin, 213 North American Symptomatic Carotid

Endarterectomy Trial (NASCET).


129-130, 129/, 130/. 238 Nortriptyline, 216 Nucleus of solitary tract <NST), 302,
320
Oculopharyngeal muscular dystrophy,
376-377 Ofloxacin, 213 Olivopontocerebellar atrophy (OPCA),
317 Omeprazole, 217/ Ondine's curse, 320-321 OPCA (olivopontocerebellaratrophy).
317 f )pioid drugs. 2 14 Optical apraxia, 16 Optical ataxia, 16 Organ
dysfunction/failure, with cardiac Osier-Weber-Rendu syndrome, 422-423 Osmolie
agents, for brain edema, 27 Osteogenesis imperfecta, 9J Overlap syndrome, 394
Oxazepam. 214, 215 Oxygen, ischemic brain and. 27-28
Pacemakers, for sick sinus syndrome,
84 Pancuronium. 217 Papillary tibroelaslomas. M5 Parabraehial Kolliker-Fuse region,
320 Parabrachial region. 320 Paradoxical embolism. 77 Paramomyein. 214 Paramyotonia
congenita. 388, 392 Parasympathetic nervous system:
activity. 312 cardiovascular effects of spinal cord injury and, 323-324, 323/
innervation. 298-299. 322 Parkinson's disease, 315-318 Paroxetine, 216 Paroxysmal
atrial tachycardia, subarachnoid hemorrhage and, 306 Partial complex seizures.
313-314 Partial seizures. 313 Patau syndrome (trisomy 13), 426 Patent foramen ovale
(PFO): paradoxical embolism and. 116-121 stroke recurrence with, 120-121
transcatheter closure. 120-121
PCA (fief Posterior cerebral artery) Pefloxacin, 213 Penicillin, 213
Pcnlaerythritol. 210 Penumbral tissue (see Stunning) Percutaneous coronary
angiography (see
Coronary angiography) Perfloxacin. 213 Peri-CABG stroke. 235 Pericardial rub. 352
Peripheral nervous system: amiodarotie-induced polyneuropathy, 206-207 injury (see
also Neuropathies, peripheral) from in Ira-aortic balloon pump. 263 nerve/nerve
root disorders. 334 369 problems, after CABG, 244-245 Peroneal palsy, after CABG,
244
245 Persistent vegetative state, 11-12 Petcchiae, fat embolism and, 146 Petit mal
attacks, 314 PFO (see Patent foramen ovale) Phcno\\ ben/amine. 208 Phentolatnine,
208 Phenytoin. for hypoxic-ischemic enceph
alopathy, 28
Pheoe hromoeytoma: catecholamine levels in. 310. 311 ECG, 416/-417/
neurofibromatosis and, 414-415 in Von Hippel-Lindau disease, 419
Phosphenytoin, for hypoxic-ischemic en
cephalopathy, 28 Physicians Health Study, 212 Phytanic acid storage disorder, 364.
365/ 366/ PICA (see Posterior inferior cerebellar
artery) Pindolol. 209-210 Pituitary apoplexy, after CABG. 245 Plaque,
atherosclerotic:
B-mode ultrasound. 138, 139/-141/ development of, 127-128 echolucent, 130 types of.
141/
Plasma proteins, CABG impact on. 227 Platelets:
Poliomyelitis: cardiovascular abnormal!Lies. 326.
327/, 328
clinical features. 326
etiology. 326

Polyarteritis nodosa. 201 Polycythemia, 200 Polymyositis, 392, 393


Polyradiculoneuropathy:
acute inflammatory. 335-337 chronic inflammatory demyelinative, 337
diabetic thoracolumbar. 345 Pompe's disease. 380-381, 381/-383/ Pons, respiration
and. 320 Porphyrias, 361-362 Posterior cerebral artery (PCA):
anatomy, 56/ 131/
embolism. 46/, 49, 64. 65
infarcts, 40/ 41. 43/. 49. 233, 233/

Posterior inferior cerebellar artery (PICA): anatomy, 69, 73/ embolism in, 49, 64-
65
Postural hypotension: in extrapyramidal disorders, 318 in Guillain-Barre syndrome,
337
Potassium, in reperfusion injury. 6-7
Potassium-sensitive periodic paralysis (hyperkalemic periodic paralysis), 390-391
Potassium-sparing diuretics. 204 Pravastatin, 211 Prazosin, 208 Prealbumin, 357-358
Premature accelerated aging syndromes.
429-432 Premature atrial beats, subarachnoid hemorrhage and. 30b Premature
ventricular heals, subarachnoid hemorrhage and, 306 Preoptic region. 320 Prohucol.
21 1
Progeria. 429-430 Progressive autonomic failure, 328 329 Progressive cerebral
poliodystrophy, 387 Progressive external ophthalmoplegia, 385 Progressive
supranuclear palsy (PSPi.
316-317, 318 Propafenone, 207 Propranolol. 209-210 Prostacyclin, for platelet
adhesion pre*
vention. 248 Prosthetic heart valves (see Heart valves, prosthetic) Protein C.
cardiogenic embolism and.
143-144 Pn ill ipi ihne. 2 I o Proximal arterial disease, 52 PSP (progressive
supranuclear palsy).
316-317. 318 Psychosis, drugs causing, 218/ Psychotropic drugs. 214-215 Pulmonary
disorders, in toximetabolic
encephalopathy, 194 Pulmonary edema, in stroke, 307 Pulmonary embolism, 117 Pulse
pressure, intracranial hemorrhage
and, 267-268 Pupillary light reflex testing. 19-20 Pupils:
dilatation, after cardiac arrest, 20 in Holmcs-Adie syndrome, 330 Pure autonomic
failure, 328-329
Q-T interval prolongation, in stroke.
303-305 Quinidine. 205, 218/ Quinolone antibiotics. 213
Ranitidine. 217
Recombinant tissue plasminogen activa

Reperfusion: brain embolism recovery and, 153 danger of, 154 injury, 308
hemorrhagic infarction and, 41 theoretical hypothesis, 6-7 Reserpine. 208, 218/
Respiration: hypothalamus and. 319-320 spina! cord injuries and, 322 Restrictive
cardiomyopathy, in amyloidosis, 358-359 Resuscitation, historical aspects of, 1-2
Retrograde amnesia. 16 Revascularization: for asymptomatic CAD with carotid
stenosis, 293 efficacy of. 292 Reye figure. 189. 190/ Rhabdomyomas: multiple. 115
in tuberous sclerosis, 418. 421/-422/ Rheumatic mitral valve disease, brain
embolism and. 36, 85-87, 87/ Rheumatoid arthritis, 201 Riley Day syndrome (familial
dysautonomia), 329-330 Romano-Ward syndrome. 434. 435 Rubenstein-Taybi's syndrome.
428 'Rum fits,* 348
St. Jude mechanical heart valve. 94, 96 Saphenous neuropathy, after CABG, 245 SAVE
(Survival and Ventricular Enlargement), 112-113 SCADs (small capillary and
arteriolar dilatations). 229, 230/ 260 Scapula winging. 374 Sedatives, side
effects of, 214-215,218/ Seizures: after cardiac arrest, 21
f Seizure a] recurrent {see Epilepsy) types of. 313-314 Seldinger technique, 259
Septal hypertrophy, 89 Serine protease coagulation proteins. 11 I Serotonin uptake
inhibitors, 216 Sertraline, 216 Sexual intercourse, strokes and. 117 Shotgun
injury, foreign body embolism from, 149. 149/-151/ 151 Shunts, emboli from, 77 Shy-
Drager syndrome, 317 Sickle cell anemia, fat embolism and, 145 Sick sinus ndromc:
brain embolism and, 83-84 emboli from. 77 epilepsy and, 314 Silent infarcts. 66,
129 Simvastatin, 211 Single-tilting-disk valves. 94 Sinoatrial disorder (see Sick
sinus syndrome) Sinus bradycardia, subarachnoid hemorrhage and, 306 Sinus node
dysfunction, 83-84 Skeletal muscle abnormalities, in Duchenne muscular dystrophy,
372 Small capillary and arteriolar dilatations (SCADs). 229. 230/ 260 Smoke
(spontaneous echo contrast). 79 Smoking. 289 Sodium nitroprusside, 209 Solatol,
209-210 Sones technique, 259 SPAF (Stroke Prevention in Atrial Fibrillation
Study), 79-80, 81/. 82 Sparlloxacin, 213 SPECT, 246 "Spectacular shrinking
deficit,'1 55-59,63 Spinal cord: anatomy/physiology. 321
Spinal fluid {see Cerebrospinal fluid) Spinal paraplegia. 17-18 Spinal shock. 322
Spironolactone, 204 Spontaneous echo contrast (smoke), val
vular disease and. 79 SUM) protein levels. 26 Square-root sign, 359 Staphylococcus
aureus endocarditis, 98.
99, 100. 102. 102/. 199 Starr-Ed wards valve. 94 Status epileplicus:
after cardiac arrest, 21 myoclonic, 11 Steele-Richardson-Olzewski syndrome.
316-317 Sleinert disease. 377-378 Stellate ganglion:
anatomy, 300, 301/
left
innervation pattern of, 301
stimulation of. 310

right
innervation pattern of. 301
stimulation of. 301-302

Stenosis: basilar artery. 246 carotid artery {see Carotid artery ste
nosis) severity, symptomatology and, 128
130. 129/, 130/
valvular, 84 Streptokinase. 155. 269 Streptomycin, 214 Stress:
cardiac muscle damage and, 31 1
cardiac-related death and. 311-313 Strianigral degeneration, 317 Stroke:
after myocardial infarction, left ventricular impairment and, 112 after
percutaneous transluminal coro*
[Stroke] during CABG, 232-235, 233/ cardiac pathology of. 307-308 cardiovascular
manifestations. 303
307. 304/ arrhythmias, 305-306 cardiac en/ynie elevations, 306-307
with carotid stenosis, carotid endarterectomy with medical theraps for. 287-288
with coronary atherosclerosis. 311 cryptogenic. 116. 120. 125,289 Fabry disease
and. 367 in hypertrophic cardiomyopathy. 89 |s JiCJlllC
during CABG. 232-235, 233/ risk, thrombolytic therapy for MI
and. 266 management, after CABG, 249 MCA involvement, 117 in myocardial infarct
patients, 111 myocardial injury in, mechanisms of.
308-311
postangiography, 259
previous
intracranial hemorrhage and, 268 recurrent slroke during CABG and, 234-235
prognostic risk factors, arterial steno
sis severity, 128-130, 129/, 130/ pulmonary edema in, 307 recurrence
with mitral valve prolapse, 92 wilh PFOs, 120 121
risk, 232 after cardioversion. 275 during CABG. aortic atherosclero
sis and. 238-241, 239/
during sexual intercourse, 117
in situ thrombosis and. 59-60

Stroke Data Rank: cardiogenic embolism in. 121-122.


(Stroke Data Bank) seizures and. 62 systemic embolism. 60
Siroke Prevention in Atrial Fibrillation (SPAF). 79-80 Siroke registries (see
specific siroke registries)
S-T segment abnormalities, in stroke, 305
Stunning: atrial, 83, 275 mechanism of. 54 spectacular shrinking deficit and. 63
Subarachnoid hemorrhage: arrhythmias and, 306 thrombob tic-related. 271
Substantia nigra. Lewy body inclusions
in, 315-316 Succinylcholine, 216-217 Sudden cardiac death:
of CAD patients, 290-291
during epileptic seizure, 315
historical aspects, 311-312
incidence of. 1
stress and, 313

Sulfonamides. 213 Superior cerebellar artery. 56/ Survival and Ventricular


Enlargement
(SAVE). 112-113 Sympathetic nervous system, anatomy/
physiology, 299-303, 301/ Sympatholytic drugs. 208 Syphilitic aneurysms, 124, 126
Syphilitic aortitis, 126 Syringomyelia, 325 Systemic inflammatory disorders. 201
Systemic lupus erythematosis. 104-106,
201
Tabes dorsal is, 325 Tachycardia: with seizure. 314
Takayasu's disease, 126, 127 Talazoline. 208 Talc emboli, 151 Tangier disease. 363-
364 Tapeworm infestation, 395 Tarazosin, 208 Tauri disease, 380, 381, 383 TCD {see
Transcranial Doppler ultra
sound) TEE (see Transesophageal echocardio
gram) Temporal arteritis, 127 Temporal-parietal-occipital region in
farction, 13. 14/ 15-16, 15/ Tetracyclic antidepressants. 215 216 Thalamus,
dorsomedial nucleus. 302 Thallium myocardial perfusion imagine.
289-290 Theophylline, 218/ Thiamine deficiency. 348, 351 Thiazide diuretics. 204
Thomson's disease, 392 Thrombi [sett Thrombus) Tli romboe tnbol i sm:
CABG and. 227 left ventricular assist devices and, 264 -265 Thrombolytic drugs (see
also specific thrombolytic drugs)
for cardiac thrombi, 112 contraindications, 268 for coronary angiography. 260
danger of, 154 intra-arterial, 155 intracranial hemorrhage risk and.
268-269 intravenous. 154-155 for myocardial infarction, neuro
logical complications of, 265-266 timing. 153-154 Thromboplastin. 145
[Thrombosis] leg/pelvic, promotion of, 117 in situ strokes an J, 59-60 vs.
embolism, 58/ valvular, 94 Thrombotic thrombocytopenic purpura, 200 Thromboxane A:,
CABG impact on, 227 Thromboxane B.. CABG impact on, 227 Thrombus: antecedent
conditions, 77 atrial appendage. 78-79 development, after cardioversion, 82 83
formation (see Thrombosis) left ventricular. Ill , 112. 113 mural, 112. 113
obstructive (see Embolism, brain; Thromboembolism) "red." 128 Thyroid-stimulating
hormone (TSH), 396 Thyrotoxic myopathy. 395-397. 396/ TIAs (see Transient ischemic
attacks) Tic douteureaux (trigeminal neuralgia), 335 TIMI-9A trial. 270 TIMI-9B
trial, 270 TDMI-II trial, 267, 268, 270 Timolol, 209-210 Tissue plasminogen
activator (tPA). 268-269 Tobacco-alcohol ambylopia. 349 Tobramycin, 214 Tocainide.
206, 218/ Torsade de pointes. subarachnoid hemorrhage and. 306 Toxic
encephalopathy. IS7 Toxtmetabolic encephalopathy, differen
Tranquilizers, 218/ Transcranial Doppler ultrasound (TCD): arterial stenosis. 128
during CABG, 228-229, 228/, 247, 248 intracranial arteries, 68, 69/ 70/^ 138
monitoring aortic valvuloplasty, 262 emboli. 72 -76. 74/ 75/ infective
endocarditis. 98 prosthetic heart valve, 95 pulmonary shunting diagnosis. 118
Transesophageal echocardiogram (TEE): aortic atherosclerosis in peri-CABG siroke.
239 aortic lesions, 125-126 atheroma. 124 atrial fibrillation. 78-79 brain
embolism, 37, 134, 135/ 136/ for CABG. 247. 248 for cardioversion guidance. 276-278
left atrial thrombus with atrial fibrination, 275 mitral annulus calcification. 93
before mitral valvuloplasty. 262 quantification of PFO. 118 Transient ischemic
attacks (TIAs): after percutaneous transluminal coronary angioplasty, 261 aortic
valve disease and, 88 with asymptomatic CAD, 288-289 brain embolism and. 59
definition of, 59 historical aspects of, 36 stroke risk during CABG, an I
[coagulation and. 246 Transthyretin. 357-358 Trazadone, 216 Triamterene. 204
Triazolam, 214, 215 Triehinelfti spiralis, 395 Trichinosis, 395
Tricyclic antidepressants, 215-216 Trigeminal neuralgia (tie douleureaux). 335
Trimcthuphan. 208 Trimethoprim, 213. 218/ Trimipramine. 216 Trinucleotide repeal
disorders, 377 Trisomy 13 syndrome (Patau syndrome). 426 Trisomy 18 syndrome.
425^426, 425/ Troleandomyein, 214 Trouafioxaein. 213 Trousseau's sign, 400
Trypanosoma cruzi, 341 TSH (thyroid-slimtilaling hormone). 396 TTE. 118, 134
Tuberous sclerosis: clinical features of. 415, 417-418, 417/ rhabdomyomas and, 115.
418. 421/ 422/ Tubocurarine, 217 Tumor embolism, 148-149 T wave inversion, in
stroke. 304/ 305
Ulnar nerve palsy, after CABG. 244 245 Ultrasonography: advantages. 68 B-mode,
atherosclerotic plaque, 138. 139/_I4I/ brain embolism, 137 color-flow Doppler, for
stenosis quantitation, 138, 142/ C-W Doppler. 138 intracranial urteries, 68, 69,
69/ 70/ 72 transcranial Doppler (see Transcranial Doppler ultrasound j Uremia. 195
Uremic neuropathy: cardiovascular findings in, 352. 35.3/
Vagus nerve, 298. 322 Valsalva maneuver, I 17 Valvular heart disease {see Heart
valves, disease) Valvular outlet obstruction, 84 Valvuloplasty, aortic, 89. 262-263
Vancomycin. 2 14 Vascular imaging, of brain embolism, 67-69, 69/-72/, 72
Vasculitis, lupus, 105 Vasoactive intestinal peptide, 298 Vegetative state,
persistent, 11-12 Velocardiofacini syndrome, 428-429 Vcnlafaxine, 216 Venous dural
sinus occlusion. 200 Ventricle: cavity lesions, emboli from. 77 dysfunction, 79
enlargement, valve incompetence and, 85
left
aneurysms, 112 thrombi in. 111. 112. 113 Ventricular fibrillation, I. 312
Ventricular myocardial abnormalities, emboli from. 77 Ventricular tachycardia,
subarachnoid hemorrage and, 306 Ventrolateral medulla, 320 Verapamil. 210
Vercuronium, 217 Vertebral artery atherosclerosis, 132 133 Vertebrobasilar
arteries, embolism, clinical course of. 64-65 Vertebrobasilar stroke, after
coronary angiography. 259 Visual-spatial abilities, 189-191. \90f Von Gierke's
disease. 380 Von Hippel-Lindau disease. 418-419 Von Recklinghausen's disease, 413,
414/ 415

Index
Warfarin: for atrial fibrillation. 80 neurological side effects of. 212 213 wilh
TEE. for cardioversion. 276 278 Watershed region (see Border zone) Watson-Schwart/
test. 361 Wegener's granulomatosis. 201 Werner's syndrome. 430-431
495
Wernicke-Korsakoff syndrome. 348 349 Wernicke's encephalopathy. 319 While clot
syndrome. 127, 212 Whole-blood viscosity, in nontoximelabolic encephalopathy. 200
Williams syndrome. 427128 Wolff-Parkinson-White syndrome. 388
Zellweger's disease. 422

You might also like